Timothy
By Jane Marwood
hagnaby77@yahoo.com
Copyright 2017 by Jane Marwood, all rights reserved
*
* * * *
This work is intended for ADULTS ONLY. It may contain depictions of
sexual activity
involving minors. If you are not of a legal age in your locality to
view such material or
if such material does not appeal to you, do not read further, and do
not save this
story.
* * * * *
Timothy by Jane Marwood
Timothy looked at his mother as
she sat down in the easy chair by the fireplace of their picturesque family
cottage. His face showed concern as she winced with the pain she felt
throughout her slender and petite body. His mother, although beginning to
suffer the first symptoms of a bout of influenza, had, as always, carefully
applied makeup to her delicate and refined features. Jenny Althorpe had been
blessed with a beauty and grace that was near perfection. Her face was exquisitely
featured; the high cheekbones and beautiful shaped lips now revealed perfect
teeth as she smiled at her son's concerned expression. She was the product of
several generations of fine breeding.
Jenny was dressed in a crisp
white cotton blouse and navy skirt that complimented her slender and trim
figure. Although she was now thirty-four years old, her face and body would
have had even the most discerning admirer guessing at twenty-five.
Timothy had inherited the perfect
features of his mother and equally the strong physique of his father who had
died at the wheel of his car while making his usual journey to his office in
London soon after Timothy's birth.
Timothy was now fourteen years
old and was to Jenny's mind the most perfect son a mother could ask for. He was
kind obedient and although perhaps a little shy, had a keen and responsible
attitude to his schoolwork and household duties.
Jenny sighed as she looked at her
son and picked up the papers that were laid on the small occasional table that
was conveniently placed by the arm of her chair. "It says here that you
must be accompanied by a parent or guardian when you visit the medical centre
today Timothy... and with all the will in the world I don't think I am going to
be well enough to take you on the bus. I don't suppose that missing the school
annual medical for one year is going to hurt, do you Timothy?"
Timothy looked at his mother,
managing to hide his delight at the news. He had no desire at all to visit the
school doctor and to be examined in front of his mother. He remembered the
previous year when, right in front of his mother, the retiring grey haired
doctor had pushed his hand down the front of the Timothy's trousers and grasped
his testicles, instructing him to cough. He had not been able to look his
mother in the face for several days such was his embarrassment.
Another reason, even more
embarrassing was that for the last year Timothy had been getting erections. He
had never been able to bring himself to mention them to his mother and although
his friends at school often talked about "having a wank" as they put
it, he had never dared to make himself ejaculate. He often found that as he
rubbed against the bed sheets at night that he was near to making something
happen, such was the intensity of feeling that he had stopped himself well
before the moment of `no-return', scared and unsure of what the consequences
would be. A manifestation of his reluctance to masturbate was that his
testicles had swollen to such an extent that they were becoming painful. He had
examined himself several times as he sat on the edge of his bed and noted the
skin of his scrotum was stretched tightly around his balls and that they had
become painful to the touch.
Jenny looked at her son and then
seemed to make a decision. "Alright Timothy I'll make some phone calls...
and as school is closed for the medical examinations, you might as well go out
and get some fresh air. In fact you might pop across to Mrs Grant and tell her
that I am not well and ask her if the blouse I made Susan was alright."
Timothy managed not to blush as
his mother mentioned going over to Mrs. Grant. He was rather in awe of both
Susan and her mother. Like him, Susan had no father and as such, he had often
been asked by Susan's mother to do odd jobs that sometimes required lifting or
climbing a ladder "Men's work" as she often called it. He always
became embarrassed in front of the pretty mother and daughter as Mrs. Grant
would occasionally run her hand through his hair and announce to her daughter
"look what a good looking boy Timothy is... don't you think he will make
someone a wonderful husband someday?" Timothy would blush profusely and
look down at his feet as Susan would laugh, or sometimes try to catch his eye.
Susan was just sixteen years old, over one year older than Timothy and as such,
seemed far more world-wise and mature than himself. She was extremely pretty
and was popular with boys far older than him... at school he would see her
talking confidently with sixth formers, boys that the school social hierarchy
dictated did not deign to talk with lowly fourth formers.
Timothy returned home at five
o-clock. He had performed several chores for Mrs. Grant, carefully avoiding
looked at her beautiful and shapely legs as she stood watching him hang a
picture, dressed, as she often did in the summer, in revealing cotton shorts.
Upon entering his home, he opened the door to the living room and greeted his
mother, who was looking even paler than when he had left. She sighed as she
looked up at him from her chair.
"Ah Timothy I am afraid I am
getting worse so Aunt Claire is bringing your cousin Hazel over to look after
you and... I am afraid; I am going to have to leave you to your own devices as
your Aunt insists that I go back with her until I am well. I know you haven't
seen Hazel since you were small, but she is nineteen now and a very responsible
young lady. She is already in her final year; training as a `young persons
nurse' I think they call it now. She is at the top establishment for private
nurses to the rich and famous..." Jenny managed a weak smile." So I
am sure she will look after you well while I am gone."
Timothy had mixed feelings at the
news. True he had not seen Hazel for years and really could not remember what
she looked like... on the other hand he was rather embarrassed at having to be
looked after by a nineteen year old girl. The second announcement from his
mother came as even more of a shock! "I rang Vicki Grant while you were
over there. She said you were being very helpful again... and I do appreciate
that very much. I know that she misses having a husband as much as I do and I
know I couldn't manage without you being so helpful. So you can give your self
a pat on the back." Jenny managed another weak smile to convey her warmth
of feeling to her son even though she was beginning to feel the real effects of
what was turning out to be a really serious case of influenza.
His mother continued "I had
a word with Mrs. Grant this afternoon and because she used to be a nurse I
asked if she thought that they would mind you missing your annual medical. She
offered to ring the centre at Bourne and they kindly offered to let you go
tomorrow, even though it is the erm... girl's day for their medicals. I also
told her that Hazel was coming to look after you and she has offered to look in
from time to time. It will be a lot better for you going tomorrow as Hazel is
driving over in her own car...and she can take you over to Bourne in the car...
would you believe a girl of eighteen already has her own car!" Jenny
Althorpe had never learned to drive and after her husbands death had never had
an inclination to own a car.
Timothy was unable to conceal his
embarrassment at the news that he would, after all, be having his annual medical...
and worse still he would be having it on the girls medical day. He blushed
profusely at the thought of the girls from his school recognising that he would
be the only boy there having a medical. He had always been shy of girls and at
school kept himself very much to his self. Would they think it strange... or
perhaps that there was something different about him that he should be at the
medical centre with the girls rather than the boys?
Jenny noted her son's blushing
face and thought that perhaps he might think that he had to line up with the
girls. Last year the medicals had been carried out in the school hall. Hasty
screens had been erected and the boys lined up on one side and the girls on the
other. She quickly hastened to reassure him. "You will probably have to go
to a different section of the medical centre so I wouldn't worry that you are
the only boy there. After all it is used `day in and day out by' all the local
residents of the area." Timothy listened to the news and, never having visited
the centre before, was reassured by his mother's words.
It was almost two hours later
that Aunt Claire arrived. She had not changed much from what Timothy could
remember, having the same refined and delicate features as his own mother but
perhaps showing a little more affection than he remembered. She held the boy's
face in her hands and planted a quite sloppy kiss upon his lips before letting
him go; only to pat his head and tell him what a good looking boy he was.
Timothy blushed profusely and trembled involuntarily as his aunt stroked his
cheek and held him by the shoulders while she examined him from head to toe.
"My Timothy you are SUCH a good looking young man" She exclaimed,
causing him to blush once more before hanging his head and looking at his feet
in pure embarrassment and humiliation.
It was moments later that Hazel
drove her car into the driveway of the pretty thatched cottage. She parked
carefully, allowing her mother plenty of room to manoeuvre her car out of the
drive without difficulty. Timothy managed a sly glance at her without being
observed as she slipped off her coat to reveal a navy blue shirt and matching
short skirt. Timothy was dumbstruck... the girl was absolutely beautiful. Her
straight shiny hair was jet-black and cut severely to just below her jaw line,
accenting her beautiful clean-cut features. She was definitely a product of her
mother, having inherited all the delicacy and refinement of her mother's
features, but with perhaps a slightly more determined chin and jaw line. A
feature that did not correspond to her mother were the full firm breasts that
pressed against the sheer fabric of her blue cotton shirt as she reached
upwards to hang her coat on the hooks behind the door and the tall lithe body.
Her long tanned legs were bare and showed a great deal of her perfectly shaped
thighs as she fastened her coat to the hook.
Timothy felt himself blushing
even before Hazel turned towards him and spoke softly to him. "Why you
must be Timothy, mother told me you were a good looking boy... but my aren't
you just a beautifully handsome young man."
The compliment, rather than
elevate Timothy's sense of maturity, made him feel even more childlike in her
presence. He blushed, feeling the blood rushing to his cheeks as his eyes met
hers for the brief instance of time before he once again looked down at his
feet in abject embarrassment.
Hazel was well aware of the boy's
embarrassment, but chose to ignore it in the hope that he would come around and
lose some of his inhibitions. She was well aware of the effect her looks and
demeanour could have on some men, and so had developed a talent, if she felt
inclined towards them, of putting people at their ease.
The conversations between Claire
and her sister Jenny did not last long. Looking closely at her sister, Claire
announced that Jenny was really poorly and needed her care and attention as
soon as possible. Jenny gently kissed Timothy and with a wry smile let her
sister help her out of the door and to her car. It was all Jenny could do, to
look back at her son, as Claire solicitously herded her into the car and placed
a blanket over her knees. Timothy watched almost in dread as his mother was
driven off, knowing that soon he would have to come face to face with his
cousin Hazel, who's beauty had already caused him profound embarrassment.
Much to Timothy's relief Hazel
had busied herself in the kitchen and prepared a summer salad for his tea. She
had laid out the cold meats, tomatoes, potatoes, beetroot and lettuce on
several plates, which she had placed on a tray.
"You may eat your tea in
front of the television and I will give you until half past nine before I put
you to bed... how does that sound? Timothy blushed at the first sound of
authority, realising that Hazel was indeed in charge. What did she mean put him
to bed? He had always taken himself to bed, sometimes kissing his mother
goodnight downstairs and other times sleepily turning his head to her as he
laid in bed when she came in to his room before retiring herself.
Timothy was still blushing as he
finished his tea and changed channels to one of his favourite space adventure
programmes. He was aware that Hazel was looking at him from her own chair, but
soon became absorbed in the latest instalment of Space Rangers.
As the boy sat absorbed in his
television programme, Hazel examined him from head to foot. Noting his long
legs and muscled thighs through the thin chinos he was wearing. She could
clearly see the outline of his chest and slim waist accented by the thin
tee-shirt which fitted tightly to his body. Hazel knew then that the boy was
quite exceptionally good looking and wondered what it would be like to smooth
her hands over his flawless skin. Well she would certainly have the opportunity
if the forms she had laid on her lap were anything to go by.
She read the paragraph over:
1 Children (under the age of
sixteen years old) MUST be accompanied by a parent or guardian. The parent and
guardian will be expected to stay with the child during examination and remain
throughout the day. Lunch will be provided for parents on an ad hoc basis in
the staff canteen.
2 Nursing staff will expect
parents to help prepare children for tests and examinations and will be
expected to bring any medication that the child needs with them.
3 Adolescents (over 16 but under
21 years old) may bring their own dressing gowns.
4 We would be grateful if any
parents with nursing experience would make themselves known to one of the staff
nurses.
Hazel smiled to herself, we shall
see, she thought, as you looked the boy over once more. Perhaps she would tease
him a little before letting him go to bed. "Timothy it's half past nine
and I see that your programme has finished. Would you like me to bath you... or
can you manage yourself?"
The effect was startling...
Timothy blushed immediately his cheeks bright red as he opened his mouth to
protest. He had to draw in a deep breath before he could manage to utter his
protestation. "Oh no Hazel, I always bath myself and take myself to
bed." To Hazel's delight he was trembling visibly and bright red as he
stumbled off the deep settee and walked towards the stairs. "Well when you
are all ready for bed you can come down in your pyjamas and I will make sure
you are nice and clean for bed." Although she was filled with glee at the
boy's discomfort, she did not let her feelings show. I want you to be thorough
in your bath, remember the doctor is going to see you tomorrow." Hazel
knew that this would elicit further embarrassed responses from the young boy.
Hazel watched as Timothy climbed
the stairs. She noted his slim hips and firm buttocks, marvelling at the
perfection of his figure. She had always liked having control over boys. Not
for her the acquiescent breathless infatuation that some girls seemed to readily
display to the opposite sex. Hazel had decided a long time ago that any
relationship she would eventually enter into would be on her own terms. Her
physical beauty and forthright manner had always helped her get her own way and
as she had grown older she had observed the effect she had on men as well as
younger boys.
Timothy felt absolutely
humiliated as he entered the bathroom; his face was on fire as, for the first
time, he carefully locked the door. He could not help blushing profusely as he
thought of her words. What did she mean, make sure he was nice and clean? He
ran the bath and took off his clothes aware that his penis was fully erect, and
the pain in his testicles was getting worse.
He spent ten minutes scrubbing
himself diligently, almost embarrassedly washing his penis behind the foreskin.
It was almost twenty minutes later that he emerged from his bedroom dressed in
his pyjamas . Although he had tried to dismiss Hazel from his mind he found
that his face was still red and that his penis was still erect and pushing
against the material of his pyjama bottoms.
Reluctantly he began to descend
the stairs hoping against hope that Hazel would not notice the bulge of his
erection against the thin striped material of his pyjama bottoms. Shyly he
looked at her as he entered the living room. She was sat reading and on hearing
him, looked up and smiled.
"Come over here Timothy,
where I can see you." She stood up from her chair and waited for the boy
to come to her. Timothy was completely mesmerised by her as he shuffled
forward, his mind in a haze of embarrassment. She held him by the shoulders and
then placed her hands on either side of his face turning his head from one side
to the other as she looked in his ears.
"Well you seemed to have
cleaned your ears well! How about the rest of you... are you clean all
over?" Timothy blushed profusely, alarmed that she intended to examine him
further. "Oh yes... er...er Hazel, I scrubbed all over.... Please.. er I
am clean everywhere!" Timothy was shaking from head to foot as Hazel held
him by the shoulders once more and placed him at arms length. She could see his
erection quite clearly, but chose not to embarrass the boy further by
mentioning it at that moment. Instead she stroked his cheek tenderly causing
him to blush and spoke softly but firmly.
"Well I will take your word
this time... but I am quite used to smacking the bare bottoms of naughty boys
that are lax in their cleanliness. She observed the immediate colouring of his
face to an almost purple blush as she spoke those words.
She was deliberately reducing his
stature from that of a fourteen-year-old young man to that of a naughty and
disobedient young child. She had realised by his look of anguish and
humiliation that he was normally very shy and that perhaps he would be easier
to handle than she had first thought. She immediately changed the tone of her
voice "All right sweetie, off you go to bed and I will see you in the
morning." She leaned forward and kissed him lightly on the forehead.
Timothy's mind was in turmoil as
he stumbled up the stairs to bed. The embarrassment of her mentioning smacking
bare bottoms along with the tender kiss on his forehead had played havoc with
his delicate emotions. As he got into bed he realised that his penis was so
stiff that it was painful, he felt faint as he laid his blushing face against
the crisp white pillow.
After a feverish and restless
night Timothy awoke to the sun streaming through his bedroom window. He
realised that Hazel must have already been into his bedroom and drawn the
curtains. He lay there wondering what the day would bring when Hazel entered
the room. She was dressed in a silk shirt and navy pleated skirt that came down
to just above her knees. She was bare legged and Timothy could not help looking
at her long well toned and tanned limbs. She wore perfectly applied makeup and
looked even more beautiful than he had remembered her from the previous
evening.
Without knowing why he blushed
immediately upon seeing her and began to tremble as she placed the cup of tea
she was carrying on to his bedside table. "Good morning young man, here is
a nice cup of tea, drink it and then come into the bathroom. I have already run
a bath for you and I want to make sure that every inch of your body is clean
before your examination.
Hazel could clearly see the
telltale bulge of his morning erection pushing the bedcovers upwards as he lay
looking at her. He quickly turned on his side as he saw her glance at the
tented bed covers. He was blushing and trembling as he looked away from her,
clumsily raising the teacup to his lips to hide his embarrassment.
Although Hazel had deliberately
embarrassed the boy by intimating that she would be either bathing him or at
least inspecting his body, she had no intention in doing so. She knew that
sooner or later she would have a genuine excuse to see him naked and that when
that moment came, she wanted to be able to take her time and examine him at her
leisure. She waited for Timothy outside the bathroom door and spoke kindly to
him.
"Right young man, I am going
to trust you to take your bath and make sure that you are thoroughly clean from
head to toe. When you are finished I want you to dress in your school uniform
and come down stairs for some breakfast. We only have an hour before we need to
set off."
Timothy's sigh of relief was
audible as he stood before Hazel covering the front of his pyjamas with his
hands to hide his erection. Hazel again ignored the boy's obvious erection and
turned away and walked down the staircase.
2
Parking at the Medical Centre was
quite easy, as many of the parents had taken advantage of the school bus to
accompany their daughters to the centre. A kindly looking nurse greeted them in
the reception hall and began talking with Hazel. She looked over at Timothy and
told him to sit on one of the waiting room chairs while she filled in the
appropriate forms. Timothy looked across at them once or twice as they chatted
while completing a sheaf of white forms. With the end of the form filling they
were ushered into a cubicle, which was curtained off from the main corridor.
The medical centre was much
smaller than either Timothy or Hazel had imagined it to be. Apart from four
consulting rooms and a reception hall with canteen and kitchens leading off
from it, there were just two bathrooms and a large hall for multiple
examinations.
The nurse spoke to Hazel, again
ignoring the boy completely. "Right Hazel if you would get Timothy here
undressed and then take him through to the bathroom opposite. Nurse Davis will
be there to give him his enema and shave him! You can put all of his clothes in
this locker." She indicated one of four wooden lockers built into the back
wall of the cubicle above a slatted bench that ran the length of the room.
"Take the key with you. Oh
if you want coffee, there is a canteen just off reception." Hazel felt a
thrill run through her at the young nurse's words.
"Do you want him to leave
his underclothes on?" Although Hazel already knew the answer she wanted
the boy to hear it for himself.
"No they tend to get lost if
they are left in the examination rooms so we find it best to leave all of their
clothes in the locker."
Without another word the Nurse
pulled the curtain across the opening of the cubicle and left Hazel and - a
profusely blushing and trembling Timothy, alone.
Hazel savoured the moment as she
turned towards Timothy. He was trembling visibly and as she touched his
shoulder he almost flinched, such was his abject state of nerves. "Right
Timothy you hand me your blazer and shoes, those seem to the biggest items and
I will put them away for you." She kept her tone neutral as she watched
him blushing and trembling as he stood in front of her." Each stage of his
undressing was an absolute delight to Hazel. She stood admiring his chest and
narrow waist as he got down to just his trousers.
Turning to the lockers she tucked
his socks into his shoes, wondering if he would start unbuttoning his trousers
without being prompted. Hearing no movement from him she turned back towards
him, she could see his eyes had began to water slightly as he held his hands to
the clasp of his trousers, making no further movement. A thin sheen of
perspiration had formed on his body as he stood trembling, his eyes down cast
and his bottom-lip quivering.
"Come along
Timothy...," she savoured the next phrase "...drop your
trousers!" Timothy undid the buttons with trembling fingers. Not daring to
look at Hazel as he eased the material down his thighs, acutely aware of his
erection which tented the thin cotton material of his underpants.
Handing his trousers to Hazel he
suddenly covered his erection with both hands, pushing his bottom backwards and
almost crossing his legs. Hazel pretended not to notice as she carefully folded
his trousers and laid them on top of the neat pile of clothing she had taken
from the boy.
She could here the sounds of
females talking in subdued tones from other cubicles along the corridor, when
suddenly she heard a loud slap and an admonishing raised voice "Now get
those panties off straight away you naughty girl." She glanced at Timothy
who had also heard. He looked at Hazel in anguish, tears welling up in his eyes
as he stood cowering before her. Hazel could not miss the opportunity as she looked
at Timothy.
"Now you wouldn't want me to
smack your bare little bottom for being difficult, would you Timothy?"
Hazel looked at him and placed her hand under his chin raising his head so that
he could do nothing but meet her steady gaze.. "Would you Timothy?" With
trembling voice Timothy shook his head... er no miss." Hazel's heart
jumped a beat at the use of the word miss, instead of her Christian name.
She knew that the nature of the
relationship had changed at last. Her authoritarian manner and the constant
humiliation of him had finally reduced his self-esteem enough for him
acknowledge, perhaps unconsciously, her complete superiority over him.
Her constant referral to him as
more of a child than an adult had helped his unconscious thoughts accept, however
reluctantly, a subtle but important shift in their relationship.
"Place your hands on your
head young man... and stand up straight." Hazel waited for the boy to
obey. She knew that she might have to wait for him to compose himself, but
instinctively she knew that he would eventually comply.
She tapped her foot and folded
her arms as if impatient. She felt a thrill run through her body and a tingling
between her legs as she watched the boy stand straight and reluctantly uncover
himself and place his hands upon the top of his head. "You can stand
straighter than that... arch that spine... shoulders back... you don't want me
to think of you as a slouch...do you?"
Trembling and flushing a bright
red, Timothy stood straight, staring in horror as Hazel went down on one knee
in front of him and placed her delicate hands on either side of his waist. He
shivered uncontrollably as she slid the smooth palms of her hands down inside
the waist of his underpants. She watched his face for a moment as she slowly pulled
them down until his erect penis halted them. Looking at his groin she lifted
the waistband over his penis, watching it spring upwards as it was freed from
the confines of the material.
She was astonished at how large
it was for such a young boy. Her face was only inches away from the smooth
beautifully contoured bell shaped head of his penis. She noted that the boy had
been very neatly circumcised, as she slid the garment down his thighs and to
his feet.
"Lift your feet so that I
can take them off, there's a good boy." Hazel's voice was soothing, her
tone almost husky as she slid the garment from his feet and stood upright.
She placed the garment in the
locker and then before Timothy could cover himself she spoke sternly to him.
"Stay exactly as you are... and tell me young man..." She paused for
effect "Why you have an erection?"
Timothy did not believe he could
have been more embarrassed his mind was in a whirl, the cheeks of his face were
on fire, and he was trembling from head to foot. "I......d'''ddddonnt
k'know muh mmm miss. I..."
He failed to finish the sentence,
feeling near to fainting as Hazel looked at him, her face seemingly serious and
stern. "Well young man, I will just have to take you out into the corridor
as you are... I sincerely hope that we don't meet anyone." Holding his
chin in her hand she looked into his eyes. "Now put your hands down by
your sides and follow me." Before he could protest or compose himself she
had taken hold of the curtain to the cubicle and opened it wide, stepping into
the corridor immediately.
Almost fainting with
embarrassment the trembling boy followed her. He could not help clasping his
hands to his groin as he stumbled after her, pressing his hands tightly to his
penis so that it was tight against his body. He walked with his knees pressed
together as he followed her to the door opposite and stood cowering while she
opened it.
If Timothy thought that his
humiliation could get no worse, then he was in for a shock! It was Hazel's
quick thinking in catching hold of his arm that stopped him from fleeing down
the corridor.
In the room were two nurses, one
of about twenty years old and the other a student of not much more than sixteen
years of age. There were several mothers who were standing with their
daughters. It was an extremely large tiled room with three baths, two of which
had the curtains drawn around them. In the centre of the room was an
examination table complete with stirrups, which were set at such an angle that,
even to the casual observer it would be obvious, that, one's legs would have to
be spread high and wide to fit in them.
All the girls were wearing
dressing gowns of various styles. To Timothy's absolute horror one of the girls
was Susan. She was wearing a fluffy towelling dressing-gown and looked
completely composed, her hair freshly brushed and shining with health, her
pretty face even had a touch of makeup. Behind Susan was Mrs Grant, who upon
seeing Timothy immediately came over to him. "Ah there you are Timothy, I
knew you were here somewhere." She turned to Hazel, seemingly ignoring the
boy's nakedness and abject embarrassment.
"You must be Hazel, Timmy's
mother said you would be bringing him, I hope you didn't have any trouble
finding the place then?"
Hazel smiled at Mrs. Grant and
held out her hand. "Pleased to meet you, Vicki isn't it? Yes I found the
place with no trouble at all."
They shook hands and Vicki
immediately turned her attention back to Timothy. She had always wanted to see
the boy naked and now was her chance. Even though he was cowering crouched
against the cold white tiles of the wall, trying to hide his naked body from
the interested stares of the mothers and the curiosity of their daughters, she
could confirm that he was, as she had always thought, a perfectly physically
proportioned boy.
She spoke to Hazel again.
"The rest of the girls have had their enemas, there is only Timothy left
to do. So I am sure Nurse Davis will prepare Timothy next and then she will
probably help you bath him." She turned to Timothy as she spoke again.
"I am sure Timmy doesn't want to stand naked in front of all us ladies and
the girls for any longer than he has to."
Susan looked at Timothy, also
admiring his perfectly formed body. She had always liked him and looked forward
to him coming over to her house. Even though he was nearly two years younger
than her she had always known that he was someone special. She looked over his
naked body and although his hands were clasped over his groin she could clearly
see that his penis was erect. Susan had often visualised what the boy must look
like naked, but the reality, despite his crouching position was better than she
had ever hoped. She smiled at him and watched him blush an even deeper red as
she spoke.
"Hello Timmy, mummy said you
were having your medical with us today. Gail and the rest us girls..." She
looked over shoulder at a tall blond girl who had never taken her eyes off the
boy since he had come through the door. "...are going to join the line for
the doctor so you will be on your own in here. Don't worry we all have to go
through it." She smiled kindly at him and walking forward touched her hand
to his blushing cheek. Timothy could never have envisioned, even in his widest
dreams that he could feel so humiliated. To be naked, not only in front of
Susan and her mother, but in front of Gail the head-girl who was the prettiest
girl in the whole school.
Gail was tall and her maturity
and aloof demeanour had set her apart from the rest of the school, making her
the perfect choice for the prestigious position of head prefect. Excelling at
sport as well as academic work she was extremely popular amongst all of the
teaching staff as well as the pupils. He had seen sixth formers, boys that
would not even think of talking to him, mooning after her like lost sheep. Now
the humiliations of humiliations, she was seeing him naked and cowering in
front of her.
"Timothy was as near to
fainting as he had ever been as Mrs Grant took his arm and propelled him along
to the examination couch. Hazel walked with her and took the boy's other arm as
Timothy tried to crouch even lower to the floor; his face was ablaze with utter
humiliation and embarrassment as the nurses came towards him. It was like a
nightmare as he was made to sit on the end of the examination table and then
lay back. He grasped his genitals even more tightly, bending his chest forward
so that he could retain his hands against his groin. He felt his legs being
lifted and spread wide open as they placed them in the stirrups lifting his
bottom completely off the bed. A pad was placed under the small of his back,
which supported him and elevated his bottom even further away from the bed. He
resisted as the young student nurse moved to his side and gently took his
wrists to pull his hands away from his groin.
Hazel spoke sharply to the
trembling boy. "Look at me Timothy." He opened his eyes which he had
tightly shut with embarrassment and looked at Hazel through his widely spread
legs. "Naughty boys get their bare bottoms smacked... and you are no
exception." Vicki Grant looked on with admiration as Hazel delivered three
sound slaps to the boy's naked buttocks. You could have heard a pin drop in the
room such was the silence that followed. It was such a shock to the boy that it
was several seconds before he managed to gasp in astonishment.
Hazel spoke again; "Now my
boy, let the nurse position you properly and perhaps we will have no more such
nonsense." Both Vicki and Hazel watched the uncovering of the boy in
silence. The nurse took his wrists and raised his arms until they were laid on
the bed stretched out above his head. Hazel was now able to examine the boy at
her leisure. His penis was completely erect and pointing upwards toward the
ceiling. His swollen testicles had stretched the scrotum so tightly that the
skin shone under the overhead lights that illuminated the examination table.
Vicki Grant called to her daughter as she was leaving with the rest of the
girls and their mothers. "If you go and join the line Susan I will be with
you in a few moments."
Timothy did not hear Susan's
reply such was his utter embarrassment in realising that not only had he been
smacked in front of Mrs. Grant and the nurses, but that Susan and the rest of
the girls had still been in the room. He laid his head to the side and closed
his eyes tightly with pure and utter embarrassment and humiliation.
Both Hazel and Vicki looked down
at the boy as Nurse Davis Wheeled across a trolley, filled with a variety of
instruments. One of the four corners of the trolley ascended into a stand that
had an enema bag held high with tubing descending to the glass top which held
the instruments.
Vicki whispered to Hazel as they
stood side by side examining the boy. "He has the most perfect looks and
physique of any boy I have ever seen." Hazel nodded, not taking her eyes
from the boy's body. "Wonderful skin too, look at him, his skin is
flawless." They moved back from between the boy's widely spread legs as
Nurse Davis handed the enema nozzle to the young nurse and then greased her
un-gloved finger with lubricant. "Now keep still Timothy" She
announced "I am just going to slide my finger up into your little bottom
and lubricate you a bit before I put the nozzle in. So be a brave boy." .
"Open your eyes and pay
attention to the nurse there's a good boy." Mrs Grant's voice, which was
soothing but firm, had the desired effect as she watched the young boy open his
eyes. Hazel realised that perhaps there was more to Vicki Grant than met the
eye. Vicki put her arm around Hazel's waist as they both watched the two nurses
at work on the boy.
Timothy groaned and writhed as
first a finger was slid up into his bottom and then his buttocks spread wide by
Nurse Davis, while the young student nurse gently inserted the pre-greased
nozzle right up into his bottom. Hazel could not help feeling a thrill as
Timothy grunted as the lower part of the nozzle was inflated with deft squeezes
of the rubber bulb that the young nurse held in her hand. The coolness of the
nozzle seemed to inflame the whole of Timothy's nether region. He had never
felt any sensation like it. The bulb which was holding the nozzle in place
seemed to be stretching his bottom far more widely than he would have thought
possible... and yet at the same time inflaming his penis to throb
uncontrollably.
Nurse Davis let go of the boy's
buttocks and immediately started lathering a shaving brush. Almost nonchalantly
she applied the brush to his genitals, gently lifting the swollen testicles as
she applied the foam evenly. The younger nurse reached upward and switched on
the water from the enema bag and then took a razor from the trolley.
In an almost callous and casual
manner she took hold of the young boy's penis and ignoring his moans of
protestation, moved it this way and that as she shaved the entire area around
his penis as well as between his legs and buttocks.
Timothy was beside himself with
utter humiliation as the nurse deftly pulled the skin of his foreskin tightly
up over the head of his penis and shaved the small hairs that could be seen on
the base of the shaft.
He opened his eyes in shock as he
felt one of the nurses stretch his bottom cheeks wide while the nurse shaved
the last vestiges of hair in-between them. He gasped as she moved the enema
tube from side to side to facilitate the further exposure of the crease of his
bottom.
The young nurse stood back and
admired her handiwork. The boy was now completely bereft of pubic hair, his
pale smooth skin bared of any covering made his penis seem even larger as it
thrust upwards from his groin.
Timothy felt his eyes well up
with tears of embarrassment. The light above him became blurred as he felt the
first pangs of cramps in his tummy. He groaned audibly as the water began to
fill up inside him. The young nurse looked at Hazel and beckoned her over to
the side of the examination table.
"Will you gently rub his
tummy for him, it will stop some of the cramps and he still has another pint to
go."
Hazel moved to the boy's side and
placed one hand gently on his chest and stroked his cheek with the other. She
watched as he opened his eyes, his expression showing his utter dismay as she
leaned her head over his and whispered to him.
"Don't worry Timmy, I think
all the younger boys have had to go through this before their medicals. Somehow
her words or the closeness of her caused him to blush an even deeper shade of
red.
"I am going to rub your
tummy a little it will help you." As Hazel rubbed almost sensually over
the boy's tummy she casually let her forearm brush over the head of his penis.
As if it was the most normal thing in the world she took hold of his penis and
moved it out of the way while she rubbed his lower stomach.
"There... has that lessened
the cramps Timothy?"
He looked at her through his haze
of embarrassment, feeling her stretch his erect penis back between his legs as
she continued rubbing his stomach. Another hand was placed on his chest and he
looked to his right to see Mrs Grant peering over him.
"I have to go into the other
room Timothy, but I will pop in and see you before leave the centre." She
looked up at Hazel and smiled.
"I am helping some of the
nursing staff as well as looking after Susan, but I will see you later."
Vickie looked down at Hazel's delicate fingers holding the boy's penis as if it
were the most normal procedure in the world.
She could not help the thrill she
felt as she observed the young boy's perfectly formed body and his utter
embarrassment as he was being shaved and stroked, his erect penis being firmly
grasped by Hazel's delicate fingers. She knew that the water filling him up
inside would be further stimulating his sexual arousal.
The nightmare of his preparation
continued; one embarrassment quickly compounded by another in a series of
utterly humiliating procedures. ...Hazel and the nurses helping and guiding him
to the toilet...the humiliation as a hand reached between his legs and deflated
the nozzle... the bending over as a syringe was pushed into his bottom and
water expelled up into him... standing naked and ashamed after he had expelled
so that the nurse could examine the contents of the toilet bowl.
Timothy could not believe that he
could be so humiliated. He trembled and shook as the nurse made him walk to the
middle of the room and bend over whilst she wiped his bottom like one would a
small child.
He blushed profusely, his cheeks
burning with shame as she instructed him gently but firmly.
"Hands on your head and legs
wide apart... stand straight like a big boy now."
When at last he had his legs
spread apart and his hands placed on his head to her satisfaction, she pulled
up a chair and sat down in front of him. To his horror she moved the chair
closer, her knees moving under him between his legs.
His body tensed as he watched in
dread, feeling the soft cool fingers of her hand gently encircle his penis.
Although his penis was no longer as rigid as it had been, he felt utterly
humiliated and powerless as her cool slender fingers tightened around his timid
flesh.
Without preamble she lifted his
penis upward as she placed her other hand beneath his scrotum and gently lifted
his testicles, pulling them forward from between his widely spread legs.
The feeling of her cool hands
gently holding his most intimate and private parts, was too much for Timothy to
bear. He felt his penis throb between her delicate fingers and then to his
horror, begin to erect fully.
Both Hazel and the young nurse
had moved to stand in front of him. He looked at them, his whole body beginning
to shake with the shame he was feeling. Nurse Davis spoke to Hazel and the
nurse, ignoring both the boy's utter humiliation and his throbbing penis.
"This is most unusual I have
only seen it once before." She pulled his testicles even further forward,
ignoring Timothy's gasp as she held them firmly stretched away from between his
legs.
"His testicles are so
swollen that they are causing pain. If I were to guess I would say that he has
not yet experienced an ejaculation, although as you can see the testes are
full... and he is obviously capable of a good and firm erection."
She squeezed his penis and let
her hand slide down the shaft exposing the glans and ignoring completely the
boy's complete humiliation and groans of dismay. He had never felt so naked.
His freshly and smoothly shaven flesh felt sensitive even to the lightest
touch. He could even feel the air against his skin as the nurse casually held
his genitals out for Hazel to examine.
I will let you bath him if you
will Hazel and have a word with the doctor while you are doing that. Tina will
help you bathe him..." She nodded at the young nurse, but try to avoid him
ejaculating as I would like the doctor to see this." She hefted his
testicles in the palm of her hand as she spoke.
Timothy looked at Hazel, his face
filled with shame as he saw her looking at his testicles and penis. He blushed
again as she looked him in the eye. "I hope Timothy that you are going to
behave yourself while the nurse and I bathe you and that I am not going to have
to smack your bottom again."
Timothy looked at her his bottom
lip trembling and mumbled to her almost incoherently.
"err....nnnnooo..miss."
The bath was prepared and a naked
and trembling Timothy was made to stand in the ten inches of water that the
young nurse had drawn into the shining inner surface of the tub.
Tina looked at Hazel and spoke to
her in a voice that showed her admiration for how she handled the boy.
"Er Miss... erm,,, Hazel, if
you would get the boy to hold on to the safety rail up there.... Er you will be
able to handle him erm... more easily."
Hazel smiled to herself as the
young nurse pointed to the safety rail that was set into the ceiling above the
bath. Two chromium plated adjustable rods extended down from the ceiling to a
bar, which was high enough to make Timothy have to stretch to reach it. Hazel
was aware of the exact meaning of what the young nurse had said, in that the
boy would be completely open to their ministrations.
"Grasp the bar Timothy and
open your legs wide, let's have no nonsense now." She slapped him lightly
on the buttocks, much to the embarrassment of the boy and perhaps, she thought,
to the delight of the young nurse.
Timothy stood and endured the
most humiliating bath he had ever had. Not only did they handle him like a
prize animal on show, but their comments on various parts of his anatomy,
accented his total shame and vulnerability.
"Right keep straight and
stop squirming about" Hazel admonished him as she took the first scoop of
water and began to lather her hands with soap.
Tina followed suit as they began
at his shins and lathered him up to the tops of his thighs. Timothy could not
cope with the sensation of their soft and delicate hands gently soothing and
caressing his body. His penis had erected fully and was standing straight out
and upwards from his body at an angle of forty-five degrees.
Both Hazel and the young nurse
deliberately ignored his genitals as they began to soap over his chest. Hazel
became aware of the sensitivity of his nipples as she gently scraped her nails
over them on the pretence of washing his chest.
The intimacy of them washing
under his arms and around his chest had him trembling from head to foot. He
knew with an absolute certainty what was yet to come, dreading the moment when
they would turn their attention to washing between his widely parted thighs.
It was Hazel that made the first
move, making the most of the situation she took hold of his chin and made him
look her in the eyes. She could see the distress written all over his face as
she spoke to him.
"Right Timothy, I am going
to wash your penis and testicles and I do not want any false modesty from you
young man. Now turn to face me and get those legs spread wider so that I can
get at you properly. Remember... any nonsense and you will be out of this bath
and over my knee... and all in front of our young nurse here. So Timothy my
boy... are you going to be a good boy... or will you be going over my knees
with that bare bottom of your raised in the air...mmm?"
Her words could not have been
chosen better for the humiliating effect it had on him. His face suddenly
suffused in an almost purple blush as he looked at her. He could not speak such
was his abject dismay... instead he opened his legs as wide as he could and
looked down shamefaced and trembling.
The first touch of her hand was
like an electric shock as she took a firm hold of his penis and without warning
stretched the foreskin back as far as it would go. He jerked his hips in
anguish as she raised her other hand and soaped behind the rim of the glans.
He trembled and shook as she
washed his penis thoroughly, before reaching right between his legs and
carefully drawing his tender scrotum forward, rolling the testes in her hand
before applying more soapy lather to his most intimate parts.
Suddenly he felt himself
beginning to throb uncontrollably and his body tremble as the acute sensation
of an impending ejaculation surged through his young body. Hazel felt it at
that very same moment and took her hands away from his body. Hoping that she
was not too late and the boy would not ejaculate.
This was something that she did
not want... at least not yet. Her surprise turned to a smile as Tina, who had
been aware of the danger suddenly dowsed the whole of his genitalia with a jug
of freezing cold water. The boy gasped out loud as the shock of the water hit
him. "arrgghh... ahhhhh"
Hazel could not help smiling at
Tina as the boy shivered from the shock of the cold water. She ignored his
protestations and spoke to Tina. "Well that seemed to have done the trick,
I think we are nearly finished if you would just bend him over and wash his
bottom I think that will do."
More humiliation followed as
Timothy was made to hold on to the side of the bath with his legs spread wide
apart, while the young sixteen year old, insinuated her small hand between the
cheeks of his bottom and washed him thoroughly. He gasped as a slender finger
was pushed against the tight rosebud of his sphincter and to his horror, pushed
up inside him. To add to his humiliation her other hand slid around his hips
and he felt slender fingers take a firm hold of his penis.
"Just one more little push
and I am almost finished." Her soft voice almost whispered in his ear as
she pushed up into his bottom and at the same time jerked his foreskin up and
down the shaft of his penis in quick succession until he was fully erect again.
"Arggghhh...arggghhhh."
He moaned and groaned as the
young girl expertly manipulated him, feeling the head of his penis slap against
his tummy as she stretched his foreskin backwards and forwards.
"There now we are all
done." She whispered as she suddenly pulled her finger from inside his
bottom and smacked him smartly on the buttocks.
She let go of his penis and stood
back.
"Right young man. Let's have
you out of this bath and dried off."
Hazel wondered as she watched
Tina manipulate the boy so expertly, how many young boys she had done that to,
at their compulsory medicals.
As Hazel dried the boy she
continued to subjugate him with words and actions. "Bend over there's a
good boy and let me dry your little bottom."
She parted the cheeks of his
buttocks with her bare hand and then proceeded to dry between them. As she
stood him up and dried his chest she made sure that the towel constantly rubbed
the tip of his penis. She made him stand with his legs wide apart while she
took hold of his penis and patted it dry.
She repeated the procedure with
his testicles, aware that boy was absolutely suffused in a blush from head to toe.
The final humiliation was when
she asked Tina to check his bottom and behind his foreskin to see if he was
completely dry, accompanied by the remark;
"I usually have to powder
little boy's bottoms after they have been bathed. I don't suppose you have any
do you?"
Timothy absolutely cringed with
embarrassment at the remark and the instruction she gave to the young nurse.
Timothy could hardly bring
himself to look at her as the nurse stood in front of him in her crisp white
apron.
"Legs apart and bend over,
there that's the way."
She leaned over him and encircled
his waist her hand reaching up under him and nonchalantly taking a firm hold of
his penis and testicles as her other hand explored between the cheeks of his
bottom.
"Right up you get, come
along now."
She hurried the boy to a standing
position and slapped the inside of his thighs until they were spread to her
satisfaction.
Timothy could have sworn she had
a satisfied smirk on her face at his abject humiliation, his body was trembling
all over as she reached forward and deftly took a firm grip on his penis.
He trembled as she moved close to
him. Her young breasts were almost pressed against his chest as she reached
between their bodies and cupped his testicles in an upward motion and at the
same time stretched his penis so that it was touching his naval. He could not
meet her gaze as she stepped back again and deftly pulled his foreskin back
along the shaft and examined behind the glans, she moved the swollen flesh this
way and that and then casually patted it in an upward motion before letting him
go.
Timothy was near to tears with
embarrassment as he was made to walk between Tina and Hazel as they left the
tiled bathroom and proceeded towards the larger room at the end of the corridor.
Again he clasped his hands to his
groin, battling to keep his erect penis hidden from view. As they walked down
the corridor he could see several of the mothers with their daughters who were
fully dressed in their school uniforms.
Timothy cast his eyes to the
ground and began to crouch lower, it was just as they were passing a pretty
girl of sixteen and her mother that Hazel slapped his bottom twice in quick
succession.
"I can see that I am going
to have to take you over my knee if there is any more nonsense. Now stand up
straight and walk properly you naughty child."
Timothy wished a hole would
appear in the floor and swallow him up, such was his dismay as involuntarily he
looked up to see the girl snigger at his nakedness. The mother raised her
eyebrows to Hazel in sympathy and understanding at having a recalcitrant child
to look after, as Hazel took his arm and pulled it away from his groin.
Timothy could not contain his
penis and testicles in just one hand so he pressed his penis close to his tummy
as he was led towards the door of the common room.
As they entered, he saw that a
nurse and Mrs Grant, were clearing screens away. To the side of the room he
could see Susan and Gail, now fully dressed, helping to arrange the screens
against the wall. Timothy groaned with embarrassment when he saw Susan and
Gail.
The nurse stopped and turned to
Hazel." If you have Timothy wait by the door over there, I will see how
long it will be before he can see the doctor,. Why don't you go and get a coffee,
you must be parched"
Hazel smiled at Tina and
instructed the boy to go and wait by the door. When he hesitated, Hazel
immediately took a firm grip on his upper arm. Timothy groaned in horror, as he
saw that the door the nurse had indicated was where both Susan and Gail were
stacking the screens.
The offer by both Gail and Susan
to help with the screens had not been entirely altruistic. Susan knew that
Timothy would be the last to go in and that in all likelihood her mother would
stay at least to see Hazel, before she left. She smiled at Gail almost
conspiratorially.
They both watched as the naked
boy was escorted by Hazel to wait by the surgery door.
The door, which was only a few
feet from where they were standing, had a screen in front of it, which was
shaped in the letter L. He was again crouched low, both hands now protecting
his modesty as best he could as he hobbled rather than walked to the closed
door and disappeared behind the screen.
He had managed to avoid his eyes
meeting the interested gaze of the girls as he walked across the room.
Once behind the screen Hazel
spoke sternly to him.
"Right young man I have told
you about being slovenly once too often."
Without warning she took a hold
of his waist and turned him around. Before he could protest she had bent him
over with her arm encircling his waist. To his horror he realised that she was
going to smack his bottom and that Susan and Gail were only a few yards from
the other side of the curtained screen.
"Pleeeaaaa...aasssee."
His pleading was cut short by the first of a dozen sound slaps that she
delivered not only to his bottom but also to his legs. He involuntarily began
dancing about as she slapped him. "Smack smaccckkk... smackkkkkkk."
"Owwwhhh arggghh...
pleeeasee... ouchhhh." He could not believe this was actually happening to
him as she tightened her grip around his waist and continued slapping him.
"Smaaaccck... smaaacckkk.... Smaccckkkk. As the twelfth stroke of her hand
fell upon his reddened bottom and legs she stopped and stood him upright...
"Right young man... hands on
your head...quickly now and stand up straight." She watched him intently,
her beautiful face stern and foreboding as he reluctantly obeyed.
"Now let me tell you, if I
find that you have moved one millimetre while I am gone, you will be over my
knee, right here in this room!"
Timothy blushed profusely feeling
utterly ridiculous as he stood with his hands on his head. His long penis
although not erect was still turgid, the plump flesh lying heavily over his
swollen testicles.
Timothy stood as he had been
instructed to, when the screen in front of him was suddenly wheeled away, to
reveal both Susan and Gail looking cool and fresh in their school uniforms.
"Sorry Timothy, Susan said
as she slid the screen along the floor. "We have to have all of these away
before the next girls arrive."
Timothy could have died on the
spot. He dare not move his hands, the results of his disobedience already
displayed in red blotches on his bottom and thighs.
He blushed bright red and hung
his head in utter shame as the screen was wheeled away. Looking down with his
hands pressed firmly to the back of his head, all he could contemplate was his
absolute nakedness and utter humiliation.
He could hear the screens being
moved and several footsteps in the hall, he sensed that someone was approaching
him.
He raised his head to see Mrs
Grant standing in front of him. "I am sorry Hazel has had to smack your
bottom, my, my... it does look red... and your legs too I see."
Timothy blushed aware that that
was not all that Mrs Grant could see of him.
"Never mind you will be
seeing the Doctor in a few minutes... I'll get Susan and Gail to come across
and cheer you up a bit... they can manage the other screens afterwards."
The last thing Timothy wanted was
for Susan and Gail to see him naked again, he felt even more vulnerable with
his genitals freshly shaven, not even a whisper of hair to protect his modesty.
He was blushing an even deeper
shade of red as Mrs Grant gently patted his burning cheek and walked across to
where Gail and Susan were working.
He dare not look as Mrs Grant
spoke to them, his body trembling uncontrollably with embarrassment as the two
girls walked across to where he was standing.
Susan was the first to speak as
she stood close to him and placed her hand on his bare shoulder.
"Poor Timmy... having to
have his bottom smacked. I am sorry, I know how shy you are."
Susan's voice was soft and
soothing and sounded sincere. Timothy blushed an even deeper shade of red as
Gail casually walked to his side and smoothed hand gently across the cheeks of
his bottom. He flinched in shock at the intimacy of her touch.
His embarrassment was paramount
at being made to stand naked and fully on display in front of the two teenage
girls.
Gail spoke to him, her hand
stroking gently down across his sensitive bottom cheeks.
"Did she hurt you very much?
They were very loud slaps."
Timothy blushed again, his face
already so reddened with embarrassment that the effect was minimal. To his
horror he felt his penis pulse, knowing full well that he had no control over
it.
He began to crouch, pushing his
bottom backwards as he felt his penis beginning to become erect once more.
"Pleeeaaase er.. miss"
His plea went unfinished as Gail
took her hand from his bottom and stood beside Susan. She placed her hand
gently on his chest, her long fingers grazing over the sensitive flesh of his
nipple as she spoke to him. I think you ought to stand up straighter. If Hazel
catches you like this I think she will be having your bare bottom over her
knee.
To his horror Gail's hand moved
softly over his chest and down onto his tummy, her fingertips just reaching
down to his freshly shaved pubis. She touched the sensitive area as if checking
for something, before she moved her hand away and both girls stood back from
him. He stood straight his eyes unable to avoid looking at them as they watched
his penis begin to throb, the turgid flesh pulsing visibly.
"Oh Timothy... you're penis
is moving... are you going to get an erection?" Susan asked innocently.
Timothy wished he would faint...
anything to escape the foolishness and humiliation he felt. The girls stood and
watched as his penis stiffened until it stood out from his body, the flesh full
and throbbing visibly.
Susan could see he was becoming
more and more distressed at his embarrassment and motioned to Gail.
"We will leave you Timmy,
don't worry it will all be over soon."
The girls moved away talking
quietly to each other, it was Gail that turned her head back to look at the
naked boy, his body standing upright with his hands on his head and his penis
sticking straight out in front of him. She paused, examining him carefully with
her head tilted to one side as if deep in thought.
As the girls moved away, Gail
looked at Susan. "I don't know how much you know about sex and well...
boy's bodies. But do you think he has ever... you know erm... cum...
ejaculated." Susan looked at her friend's serious and enquiring expression.
"I don't know, but somehow I get the feeling that he hasn't. He is such a
shy boy and deep down I think he would... well he would just think it a wrong
thing to do."
It was perhaps a quarter of an
hour later that Hazel returned to the surgery door. Timothy's erection had
subsided to an almost flaccid state as she looked at him, placing her hand
gently on his cheek."
I am sorry I had to smack you
Timmy, but you were a naughty boy. However Vicki has been telling me what an
extraordinarily shy young man you are. The doctor will see you now I think, so
you can take your hands down." Timothy immediately clasped his hands to
his genitals as he realised that they were about to enter the doctor's surgery.
Hazel stepped forward and knocked
confidently upon the surgery door. It was only a few moments before an
extremely pretty young nurse opened the door. "Come in." She
announced, holding the door open wide so that Hazel was able to usher the young
boy in.
The surgery was large and divided
by a large screen in the centre of the room. In front of Timothy, who was again
clasping his hands in front of his groin, was a large desk, upon which was a
blotter pad, `in' and `out' trays and a stethoscope.
Towards the middle of the room
was a very modern examination couch with brown leather stirrups already in
place. There were weighing scales of a very modern design and several shelves
with complicated instruments of various shapes. A strong overhead light
illuminated the examination table.
There were two nurses, both
dressed in smart white tunics. Both of the nurses were young and slender. The
shorter of the two had short almost black hair while the other nurse wore her
longer blonde hair tied back in a chignon.
It was the doctor who held
Timothy's attention, she was small and petite, her pretty face was neatly made
up and the small steel rimmed glasses she wore gave her a studious appearance.
She was wearing a white coat made
of very fine cotton. He realised that the doctor could not be much more than
twenty-six or seven years old. As she stood up Timothy could see that she had
an absolutely tiny waist, accentuated quite prominently by her white cotton
belt.
She looked at Hazel and smiled,
displaying her perfect teeth. "I understand that you are..." She
looked down at the form she held in her hand "...Timothy's temporary
guardian, erm that is, while his mother is away?"
Hazel replied confidently.
"Yes that's right! His mother is staying with my own mother while she
recovers from a bout of influenza. So I have taken charge of Timothy and am
staying at the house to look after him."
The doctor smiled. She realised
that Hazel was a quite confident and able young lady and was quite sure that
Hazel meant exactly what she said when she said `take charge'.
The doctor turned to one of the
nurses. "Let's get him weighed and measured and then I will examine
him." She looked towards the young boy, noting the perfection of his pale
flesh as he stood with his hand clasped over his genitals. She turned to Hazel.
"There are some forms to sign, which you as guardian at the present time
may sign in his mother's absence.
She opened the palm of her hand
to indicate that Hazel should sit on a chair by the desk while one of the
nurses took Timothy by the arm and led him to the scales. He began to blush
once more as the pretty dark haired nurse placed her soft hands on his waist
and positioned him on the scales.
He stood there until she motioned
him to step down and stood him against the wall, which had a scale marked in
feet and inches upon it.
"Put your hands by your
sides and stand up straight with your head touching the wall." Reluctantly
Timothy uncovered himself, blushing as the nurse glanced down at his naked
body. He blushed even more as her body pressed firmly against him as she placed
a small movable marker on his head.
"Right you can move
forward." She said as she noted the position of the maker.
The next part was particularly
humiliating as she made him stand with his legs apart and his hands stretched
out to either side. "Now stay like that until I have finished measuring
you there's a good boy."
His red and blushing face was a
testimony to his utter embarrassment as her delicate hands held the tape around
his neck and then from his shoulder to his fingertips.
Each time she measured him she
called out the result to the other nurse who had come to stand by them with a
clipboard. The nurse pressed her body against him as she measured his chest and
then his waist, her cool hands playing havoc with his feelings.
Timothy blushed profusely as she
knelt down and passed the tape around his buttocks, her face was pressed almost
intimately against his tummy as she brought the ends around to the front. He
trembled as her hand brushed against his penis as she placed the end of the
tape to the measurement. Again the back of her hand brushed against his penis
as she placed the tape around his thigh.
Timothy could but stand there,
his arms still outstretched and beginning to ache just as the pretty nurse
smiled at him and spoke; "You may put hands on top of your head now, they
must be aching by now."
Timothy blushed, as she looked
him in the eye. Deliberately and without warning she reached forward and cupped
his testicles before placing the end of the tape with her other hand between
his legs.
The humiliating experience of her
looking him straight in the eye while holding his genitals, was too much for
Timothy and he blushed mightily.
"My you are a shy one;"
she said. "I would not have thought a young man like you could blush so
much."
He proved her wrong as
involuntarily he blushed once more at seeing Hazel turn her head, from the desk
where she was filling out his forms, and look at him.
She spoke, her tone matter of
fact, as she watched the young nurse nonchalantly lift his testicles once more
and proceed to measure the length of his leg from the groin. "Now Timothy
I hope you are behaving yourself, I would not want to have to smack your bottom
again."
Her words causing the boy to
blush an even deeper shade of red, waves of humiliation washing over him as he
stood naked before the young nurse, his legs spread wide apart and his hands on
top of his head.
The nurse looked at him as she
finished taking his measurements and stood upright, her face now only inches
away from his. Her tone conveyed a feeling of sympathy as she gently laid her
soft hand on his cheek.
"Poor baby, it's all a bit
much for you isn't it."
Timothy blushed again this time
at the intimate contact of her hand and the closeness of her face to his.
His humiliation continued as the
nurse sat him on a cold metal chair while she took his blood pressure and a
small quantity of blood. She bade him stand up and passed him a large glass jar
with a tube-like end. He blushed as he saw it, knowing that he would be
required to give a urine sample.
His embarrassment was almost
palpable as she made him stand by the sink in full view of everyone.
"Now see if you can fill the
bottle for me."
Timothy looked at her
incredulously; surely he would be able to do it in private! The nurse smiled at
him and said.
"I am sorry Timothy you will
have to do it in front of me, I am going to test it straight away." She
took the jar from his hands and knelt in front of his. To his dismay she took
hold of his penis, which was still plump but hanging down between his legs, and
placed the end and most of the shaft into the jar.
"Now take hold of the jar,
there's a good boy."
Without another word she turned
to the sink and turned on the cold tap. She placed a sponge underneath the
running water and quickly, turning towards him, placed it against his tummy.
The shock of the cold water and the running of the tap quickly had the desired
effect and Timothy began to urinate helplessly as the young nurse watched him.
She moved behind him and pressing her body close to his, she passed her hands
around his waist took hold of his penis and the jar and squeezed the last few
drops from the end of his penis.
The nurse took the jar away and
then made him stand in the middle of the room with his hands on his head. She
left him there, her face displaying an expression of professional sympathy as
she left him in his humiliating position.
It was about ten minutes before
the doctor got up from her desk and placed the stethoscope around her neck.
He could feel himself blush as
she took his face in her hands and bent his head forward. Her gentle fingers
began to run through his hair as she examined his scalp. She then looked in his
ears before tracing her hands around his jaw line. He could see from over her
shoulder that Hazel and both the young nurses had joined the doctor and were
standing to her side as she placed the cold stethoscope against his chest.
"Breathe in deeply and hold
your breath until I tell you to expel."
Her voice was soft, almost
intimate as she moved the cold metal over his chest.
"Right put your hands by
your sides and expel your breath." She let the stethoscope drop and waited
until his hands were by his sides.
She raised her arms and placed
them on each shoulder before moving them over his shoulders and down his arms.
Her touch was soft and gentle and
her cool hands made goose bumps appear upon his flesh.
"Now hold your arms outwards
with your fingers straight."
Timothy obeyed as she placed her
hands on either side of his chest and slowly moved them down his body until
they were holding each side of his narrow waist.
She went down on one knee and
continued feeling either side of his body as her hands brushed down over his
hips and thighs to his ankles.
"You may put your hands down
by your sides now." She stood up and to Timothy's embarrassment took hold
of his penis with both hands and gently pushed the foreskin back until the
glans was fully exposed.
She examined it carefully before
letting it drop back between his legs. Timothy groaned as he felt his penis
throb at her touch. She made no comment as she lifted his testicles and spoke
to him once more.
"Now turn you head to the
side and cough for me." Timothy obeyed meekly, his cough weak and feeble,
such was his embarrassment at standing in front of the four young women while
his testicles were being held so intimately. "And again, a nice big cough
please Timothy."
He blushed, but managed a much
stronger cough. The doctor turned to one of the nurses and asked her to bring a
chair. The taller blonde nurse immediately fetched a chair, which she placed in
front of Timothy.
The doctor sat on the chair and
placed her hand upon the inside of the boy's thigh. "Now open your legs as
wide as you can there's a good boy." She turned her head to Hazel as the
boy obeyed her, spreading his legs as wide as he could.
"Nurse Davis has told me
about her cause for concern Hazel, and I am afraid to say that his testicles
are indeed very enlarged and swollen."
She turned back to Timothy and
looked up at him from her chair.
"Look at me Timothy and
listen." Shamefaced the boy looked at the young doctor, his face blushing
as her eyes fixed upon his.
"I am going to ask you some
questions and I want truthful answers. Do you understand me?" Timothy
blushed, but managed to answer.
"er... Yes doctor." His
voice was croaky and hoarse.
"Do you know what
masturbation is?"
Her question embarrassed the boy
but reluctantly he managed to answer her. "erm... Yes I think so .. er
miss... er doctor." Have you ever masturbated? Played with this until you
have ejaculated? I want a truthful answer now."
Timothy blushed profusely as the
doctor, almost casually took hold of his penis and laid it in the palm of her
hand. The doctor could see the colour suddenly rush to his face as he looked at
his penis laid in her hand and then replied.
"Honestly er.. miss.. erm
truthfully I haven't."
He stuttered and stammered as she
continued to hold his penis. After a few moments she let go of his penis and
cupped his scrotum in one hand and gently felt around the testes with the
other.
"Are you having pain from
your testicles?" She looked up at him as she spoke. His eyes were
immediately drawn to hers as he made his admission.
"Yes... miss... er doctor,
sometimes they hurt."
"Does the pain wake you up
at night?"
"erm... Sometimes
miss." The boy replied truthfully.
She stood up and left him and
spoke to both of the nurses.
"I want him on the table...
er no not that one." She gestured towards the examination table.
"Behind the screen I think.
I want good access and plenty of support he may be there for a while."
Timothy could hear the
conversation but had no idea what was about to happen to him.
Timothy stood as he had been left
while the nurses disappeared behind the screen. He could here the soft hiss of
pneumatics and hear the nurses busy with some kind of apparatus, but beyond
that he had no idea what they were doing.
He was aware that a very bright
light had been turned on, reflecting its beams against the ceiling above the
top of the screen that divided the room. Hazel and the doctor were in deep
conversation by her desk as the boy stood naked and embarrassed but otherwise
waiting patiently.
It was probably ten minutes that
the two nurses came for him. He could understand that something was about to
happen as he was led forward, with each nurse at either side of him, holding
his arms firmly. They walked him through past the side of the screen and into
the second half of the modern doctor's office.
He trembled as he saw the fully
automatic gynaecological bed starkly illuminated against the white tiled floor
and walls of that section of the room. There were futuristic looking gas
cylinders and trolleys with callipers and instruments neatly placed on their
surfaces.
He was propelled towards the bed
and quickly turned around so that his bottom was pressed against the end of it
between the technical looking stirrups. Pads and supports seemed to be
everywhere, their brown leather supported by highly polished chromium plated
arms that seemed to have adjustments at every joint.
His confinement to the
examination bed was carried out quickly and efficiently as if he might flee
with fright. He was made to sit his bottom on the bed and quickly laid back
while to nurses deftly hoisted his legs into the stirrups. Straps were attached
and pads placed under him and around him that he apprehensively looked at the
two nurses and stammered:
"er.. what are.. y... you
going to do.. er nurse."
The nurse answered soothing her
hands over the trembling boy's brow.
"Don't worry, doctor will be
through in a moment."
He was given no more information
as they continued adjusting the bed. His legs were held high but thankfully not
too far apart.
The support pads were under his
thighs, knees and ankles... as well as soft supports under his lumbar region
and around his hips. Suddenly he heard the hiss of pneumatics and felt the
stirrups moving, pulling his legs further upwards and widely apart until he
felt his bottom cheeks opening. One of the nurses busied herself adjusting
something cold against his buttocks and again he heard the hiss of air as the
cheeks of his bottom were stretched apart, exposing the sensitive opening of
his sphincter.
The last adjustment was the
placing of a pad under his head, which the nurse inflated with air. Timothy did
not think that he could have been placed in a more humiliating position. His
legs were stretched far wider and higher than that of the preparation room
where he had been given an enema and had his genitalia shaved.
He blushed as he saw Hazel walk
into the room and stand looking at him from in-between his widely spread legs,
just as the nurses were attaching loose restraints to his wrists which had been
placed on the bed above his head.
His apprehension grew even
stronger as one of the nurses placed an oxygen mask next to his head. Although
it had been placed there as a precautionary measure, Timothy looked at it
ominously.
The doctor walked through and
asked one of the nurses to reduce the size of the screen, which divided the
room so that she could see the door. The nurse walked in-between Timothy's
prone position and the dividing screen and drew it back. Timothy could now see
into the first part of the room and realised to his dismay that the screen only
covered the middle part of him. His legs and head were clearly visible to
anyone that entered the surgery.
The pretty young doctor spoke to
Hazel, ignoring the boy's worried expression.
"I have asked Vicki Grant to
come as soon as she is free. Vicki used to be a nurse here at the centre and as
she lives near to where you are staying I thought she would be the ideal choice
to help you with what we discussed." Timothy blushed immediately as he
heard that Mrs Grant would be coming in to the surgery, hoping against hope
that whatever they were going to do to him would be finished and she would not
see him in such a humiliating and revealing position.
The doctor continued talking with
Hazel: "Of course ideally, you will need three of you, so I am going to
ask the one of the nurses from the centre to come along and help you.
"Now what I am going to do
is extract as much semen as I can and..." The surgery door opened cutting
the young doctor off in mid-sentence. Timothy watched in horror as not only Mrs
Grant walked in, but she was immediately followed by Susan and Gail.
They all immediately looked at
Timothy as they entered the room, seeing him blush a beetroot red as he saw
them.
Mrs. Grant spoke to Susan;
"If you and Gail take a seat here I will go through. I don't know why you
both don't go and get a drink from the canteen after all your hard work.
Timothy watched the girls sit
down realising immediately that they could see his head and the position of his
legs quite clearly from their position.
The screens hid his mid section
from their view, but Gail could see how embarrassingly open and accessible his
position was. She was surprised at the thrill she felt run through her as she
wickedly imagined having him in that position for her own pleasure to examine
as she saw fit.
Mrs Grant walked through and
smiled at Hazel and the doctor and nurses.
"Sorry I couldn't come
sooner."
She looked down at Timothy her
eyes taking in every inch of him as she walked over to Hazel who was standing
next to the doctor at the foot of the bed. The two nurses immediately took up
their positions at each side of his hips. One of them nonchalantly laid her
hand against his tummy just above the juncture of his penis, which was now
lying flaccid between his legs.
"As I was saying;" The
doctor continued where she left off. "I am going to take as much semen
from him as I can in the time permitting and then I think we will have to keep
a close watch on his output during the coming weeks.
The doctor looked over Timothy's
body and addressed Hazel, Mrs Grant and the two nurses.
"As you can see he is
physically extremely well proportioned in fact I don't think I have seen a boy
quite up to this standard of perfection... and I don't use the word perfection
lightly. Because of his quite sheltered upbringing I think that it would be
morally wrong to encourage him in masturbatory habits. I am sure that if he is
well supervised and not left to his own devices, he can be drained at very
regular intervals and therefore not have the urge to indulge in masturbatory
practices. I am sure that this will be the most satisfactory solution."
Hazel looked at Timothy as the
doctor continued. She could see his face was one deep red blush and wondered
why she felt so much excitement at his subjugation.
"Now I am going to suggest
that you take semen from him between say between... five and seven times a day.
I will give you a box of test-tubes and if you would mark them with time and
date, we will be able to judge what amount needs to be extracted per day, to
keep his testicles at a normal size for physical comfort. I think recording his
output and times will only be necessary until you get a feel for what his
output might be."
Without showing any sign of
prurient interest, both Vicky and Hazel were secretly delighted at the doctor's
instructions. They both looked at the young doctor as she continued and turned
to one of the nurses; "Will you make sure we have some test-tubes to
hand."
"I will use two methods
today so that you can alternate between them or at times use other methods to
obtain as much as you can at each session. The school holidays start on Friday
and as today is Tuesday I will issue a sick note so that you may keep him at
home for the rest of the week."
She turned to Hazel and smiled as
she finished her sentence.
"If you check him regularly
during the day, it should indicate whether he is ready to have some more taken
from him. You will be able to tell either by the size of his testicles... or by
his penis becoming erect."
Timothy could not believe his
ears. He was trembling from head to foot, his embarrassment increasingly
fuelled by each sentence. He felt like a prize animal on display as the doctor
discussed what was to be done to him in such a `matter of fact' manner.
Involuntarily he turned his head
to the side to avoid the steady gaze of the Hazel and Mrs. Grant. As he turned,
he suddenly became aware of Susan and Gail seated at the far side of the room.
He could see that they were listening intently as they sat forward in their
seats. It became obvious to the distraught boy that they had heard every word
the Doctor had said.
Timothy's penis was completely
flaccid as the doctor moved further forward between the boy's legs. The nurse
handed her an opened tube of lubricant and waited with her hand outstretched
while the doctor greased several of her fingers before handing the gel back to
the nurse. The fluency of the procedure seemed well practiced and made Hazel
wonder how many young boys and been subjected to this kind of humiliation
before Timothy.
Without a word the doctor
inserted her hand between the boy's buttocks, the smooth plastic pads that
stretched his bottom wide, allowed her full and unhindered access to his
sphincter.
She looked at Timothy as she
pressed her forefinger against the tight rosebud at the entrance to his anus.
"Just relax there's a good
boy, I am just going to slide my finger up inside you."
Timothy turned his head to the
side in embarrassment only to see that Gail and Susan had left their chairs and
had moved to the other side of the room. They were looking towards the far side
of the screen and Timothy knew that they could now see everything that the
doctor was doing to him.
He groaned as he felt her finger
push past the constricting muscle of his sphincter and suddenly felt an acute
sensation as she located his prostate.
"Arggghhh... ooohhh."
Timothy groaned as he felt her
finger, which seemed to be deep inside of him, stimulate the prostate gland. He
could feel an answering throb in the tip of his penis, as to his horror; he
felt the nurse casually lift his flaccid member and deftly pull the foreskin
down the shaft, shamefully revealing the glans and the sensitive flesh beneath.
"Argghhh.. oohhhh"
He writhed in an embarrassment of
sexual sensation, his hips bucking as he tried to escape the acute sensation he
felt deep inside his bottom. His attempt to escape the exquisite torture was
thwarted by the confines of the gynaecological table.
The doctor turned to Hazel and
Mrs Grant...
"As I thought, even the
prostate is enlarged I would imagine that the boy has been in discomfort for
some time."
The nurse caused him to groan in
misery and embarrassment. The sensation in his penis was acute as she rubbed
the palm of her hand over the very tip.
"Arrggghhhh....
Arggghhhhhh...arggggggggggggghhhhhhhhh."
The sensation was so agonisingly
exquisite that he felt he would die unless she stopped immediately. The nurse
gave a smile of satisfaction to Hazel and Vicki as the penis became fully erect
and hard within her hands.
"There's a good boy now that
didn't take long did it sweetheart..." ...The dark haired nurse coo-ed at
him. She began to sensually manipulate the foreskin up over the sensitive glans
and then back down again. Her practiced milking motion soon had the boy gasping
for breath and every sinew of his body as tight as piano wire.
"Arrgggggghhhh...arggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhh.
Timothy was beside himself,
engulfed in a myriad of the most acute sensations he had ever felt in his young
life. Hazel moved, almost instinctively, from the doctor's side and came to
stand beside the boy. She lowered her head, her breath soft and sweet and her
voice gentle and loving as she spoke to him.
"There my sweet boy let it
all come out for doctor, you'll feel much better soon."
She placed her hand softly on his
chest and ran her fingers articulately over his sensitive nipples. She could
feel a thrill run through her body as he suddenly arched his back and groaned
his voice almost a wail of anguish and sensation.
"Argggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
argh argh argh."
His body shook as Hazel quickly
took each nipple in her hand and squeezed hard, turning her head to look at his
penis which the nurse was steadily milking in her long fingers.
Hazel noted that the other nurse
was now holding his testicles and stroking his tummy. She also noticed with
amusement, that it was Vicki who held the test tube over the end of his penis
just at the vital moment, catching a mighty stream of thick semen as it erupted
from his thrusting member. The nurse did not miss a stroke in her milking of
him as Hazel watched avidly, noting the doctor almost jabbing her finger up
between his captive buttocks as he ejaculated in a wail of anguish.
"Arggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh"
His cries seemed to go on
forever. Hazel turned back to look at the boy captive on the bed below her. His
head was thrown back and his mouth was wide open gasping for air. Jet after jet
of thick white globules seemed to burst from the tip of his penis. His head
lashed from side to side as the nurse continued to manipulate his penis. It
seemed to Hazel that the boy was being almost cruelly drained as the doctor
expertly stimulated his prostate.
They held him in the throes of
ecstasy, manipulating his flesh so expertly and for so long that the boy began
to shiver as if his body was in spasm,
On and on it went until the last
spurts of semen were drained from him. His back arched one final time before he
fell back on the bed exhausted. His chest heaved for breath as the nurse milked
the last few globules in an upward motion from the very base of his penis,
watching as the very last drop escaped into the glass test tube. She gently let
go of his penis and placed the oxygen mask over his face.
Simultaneously the doctor slowly
and gently slipped her finger from his bottom and patted his penis gently.
"That's a good boy Timothy,
you have done very well. We are going to let you rest for a while now."
Timothy sucked at the rich air.
His mind and body were in turmoil. He had never imagined that he could have
experienced such feelings. He could feel his heart beating within his chest. He
could, he imagined, feel every inch of his skin, and still impossibly feel
their hands roaming over every inch of his body.
Paramount to all these feelings
was the utter humiliation he felt. He knew that his face was as red as a
beetroot. Not just with the physical and overwhelming experience of his first
ejaculatory orgasm but with the already deeply carved humiliation, that he had
suffered at the hands of his cousin and the doctor and nurses.
These feelings had been made even
more acute by the presence of Susan and her mother and of course the head girl,
Gail.
They had not only heard him have
his bottom smacked in public, but had also witnessed his nakedness and
humiliation, being made to stand with his hands clasped to his head, unable to
stop his penis from erecting in front of them. Now they had witnessed his utter
shame as he had been made to reluctantly ejaculate. He shivered again at the
thought of the utter humiliation of recent events, his young body shaking
visibly.
Had he known or been able to
foresee the events that would follow, he might well have died of shame and
humiliation. Or even had he been able to hear the conversation centred around
the doctor's desk his unease would have been multiplied tenfold.
Both Hazel and Vicki were seated
in front of the doctor. Susan and Gail had gone back to their seats rather
hurriedly as the proceedings with Timothy had finished. Although they were sat
some way away from the desk they could hear the conversation quite clearly.
Lucy Ashcroft was without doubt
one of the brightest young doctor's that visited the clinic for school
medicals. But there was much more to Lucy's persona than mere skill and
efficiency. She had realised for the some time that her leanings towards an
authoritarian management of young boys had been hidden and recessed in the back
of her mind. That was until she had been appointed to carry out the medical
examinations of young school teenagers. She had however discovered that only
the most physically perfect would excite her. In Timothy she had found the most
perfectly proportioned young boy she had ever seen. His young body had
delighted her more than she thought possible as she had thrust her finger up
into his bottom. His naïve reactions and utter distress had sent thrill after
thrill through her body.
She knew that she had experienced
great sexual pleasure from the morning events and was already planning to
repeat the episode. Not for her the pimply, greasy skinned adolescents that she
had to deal with from time to time. For her it was the huge significance that
she had actually experienced the pleasure of toying with the emotions and
physically exploring the body of the most perfect young male individual she had
ever seen.
Her thoughts turned to her
college friend who was now operating her own private IVF clinic in London as
well as several days a month at Lucy's own private practice in town. A quiet
and hugely successful establishment that relied upon, apart from the necessary
skills, what she now held in her hand; a test-tube full of the reluctant
emission of the most perfect donor she had ever seen.
Lucy looked at Hazel and Vicki
Grant and held up the test-tube.
"I have never seen such an
amount ever... and from one emission. He must obviously have been in physical
discomfort as well as the emotional one of not daring to masturbate. I think we
have an obligation to the boy to make sure that he is well managed over the
next few weeks."
She looked thoughtful for a
moment before continuing.
"I don't know how you both
feel but I think it would be wrong of us to set him on a course of masturbatory
habits at his age. Apart from the clandestine and furtive approach young boys
seem to have to this activity, it can be physically damaging to the penis. The
penis can become bent and malformed with vigorous and constant masturbation.
Therefore I propose that we keep it on a supervisory and clinical basis as we
have already discussed. There is one other thing - and that is that I would
rather like a colleague of mine in London to see him at some time, a second
opinion is always welcome."
Lucy smiled at Hazel and Vicki as
she stood up from behind her desk and placed the test-tube in a holder.
"Would you like me to have a
word with his mother and tell her what I am proposing? I think it would be best
if she was kept informed right from the start."
Hazel spoke, her voice confident
and steady. Although she was only nineteen years old, her confidence and manner
were of a much more mature woman.
"I will ring my mother
tonight and tell her of the events so far. We have a relationship as such, that
I can easily talk to her about such things, I am sure that she will be able to
talk to his mother, my aunt, and explain what the poor boy has been going
through."
Hazel thought to herself, that
what he had gone through would be nothing to what she was going to do to him.
She had thrilled at the boy's humiliation and her total dominance of him, where
at a whim she could play with his body as she wished.
Susan and Gail had been sitting
quietly listening to the conversation. Susan had known for some time that
Timothy's popularity with her and her mother had not been just for his
practical usefulness with the various jobs he had done for them. She remembered
when he had once been emptying a pail of water, that he had wet his shirt and
shorts so much so that they were wringing wet.
Her mother had instantly rushed
to the boy and started pulling his shirt from his body with which she
succeeded, however when she had tried to pull his trousers down, he had
resisted and quickly elected to return home in the sodden garments. Susan
thought then that her mother had been rather keen to divest the boy of his
clothes, however well intentioned her motives.
What had surprised Susan more today
was that her mother had seen nothing untoward in Susan seeing the boy in all
his nakedness - and that in fact she had encouraged Susan and Gail to go and
talk to him while he was being made to stand naked with his hands on his head,
obviously knowing that his penis and testicles would be completely on display
for the girls to see.
Susan spoke;
"Mummy, will Timothy be
alright now, I just heard him moaning, he seemed to be very distressed while
you were with him in there."
Vicki Grant smiled at her
daughter and before answering her question, looked at the young doctor.
"Will it be alright for
Susan to see Timmy for a moment? Susan seems a little concerned about him...
and of course she is a going to have to baby-sit him while his mother is away if
Hazel needs a night off, which I am sure she will."
The doctor smiled at Vicki,
understanding immediately the implications of what she was asking.
Hazel almost chuckled at Vicki.
"That sounds a nice idea...
I mean the night off; are you proposing to show me the bright lights of this
agricultural county?"
Vicki laughed; "Well I
thought I might take you out for a meal while you are here and perhaps the
theatre afterwards... there is a good rep company here."
The doctor answered Vicki's
question;
"But of course Vicki, How
remiss of me. I think it would be very sweet of you girls if you were to go in
there and keep him company. I am going to extract some more semen from him and
then measure his testicles. He has been in quite some discomfort I imagine, but
I am sure that he is going to be much better in a few days."
Susan looked at Gail, the
mischievousness in her eyes made the head girl smile as Susan took her hand.
"Come on Gail, let's go and
cheer him up."
Susan led Gail through the gap in
the screens. Both Susan and Gail stood and stared at the sight that greeted
them. The boy's body was raised up as if in supplication, his bottom supported
upwards off the bed and spread open by slim clear plastic pads. His legs were
fastened high in the air and his hands were loosely restrained above his head
on the padded surface of the examination couch.
He looked at the two girls as
they entered and groaned. Both nurses were standing at the side of the bed as
the girls entered the screened-off area. The dark haired nurse smiled at the
young girls and spoke.
"He seems to have recovered
from his little ordeal."
She looked at his penis that was
now hanging down between his legs and saw a globule of clear liquid, which had
emerged from the tip of the urethra.
The nurse took a gauze pad from
the instrument trolley and moved between his legs, gently lifting his penis she
wiped the moist teardrop of liquid from the opening. Susan watched Timothy turn
his away from the girls in shame. He blushed, his cheeks colouring immediately
into a bright red hue. Susan moved to his side and took his burning face in her
hands;
"Don't worry Timmy, the
doctor says you will be feeling a lot better in a few days. Mummy and Hazel are
going to milk you every day to make sure that you don't get... erm, big balls
again."
Gail nearly laughed out loud as
Susan described his condition so innocently. Her amused expression was not lost
on Timothy as Gail bent right over him, her firm breasts pressing against his
chest as she looked into his eyes.
"Are you feeling better now
Timothy?"
He could hardly bring himself to
answer as he looked into the beautiful faces of the two girls. He was aware
that their soft hands were placed casually on his chest as they looked at him
with expressions of concern. He could barely stammer an answer, as Gail
casually placed her other hand on his lower tummy and moved it downwards over
his freshly shaven pubic area
"Er... erm... y'yessss...
err misss... "
Timothy did not know what to
say... his embarrassment increasing with every moment as the girls looked at
him their hands gently stroking over his body. Gail looked at the nurse and
spoke sweetly.
"Have his testicles reduced
in size much? The test-tube the doctor had looked really full."
The nurse almost nonchalantly
moved around to stand in-between the boys widely spread legs.
"Come and have a look, you
can see that the scrotum is no longer stretched and that they seem to be
hanging normally. They are very large for a boy of his age, but you can see
even though he is not erect that his penis is well developed too. Some boy's do
develop early, but even so his penis is unusually large."
To Timothy's horror he felt the
nurse lift his testicles and take hold of his penis. He could not help but look
down at himself as the nurse spoke once more.
"Take them in the palm of
your hand, you can feel the weight of them, you will notice if your roll them
between your fingers, that they are now able to move freely in the scrotal
sac."
The nurse casually held his penis
upwards so that Gail had completely free access to his testicles. Timothy
groaned in anguish as Gail gently lifted his testicles and moved the soft balls
around in her hand. He could not believe that such a thing was happening as
Susan spoke.
"Let me have a feel, they
look awfully large."
She too moved to stand between
the boy's legs. Timothy's mind was in turmoil, his embarrassment like a wave
washing over him as he felt the nurse let go of his tingling penis and her soft
hand stoke over the sensitive skin between his legs, feeling his testicles
being gently lowered as Gail let them hang freely between his legs.
He was in anguish as his
humiliation continued. Gail spoke sweetly to her friend.
"I will hold his penis for
you so that you can lift his testicles. They feel very soft and delicate."
Timothy sighed in utter
embarrassment as Susan took his sensitive scrotum in her cool fingers; her
touch was soft and sensuous as she moved the soft orbs to and fro within their
sac. Worse still he felt his penis throb as Gail delicately took it between her
finger and thumb.
Not content with holding the
tumescent flesh, he felt her slide his foreskin back down the shaft. The cool
air of the examination room was apparent against the unprotected flesh, fully
accenting his rude exposure.
He groaned inwardly as he felt
his penis throb involuntarily. To his horror it seemed to be becoming erect. He
groaned in utter anguish as he felt it began to pulse and stiffen as her
delicate fingers nonchalantly encouraged and stimulated the sensitive skin. He
tried to pull back as her thumb casually rubbed over the sensitive rim of the
glans. Both Gail and Susan looked at each other as they let go of him, almost
giggling as they left him with his penis completely erect and standing straight
up between his legs. The nurse smiled as she saw the effect the girl's hands
had had upon the young boy.
"Well girls, he obviously
doesn't seem to need a lot of encouragement does he? You might as well help us
turn him over for the doctor, He seems to be rested enough."
The nurses experienced hands soon
had the boy released from the confines of the apparatus and laid flat on the
bed with his legs hanging over the end.
"Right young man" the
young nurse said brightly to Timothy: "Let's have you over on your tummy,
I want you up on your hands and knees."
The nurse was perfectly aware
that the boy would not be able to turn over with his penis so stiff and erect.
So, as he groaned in embarrassment at their positioning of him, the nurse
casually took hold of his penis and at the same time gestured to the other
nurse, as well as Susan and Gail, to help him up onto his knees.
Their hands were everywhere,
under his tummy, between his legs and buttocks as they positioned him upon the
examination bed. His final humiliation was when he was forced to rest his head
on his hands and lay with his elbows flat on the bed to each side of his head.
His knees had been spread wide
with his bottom high in the air and his testicles hanging freely between his
legs. His penis was jutting forward under his tummy with the tip almost
touching his stomach well above his naval.
Both Susan and Gail were
absolutely delighted with his new position. Susan instinctively ran her hand
over his buttocks, marvelling at how vulnerably the boy was positioned.
Gail looked at Susan, her
beautiful lips set in a wide smile that showed her perfect white and glistening
teeth. She could not have explained her excitement at having a young boy so
completely exposed and humiliated before her. Of course there was the curiosity
of being able to examine a young boy so intimately; but her enjoyment and
excitement at his humiliation was a revelation to her. Gail was also aware that
her feelings were very much echoed by her friend Susan - and as she quickly
glanced across at her friend, she could see a similar sexual excitement written
clearly across her face.
Rather than dismiss her feelings
or try to hide them, Gail was confident enough to explore them and felt no embarrassment
at all in perhaps exposing her newly acquired desires. She spoke to Susan, her
words really intended for the young boy so vulnerably and rudely exposed before
her.
"It is a good job that young
Timothy here is being well behaved, he is in a most suitable position to have
his little bottom smacked."
Delivered with the sentence was a
light tap upon his upturned bottom, her delicate fingers immediately stroking
over the quivering cheeks of his buttocks where she had smacked him.
Gail looked at his face to see
the effect her words had had upon him, the deep blush to his cheeks immediately
rewarded her. His bottom lip had begun to quiver and his eyes had a look of
anguish as he turned his head to look over his shoulder at the young and
beautiful head girl.
It was the nurse who put a stop
to his embarrassment, at least for the time being, by addressing both Susan and
Gail. Her voice was soft and gentle although she was smiling at the obvious
pleasure that the girls were experiencing as they examined the boy.
"Poor Timothy is quite
embarrassed by all your attention and... I think it is perhaps time for the
doctor to see him again. If you would like to go through and tell her that he
is ready."
She raised her eyebrows in a
questioning look to which both Gail and Susan, rather disappointedly, obeyed.
"Bye Timothy." Susan
said as she turned and walked with Gail through the gap in the screens to the
first part of the room.
Timothy was in turmoil; his body
was shaking with pure anguish and deep-rooted embarrassment. It had been
several years since any one had seen his body completely naked, apart from the
communal showers after sports lessons while at school. He had jealously guarded
his privacy and had avoided situations even where he would have had to take his
shirt off in front of a female, unless it was at the swimming pool or the
beach.
He looked up at the nurses as
they stood beside him, their starched uniforms touching his body as they leaned
over him to adjust his position. He blushed as one of the nurses smiled at him
before touching the inside of his thigh and indicating that he should position
his knees even more widely.
He was acutely aware that his
penis was erect and that it was in plain view for all to see between his widely
spread thighs. He looked back and watched as one of them took a tube of
lubricant from the trolley and unscrewed the cap. Subconsciously he contracted
the muscles of his sphincter, shuddering involuntarily at the thought of her
gentle fingers invading his bottom.
Suddenly he was aware that the
nurses were standing more to attention and looking over his body towards the
other part of the room. He could not help groan as his eyes followed theirs to
the procession of people that were walking towards him. He was acutely aware of
his humiliating and vulnerable position as he knelt helplessly upon the
examination table.
"Well Timothy, lets see what
we can manage this time shall we. Now be a good boy and try and relax your
bottom a bit more this time."
Timothy groaned not just at the
embarrassing and intimate nature of what the doctor had just said but also at
the fact that both Susan and Gail had followed the doctor and Susan's mother
into the screened area. He tried to turn his head away as both Susan and Gail looked
him in the eye, but was halted by the doctor's next words.
"I want you to listen to
what I say and follow my instructions, do you understand me Timothy?"
He blushed immediately at the
authoritative tone of the young female doctor as she laid a hand gently on his
bottom cheeks.
"Now relax your bottom
please, there's a good boy."
Her words were followed by a
couple of gentle pats on his bottom as in horror he watched, not the doctor,
but Mrs Grant take the lubricant from the nurse and gently place her soft hand
upon his bottom.
"Now Timmy, be a good boy
and relax, I promise I won't hurt you."
Vicki Grant's voice was soft and
soothing as she gently pressed her hand between his widely spread buttocks and
applied a cool gel to his upturned bottom. Her fingers delicately sliding over
his delicate flesh until her fingertips rested against the tightly closed
rosebud of his sphincter. He shuddered as deftly she inserted the tip of her
finger. Vicky watched the young boy's flesh almost quake with sensation as she
deliberately slid her finger all the way up into his bottom.
Susan looked at Gail, both girls
visibly excited as they watched the boy being rudely impaled by a slender
finger. "There's a good boy." Vicki said as she rotated her finger
until she was able to rub over the boy's sensitive prostate gland.
"Oooooooooooohhh...
arggggggghhh."
Timothy could do nothing but
groan, his face showing the anguish and humiliation he was feeling.
"Now be a good boy for the
doctor. You wouldn't want to make a fuss in front of Susan and Gail now would
you?"
Timothy looked over his shoulder
in abject dismay at Mrs Grant, feeling her finger move sensuously over his
prostate gland. He watched almost mesmerised with fear and trepidation as the
doctor moved to his side and sat on a stool before reaching underneath him. Her
fingers gently wrapped around his erect penis enveloping him in a firm grasp,
as one of the nurses lifted up a test tube from the trolley and rolled one of
the smart leather covered stools so that she could sit at the other side of
him.
He was acutely aware of the
magnitude of his humiliation as he watched both Gail and Susan position
themselves behind the second nurse. He was almost beside himself with
embarrassment, as the girls looked at him, acutely aware that the nurse had
moved closer and was gently stroking his burning cheek as if he was a baby.
Suddenly and involuntarily, his
body jerked as he felt the doctor deftly squeeze his penis and quickly draw the
foreskin back until it was stretched tight, exposing him fully to the
interested gaze of both Gail and Susan.
"Arrgggghhhh...ooohhhhhhhhh." He
groaned as he felt the doctor let the palm of her other hand rub over the
sensitive opening of his penis. As if on queue, a second finger was suddenly
slipped up into his bottom; his widely parted buttocks and the slipperiness of
the lubricant affording him no resistance Mrs Grant's rude invasion of his
bottom.
"Arrggghhhhhhhhhhh...argggggggggggghhhhhhhhhh."
His groans of anguish went unheeded
as simultaneously Vicki and the young doctor stimulated the boy to fever pitch.
Their hands seemed to elicit sensation from every nerve in his body as
together, they began deftly milking his penis and probe and stroke over the
soft pliant flesh of his prostate. He watched helplessly as the nurse leaned
forward and gently took hold of his scrotum. Her cool fingers cupped the
sensitive swollen orbs of his testicles in a deft and practiced manner. He
began to wriggle his hips in a reluctant and humiliating gyration as Vicki, in
absolute synchronisation with the doctor and nurses, relentlessly stimulated
the boy.
"Pllleeeeeeeeeeaaaaaaaaaaaaassssssssssse...aaaaaaaaaaaaaaaarrrrrrrrrrrrgggg
ggggggggggghhhhhhhhh."
The young boy's wail of anguish
signalled his approaching climax. His body shivered and shook as plethora of
delicate female fingers stimulated him to an anguished and humiliating climax.
He raised his head and wailed aware of the utter humiliation of being forced to
ejaculate as the nurse nonchalantly held the test-tube to the tip of his
thrusting penis.
"Arrrggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh..."
He seemed to have lost any
semblance of control over his body; such was the intensity of his ejaculation.
Spurt after spurt of semen entered the jar as the doctor slid her slender
fingers up and down the shaft of his penis in a practised milking motion.
Cleverly they prolonged his climax, almost nonchalantly using their expertise
to stimulate the boy to greater heights of anguish and ecstasy. Easily they
toyed with his emotions, watching him in an almost detached manner as he
spurted his semen into the waiting test-tube.
Without warning Vicki raised her
hand and smacked him smartly three times across the left cheek of his bottom.
Timothy's eyes opened wide in shock as he reared up, only to feel the
quickening strokes of the doctor's hand over the timid flesh of his penis. He
gasped in the horrible realisation of being spanked...his shame complete and
overwhelming.
The shock of the smack and the
smarting of his flesh allied to the quickening strokes of the doctor's hand
upon his penis acted like an electric shock. His entire body being spurred
onwards, becoming rigid and taut, as his muscles tensed and strained in violent
orgasm.
The doctor smiled up at Vicki,
almost amused at her unusual stimulus, as she was rewarded with yet another
mighty spurt of semen into the proffered glass test-tube. The second nurse
stroked her hand over the young boy's back, gently but firmly pushing his
shoulders back down onto the examination couch.
"There... poor baby... there
now, it will all be over soon." Her words were soft and gentle as she
stoked her hand over his naked body before bending her head down to his and
kissing him softly on the cheek.
Both Gail and Susan moved forward
to stand on either side of the nurse and began to gently stroke their hands
over his back and shoulders. Their excitement was almost palpable as they felt
his body shiver uncontrollably while the doctor milked the last drop of semen
from his penis.
3
Timothy sat beside Hazel as they
drove the few miles back to the house. He had not said a word but instead had
listened to Hazel's admonishment in abject embarrassment and humility.
"Of course I can understand
that you are embarrassed... any boy would be, but to be so tardy and slow to
obey is quite beyond me."
Hazel had thought about what she
was going to say well in advance and had chosen her words carefully.
"Now you would think when so
many people are involved in your welfare that you would be a little more
co-operative. Susan's mother, I am sure has enough work and responsibility,
without her having to take on more. She has offered to help and what do you
do... but be downright disobedient."
Hazel was referring to the end of
the examination when Vicki had suggested that she take Timothy back to the
lockers to dress. Much to his embarrassment she had led him through the door
only to be confronted by a room full of fourth form girls and their parents who
had just arrived for their medical examinations. In horror the boy had let go
of Vicki's hand and had rushed back into the surgery. Both Vicki and Hazel had
forcibly held his arms and marched him stark naked back through the crowded
room.
He had struggled and pleaded in
vein as the girls, who were still fully dressed in their school uniforms, had
giggled and even pointed at the naked and blushing youth.
"Now what am I going to do
with you Timothy?"
He could not help looking at
Hazel as she concentrated on the road ahead. Her exquisite face showed no
emotion and yet the mere nearness of such a beautiful girl unnerved him.
"You had better make a
decision... either I am going to deal with you or I am going to have to tell
your mother and let her deal with you... and I am reluctant to trouble her in
her present state of ill health. Well young man what is it to be?"
Hazel knew the importance of the
boy's decision, but was reasonably confident of what the outcome would be. She
smiled to herself and felt a thrill run through her body as she thought of what
the boy would have said had he known of what she had in mind for him.
"Oh Hazel... er miss... I
mean... er please don't tell my mother. I promise to be good I really do."
"Well what about your
behaviour so far, do you not think that that needs remedying you will have to
learn to modify your behaviour somehow."
"I am sorry... I promise I
will be obedient... but please don't tell my mother, I couldn't bear for her to
know."
"Alright Timothy, I promise
not to tell your mother, if you promise me that you will accept my authority in
her absence." Hazel was careful to make no mention of anything specific,
or indeed the actual word `punishment'.
"I promise miss... I will be
good." Timothy managed to stammer as Hazel glanced at him quickly.
"In that case we will say no
more about it for the moment, now cheer up and I will make you a nice late
lunch or early tea... whichever you prefer to call it."
Hazel had deliberately lightened
her tone and proceeded to put the boy more at ease. She had won a small battle
in getting the boy to agree to her authority and unbeknown to him her
punishment of him. She patted him on the knee and smiled at him as she drove
steadily down the country road.
"Now you can be the navigator
and tell me in plenty of time when I should turn right or left." She
watched the boy relax as they continued the journey, Making sure that he had no
inkling as to what was to follow.
The journey went without further
incident, Timothy relaxing and feeling far more at ease as they finally pulled
into the driveway of the house.
Timothy had eaten his tea and was
watching daytime television as Hazel finally finished her hour-long phone call
to her mother.
She had decided to use the
bedside phone in the guestroom so that her conversation would be well out of
earshot of the boy. During the conversation she had leisurely painted her long
fingernails bright red. She held out first one hand then the other to admire
them as she walked to her wardrobe. Feeling relaxed and yet excited at the
prospect of what was to come she changed into a white shirt, which was tightly
waisted and she knew, fully accented the firmness of her breasts.
She wore no brassiere, rather
choosing to let her nipples rub sensuously against the fine cotton fabric. Her
skirt was a fine cotton navy pleat, the hem of which came to mid-thigh, showing
off her beautifully firm and tanned legs. She completed her ensemble with a
wide patent leather belt: this she knew would draw even more attention to her
slender waist and full breasts.
She now carefully applied new
make-up to her face before examining herself in the mirror. Bereft of false
modesty she knew the effect her exquisite appearance would have on the young
boy. She stepped into a delicate pair of Gucci slender high-heeled shoes and
fastened the minute straps around her ankles. One last look in the mirror
confirmed the effect she had been hoping for.
From her shiny black hair to the
glint of the patent leather shoes, she was dressed to perfection. She stooped
down and unhooked a leather belt from one of her suitcases and placed the broad
safety-strap upon her bed. She twirled once more in front of the mirror,
revelling in the sight that greeted her. Standing still she held her face in a
stern expression before turning and walking slowly and deliberately through to
the sitting room.
"Right Timothy, I have just
talked to my... your auntie and she says that your mother is doing fine and
feeling a lot better for a little care and attention. Now turn off that
television and we will have a little chat."
Timothy had been lounging upon
the settee and had turned his head almost lazily towards the sound of Hazel's
voice. He was wearing his school uniform, but had changed his shoes to a pair
of comfortable tennis shoes. The thought of getting undressed again had been
quickly dismissed from his mind.
As he saw her, he sat bolt
upright, his face immediately colouring to the shade of a beetroot, her beauty
and cool demeanour immediately denuding him of any semblance of
self-confidence. He jumped up as if he had been stung and quickly switched off
the television set. He felt strangely faint as he sat down, this time in an
upright position with his hands placed primly upon the knees of his school
trousers. Hazel moved to stand before him, her legs astride as she looked at
his blushing face.
"Right Timothy my boy, I
have reluctantly done as you requested and withheld the knowledge of your
behaviour from your mother. However you must be dealt with and I intend, as
your temporary guardian, to take you firmly in hand."
She watched his face turn from a
deep crimson to an almost livid purple as each word deepened his utter
embarrassment and total humiliation. She gave him one more cool appraising look
before moving through the room and taking a hard backed chair from beside the
table where he would normally have been doing his homework at this time of day.
She placed the chair in the middle of the room and sat upon it, her skirt
falling around her legs to reveal even more bared thigh. She sat with her knees
together, totally aware of her own beauty and the electrifying effect she was
having upon the young boy's emotions.
"Right, Timothy, come and
stand in front of me. Stand up straight with your hands by your sides."
She waited, coolly watching as the young boy struggled to his feet and shuffled
shamefaced and embarrassed to stand in front of her.
"Stand to attention and look
at me while I am speaking to you. This is a serious matter and I want your full
attention."
Timothy was quaking in his shoes
as he managed to meet her gaze, standing straight with his arms by his sides he
felt himself begin to shiver. Hazel could not have been more pleased with the
effect she was having upon the young boy as she delivered her coup de grace.
"I am afraid that it has
been left to me to instil in you some proper discipline and good behaviour. To
make sure that I have your co-operation and compliance in the future I am going
to punish you."
She felt a thrill run through her
body as the young boy almost wilted under the word punishment. I am going to
punish you, as all young boys need to be punished. I don't want to do it... but
it is my duty to correct your behaviour before it gets out of hand. Now I hope
you are going to take your punishment with good grace and without fuss. If you
disobey me in any way whatsoever, I shall increase your punishment... do you
understand me?"
Timothy was almost mesmerised by
the combination of her beauty and her authority. He could not believe that he
could feel so humiliated and embarrassed... to be punished by a young girl of
such beauty... it was unthinkable...and yet here he was standing trembling and
ashamed in front of her! He shook visibly as she spoke to him again. Timothy
looked at her in absolute horror as she waited for his answer. This beautiful
girl that he had met only yesterday, the girl he would have loved to have had
been able to impress with his maturity and helpfulness, was now to punish him!
`Surely she did not mean to
punish him physically...his whole body shuddered at the thought!'
He managed to stammer a reply...
almost incoherently through his haze of embarrassment. "Y'y... yes
miss."
"Now take off your Jacket
and trousers, you had better take off your shoes and socks first. Place your
clothes over the chair by the table and then come back here and stand in front
of me again... oh and Timothy..." She paused, savouring the moment.
"Bring me one of your tennis shoes."
`So she was to punish him
physically'
Before he could protest she held
up her hand.
"If you protest or plead
with me, I will call your mother and tell her of your behaviour and that I am
about to punish you. If you resist physically I will call Mrs. Grant and Susan
and ask them to help me restrain you... and I don't think you would like the
embarrassment of being spanked on your bare bottom in front of them... do you?
Now off you go and do as you have been instructed. You may keep your shirt and
underpants on"
Timothy, blushing and trembling
with abject embarrassment moved over to the table; his trembling fingers just
managing to undo his shoelaces. He shivered with humiliation, aware of Hazel's
stern glare as he divested himself of his clothes until he was standing in just
his shirt and underpants. He felt utterly ridiculous as he bent down to pick up
one of his tennis shoes. `The ignominy of having to carry ones own implement of
punishment!'
His school shirt, which had long
flaps at the front and back, thankfully hid his underpants from view. He
returned to stand in front of her, his eyes downcast and his bottom lip
quivering with embarrassment. Slowly he raised his eyes to look at her, feeling
utterly foolish and small as she raised her beautifully manicured hand and took
the tennis shoe from his trembling fingers. Placing it on the floor by the side
of her chair, she reached forward and placed her hands on each of his hips and
pulled him forward until he was standing with his knees touching hers.
Without a word, she reached under
his shirt, her soft hands making him shiver as she touched his bare flesh. She
slipped her fingers into the top of his underpants and deftly drew them down
until the elasticised waistband was tight around his knees. Hazel knew that he
would find this even more embarrassing than her having taken them off
completely. He could not help watching, almost mesmerised as she pulled her
skirt up until her thighs were completely bare.
"As you will have gathered,
I am going to spank your bare bottom. I hope that it will be a lesson well
learned. This will be the first part of your punishment only. The second part
will be more of a taste of what is to come if you disobey me further."
Timothy shuddered with
embarrassment and trepidation as she looked into his blushing face. She took
hold of his hips once more and positioned him to her side, his feet shuffling
to follow her bidding as his underpants held his knees together. Quickly, with
an almost practised motion she lifted up the front flap of his shirt and
suddenly tipped his body over her knee. She heard him gasp, as in an instance;
he was positioned with his head hanging down and his hands touching the floor,
the right cheek of his blushing face now touching the smooth skin of her
shapely calf.
He gasped once more as she opened
her knees slightly, allowing his penis and testicles to hang between the firm
silky flesh of her thighs. She felt a thrill run through her body as
deliberately, she squeezed her knees together, holding his genitals firmly
between her legs.
The baring of his bottom was done
in a silent and almost ritualistic manner. He was aware of every nuance of the
humiliating action, as slowly and deliberately she raised his shirt flap. Her
soft fingers gently uncovered the naked cheeks of his bottom, eliciting an
involuntary gasp of embarrassment from her victim as she folded the flap over
so that it lay on the small of his back.
The placing of the cool palm of
her hand over the very centre of his quivering bottom completed his total
humiliation. The softness of her thighs was already adding another element to
the unthinkable humiliation that Timothy was being subjected to.
To his horror he felt a throb and
an unwelcome swelling in his penis. It was to his utter chagrin that he
realised that his penis was beginning to erect. He blushed unable to control
himself or his actions; he spoke even though he had been warned not to. He just
could not help pleading, if only to break the spell of the silent baring of his
body and to cover up the now incessant throbbing he felt in his groin.
"Please er.. miss... please
n'no"
Hazel knew the trauma the boy
must be feeling and prolonged his degradation by smoothing her hand gently over
his bottom cheeks, the objects of her intended chastisement. She thrilled as she
felt his penis stiffen and throb uncontrollably between her thighs. She had
known that it would not be long before the softness of her skin against his
freshly shaven flesh and the intimacy of his position would stimulate him to a
delicious erection between her legs.
"Now take your punishment
like a brave boy."
Her words were spoken softly as
she picked up the tennis shoe and with an apparent cool detachment raised the
soft rubber sole to shoulder height. She grasped his waist and held him tightly
as she delivered the first stroke.
"Slaaaaaaaaaaaaapppppp."
As the rubber shoe bit into the
soft left cheek of his bottom his body stiffened in an immediate response and a
loud gasp was emitted forcibly from the back of his throat. He had no time to
think or deal with the unexpected severity of the painful smack against his
flesh as a second stroke landed accurately on top of the first. The sharp
smack, bringing another vivid blush to the already marked flesh.
"Slaaaaaaaaaappppppppppppp."
"Argggggggghhhhhhhhhhh"
He cried out loudly, his body
wriggling and shivering as Hazel took aim once more, deliberately hitting the
same part of his left buttock with the third stroke. She watched as the white
smooth bottom cheeks shivered and shook with the pain she was inflicting upon
her helpless charge.
"Slaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaappppppppp."
"Argggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh.
Arrrrrgggggggggggghhhhhhhhh."
He screamed in pain, trying to
raise his head and plead with his beautiful tormentor as she watched him, her
face, not for a moment betraying the thrill she felt, as she delivered the next
stroke equally hard and on the very same place.
"Sllllaaaaaaaaaaappppppppppppppp."
"Arrrrgggggggggggggggggggggggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh.
His wail of pain and anguish did
not stop, but was a continuous cry as she delivered the fifth and sixth stroke,
again to the very same spot upon his left buttock.
"Slaaaaaaaaaaaaaapppppppppppp."
"Slaaaaaaaaaaaaaaapppppppppppp."
The boy was beside himself...
unable to control the jerking and trembling of his body, his buttocks twitching
from side to side while Hazel deliberately and methodically delivered another
six strokes of the rubber tennis shoe, this time to the right cheek of his
bottom, each stroke landing on the same place as the previous one. The boy was
wailing incessantly, his face covered in tears as she put the tennis shoe down
and placed her hand gently across both bottom cheeks.
He shuddered and wailed, trying
to voice a plea of mercy but it was minutes before his voice became coherent
enough for her to hear his pleading.
"Pleeeeeeeaaaaaasssssee
miss... n'no m'more"
He sobbed and groaned as he
regained some of his senses, his bottom cheeks on fire from the pain of the
biting rubber shoe. Hazel watched and waited until he had regained some
composure. She slipped her hand between his buttocks, her hand moving under
him, feeling his erect penis and heavy testicles before she held her hand flat
against his tummy. She almost lifted him to his feet as she herself stood
upright.
He stood cowed and humiliated,
sobbing uncontrollably as she nonchalantly unbuttoned his shirt and slipped it
from his shoulders. She stooped and drew his underpants down to his ankles. She
made him lift his feet before taking them off. She noted that, even after such
a painful punishment, that his penis had remained not just stiff, but fully
erect.
He looked into her face, his body
shaking with his sobs as she coolly looked at him, her beautiful face bearing
not even a hint of a flush, in fact betraying none of the effort she had
afforded in his chastisement. He tried to clasp his hands to his genitals to
hide his shameful erection. Hazel was aware of what he was trying to do and
slapped his hands before he could fully cover himself.
"Hands at your sides and
stand up straight."
She placed her delicate fingers
under his chin and lifted his head so that his eyes met hers.
"You have three strokes to
come young man. These are to show you what your pain will be like should you
ever dare to disobey me again."
She watched his face crumple as
he started to cry once more, the tears rolling down his cheeks.
"Turn around and spread your
legs as wide as they will go, come along now we have a busy evening ahead of
us."
Timothy shook and sobbed as he
turned around and placed his feet as wide apart as he could, acutely aware of
the humiliating view that Hazel would have of his young body.
He gasped with shame as she spoke
once more. "Bend over and grasp your ankles... each time you move from
that position I will add one more stroke. Now Do It!"
The sharpness of her last three
words jolted him into action. She watched delighted with the sight that greeted
her as he bent over, his buttocks spreading and his testicles and penis coming
into full view as he grasped his ankles.
"Stay there and don't you
dare move." Her voice was firm as she turned and quickly walked to the
guest room, admiring herself in the mirror as she reached onto the bed for the
luggage strap and doubled it, letting the long loop dangle as she walked back
into the sitting room.
Timothy could not believe the
humiliation he felt, bent over in the most demeaning position imaginable...
like an errant schoolboy, stark naked and ashamed... awaiting the salutary
punishment of a beautiful headmistress.
Hazel walked around the trembling
youth, admiring his perfect form at her leisure, his body bared before her in
subjugation, every part of him open and available for her to examine and touch
as she wished.
She moved behind him, resisting
the impulse to reach between his widely spread legs and grasp his testicles
firmly... perhaps the ultimate gesture of her supremacy over him. Instead she
stood back and spoke to him firmly but not unkindly.
"These next three strokes
are to demonstrate what will happen if you displease me in future. Move from
that position and you will be a very sorry boy."
Leisurely and with a delicious
tingling between her thighs, Hazel raised the strap and quickly brought it down
over the centre of his quivering and acquiescent buttocks.
"Slaaaaaaaaapppppppppppppppppp."
The staccato sound of the strap
biting into his flesh was accompanied by a howl of pain from his trembling
lips. His body shook as he fought to hold his ankles rather than to give in to
the overwhelming desire to stand and clasp his hands to his burning bottom.
"Two more to go. Hold on and
take your punishment now." The warning tone of her voice was accompanied
by the long, almost slow motion, swishing sound of the strap descending. The
leather bit into his buttocks, its imprint of searing pain, this time
delineating another red stripe of inflamed flesh lower down on the crease
between buttock and thigh.
"Slaaaaaaaaaaaaappppppppppppp." The
sound of the strap was an instant staccato prolonged as the leather bit into
the flesh of his bottom. This was immediately and satisfyingly followed by an
abject wail of pain and despair, the muscles in his throat tightening,
delineating every vein and sinew as he cried out. "Arrrrrrrrrgggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh"
The wail of pain and anguish
escaped from his lips and lifted in volume as he fought to hold onto his
ankles, his distress causing his whole body to shiver and shake as the fiery
torment of acute concentrated pain coursed through his body.
Hazel knew that he would not be
able to retain control after the next stroke, but she also knew that her
purpose had been fulfilled. He was hers... his obedience at taking his
punishment... his timid emotion, so apparent at her delicate touch or severe
look, were evidence enough. She raised the strap and brought it down between
the scarlet stripes of her first two strokes.
"Sllaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaappppppppppppppppppp."
She thrilled at the effect of the
stroke as he straightened up. It was if a red-hot poker and been pushed up into
his bottom. He behaved, as she had unconsciously thought he would, his hands
clasping his buttocks and his back arching towards her. His body became rigid
for a moment of pure anguish before he raised his head and opened his mouth.
The frozen moment in time gave way to a serious of jerks and gyrations as the
pain infused into every nerve of his body, the silence was broken by a
strangulated cry which increased in volume to a crescendo as he suddenly wailed
in utter despair.
"Arrrgggggggggggggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh.
.. arrrrggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh"
His mouth, which was now wide
open, continued to emit the most plaintive of wails as he hopped around vainly
trying to rid himself of the biting pain.
He continued to cry out as every
vestige of self-respect washed away in a wave of utter torment.
He seemed unaware that his penis
was bouncing wildly from side to side as he fought to control the searing
stripe of biting torture that now seemed to have spread from his buttocks to
his whole body. Hazel watched, her delight well hidden as gradually he brought
himself under control. She moved across to him and took hold of his wrists and
pulled his hands from his bottom. She could feel his body trembling as she held
his arms out behind him and propelled him to face the corner of the room.
"You are to stand here and
you are not to move or touch your bottom. Now put your hands on your
head."
She lifted his arms and placed his
hands on his head. She stroked her hands down his back and over his buttocks,
feeling the boy flinch as her fingers traced the welts left by the belt.
"Stand with your legs
apart... come along, I want your utmost obedience."
She slipped a hand between the
cheeks of his bottom and moved it downwards, tapping the inside of his thighs
until he had parted his legs sufficiently for her purpose. Hazel stood back and
admired the sight before her. The perfect naked form of a young boy, quivering
and blushing in shame and humiliation, his buttocks clenched in pain... pain
that she had inflicted at her whim and pleasure. "You must stand like that
until I tell you otherwise, you may use the time to reflect on your punishment
and a suitable apology which you may give me when I return."
Timothy stood shaking, his bottom
was on fire and yet he could feel his penis throbbing mightily as Hazel once
more stroked her fingers gently over his bottom before turning away and leaving
the room.
He felt utterly shamed as he
stood shivering, legs apart and his hands pressed tightly to his head thinking
about the events of the day. He blushed as he relived each humiliating and
embarrassing moment. He could not help the tears that rolled down his cheeks,
or the trembling of his lips as he thought about every detail of his ordeal,
unable to shut out the plethora of images that were being replayed over and
over in his mind.
It was half an hour later when
Hazel approached the boy. She noted that the redness of his buttocks had
receded to a mere blush, although the three marks that she had made with the
strap were still quite clearly visible across the cheeks of his bottom. She
stood behind him and without speaking took his wrist, making him lower his
hands from his head. Still holding his wrist she led him away from the corner
and upstairs to the bathroom. She noted that his face was already blushing as
she stood him by the bath, which she had just filled with water.
"Get into the bath and
remain standing. I want you facing me with your hands on your head and your
legs apart. I have not put the strap away and I will use it on your bare little
bottom if I think you are not paying attention to my instructions. Now do as I
tell you."
Hazel watched as the boy timidly
took hold of the side of the bath and stepped into it. Blushing profusely he
turned to face her, his face bore an expression of utter dismay as Hazel dipped
her hands in the water and began to rub the soap in her hands.
"Now lets have no
fussing." She said as she began to soap his legs, her gentle fingers and
soft palms caressing his skin as she worked her way up to his thighs. She
ignored his genitals and instead soaped his chest before moving her hands down
to his tummy.
She felt him quiver and flinch as
her hands moved lower, soaping the delicate and sensitive flesh just above his
penis. For Timothy the sensation was acute as her fingers moved almost
sensuously over the smoothly shaven flesh above his penis. He trembled, a
shudder running through his whole body as suddenly her fingers encircled his
penis and pulled his foreskin back revealing the sensitive flesh beneath. He
could not help jerking his hips backwards as she soaped behind the foreskin. He
could feel his penis becoming even stiffer as she applied more soapsuds to his
sensitive member. "Keep still, I am going to make sure you are thoroughly
clean before I take you over to Mrs. Grant's."
He could not help looking at her
face as she pushed his foreskin back as far it would stretch and held it there
while she applied even more soapsuds to the head of his penis. He jerked
involuntarily as she deftly handled him as if he were some prized animal.
Seemingly she seemed to ignore the embarrassment and intimacy of the situation.
His penis was throbbing with sensation, the flesh totally hard and engorged as
she moved it this way and that, apparently oblivious of his acute humiliation
and throbbing erection. She moved one hand from his penis and reached between
his legs, her hand sliding upwards between his buttocks. He could not help
jerking his body and gasping as a slender finger was suddenly pressed against
the tightened muscle of his sphincter.
Without preamble she teased the
orifice, probing gently but insistently until her fingertip was able to slip
upwards into him.
"Argghhh." He gasped as
she nonchalantly slipped her finger further upward into his anus, the soap
acting as a lubricant, denying the tightening muscle of his sphincter any
resistance.
"Now keep still, I shall not
hesitate to take you over my knee if you are going to be naughty again."
He looked into her face, his own
cheeks burning with pure embarrassment as she coolly appraised him. To be
standing in front of her, legs outstretched, with her hands firmly holding his
penis and penetrating his bottom was almost too much embarrassment for Timothy
to bear. He felt his cheeks blush again, burning with shame, as she looked him
in the eye.
"Now young man, you will
have to get used to doing as you are told while I am looking after you. I am
going to insist that you are properly bathed before you have your therapy; I
have never known a boy make so much fuss at taking a bath. Now just stand still
while I soap inside your little bottom and then I will dry you off."
Timothy endured the rest of the
humiliating bath in silence. Her beauty completely overawed him as she made him
look into her face while instructing him. She handled him like one would a
small child, ignoring his obvious erection, as if it were merely to be
expected. Her fingers were everywhere as she dried him, prising open the cheeks
of his buttocks and then making him bend forward so that she could visually
examine him, before having him stand up straight before her with his hands
stretched high above his head as she dried under his arms.
The final ignominy was almost too
much for Timothy to bear as she took him through to the bedroom and instructed
him to lie on the bed.
"Now I want you to lay on
your back with your legs open like this." She moved his legs until his
knees were wide apart.
"That's the way, stretch
them wider so you can put the soles of your feet together."
Her gentle touch helped him
position himself to her satisfaction. Timothy tried to turn his head away in
shame as he lay looking down at himself with his knees widely spread and the
soles of his feet pressed together. His shame knew no bounds as he looked at
his erect penis standing upwards from between his widely parted thighs. He
could not help looking at the beautiful girl as she bent over him as if he were
a baby.
He watched her every move as she
took a plastic container of talcum powder and sprinkled it over his genitals.
He shivered as she casually rubbed it around his penis and over his testicles.
Finally, to his horror, she lifted his legs, bending his body backwards, and
sprinkled more powder over his bottom, before rubbing it in, her hand moving
almost sensuously over the cheeks of his buttocks.
Timothy was wide eyed with
surprise and embarrassment as she continued to treat him as if her were a baby.
"Now you stay there, while I
find something loose to dress you in before I take you over to Mrs. Grant. She
leaned forward, her beautiful face touching his as she kissed him gently on the
cheek. Timothy could not believe the rapture he felt as her soft lips touched
his face, he was totally under her spell as she straightened up and stood back
examining his naked body.
It was around ten minutes later
that Hazel re-entered the bedroom. She was delighted to see that not only had
Timothy stayed in the position she had left him in with his legs spread well
apart and his hands down by his sides. Timothy, rather than trying to cover
himself, turned his head away in embarrassment and blushed a deep beetroot red.
She laid the tee-shirt and gym shorts, she had found in his chest of drawers,
neatly down on the chair beside the bed.
She spoke softly and lovingly to
him as she laid a hand softly on his forehead and gently turned his head back
towards her. He blushed again as his eyes met hers; she could clearly see a
look of love and supplication as she laid her other hand on his tummy. She
could feel his naked body tremble as she stroked her hand delicately over his
tummy, her slender fingers brushing over his smoothly shaven pubis.
She lowered her head and whispered
to him.
"Your punishment period is
over now so stand up a moment and let me sit down,"
She helped him to sit upright and
then to stand by the bed. Sitting down with her pretty knees pressed together,
she took the boy by the waist. Her delicate fingers played havoc with his
emotions as she guided him so that he was sitting on her knees. His bared
bottom was soft against her firm thighs, as she positioned him sideways across
her shapely legs, his knees spread well apart.
She pulled his head to her firm
pliant breasts before deliberately and slowly stroking her hand down over his
chest tracing her fingers lower and lower over his tummy, before delicately
taking the soft flesh of his penis between her finger and thumb. She heard him
gasp as she tightened the hand that was around his waist and at the same time
moved her fingers around his penis so that his foreskin was pulled back,
revealing the intimate flesh beneath. She moved her head and kissed him
tenderly on the cheek before whispering softly to him.
"Poor... poor Timothy! Did I
hurt you very much when I had to smack your bare bottom? You were a naughty
boy... and naughty boys have to have their little bottoms chastised when they
have been silly and disobedient."
Her soft voice and gentle touch
were too much for Timothy. He felt tears well up in his eyes... and to his
horror, his penis began to throb, pulsing strongly between her finger and
thumb. Hazel continued to stroke the turgid flesh of his penis, her slender
finger and thumb delicately and sensuously arousing the captive flesh. So
subtle and effective was her touch that she felt the boy shudder as his penis
began to throb uncontrollably.
Timothy could not help himself
from looking down at the slender fingers holding his most intimate part. Her
red painted nails contrasted starkly against the virgin white flesh of his
penis. He could feel the firm mounds of her breasts beneath the silkiness of
her blouse as his cheek pressed against her. He sighed, his mouth open in
rapture as she aroused him.
Hazel knew that the boy would
ejaculate soon if she did not stop. She let go of his penis and turned his head
towards her own. With an almost reverent tenderness she closed her lips over
his. Moving her tongue slowly and sensuously between his parted lips, she
kissed him deeply. She could feel his young body tremble with emotion as she
moved her head away and looked at him. At last... the look she had waited and
worked for... there so obvious and innocently displayed... the look of
surrender and supplication.
*
Mrs Grant smiled at her daughter
and her friend Gail as they diligently busied themselves putting the final
touches to the room. The spare room, it's white walls newly painted, had stood
empty and unneeded for several years, until she had on a sudden whim, had it
painted just a few weeks ago. Vicki looked at the examination couch, admiring
the fit of the new white covers that the girls had sewn. The chromium plated
metal of the old stirrups that had been retrieved from the cellar storage, now
gleamed from diligent polishing and sported new covers to the padded rests for
thighs, feet and ankles. The freshly painted shelves around the walls had been
filled with test-tubes from the clinic as well as a dozen clear plastic fleet
enema bags.
A pile of new towels had been
placed next to bottles of lotions and lubricants. All of the instruments she
had put away and been cleaned and washed and now lay in neat rows. Vicki
laughed at Gail as she held the rectal speculum in front of her and chased
Susan around the room, snapping the jaws of the shiny instrument as if it were
going to bite her friend.
"O.K. girls, I think that
will do. I never thought we could have transformed this room in so short a
time. Perhaps your efforts were not entirely altruistic, it is not every
sixteen year old girl, that has had the opportunity to examine a naked boy so
intimately... would the thought of helping the nurse and myself have anything
to do with your enthusiasm?"
Susan looked at her mother, her
face serious for a moment. "He is such a good looking boy, his body is...
well, er... perfect really. I just love touching him and seeing him blush so
modestly. But it is well... erm... an opportunity to learn about boys
and..." She thought for a moment.
"Being in charge seems sort
of natural to me... and I know Gail feels the same way. I just, I don't know
why... like being in charge of a boy."
She finished her sentence lamely,
but was immediately put at her ease by her mother.
"Most girls would be the
subjugated ones... er in a relationship. I am glad you feel like you do... I
think Timothy is, how shall I put it, naturally submissive... certainly not a
wimp." She smiled at the use of the word.
"I think he could be moulded
to be... er. well... in the future... a wonderful and attentive husband to the
right sort of female. One that is stronger willed and yet loving towards
him."
Vicki smiled. "I probably
haven't explained that very well." Vicki's look of surprise was written
all over her face as Gail spoke.
"I have to ask you this even
though you may think badly of me. I felt really excited when Timmy was being
spanked by Hazel... in fact I wished that he was me that was spanking him... Is
that really wrong?"
Vicki looked at Gail and smiled.
"No Gail you are perhaps one
of those people that enjoy the experience of spanking someone. It is not to do
them particular harm but has more sexual connotations. I assure you that it is
widely practised amongst men and women."
Vicki smiled at Gail as she
continued. "You are perhaps more strong willed than most and are naturally
more dominant, but I know that you are kind and gentle too. So you have nothing
to worry about."
Gail looked at Susan's mother and
laughed. "I will probably marry Timothy when he is old enough! I will make
sure that he is always sexually active and will punish him when he is
naughty... even when he is older... oh and I will let my girlfriends do the
same." She smiled at Susan. "He needs someone to look after him...
and I think I will be the one. Not that I am going to let him know just
yet!"
Susan opened her mouth in wide
surprise and then laughed uncontrollably. "Gail... you dark horse. I
believe you... I really believe that you will."
She continued laughing, her
pretty face in wreathes of smiles as she thought about what her friend had
said. Vicki was more reflective, she already knew that Gail never said anything
lightly, she also knew that such a determined girl would, if she did not change
her mind, carry it through.
Susan looked at Gail and said
seriously.
"I always thought that I
would marry Timothy, so if you are intent on doing it... you will have to share
him."
Gail and Vicki laughed, but they
both knew that she meant what she said. Vicki suddenly looked reflective and
spoke softly and seriously. "In that case I think Timothy is a very lucky
boy."
2
Hazel gently pushed Timothy away
from her and kissed him once more on the cheek.
"Now stand up and I will
dress you. I know you are going to behave yourself and do what I say without
hesitation, aren't you Timothy? So up you get and stand with your arms above
your head so I can slip this shirt over your head."
Timothy felt his face blush a
deep beetroot red as he caught her eye. Her beautiful face only added to his
embarrassment as she stood up and took the tee-shirt and slipped it over his
raised arms and down over his head. The shirt slid down over his chest and
tummy but was held up at the front by his penis, which was standing out
stiffly. Hazel smiled as she took a firm hold of the turgid flesh and slipped
the shirt over it. The soft material covered his slim body right down to mid
thigh and apart from the telltale bulge of his erection it would not be
possible for the casual observer to tell whether he was wearing shorts or not.
Hazel stood back and looked at
him.
"I think we will leave your
shorts off Timothy, you are well covered and when your penis subsides you will
be quite adequately dressed to walk across to Vickie's house.... I mean Mrs
Grants."
Timothy blushed and stammered as
he looked up at Hazel. "er please Miss Hazel... er..erm can't I wear my
shorts?"
Hazel looked at him, her face
becoming stern.
"Now Timothy, remember what
you have just been through..."
She leaned forward and raised the
hem of his shirt, sliding it up over the cheeks of his bottom. Timothy could
not help but squirm with embarrassment and humiliation as she bared his flesh.
Quickly she slapped him three times... smack... smack... smack. The palm of her
hand leaving his flesh freshly reddened over the three stripes already marking
his flesh. He gasped and squirmed as she held him firmly by the waist. His
shirt had ridden up revealing his penis, which was still erect. Hazel took a
firm hold of the engorged flesh and squeezed it, holding him firmly as she
turned him towards her.
"You forget your lessons
quickly, you naughty boy. I shall not tolerate any more disobedience, do you
hear me?"
He looked up at her beautiful
face, his lips trembling and his face blushing profusely as he stammered his
apology.
"I am so sorry miss.
Please... I will not disobey you again... er..I... promise." He felt
absolutely humiliated, so much so that his body shivered as he stood before
her. Her firm hold on his penis and her stern look accentuating his extreme
embarrassment and feeling of foolishness as he stood before her.
Hazel could not help the sudden
thrill of excitement that ran through her body as she looked at the perfectly
formed body of the young boy held captive in front of her. His complete
subjugation to her will had thrilled her more than she ever thought possible.
She looked at him intently, noting that even though his face was blushing
profusely, his penis was still hard and throbbing between her fingers. She let
go of him and pulled his shirt down over his throbbing member.
"Now come along downstairs
and we will walk over to Mrs Grants."
Without looking at him further
she turned and left the room.
Timothy endured the humiliating
walk over to his neighbour's house. He was trembling not just from the
freshness of the cooler evening air, but also from his embarrassment at being
naked apart from the thin tee shirt. Although the shirt covered him to the
middle of his thighs, the thin material only seemed to accent his nakedness.
Hazel held his hand and almost propelled him along the narrow path, his tennis
shoes, which were the only other items of clothing that he had been allowed,
slapped against the paving slabs as they hurried to Mrs Grant's cottage.
Hazel was well aware the embarrassment
the boy must be feeling, rather than put him at his ease, she flipped up the
back of his tee shirt as they stood facing the front door of the cottage. She
lightly tapped his bared bottom with the palm of her hand. "Right you know
what will happen should you disobey me, don't you Timothy my boy? He could not
help himself from looking round to see if anyone was watching, acutely aware of
the cool evening air upon his buttocks. In consequence he received a sharp slap
upon his naked bottom.
"Stand still and look at me
young man, I will have no more of this."
He blushed profusely as he looked
up at her, his lips trembling from the shame he felt. Hazel looked him straight
in the eye, her beautiful features stern and foreboding as she spoke.
"If you dare to defy me, I
will strip you bare and put you across my knee in front of everyone and let
them watch me smack you until you are crying like a baby. Do you understand me?
Timothy looked at her, his face
turning an even brighter red. Through trembling lips he spoke, his voice soft
and tremulous. "Yes Miss Hazel, I w'won't disobey you any more. Hazel held
his gaze for a moment, enjoying the boy's acute embarrassment. At last she
reached behind him and pulled his shirt down to cover his naked bottom.
"Right young man... I will
take your word, but you know your fate should you relapse into childish
behaviour."
She stood straight and knocked on
the door, smiling as she saw Vickie approach on the other side of the glass
pane.
"Come along in, I have some
coffee on the stove and the girls have made me open a bottle of wine to welcome
you, so perhaps you would prefer that." Mrs Grant smiled at Hazel as she
ushered her in and then turned her attention to Timothy, who was looking down
at his feet in utter humiliation.
"Come along in young man,
the girls are in the sitting room, why don't you go and join them, while I
introduce Hazel to the nurse. Just put your shoes here by the door."
Timothy blushed as Mrs Grant
mentioned the girls, rather than just Susan. He knew that it must be Gail that
was with her... and the thought of being almost naked in front of both of them
sent shivers down his spine.
Rather than wait for Timothy to
reply, Mrs Grant ushered the boy to the sitting room door and bade him enter. She
then turned to Hazel leading her down the small corridor to the kitchen.
"Penny is the daughter of
one of my friends at the clinic. She is only seventeen, so she has only been
nursing for a year... mind you she showed no hesitation when I told her what
was to be done."
Both Vickie and Hazel laughed as
they entered the kitchen. Penny was standing by the stove as they entered.
Hazel immediately noticed how pretty and petite the girl was. Her uniform was a
crisp white tunic, which did little to conceal the jut of her firm breasts or
the narrowness of her waist. Her legs were bare below the short tunic. As she
moved towards them, Hazel could see that her legs were slender and perfectly
shaped; the smooth flesh betraying an athletic and healthy glow aided by a
light suntan.
"This is Penny."
Vickie put her hand around
Hazel's waist and moved her forward as she spoke. "Hello Hazel"
Penny smiled, displaying perfect
teeth behind her pretty lips as she moved forward and took Hazel's hand in a
firm grip. Hazel smiled back at the pretty young girl and spoke softly.
"Hello Penny I am pleased to
meet you."
The girls smiled at each other as
Vickie handed them a glass of wine each.
"I think we will leave
Timothy for a while so that I can show you how busy the girls and I have been
this afternoon, so if you would both like to follow me."
Vickie was laughing as she led
the girls along the corridor into the new examination room. Both Hazel and
Penny were pleasantly surprised at how professional and imposing the room was.
Hazel began to explore the mechanics of the stirrups while Penny looked around
the glass shelves noting the abundance of instruments as well as the jars and
bottles.
Hazel looked at Vickie, the
obvious surprise at the professionalism of the room showing on her face.
"I had no idea that you were
so well equipped, in fact I thought you had retired from nursing
practice."
Vickie laughed.
"No I still run the district
nursing group, but we fetched this up from the cellar this afternoon... and
although the shelves and the lighting were fixed back into place after I had
had it decorated, the girls and I have managed to get all the rest ready after
we got back from the clinic. I didn't really expect to have it finished so
quickly, or that it would look as professional as it does."
Vickie laid her hand on one of
the stirrups.
"I cleaned the leather up
and polished the chrome, while Susan and Gail made the new covers from linen
sheets. I think that it has come up really well, even though I say it
myself."
The girls laughed as Vickie held
up her glass.
"Here's to our new
examination room." They toasted their glasses before Vickie led them back
into the kitchen.
Hazel had observed the young
nurse as they had looked at the new examination room. On the surface she
appeared to be a conscientious and capable girl, but Hazel had a feeling that
there was more to her. She decided to try and elicit a little more information.
"Are you on a rota for home
visits; forgive me for asking but I wondered how these things work."
Penny looked at Hazel,
immediately realising the line of questioning.
"No we don't have a rota as
such, but Dr. Ashcroft asked me if I would assist her with Timothy... she
thought I would be erm... more suitable."
Hazel smiled. "Did she
indeed. Do you have an experience of handling young boys?" Penny smiled,
her expression near to laughter as she looked at Hazel.
"No I have had only a little
experience but I think she felt that perhaps I had the right attitude."
Hazel smiled back at the girl. She knew that from what she had seen of the
pretty Dr. Lucy Ashcroft, that she would certainly have been selective in her
choice of nurse, for such a delicate therapy. Penny looked at Hazel and decided
to be a little more forthcoming.
"I would like to know what
has happened to him so far... and as you have charge of him, perhaps you would
give me a rundown."
The girls talked together, Hazel
gave Penny a complete history of the day's events and also her opinions about
attitude towards Timothy. Penny listened avidly, she was intrigued by the boy's
punishment and what both Hazel and Vickie thought was the best way to handle
him for the future.
Hazel explained every detail of
her own handling of her young charge, explaining the rather embarrassing
positions she had made the boy adopt, as well as her verbal and psychological
management of him. It was Vickie who told her of Gail's long term plans for the
boy. Penny smiled at Vickie as she spoke. "I think Gail must be a very
determined young woman already even if she is rather young. Do you think she
will change her mind on the subject?"
Penny was surprised at the
confidence of Vickie's reply. "I would bet that Gail will do exactly what
she has said. I have never known a girl more in touch with her own feelings, or
as determined. Of course she has the added advantage of being the only daughter
of a very rich family. Their wealth must run into millions and yet she has her
feet planted firmly on the ground."
*
Timothy could not help blushing
as he entered the sitting room. He felt horribly aware of his nakedness beneath
the thin tee shirt. The girls were sitting on a large comfy looking settee
while they watched the television set; both girls were wearing the crisp white
shirts and short navy pleated skirts of their school uniforms. Their skirts had
ridden up as they sat on the sofa revealing their long legs, which were bared
almost to the brief white panties they were wearing.
As Timothy entered the room,
Susan got up and walked towards him and took him gently by the arm.
"Poor Timothy, you do seem
to be in a state... don't be nervous, I am sure Mummy and the nurse will be
gentle with you. My my... your face is bright red... and you are shivering all
over. Come with me and stand by the fire until you get warm."
Timothy blushed even more as
Susan led him by his arm and made him stand next to the open log fire. He could
not help gasping as Susan ran her hand over his shoulders and down his back. He
gasped as her hand proceeded even lower, her gentle fingers teasing over the
soft material that covered his bottom.
"Why Timothy!" She
exclaimed. "Haven't you got any underclothes or shorts on... no wonder you
are cold." Susan noted the boy's exquisite look of anguish as she lifted
the hem of his tee shirt and looked at his bared his bottom.
He gasped; "Please er
miss... er please don't. Hazel wouldn't let me wear anything under my shirt.
Please er.. miss er... Susan." Ignoring his pleas Susan lifted the hem
even further up his back as her eye caught sight of the three red stripes,
which delineated the cheeks of his bottom.
"What on earth are
these?" She exclaimed as she bent over to examine him closer. "Come
and look Gail, I think Hazel must have given him more than just a smack bottom.
Timothy gasped as Susan turned his body towards the light of the standard lamp,
which stood next to the fireplace. She bent him forward pulling his shirt
further up his back so that she could examine him more closely. He was acutely
aware that his penis and testicles were now on show as he saw Gail get up from
the settee and move towards him.
His face was on fire as the two
girls bent him over even further so that he his head was bent towards his
knees. He shivered as he felt Gail gently stroke her hand over the quivering
flesh of his bottom.
"Keep still and let me have
a look and see what Hazel has been doing to you. Oh dear.. it looks as though
he has been given at least three strokes of the strap. Is that what she smacked
you with Timothy... the strap?"
Timothy was blushing so much that
his cheeks were burning. His body was shivering uncontrollably as he felt their
hands exploring the cheeks of his bottom. He gasped as Susan's soft fingertips
deftly parted the cheeks, exposing him intimately to their interested gaze.
"Please er.. miss... no more
pleeease!"
He managed to stammer as he felt
the utter humiliation of being bent over and his bare bottom being stretched
and examined so intimately.
"I asked you a
question!" said Gail as she smacked her hand smartly across the cheeks of
his bottom. "Did Hazel beat you with a strap?" Timothy gasped at the
sharp slap and shuddered with anguish, his voice almost a croak as he tried to
answer. "Y'yes miss... er... it was the strap.
To Timothy's surprise Gail's
voice became soft and concerned as she bade him stand upright and turned him
towards her. She laid his head gently on her shoulder and put her arms around
him.
"Oh you poor baby, fancy
having to have your poor bottom beaten with a strap. Never mind my sweet boy,
Susan and I will make it better for you... won't we Susan."
Gail looked at Susan who was
standing behind the boy. She lifted the back of his tee shirt up once more,
pulling the hem upwards until it was almost up to the back of his neck.
She knew that his penis would be
exposed and vulnerable to the intimate contact of Gail's body as she held
Timothy close. Gently she stroked her fingers over the soft flesh of his
bottom, her fingers trailing gently and intimately between the cheeks. Gail heard
his quickly drawn in breath at the further intimate exploration of his bottom.
She slid her own hand down his back until she was able to caress his naked
buttocks.
"There poor baby, let's get
you over to the sofa and Susan will fetch some cream so that I can rub some in
for you. Now don't be shy just come and lie across my knees.
For Timothy it was all too much,
he could not resist the tear that rolled down his cheek or the burgeoning throb
of his penis as Gail nonchalantly took a firm hold of both his penis and his
scrotum and casually placed the soft flesh between her thighs. Both she and
Susan helped lay the boy face down over Gail's knees.
"Right I'll leave him in
your capable hands, while I go and ask mother for some cream for his
bottom." She smiled at Gail and winked before turning on her heels and
leaving the room.
Vickie and Hazel were not the
least surprised when Susan told them what she and Hazel were doing to the boy,
instead they burst into good-natured laughter. Vickie could not contain her
merriment as she reached into the cupboard for some body lotion. Hazel was
still laughing as she addressed Susan.
"You were not long finding
the marks on his bottom. I am afraid that I just had to punish him for his
disobedience at the medical centre. Was his bottom still red, or was it just
the marks of the strap?"
Susan looked at Hazel, her
admiration growing for the confident young woman.
"No Hazel it was just the
three marks of the straps. Did he cry when you punished him... er. was his bottom
bare when you gave him the strap?"
Hazel laughed at the girl's very
obvious interest in how she had punished the boy. She did not disappoint Susan
with her answer, as she already guessed from her actions at the medical centre
that her interest in the boy was far from platonic.
"I spanked his bare bottom
over my knee, using his tennis shoe as his implement of punishment. After I had
given him a sound spanking, I had him bend over and grasp his ankles with his
legs spread widely apart, so that he could not clench his buttocks. I gave him
three strokes with the strap. I am afraid he couldn't contain himself after the
third stroke and danced about all over the sitting room, trying to relieve
himself of the pain. I think that the strap hurt him far more than he ever
thought possible. I am sure that, should he ever forget himself, a timely
reminder of the sting of the strap will soon bring him back into line."
Susan's look of admiration was
not lost on Hazel as she finished relating the details of Timothy's punishment.
She placed her hand on Susan's cheek and bent her head so that she could
whisper in her ear.
"You may find that some day
soon, either you or Gail may have cause to punish him. Just remember that if
you have a good cause to smack his bare bottom, that it must be tempered with
love and kindness. In that way you will not only gain his respect, but also his
love and supplication. Do you understand what I am saying?"
Susan looked intently at Hazel
her face serious, but with a wistful, almost spiritual expression. She spoke
softly, her words slow and measured.
"Yes Hazel, thank you... yes
I know exactly what you mean and I know that Gail does too!"
Vickie looked at her daughter and
then back at Hazel, her expression was thoughtful as she spoke to them.
"Gail has said that she is
going to marry Timothy when he is older and that she will smack his bottom when
he is naughty. I know she may only be in her teens, but I believe she will. I
have never known Gail say anything that she did not mean, or ever break a
promise."
Susan looked at Hazel and smiled
at her.
"Oh she will marry him, I
know it... but she won't be the only one smacking his bottom, if he is
naughty... I will be doing it as well."
Hazel chuckled, knowing full well
that was what Susan had said, would probably happen, just as she had said.
"Well I think you had better
go and see what, your very grown up friend, Gail is doing to my young
charge."
Hazel laughed as Susan took the
cream and disappeared down the corridor to the sitting room.
Timothy could not believe what
was happening to him. Just twenty-four hours ago, he had been living quietly
with his mother. He had been the man of the household and had, for his
diligence in looking after things, received a certain amount of autonomy and
freedom.
Now he was laid face down and
virtually naked over the head girl's knees, his shirt pulled up to his
shoulders revealing his bare bottom and his penis and testicles, which were
trapped between the soft flesh of the girl's thighs. He shivered once more as
she gently stroked her hand over his bared buttocks.
Gail looked up as Susan
reappeared and handed her the cream with a look of glee on her face. She
kneeled in front of Gail and the naked boy, before settling back on her haunches.
"Sorry I took so long, Hazel
was just explaining why she had to smack naughty Timothy here."
Susan placed her cool hand
deliberately over the soft flesh of the boy's naked bottom to accent her words.
Timothy blushed an even deeper shade of crimson, as Susan's other hand stroked
over his shoulders and then through his hair. She turned his head so that she
could look at his blushing face.
"Now young man; Gail and I
are going to put some cream on your naughty bottom, so be a good boy and try
not to move and make us spill it."
Timothy could only look at her in
anguish and embarrassment as he felt cool liquid being poured onto the small of
his back and seconds later Gail's delicate fingers, as they chased the running
liquid down into the deep crease of his buttocks.
"Now relax your bottom so
that I can part the cheeks, I need proper access if I am to do the job
properly."
Timothy could only manage to
grunt rather than give a coherent reply, but just managed through his haze of
embarrassment to relax the cheeks of his bottom. He felt a shiver run through
him as Gail pressed her fingers firmly into the pliant flesh of his bottom. He
found it hard not to tense the muscles of his buttocks as her hands explored
his upturned cheeks, the fingertips of one hand pressing firmly against his
sphincter, while she almost lovingly caressed the plump hillocks of his bottom.
She continued, slowly and deliberately stroking over the bared flesh of the
young boy.
She smiled at Susan; her
expression was one of both triumph and satisfaction which made her friend grin
with utter delight.
Gail eased her fingers between
his buttocks and teased his sphincter once more before boldly sliding her hand
down between his cheeks and cupping his testicles in the palm of her hand.
Susan watched as the boy gasped and raised his head as if he was about to
protest at this new intrusion to his modesty. Before he could speak however,
Gail patted his bottom and at the same time squeezed her thighs together
trapping his penis even more firmly.
"Now Timothy don't jiffle
about, just lie nice and still until I am finished."
Gail was delighted to feel his
penis suddenly throb between her legs. She knew that it would not be long
before the turgid member was fully erect. She glanced over at Susan and raised
her hand with her fingers positioned in the shape of an `O'. Susan managed to
stifle a giggle as Gail continued stroking the boy's naked bottom.
"Does that feel better
Timothy? Answer me now!" Gail spoke gently and yet Timothy could here the
firmness in her voice. "Er... yes miss... er Gail. Thank you."
Timothy was beside himself with
embarrassment, acutely aware of his erect penis and the pressure of her thighs
against his most intimate and private part.
Gail made sure that his penis was
fully erect before she delivered her coup de grace.
"Right Timothy, lets have
you up. Will you give me a hand Susan?"
Susan was delighted as she bent
forward and lightly slapped his bottom before putting her hands at either side
of his waist.
"Right up onto your
knees.... That's the way. Timothy shakily got to his knees, his embarrassment
was almost palpable as the girls delightedly helped him up. He quickly clasped
his hands to his penis, covering himself as best he could. His penis was so stiff
that he had difficulty in pressing it against his body as the girls manoeuvred
him to a standing position. He fumbled with the front of his shirt, tugging at
the material with one hand, while trying vainly to conceal his erection with
the other.
He could not bring himself to
look at either of the two girls. He knew that were looking down at his groin as
he finally managed to get the material of his shirt safely over his penis. He
immediately clasped both hands over his shirt, at the same time pulling his
penis tightly against his stomach. His modesty did not last long as he felt
Gail lift the back of his shirt and once more bare his body to the prying eyes
of the two girls.
"Come around her and look
Susan, his bottom is a lot less red than it was and his skin is really nice and
smooth after all the cream I put on!" Timothy shivered as both girls
leisurely examined his naked buttocks, their hands stroking over his flesh as
if he were a prize animal. Their inspection continued in silence as Timothy
stood timidly with his hands clasped to his groin. He shivered involuntarily as
Susan knelt down, her soft delicate hand holding his thigh to steady herself as
she peered at his naked bottom.
"My... that does look better
Gail, it must have been very painful being beaten like that."
She looked around from behind
Timothy and addressed him directly.
"Look at me Timothy, did she
hurt you when she beat you with the strap? Did she make you take your trousers
down and then spank your bare bottom? It must have been a traumatic and
humbling experience for you... did she make you shed real tears?"
Timothy blushed, the colour
suffused not only his trembling cheeks but also spread across his chest too! He
was beside himself with embarrassment as he struggled to turn his head and
answer her.
"Er.. yes miss." He
stammered. "She beat me with the strap er... miss... er um like I am now
miss.. with er.. no covering."
His embarrassment deepened as he
felt Susan lazily trace her delicate fingers over the welts on his bottom.
"You mean that she spanked
your bare bottom... and did you cry?"
"Yes miss... it really hurt
and er I... I cried."
Susan could see that Timothy was
not far off from crying once more. She could see his bottom lip trembling quite
visibly and that his eyes were already glistening with tears. Susan waited for
Timothy to turn his head back to the front before she looked at Gail and made a
face as if she was about to cry, while pointing at the boy. Gail immediately
took the hint and reluctantly stopped stroking his bottom. Susan also took her
hands away and straightened up, letting the boy's shirt fall back down over the
cheeks of his bottom.
"Come and sit down Timothy,
and we'll watch the television until the nurse needs you."
*
Penny smoothed her hands down the
crisp white nurse's uniform she was wearing. She had deliberately left the last
two buttons of her tunic undone allowing her tanned thighs to slip easily
through the fine cotton. She tightened her waistband, further accenting the jut
of her young breasts and the narrowness of her waist as she approached the
bathroom. Her shiny black hair, cut severely to her jaw line, moved smoothly as
if in two wings, accenting her pretty features and contrasting with the deep
red of her lipstick.
She had thought long and hard
about the situation she found herself in as she busied herself in the large
old-fashioned bathroom of the cottage. She had laid out the two large fleet
enema bags and several jars and tubes of creams and lubricants on one of the two
old tables, which were situated against the white tiled wall near the doorway.
She had moved the second table, a larger sturdy oak Longman, by dragging it
across the tiled floor to the centre of the room.
On top of this she had laid
several fluffy bath towels, which now covered the top, making a soft padded
surface.
She knew she had handled herself
well, while talking to both Vickie Grant and Hazel. Her only surprise had been
at her own attitude. She had felt rather excited rather than shocked, and now,
as she examined her thoughts, she realised that perhaps her own feelings and
predilections were very much closer to that of Hazel and Vickie. Although she
was young, Penny had already experienced the power that her uniform and
position had brought her.
Of course she had gone through
the menial tasks that all nurses go through. The drudgery of emptying bedpans,
making beds, running errands at the beck and call of senior sisters and
matrons, had been carried out willingly and with a smile and her attitude had
certainly brought its own rewards. Her very first position had been at the
local schools, assisting the retiring doctor at the annual medicals.
Rather than blush in confusion,
as some young girls might have, she had adopted a firm and brusque attitude as
she had looked upon the line of naked young boys lined up ready to be examined.
She had enjoyed their embarrassment as they had been made to stand in front of
her desk while she filled in their medical forms. She had been intrigued by the
variety of male bodies and the embarrassed way that they had held their hands
in front of their genitals.
As the her duties progressed, she
had enjoyed making them blush even more, by looking directly at their genitals
as she filled in the forms.
Now, as she surveyed the
bathroom, she knew that she was to experience something that she had always
wanted; she would, with full authority from her superiors, intimately handle a
young boy and eventually force him to ejaculate! His body would be hers, to
explore and manipulate, as she wanted; no protest or defiance would spare him
from her ministrations.
Leaving the bathroom and heading
towards the sitting room, she wondered whether he would be as good looking as
Vickie and Hazel had described him to her. As she entered the room and walked
towards him, her heart thrilled at the sight of his young body as he stood
humbly by the fireplace. He is perfect in every detail, Penny thought as she
moved towards him.
She could see that he was
trembling with embarrassment as she moved to take his hand in hers. His face
was bright red, the blush suffusing both his cheeks and neck as he looked
towards her. Penny was surprised at the firmness of her own voice as she spoke
to the young boy.
"Well Peter, lets have you
into the bathroom so that I can take care of you."
Penny was rewarded by a deepening
of the bright red flush to his cheeks and the humiliation she saw in his eyes
before he quickly dropped his head and meekly allowed her to escort him to the
bathroom. Penny felt the trembling in his body as she held his wrist. Gail
spoke to him as he left the room.
"Now you be a good boy Peter
and do as the nurse says." Penny could not have wished for a more docile
subject as she led him into the bathroom and firmly shut the door behind them.
She turned towards him and put both of the palms of her hands gently against
either side of his cheeks. She could feel that his cheeks were burning with
embarrassment as she raised his head so that he could not avoid looking at her.
"Now young man... I am going
to give you an enema so that you are nice and clean inside. Let's have this
shirt off... so just raise your arms above your head there's a good boy."
He was trembling with
embarrassment as he looked into her face. His embarrassment was multiplied
tenfold by her prettiness and the fact that she was only a couple of years
older than himself. His natural modesty added further to his humiliation, as he
stood before her, knowing that he was about to be stripped naked.
Timothy looked horrified as Penny
briskly took hold of his wrists and raised his arms.
"Now just stand still."
She took the hem of his tee shirt and without preamble deftly lifted it up over
his hips and upwards, baring his chest as she pulled it over his head.
"Oh... you've got no shorts or underwear Timothy. Does Hazel keep you bare
when you are at home?"
The boy's blushing face was
exquisite as Penny examined him. He really is a delight, she thought as she
spoke again.
"Right slip your arms out
and put it on the chair behind you, then come and bend over this table."
Timothy was relieved as he noticed that Penny had not prolonged her glance at
his bared penis and testicles, but had turned away from him and busied herself
with the equipment that she had placed on the second table.
Timothy quickly put his tee shirt
over the back of the chair and moved towards the table, clasping his hands over
his genitals. Penny turned towards him, smiling as she saw his cowering stance
and the clutching of his hands between his legs as he shuffled rather than
walked towards the table.
"Right young man... over you
go!" She pulled his hands away from his body and carefully positioned him
so that his head was laid flat against the towels with his face turned towards
her and his hands stretched out along the length of the table.
"Oh dear Timothy, look at
your bottom... you've been punished. My, my you must have been very naughty to
have had to be punished like that. I can see three distinct marks... what on
earth did you do to deserve it?
Timothy wished that he could
disappear through a hole in the floor; such was his utter dismay as the young
nurse waited for his reply.
He shuddered as he felt her soft
hands gently touch his bottom, her fingertips fluttering lightly over his
sensitive flesh.
"Well aren't you going to
answer me? I shall certainly not have any hesitation in smacking a naughty boy
on his bare bottom if he doesn't do what he is told." Timothy blushed
profusely as she lifted a hand from his bottom and smacked him lightly across
the tender cheeks of his buttocks.
"Er erm... I was embarrassed
about erm... er... getting undressed at the...erm medical centre." Penny
smiled to herself as she examined the perfect body she saw before her.
"Well we will have no more nonsense like that this time will we little
man? I have had a lot of experience in disciplining young boys. So you had
better be warned... hadn't you?
Timothy blushed an even brighter
red as the nurse spoke to him; her terminology belittling him as if he were a
child rather than a teenager.
Penny knew exactly what she was
doing, although she had never really analysed her reasons... other than the
obvious sexual attraction of his naked body, she knew that having such a
beautiful young boy at her mercy gave her immense enjoyment. Perhaps she might
have wondered what in her makeup caused her to feel such sexual excitement, not
just at subjugation, but also at his obvious embarrassment and humiliation.
She felt him begin to tremble as
she bent down behind him and placed her hands gently on the inside of his
thighs. "Right Timothy, spread your legs as widely as you can."
She carefully pressed her hands
between his legs, widening his stance until his hips were pressed firmly
against the table surface. Penny smiled to herself as she revealed his penis
and testicles, hanging down, free from encumbrance, between his widely parted
thighs. She could see that his penis, although not stiff, was engorged and that
his testicles were full and swollen within their scrotal sac.
Timothy was beside himself with
embarrassment and indignation at the position he had made to adopt. He could
not control the shiver of pure undiluted anguish as he felt her soft hands
softly stroke the flesh on the inside of each of his thighs, her hands moving
upwards before taking a firm grip of his penis and testicles.
"Arggh"
He let out a short gasp as he
felt her gentle fingers encased his most intimate parts. He drew in his breath
in a sharp hiss, as she deftly pulled his foreskin back and lifted his
testicles in the palm of her hand.
"My Timothy these are
swollen, I bet you will be pleased when I empty them for you... are they
causing you any pain?
Timothy shivered, unable to
control the squirming of his hips as she held him captive. His voice was hoarse
and cracked as he tried to answer her. " er.. erm... er... no er,
nurse"
Penny smiled to herself, at the
same time feeling a thrill run through her young body as she played with his
most intimate parts. She became bolder as he shivered helplessly at her touch.
She could already feel his penis beginning to erect as she began to gently move
his foreskin backwards and forwards over the sensitive corona of the head of
his engorged member.
"Arggghhh."
He gasped as she suddenly pulled
the foreskin back, stretching the skin tightly. His humiliation sending a deep
blush to his cheeks as she blatantly exposed him. He tried to squirm his hips
to evade her fingers but instead felt her tighten her grip.
Suddenly without warning she let
go of him and before he knew what was happening he felt a firm slap upon the
bared cheeks of his bottom. "Now young man, we will have no nonsense while
I prepare you properly. I want to be able to extract your semen as effectively
as I can and that; I am afraid for you, that it will require some very intimate
handling."
Penny stood up straight behind
him and slapped him once more across the cheeks of his bottom; it was not a
hard slap, but it made the young boy gasp.
"There now... you don't want
me to tell Hazel that you were uncooperative... do you? Fancy having to be
strapped across the bare bottom by such a pretty girl like Hazel, I would have
thought it must have been terribly embarrassing for you!"
She saw that her words had
brought further blushes to Timothy's cheeks. She looked down at his naked body,
enjoying the view of his widely spread legs and his parted bottom cheeks,
revealing the neat rosebud of his sphincter. She decided that she would change
tack... firmness and kindness, she reminded herself.
She moved to the side of the
table and leaned over his body, making sure that her firm breasts were pressed
against his back. She leaned forward until her lips were against his cheek and
whispered softly to him.
"My poor baby I know you are
embarrassed but I will be as gentle with you as I can. It is all for your own
good, so will you promise to be a good boy? In return, I will promise that if
you do everything I ask first time, that we can get this over with as quickly
as possible."
Timothy was in turmoil, her soft
voice and the gentle touch played havoc with his senses. He could feel her firm
breasts against his skin as she smoothed her hands down across his bottom. He
was horrified as he felt his penis stiffen and press forward against the edge
of the table as her fingers slipped between the crease of his bottom. She
whispered to him once more.
"Now Timothy, I am just
going to lubricate you bottom, so just stay in this position while I get some
cream. I won't hurt you, but I want you to relax your little bottom so that I
can lubricate inside you."
Penny knew that her words would
cause him further distress and as she looked into his face she could see the
deepening blush already covering his cheeks. She patted his bottom and stood
upright, leaving him laid over the table while she went to the array of jars.
She could hear his ragged
breathing and thought she heard a faint moan from him as she took a pair of
rubber gloves. Although she did not look directly at him she knew that he was
watching her; she almost sensuously pulled the gloves over her delicate
fingers, snapping the rubber against her wrists as she pulled them tight.
Next she picked up a tube of
lubricant and smeared a generous amount of the glistening liquid onto her
fingers. She moved to his side, making sure that her hands were in full view as
she deliberately smeared most of the lubricant over her extended middle finger.
She smiled as she saw him shiver with trepidation.
"Now Timothy, just relax
that little bottom of yours while I insert my finger up into you."
Moving behind him she saw his
buttocks quake as she placed her left hand delicately on the quivering flesh.
Without a word she parted his cheeks and pressed her lubricated fingers against
the sensitive opening of his sphincter. She thrilled as he shivered
uncontrollably, the cheeks of his bottom actually shaking as she teased the
virgin orifice.
"Now just relax, there
that's the way." She felt his whole body shiver as the tightly constricted
muscles relaxed enough for a finger to slide up into him. Rather than just
probe slowly, she let her finger slide up until he was penetrated right up to
her knuckle.
She moved closer pressing her
pubis against his hip and once again letting her young breasts cushion his
back. Without warning she slid her finger further upwards, her knuckle sliding
easily passed the stricture of his sphincter.
Timothy gasped as her body
pressed him down onto the surface of the table allowing her finger to exert
even greater pressure.
"Arggghhh.. ooohhhh," he
moaned as her finger slid all the way up into his bottom.
"There just you relax now
while I lubricate your little bottom."
Such was Penny's excitement that
she felt the need to press her pubis harder against his hip. She could feel the
heat between her legs as she probed the pliant channel of his anus, quickly
locating the prostate gland with the very tip of her finger, she proceeded to
massage the sensitive organ.
"Ooooohhh... er miss ...er
n'nurse," he cried out as she invaded both his bottom and his senses.
"Arrggghhh... er ooohh
please miss."
He was trembling all over as her
finger roamed freely, mercilessly arousing his naïve sexual feelings to fever
pitch. She positioned her body so that she could reach underneath him with her
free hand. She quickly located his penis, which to her delight had erected
fully. The flesh was ridged, harder than she thought any penis could be. Her
fingers encircled the engorged flesh, squeezing and exploring his throbbing
member.
"There now try and
relax."
Her words were merely sops to his
emotional state. She knew full well that if she did not release him soon he
would ejaculate. Gently she eased her finger from his bottom and released his
penis, patting his bottom cheeks as she stood up straight.
"Now stay like that while I
fetch the enemas for you. Penny patted his bottom, the action further demeaning
him as she walked towards the table where she had placed the enema bags. She
took both of them and moved to stand behind the naked young boy.
She placed one of the bags on the
table next to his hips and then broke open the seal on the other one. Without a
word she parted his buttocks and introduced the tube into his sphincter. She
watched with delight as the narrow tubing slipped easily into the opening.
Deftly she pushed the tube all
the way up into him and squeezed the bag, watching with delight as the young
boy threw back his head as the cool water gushed into him.
"Argggghhhh...
arggggggggghh."
Once again he gasped in shock as
she completely emptied the rest of the contents with a sharp squeeze,
propelling the liquid into a fierce torrent which rushed deep inside him.
Arrggghhh... pleeeaseee er
nurse"
Timothy was beside himself with
anguish
She pulled the tube out
immediately and let the bag fall to the floor as she reached for the second
one.
"Now just relax sweetie,
this won't take a moment."
She quickly pushed the tube of
the second bag up into the moistened opening of his bottom and pushed it home
firmly as she spoke softly to him.
"Now just relax and grip the
table."
She thrilled as she saw Timothy
try to turn his head around to look at her. She could see that the fear and
trepidation he was feeling was clearly written on his face; she spoke gently to
him.
"Just relax now."
Penny already knew that that was
the last thing the boy would be able to do, but she saw by his deep blush that
her words had had the required effect. She watched as his hands tentatively
grasped the edge of the table.
Rather than squeeze the second
bag with her fingers, she suddenly pushed it with the flat of her hand between
the cheeks of his bottom; her deft movement simply emptying the entire contents
into him all in one go.
"Arrrrrrrrrrrrrggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhh."
A thrill ran through her body as
the boy arched his back and tried to rear up from the table, only to feel her
cool hand firmly press his body back down into position.
"There now, relax... while I
take the tube out of your bottom."
Her voice was soft and calming as
she held him in position; ignoring his anguish at the shock of the water
penetrating deep inside him.
"Arrrrrrrrrrrggggggggggghhhhhhhhh...
Ooooohhhh Mmmmissss." Timothy was beside himself, not merely with the
intrusion of the water up into his bottom, but the total humiliation. Such was
his embarrassment that his agony was tuned to a fine pitch his nerves stretched
taut, the feeling of dread so exquisite as to be painful in it's intensity. To
be under the control of a pretty young girl... to have to display his body to
her... to have her nonchalantly handle him so intimately; it was all too much
for him.
Penny waited for him to calm
himself before she spoke. She held her hand flat against the small of his back,
admiring the quivering pliant flesh of the cheeks of his bottom.
"There now Timothy, that
wasn't so bad was it!" She spoke brightly, her question rhetorical... she
continued.
"Now just stay bent over,
but put your legs together. Try and squeeze your bottom to hold the water in. I
am going to let you stay like that for five minutes."
She watched him closely; he
seemed relieved as he placed his feet side by side, perhaps thinking that this
would hide his erect penis from her. In fact, it raised his hips so that from
the side she could see that his penis was pointing forward, with the tip
touching the edge of the table.
She smiled as she pulled the
second table closer to the first. She was aware that he was watching her
movements as she took a bowl and filled it with water before placing it on the
surface. She opened a new packet of soap and placed it beside the bowl before
fetching several washcloths from the side of the bath. After she had prepared
everything to her satisfaction she turned towards timothy and placed her hand
gently on his shoulder.
"Now young man, I want you
to walk with your bottom clenched to the toilet bowl and sit on it. Do you
think you can do that without spilling any of the water inside you.?"
Timothy blushed, his cheeks
becoming bright red as she looked into his face. His lips were trembling as he
answered her.
"Er... yes er.. nurse I will
try."
His voice was cracked and parched
as he tried to talk. She placed her hands gently around his waist and helped
him to stand upright. She could see him blushing an even brighter red, as she
walked with him, holding his naked body next to hers. The cause of his acute
embarrassment was plain for her to see as his penis, which was standing
straight out from his body and as rigid as a tent pole, bobbed up and down in
front of him.
She managed to sit him on the
toilet without any of the liquid seeping from his bottom.
"There, my you are such a
good boy, now let it all go and keep there until I tell you to move."
She watched him blush as he
looked up from his sitting position.
Timothy suddenly realised that
his penis was standing straight up and pointing directly at the young nurse. He
desperately clasped his hands together in front of himself as if his life
depended on it.
He blushed again as he saw the
pretty young nurse smile at him; there was a hint of amusement on her lips as
she saw his desperation. His dismay and anguish were so acute that he had to
look down. He felt utterly foolish, sitting on the toilet in front of her. He
could not have described how utterly wretched he felt, at having such a pretty
young girl in total control of him; to see him naked and to do such intimate
things to his body.
Penny looked down at him, noting
the expression of guilt on his face as he hastily hid his erect penis. For her
the thrill in reality of having the boy naked in front of her was far better
than she had ever thought possible. She knew that her prettiness and youth
often made patients feel uncomfortable and embarrassed, especially when she had
to see them naked. But having this young boy at her mercy was more intensely
pleasurable than anything she had ever felt before. All of a sudden she heard
his bowels loosen and evacuate the water he had been holding. It gushed out
down into the toilet pan. Timothy shivered involuntarily and hung his head in shame
as Penny spoke to him.
"There that's the way, now
stay there as I am sure that here will be some more." She watched him
blush, his ears turning a bright purple colour; such was his shame.
Penny busied herself filling a
jug of hot water from the bath tap and rearranging her paraphernalia on the
table. She was aware of the various bowel movements her young charge was making
as he sat shamefaced upon the toilet. She smiled to herself as she observed
that his hands were still clasped to his groin and that his knees were pressed
tightly together.
Eventually she moved to stand in
front of him. She took some toilet tissue from the dispenser, which was
attached to the wall above his head and placed her hand gently on his shoulder.
Timothy looked up, a faint blush already appearing on his cheeks as she looked
down at his nakedness.
"Right young man stand up
and bend over and grasp your ankles."
Her words deliberately
humiliating him as she leaned forward and placed her hand under his arm.
Awkwardly the boy stood up, instinctively tightened the grip of his hands,
which were covering his genitals. Penny delighted in turning him around and
bending him over.
"Hands away and grasp your
ankles... legs apart... that's the way."
Her hands followed her commands
positioning the boy until he was bent over with his legs spread wide apart and
his hands grasping each ankle.
He was already shivering with
shame and embarrassment as she leaned her body over his; her hand encircling
his waist and reaching up under his tummy. She was facing towards his bottom;
the tissue held ready as she reached between his legs.
Timothy felt absolutely foolish
as he looked between his widely splayed legs. He could not believe this was
happening to him, to be treated like a child... even a baby. He felt the toilet
tissue wipe upwards into the lower part of the crease of his bottom; feeling
his buttocks part as she pressed the tissue firmly between the soft flesh to
wipe him. He gasped as she drew the soft paper firmly over his sphincter
several times until she was satisfied that he was clean.
Timothy was blushing furiously as
she stood him upright. He immediately clasped his hands back to his groin as
she let him go and turned to discard the toilet tissue into the pan. To his
horror she examined the contents of the bowl before she flushed the cistern.
"Well that seems to have
done the job." She said brightly as she moved to the sink and discarded
the rubber gloves and began to wash her hands. She turned her head to look at
him over her shoulder.
"I don't think it will be
necessary to bathe you in the bath Timothy... do you?" Timothy could only
blush and stammer as he watched her dry her hands and then move to stand in
front of him once more. "Er n'no er miss." He blushed as he looked
into her face. Her prettiness mesmerised him and at the same time made him feel
gauche and inadequate. He stared at her awestruck as she placed her delicate
fingers under his chin and held his head so that he could not avoid her gaze.
"In that case I will just
give you a quick table-bath... so if you will just hop up onto the table like a
good boy." Her pretty smile showed her perfect white teeth as she watched
a combined expression of horror and abject dismay appear upon his innocent
young face.
Penny suddenly felt sorry for him
and instinctively took his head in her hands and gently kissed him on the
cheek. He blushed immediately, his embarrassment causing his face to turn
bright red. She watched him turn and walk to the table; she could see his body
shivering with humiliation as he stood against it. He had pressed his hips
tightly against the side of the table, hoping to hide his penis from her view
she thought, as he looked nervously over his shoulder.
"Up you get... now sit down
on it and then lie back."
She watched fascinated as he
clumsily climbed on to the table, trying as best he could to keep his genitals
covered before he eventually succeeded in sitting upright with his legs
extended before him. His nervousness showed upon his face as he looked at her;
his hands were still clasped to his groin as he leaned back, preventing him
from lying perfectly flat.
"I am afraid you will have
to put those hands behind your head, I want complete access to your bottom...
and to your genitalia." Penny was surprised that the boy's face could
blush any deeper red than he already was, but her well chosen words were
rewarded with an immediate blush of deep red that ran through his cheeks and
down across his chest.
She observed with utter delight,
the tentative uncovering of his genitals. His penis, although not fully erect,
was engorged and plump, his testicles rather than hanging down, rested like two
ripe plums between his thighs.
"Penny looked closely at his
face as she gave him her next instruction. "Now I want you to place the
soles of your feet together, do you think you can do that for me." She
knew from Hazel that he had been placed in a similar position earlier and that
he had found it most humiliating.
The boy looked blank for a
split-second and then his expression suddenly turned to dismay as he realised
what he must do to get the soles of his feet facing each other.
"B'but er... erm
nurse." His protestation was suddenly cut short.
"Come along now, lay with
your knees outwards and draw them up until all of the soles of your feet are
touching each other."
Penny, rather than position him
herself wanted to see his embarrassment at having to display himself so
blatantly.
She watched avidly as he laid his
knees to each side of the table, baring his genitals and bottom almost lewdly.
She thrilled with delight as he put the soles of his feet together, drawing his
knees up even further until the soles and heels of his feet were placed
together like a mirrored image.
His thighs were now widely splayed
apart; Penny was aware that there was not even the remotest modicum of modesty
in the position she had made him adopt. His hairless penis and testicles were
now rudely on display.
"Now stretch your arms out
to the top of the table above your head, I don't want them in the way."
She waited until Timothy, already
humiliated by his position, stretched his arms out until they were resting on
the table above his head. Now he was completely open to her, his naked body
stretched and parted for her to do with as she wished. She saw that his bottom
lip had begun to tremble and that his nervousness and apprehension had caused
him to gasp for breath. She clinically observed his heaving chest and the small
shivers than occasionally ran through his body as he looked at her, his eyes
almost pleading for respite from his utter embarrassment.
She moved to the side of the
table and looked down at him. This was her first opportunity to inspect him
openly and at her leisure. She slowly looked him over, examining every inch of
his body before she finally placed her hands upon him. Such was the young boy's
trepidation that he almost jumped off the table at her first touch.
Penny had placed one of her hands
quite casually on his chest and the other on his thigh just above his knee.
"Now keep still and let me
have a good look at you. She let the fingers of her left hand gently caress his
inner thigh, noting his nervousness and utter dismay at his humiliating
position,
"Now Timothy I am going to
examine your penis and your testicles... I have to do it, so try and not be
embarrassed."
She bent over him, her face only
inches away from his as she spoke softly to him. "You know that this is
for your own good, so just try and be a good boy while I have a good look at you."
Penny was well aware that her
words, rather than comfort him, would cause him further embarrassment.
For Timothy this was a nightmare
of humiliation that he thought would never end. Her perfume invaded his
nostrils with a heady aroma as she leaned forward; her voice, which was soft
and tender, seemed to heighten his sense of subjugation... and her words
reduced his stature to that of a child.
It was an almost ritualistic
gesture, as she took a delicate hold of the tip of his penis between thumb and
forefinger, lifting it gently away from his body. Timothy blushed with
embarrassment as he felt an involuntary throb from his penis as she carefully
skinned the foreskin back, revealing the smooth corona and the sensitive flesh
beneath. He gasped as she pulled the skin back further until it was stretched
taught. His ordeal was not over; he groaned as he felt her cool slender fingers
gently cup and lift his testicles, her practiced fingers gently rolling the
soft orbs within their scrotal sac.
Timothy suddenly opened his mouth
in horror as he felt his penis begin to throb involuntarily between her
fingers. He gasped as she slid his foreskin up over the shaft and then back
down, this time stretching the skin to it's limit.
"Arrrrgggggggggggggghhhhhhhhh....Ooooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhh"
Timothy could not help vocalising his torment. He looked up at the pretty young
nurse, feeling his face turn bright red as he caught her eye. He knew that his
penis was fully erect and could not help looking guilty as she looked into his
face.
"It seems Timothy that you
are unable to control yourself for very long. How often does you penis get hard
like this?" She smoothed her hand back up the shaft of his penis and
lifted his testicles delicately as she spoke.
Timothy was unable to form a
coherent answer as he gasped at the further manipulation of his penis.
"Argghh er miss.... er.. I
ddd'don't know er miss."
Penny seemed oblivious of the
state of the young boy's acute embarrassment, although in fact she was aware of
every nuance of it. "Well I think we will have to keep an eye on you over
the next few days, we don't want any little accidents, do we?" Timothy
blushed furiously at the suggestion, but such was his humiliation that he could
barely mumble a weak...
"er..no miss."
"Well I will just get you
washed and then we will see if we can get a nice big sample from you."
She let her hand slide out from
under his testicles, leaving the swollen sac of his scrotum to rest between his
legs. She drew his foreskin down the shaft of his penis, exposing him fully to
her interested gaze. The stiff flesh stood upright as if made of wood; the
foreskin drawn back displaying the smooth rim of the glans.
"Lie still and don't fidget,
there's a good boy." She turned to the bowl she had placed on the table
and added hot water from the jug. Taking soap she lathered her hands and turned
back towards him.
Without preamble she took a firm
hold of his penis and applied lather around his pubic area. She ignored his
gasps as she quickly lathered soap over his genitalia, her delicate fingers
moving beneath his scrotum and in-between the cheeks of his bottom. Without
warning she slipped her arm underneath his knees and quickly lifted his legs
until they were bent up over his chest.
Timothy gasped as he felt her
soapy fingertip press against his sphincter and quickly penetrate his anus. She
held him, as one would a baby while changing a nappy, holding his legs high in
the air and raising his bottom up off the tabletop.
He could not believe what was
happening to him as her finger slid all the way up into his bottom. She reamed
her finger quickly in and out several times, the soapy knuckle sliding easily
back and forth through his sphincter.
"There young man, I think
that will do." She spoke as if there was nothing unusual in bathing an
adolescent in this way.
She slipped her finger from his
bottom and took a fresh washcloth, which she soaked with warm water. She
nonchalantly wiped around his genitals and up between his legs before pressing
the cloth firmly between his buttocks and wiping his bottom as if he was an
infant.
Timothy was absolutely mortified
at the nonchalant way she had handled him. His cheeks were bright crimson and
blushing furiously. Such was his utter humiliation that he felt near to tears.
Penny let go of the boy and
taking a towel from the table she walked to the side of the room. She took one
of the chairs and placed it in an open space. Sitting down on the chair she
spoke directly to him, as he lay shamefaced and naked upon the table.
"Right young man, come and
stand in front of me... quickly now." Timothy struggled upright and slid
his legs from the table, he immediately covered his genitals with his hands.
His penis was so stiff that he had trouble holding it against his body.
"Now I want no nonsense with
you holding your genitals... do you hear me? Hazel has already told me that she
will punish you if you are disobedient, so take your hands away and come and
stand in front of me NOW!"
Timothy blushed furiously,
letting his hands fall away from his groin he moved slowly towards the pretty
young nurse, his blushes igniting his cheeks into a fiery red mask. He stood in
front of her, his penis jutting from his groin at a right angle, his legs and
torso trembling with embarrassment.
"Now step forward and open
your legs... come along stand with your legs well apart."
Timothy could barely contain his
abject humiliation as she placed her hands on his hips and manoeuvred him until
his legs were splayed well apart on either side of her knees. His penis was
only inches from her breasts as she took the towel and began to dry in-between
his legs.
She casually took a firm hold of
his penis and pulled the foreskin back, ostensibly drying behind the foreskin.
He could not help a deep shiver running through his whole body as the material
grazed against his sensitive flesh. He closed his eyes in an acute dilemma of
abject dismay as she handled his penis and testicles as nonchalantly as one
would to a small child.
"Right I think that will
do... now look at me Timothy I want your full attention." Reluctantly
Timothy opened his eyes and met her steady gaze, involuntarily shivering as he
looked into her pretty face.
"It is not a healthy
practice for a little boy to touch his penis... you seem to be holding it at
every opportunity. It is an undesirable trait and one, which must be stopped! I
am sure Hazel will be willing to chastise you should you be naughty enough to
continue holding yourself as you have been doing."
Timothy blushed, he was shocked
at the pretty young nurse's words. He tried to explain.
"b'but miss... er I was
...er em...."
Penny cut him short.
"I want no excuses, some
little boys seem utterly incorrigible in their masturbatory habits. I am sure
Hazel will concur with my opinion that it is a disgusting and vile practice.
Now step backwards and let me stand up."
Timothy blushed furiously; her
unfair assumption that he was holding his penis for reasons other than his
modesty hurt him deeply.
Penny read his feelings exactly.
She knew from his expression that her words had stung him deeply. She stood up
and to the boy's amazement gently put her arms around him. He shivered as his
penis pressed into the starched fabric of her uniform.
"Poor baby, it has all been
too much for you hasn't it? Never mind sweetie, I will take good care of
you."
She bent her head forward, and to
his astonishment kissed him fully on the lips. The gentleness of her words and
actions made him almost wilt in her arms. She stroked her fingertips over his
cheek as she gently drew her lips away from his. She could feel his penis
throb, even through the material of her tunic.
"Now my sweet boy, come with
me and I will try and make these a little more comfortable for you." She
cupped her hand underneath his scrotum and cradled his testicles, her fingers
curling around the swollen sac and squeezing gently. She stroked the fingers of
her other hand over his burning cheek.
"Come along Timothy and
promise me you will be a good little boy."
Timothy was beside himself with
humiliation and sexual arousal as she placed her hand on the cheeks of his
bottom and guided him from the bathroom.
3
Hazel and Vickie looked amused as
Penny ushered the naked boy into the examination room, his penis, so hard and
jutting out at such an acute angle, that it appeared to have a life of it's
own. Hazel examined him closely; she could see that he was shivering all over
from his embarrassment and that he was almost near to tears. They looked on in
admiration as Penny deftly handled the boy. Making him stand in front of them
with his legs widely spread and his hands obediently at his sides.
"As you can see from the
strength of his erection, I don't think there is much need for preliminaries,
so I think I will extract the first sample with him standing up." Penny
spoke brightly, showing that she was very much in charge.
"Right Timothy squat down,
that's the way, bend those knees... there that's just right...my you are being
a good boy today."
Penny stooped down with him,
holding his shoulders so that he would not tip forward as he squatted rather
like a Sumo wrestler.
"Right hands behind you...
with the backs of your hands placed against the small of your back and palms
towards me." She held him by his shoulders, with one hand while she
adjusted his hands until they were flat against his back just above the swell
of his buttocks.
"Hazel if you will just hold
his shoulders to steady him, would you?"
Hazel did as she was asked,
standing in front of Timothy and placing her hands gently on his shoulders.. He
shivered at the cool touch of her fingers and the embarrassment of being
displayed so rudely; his penis was now jutting upwards from between his widely
spread legs and his testicles swinging freely without hindrance.
Neither Hazel or Vickie had any
idea quite what Penny had in mind until they saw her take a small jar from her
pocket and unscrew the cap. She dipped the middle finger of her right hand into
the sticky lubricant and placed the jar on the floor by her feet.
"Keep him still if you can
Hazel." She smiled as she watched Hazel take a firmer hold of the boy's
shoulders.
"Take a deep breath
Timothy... that's it all the way in." Timothy had no idea what was going
to happen to him as he sucked in a lungful of air. Without warning Penny
slipped her hand between his buttocks and with one fluid movement pushed her
middle finger up into his sphincter. His squatting position made, the
penetration up into his anus, a smooth and easy process; the sphincter muscles
unable to impede his impalement.
"Oooohhh... arrggghh."
Timothy gasped at the sudden
intrusion, his mouth opening wide for air, as Penny gestured to Hazel to help
the boy to an upright position. Penny smiled as she felt the muscles of his
sphincter close tightly over her knuckle, knowing that her finger would be
firmly embedded up inside him.
"Arggggggggggggghhhhhhhh..... Oooooohhhh
er...misss."
He was beside himself as he felt
her thrust her finger even further. She pressed her firm body tightly against
him, knowing that he would feel her softness against the palms of his hands,
which were now tightly trapped between their bodies. Almost casually she
reached around his slim waist with her free hand and wrapped her delicate fingers
around the shaft of his penis.
"Arrrrgggggggggggghhhhhhhhh."
He gasped as she pulled his
foreskin back and at the same time located the sensitive flesh of his prostate.
He threw his head back as she smoothed her finger over the sensitive gland, his
body becoming almost rigid with the sensation of it all.
Vickie watched Hazel move to the
side of the boy and reach for his testicles; the young girl's hand casually
lifting the scrotum away from his body and squeezing the swollen balls gently
between her delicate fingers. She spoke firmly, as she increased the pressure
on balls; watching the nurse as she aroused his young body to a fever pitch.
Penny's skill in handling him
belied her limited experience; incessantly her delicate fingers intuitively
extracted the maximum sexual sensation from her manipulations to his penis.
Sometimes pulling the foreskin back tightly, other times stroking her
fingernails over the very tip, teasing the small orifice, to the boy's utter
distraction. Hazel noted his tortured expression, his body shivering and
shaking as their hands excited him to an agony of sexual sensation..
Hazel placed her other hand
against his tummy and ran her smooth fingers up over his chest until she
located one of his nipples. Without warning she captured the nub of flesh
between finger and thumb and squeezed hard.
At the same time she encased his
testicles at the top of the scrotum and pulled her fingers downwards,
tightening the soft orbs in their sac, carefully watching for his reaction. She
was not disappointed; he gasped; opening his mouth wide in desperation, as her
fingers pinched his nipple and her other hand pulled his scrotum away from his
body.
"There, poor baby... it will
soon be over.. be a brave boy now."
Timothy was beside himself with
sensation. Embarrassed, humiliated and sexually tormented, her words fuelled
his shame and and guilt at his involuntary arousal.
"Arggggggggggghhhhhhhhhh....
Ooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhhh... please."
Timothy cried out in a long wail
as Penny cleverly manipulated his penis, while at the same time curling her
finger upwards inside him and firmly massaging his prostate.
Vickie reached for the test tube,
which had been placed on the shelf behind her. She knew that it would only be
seconds before the boy reached his orgasm. She positioned the wide opening of
the glass container close to the tip of his penis, watching, fascinated by the
deft strokes of Penny's hand.
Hazel casually continued to
handle his testicles, gently squeezing and massaging the soft orbs between her
fingers.
The telltale signs of his
impending ejaculation came when Penny felt the boy's muscles tense violently,
his whole body suddenly stiffened as if he had been stung. His mouth hung wide
open as the first spurts of semen erupted from his penis.
Vickie skilfully caught the thick
fluid, moving the test tube nearer as the boy continued to ejaculate. Penny's
slender fingers worked incessantly, extracting huge eruptions of semen from his
captive penis.
There seemed no respite for him as
she worked one hand up and down his shaft; her other hand pressing upwards
between his buttocks with her finger probing deep inside him, spurring him on
to further ejaculation.
"Arrrrrrrggggggggggghhhhhhhhh....
Arggghh... ooooooohhhhh oooooooowwww."
His wail of utter abandonment
filled the small examination room. His chest heaved as his breathing became
laboured and desperate . "Arrggghhhh... er.... Pleasee.... er
nnnooooo..."
He was beside himself with acute
sensation as Penny executed a series of quick milking motions to his penis,
while at the same time jabbing her finger hard against his prostate.
"Arrrrrrrgggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhh."
Timothy was almost blinded with
exquisite sexual sensation, his body held captive and seemingly suspended in
time by his prolonged tormented ejaculation. His ears were ringing and a red
mist had appeared in front of his eyes, clouding his vision... his nerves
stretched so tightly that he felt he would faint.
Emission after emission of thick,
milky-white semen, erupted from deep inside him, leaving his body weak from his
protracted milking at the hands of the pretty young nurse.
Penny slowed her hand as climax
subsided, squeezing the last globules of semen from the tip of his penis and
nonchalantly bending his penis downwards to wipe the tip against the rim of the
test tube.
Hazel saw that the boy was near
to fainting and quickly motioned to Penny who neatly slipped her finger from
his bottom and helped Hazel support his shivering body.
Vickie put the stopper on the
test tube and helped Hazel and Penny with the distraught young boy.
They laid him face up, on the
examination table... their hands gently stroking him as he gasped for breath,
his moans diminishing as they quieted him. Hazel gently kissed him on the lips
as Penny and Vickie gently stroked their hands over his young body, leaving him
dazed and drained upon the table, his breathing gradually becoming better
regulated as he rested his head upon the pillow. Vickie picked up a towel from
the well-stocked shelves and leaving it half unfolded in a narrow strip, placed
it over his hips, covering his penis and testicles.
Timothy closed his eyes, he could
hear their footsteps as they walked from the room, but his body had drifted
into a lethargic repose. For a while his embarrassment and anguish had left him
as he drifted into something between a light sleep and a feint.
It must have been half an hour or
so, before he was aware that Vickie was leaning over him, her pretty face only
inches from his as he opened his eyes.
"Poor baby, are you awake
now?"
Her voice was soft and gentle.
"I am going to let Susan and Gail bring you a nice glass of orange juice,
so you just lie there and relax."
Even in his torpid state, Timothy
quickly glanced down at himself; reassuringly the towel was still covering his
hips. Vickie kissed him gently on the cheek, causing him to blush at the
intimacy of the gesture.
He was about to ask if he could
get dressed, but Vickie had turned and walked out of the room before he could
utter the words. He lay, looking up at the bright lights that illuminated the
table his mind mulling over the embarrassments and indignities of the day.
"Oh dear Timothy, you have
been through it haven't you. Just lift your head a little and take a sip of
this."
It was Susan's voice that had
wakened him from his reverie. She was standing to his left side, while Gail had
gone around the linen covered examination table and was now looking down at
him, her expression soft and tender.. Timothy looked at Susan, his eyes
focussing as she leaned forward and placed her hand under the back of his head.
Gently she lifted him, her hand
sensuously stroking the hairs at the nape of his neck as she proffered the cool
drink to his parched lips. He could not help glance down at his body,
reassuring himself that he was properly covered as he sipped the fresh orange
juice.
"Thank you, er...
Susan." Timothy replied as he finished the glass. For some reason, perhaps
it was his vulnerable position, he felt uneasy at calling her Susan.
During the time he had known both
Mrs. Grant and Susan, Timothy had never felt particularly at ease. Mrs Grant
had always praised him for his usefulness and willingness around the house;
this had bolstered his ego and made him feel more grown up, but her - and her
daughters beauty, had still made him feel awkward and somewhat in awe of them
both.
Since the embarrassing and
humiliating events of the day, Timothy, unconsciously perhaps, had felt a shift
in their relationship. Laying on the examination couch as he now was, naked
except for the strip of towel that covered his loins, he felt that Susan was in
a much more authoritative position.
Whereas Timothy had always been
in awe of Gail, as had most of the other boys in his school, his embarrassment
in her presence now was so acute as that he could not control the deep blush
and tremor that ran through his whole body, each time he looked at her.
She spoke softly to him and
gently placing her hand on his cheek, turning his head towards her.
"Well do you feel any better
Timothy?
Mrs. Grant says that your
condition would have been quite painful for you, had not the doctor diagnosed
what was wrong with you and emptied your testicles. Would you like me to have a
look and see if they are still swollen?" Gail thought that the look of
anguish on the boy's face was so exquisite that she felt a thrill run through
her body, as she held his head so that he could not avoid her gaze.
"Ohhh er noooo... er
miss."
He stammered quickly.
"I am fine er, please...
honestly"
Gail felt the heat of his cheek
against the palm of her hand as the boy began to tremble visibly, his face
becoming mass of red and purple botches.
"Well if you are sure."
She replied coolly. "I wouldn't want to think that any friend of mine was
in pain." Timothy looked at her incredulously. He could not believe that
he could feel so utterly humiliated... and yet there was something in her
words... `a friend of mine'... that would normally have been music to his ears,
had he not been in such a humiliating position.
Gail leaned over and suddenly
kissed him on the cheek. She had applied fresh makeup and perfume, her beauty
and the heady aroma of the Chanel No. 5 perfume causing the boy to feel even
more in awe of her, as she held her face close to his. Such was his
embarrassment that he would have not been able to look at her had she not been
holding his head between both hands.
"My you are a shy boy aren't
you? I suppose that it must be quite embarrassing having a pretty young nurse
like Penny holding your penis and testicles and making you ejaculate,"
Gail watched him closely as she
spoke; her words designed to deliberately subjugate the boy. The blood rushed
to his cheeks; his face was a picture of pure anguish as she looked into his
eyes.
Susan turned her head as the
young nurse walked back into the room; she smiled at her, a knowing look upon
her pretty face. Timothy turned his head towards her, little knowing that his
further humiliation was imminent.
"Right young man,"
Penny said brightly as she stood by the bed next to his hips. "I think you
should be well rested by now." It was all Timothy could do not to faint
with utter horror as Penny nonchalantly took away the towel that was covering
his hips. Before he could protest she had lifted one of his legs and placed it
in the stirrup. Moving quickly around to the other side of the examination
table she carefully lifted his other leg and placed it in the second stirrup.
"Oooh... er please er..
nurse... not again and er... not with..."
Timothy was absolutely shocked;
his protestations unheeded as the young nurse moved to the end of the table and
pushed the stirrups up towards his hips. Deftly she positioned the apparatus,
bending his knees back and parting his thighs until his legs were splayed wide
open and high in the air.
Timothy could not help quickly
looking at Gail and Susan who, to his horror, were both looking down at his
shaven and bared genitals.
"Now let's have a look at
you." Penny said brightly as she casually placed her hand between his legs
and cupped his testicles in the palm of her hand.
"Er pleeeease... er miss...
er not with... I mean... can't I.. er be more."
Both Susan and Gail knew exactly
what Timothy must have been feeling. After all, it was highly unusual for a boy
to be seen naked in front of young girls only a little older than himself.
Penny had ignored his pleading
completely, instead taking the soft flesh of his penis in her other hand; she
placed it so that it was lying upwards towards his naval; the soft flesh
already beginning to stiffen at the touch of her cool fingers. Timothy trembled
with anguish, acutely aware of his nakedness. He could not control the feeling
of utter anguish as the nurse blatantly exposed him to the gaze of the two
young girls.
He turned his head, pressing his
face into the pillow, as the nurse casually let her hand slide in between the
cheeks of his bottom. He felt her pry the buttocks apart, acutely aware of her
breath against the inside of his thigh as she leaned forward to examine his
sphincter.
Gail and Susan watched,
fascinated by the intimate view of his most personal parts. Susan could see the
boy's distress as he lay with his head turned into the fabric of the pillow.
She knew he was utterly embarrassed, but her thrill at having his naked body
prostrate before her, far outweighed the pity she felt for him.
Timothy heard, the footsteps of
Vickie and Hazel as they returned to the examination room. He pressed his face
further into the pillow as they walked to stand beside Penny. It was Hazel that
spoke first, her words and actions causing the boy to shudder with anguish.
"Come along Timothy, you
can't bury your head in the pillow like that, it will give you a stiff neck.
Stop being such a baby and lay properly." She accompanied her words with a
firm slap to the soft flesh of his rudely exposed bottom cheeks.
"Now come along... behave
yourself."
The girls saw that his eyes were
glistening with tears of humiliation as he turned his blushing face towards
Hazel.
"There that's better. I know
it must seem a bit traumatic for you, so I have asked the nurse to let your
friends stay and hold your hands while she extracts some more semen from
you."
Timothy did not know where to put
himself. Having Susan and Gail witness his utter humiliation was the very last
thing he wanted. He was quaking with embarrassment as both girls looked at him.
His body was covered in goose pimples and his knees were quivering in the
stirrups as Penny casually pried open his buttocks once more and pressed a
lubricated finger up against his tightly constricted sphincter.
"Take a deep breath for me
sweetheart." She said, her voice soft and gentle but at the same time,
brooking no nonsense. Timothy gasped aloud, as her finger pressed against the
opening, suddenly sliding upwards in a deft and practiced manoeuvre
"Argggggggghhhhhhhhh.
Ooooooooooohhhh."
It was a combination of
humiliation and helplessness that caused him to shudder at his intimate
impalement. His body twisted to evade her slender finger as it travelled
upwards inside him.
"Ooops there we are, that
wasn't so bad was it sweetie?"
Penny's tone and words adding
further humiliation to her nonchalant impalement of his bottom.
"Ooooohhhhhhhhhh....oooooohhh." He cried
as Susan and Gail simultaneously took his hands and held him tight.
Vickie Grant knew that sooner or
later that Gail and possibly her daughter would be getting their hands upon the
boy. For that reason she had decided to make her masturbation of the boy a
model demonstration of skill.
Rather than just take hold of his
penis, which was already beginning to engorge, she gently let her fingernails
graze up over the skin of the shaft and on to the semi-exposed head. Skilfully
she tapped the burgeoning flesh with her fingers, moving the penis from side to
side, letting it roll on his tummy.
Every so often she would
punctuate her actions with a gentle squeeze, causing the boy to gasp. She knew
that the girls were watching her every move as his penis throbbed upwards,
lifting away from his tummy and standing straight up in the air, unaided by her
hands.
She began to pat the erected
flesh, letting it wobble from side to side, until she saw it begin to throb
violently of its own volition. She stood back and took a tube of lubricant from
the shelf; unscrewing the cap she applied a generous amount of the cool gel to
her hands.
Both Susan and Gail watched
avidly as Vickie took a firm hold of his penis. She pulled the foreskin back
and held the exposed head upwards. The girls watched, in absolute fascination
as she flattened her other hand and began to slowly move the palm in a circular
motion over the very tip of his penis.
The effect was startling; Timothy
began to squirm and move his hips in a violent gyration, desperately trying to
escape the acute sensation being applied to the tip of his penis.
Casually she stretched the
foreskin back as tightly as it would go, seemingly indifferent to the boy's
anguished attempts to escape. Vickie knew exactly the effect the slow measured
circular movement of the palm of her hand would have against the tip of his
penis.
Penny watched Vickie Grant, aware
of her consummate skill at awakening the boy's sexual arousal. Penny watched as
she suddenly increased the pressure of her finger against his prostate. Her
action was vigorous and deliberate, she looked at Vickie and nodded before
thrusting her finger hard against his prostate. Her pretty young face looked
severe in her deep concentration, seemingly oblivious to the boy's
protestations.
"Argggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
Timothy cried out in abandon,
tossing his head from side to side as if in the depths of deep torment. His
movements were to no avail as Vickie held his penis firmly, her grip increasing
as his penis throbbed with even greater vigour.
Timothy could not cope with
intensity of the sensations that coursed through his body. It seemed as if his
whole nervous system was stretched tight like a violin string. The feeling in
the tip of his penis was so acute as to be unbearable. It was tantamount to
sensual torture, expertly and deftly applied to his most sensitive flesh.
Penny was also watching Vickie at
work, admiring the causal way in which she had aroused the young boy. She began
to move her finger quickly over his prostate, eliciting further moans from the
young boy.
"Arggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....
er pleeeeaaase"
He was beside himself with
anguish, as Vickie and Penny confidently aroused him to a fine fever pitch.
Both, Susan and Gail found that
they had to hold his hands and his arms firmly to keep him from rearing up from
the bed, as Vickie continued her manipulation of his penis.
Susan looked to her mother in
admiration and awe.
"Does that hurt him,
mummy... I mean when you rub your hand over his penis like that?
Vickie looked at the fascination
on her young daughters face as she spoke.
"No it doesn't hurt, but the
sensation can be quite intense."
She turned to look at the boy's
anguished face, his embarrassment clear for all to see.
"There my sweet Timothy,
don't worry, I won't hurt you I promise. I am just going to make you ejaculate
now, so be good and try and relax for me."
Hazel took a test tube from the
shelf and moved to stand by the opposite side of the bed to where Vickie was
standing. Nonchalantly she reached forward and cupping her hand around the
boy's testicles, lifted them away from between his legs. Her manicured fingers
curled around the swollen testes as she moved the test-tube nearer his penis.
She did not have to wait long, as suddenly his body stiffened; the muscles of
his legs and stomach knotting into a trancelike state as he wailed
uncontrollably.
"Arrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrgggggggggggggggggggggggggggggghhhhhh
hhhhhh."
His anguished cry filled the room
as Hazel cleverly caught the first mighty spurt of semen in her test tube. It
seemed that his anguish and utter abandonment meant nothing to his sexual
tormenters,
Casually, almost callously; they
stimulated his most sensitive areas to the extreme... ignoring his pleas and
his distress.
Gail looked on, completely
mesmerised by the almost `matter of fact' way that the boy's body was being
stimulated. She turned her head to look at his face. His mouth was wide open
and he was gasping for breath; his eyes stared blindly, in shock at his
treatment.
"There... poor baby, it will
all be over soon," she coo-ed softly, bending her head towards his.
Whether it was some inherent knowledge buried deep in her psyche or mere
impulsiveness she did not know, but her own actions surprised her.
Without warning, she placed her
hand over his right nipple, at the same time she pressed her lips to his - and
kissed him. Her tongue deliberately thrust deep into his mouth, mirroring the
impalement of his bottom as she stifled his anguished moans, Robbing him of
breath at the moment of ejaculation seemed to incense the boy even more, as at
the same time she squeezed his nipple hard between her finger and thumb.
Hazel watched the young girl's actions,
becoming aware that Gail's understanding of the boy's psyche was far more
knowledgeable than she had first imagined it could be. She watched as Gail
released his lips, hearing the boy groan inwardly in his desperation for air.
Spurt after spurt of semen
entered the glass container, his emission so violent that she was hardly able
to catch it all. Penny could feel his sphincter squeezing violently against her
finger as she spurred his forced and tortured orgasm.
It seemed an age before the boy stopped
ejaculating. His hips writhed in utter abandonment and his body shivered and
trembled with each violent and anguished emission. Eventually Vickie and Penny
slowed their hands to a calm, almost caressing motion, as his body suddenly
went limp. Vickie was not surprised to see that he had fainted. Letting go of
his penis, she drew Gail aside and placed her head against his chest, hearing
the raised and violent heartbeat loud beneath his ribs. She gently stroked her
hands over his chest and tummy, watching as Hazel let go of the boy and began
to run her hands gently over his thighs and legs to stimulate his circulation.
There was a loud sucking sound as
Penny withdrew her finger from deep inside his bottom. She smiled at Vickie and
Hazel as she spoke.
"Well I think we have
extracted the most semen I have ever seen in one ejaculation. It must have been
an acute sensation, I think that that was only the fourth time he has
ejaculated in his life."
Vickie smiled at Penny, her
beautiful features showing merriment as she replied.
"Yes, I think you are right,
I imagine that some people have lived their whole lives without experiencing
something as intense as that, no wonder he couldn't cope."
Well he has plenty more to come.
From what Lucy...er, I mean Dr. Ashford has told me, he is manufacturing semen
quite prolifically for such a young boy. I think, unless she resorts to drugs
or some kind of operation, that he will have to be er... milked on a regular
basis."
Penny's use of the word milked
amused Vickie as she carefully lifted one of the boy's eyelids and carefully
examined the pupil before letting it close again.
"Well I think we will let
him rest and mark up these test tubes." Vickie said brightly. "Oh I
forgot to say," Penny said as she casually took his now flaccid penis
between finger and thumb and wiped the last remnant of semen from the tip.
"Dr. Ashford said that it
would not be necessary to collect samples, er... I mean in the test tubes each
time he is er... milked. She said random samples will be fine and that she
recommends that his testicles are kept to a comfortable size and that his
prostate is massaged as regularly as possible. She will make arrangements to
see him as soon as she can."
Hazel looked enquiringly at
Penny. "Does that mean that we will have to do that ourselves... or will a
nurse be coming.?" Penny looked thoughtful.
"Well I have promised Dr.
Ashford that I will come as often as I can and I think that Tina is on the list
to visit... however I think she means for you to check him and er... empty him
whenever you think that he needs it. Will that be alright."
Penny looked questioningly at
Vickie and Hazel.
"That will be fine."
Vickie interjected. "It does make it a lot easier that I don't have to
take samples in a container every time... and as we are nearly at the start of
the holidays, I am sure that Hazel and I can manage him fine."
She turned to Gail and Susan.
"Let's leave him to rest, he is alright, just exhausted from his ordeal. I
think we will have to bear in mind that the sensation of release is new to him,
having never ejaculated before today. Let's leave him to sleep awhile, he looks
exhausted from his little ordeals of the day. We can all go and have a glass of
wine if you would like."
She turned to Gail,
"It is a bit late, would you
like to stay the night? Susan has a twin bedded room, so you will be quite
comfortable."
"Yes, if that is alright. I
don't like driving at night and I have only had the car for six weeks, so I
would be grateful to stay. Do you mind if Susan and I stay with Timothy? We can
take his legs out of the stirrups when he wakes up."
Vickie smiled with delight at
Gail's reply; Susan could not have a better friend she thought as she answered
her.
"Of course Gail, I will
leave you both with him, I am sure he will be pleased to have some company.
The girls gave each other a
knowing look as Hazel, Penny and Mrs. Grant left the room. It was not long
before they were standing either side of the young boy. Their hands roamed
freely over his body as they examined every inch of him. It was in absolute
silence that Gail, looked the boy over in minute detail. She knew that she was
unlikely to have the chance for such a leisurely examination again.
She examined his face closely,
her finger trailing down his cheek and around his jaw-line. Her hands caressed
him gently as she ran them over his chest and down onto his tummy. She walked
around the stirrup and stood between his widely spread legs. Gently she eased
his buttocks apart and peered at his neat sphincter, her hand trailing between
the pliant cheeks of his bottom. Last in line for her inspection were his
genitalia. Although his penis was flaccid, it was still engorged and lay flat
and plump, hanging down between his legs. Slowly almost reverently she took his
testicles in one hand and lifted his penis up with the other, examining every
detail.
"These are mine." She
whispered, grinning mischievously at Susan as she toyed with the boy's
genitals. "He is perfect, isn't he?" Susan looked at Gail and spoke
quite seriously. "He has the most perfect body of any boy I have ever
seen. Not a blemish on his skin, his proportions are absolutely
exquisite." Gail nodded. "I promise you Susan, that I am going to
take very good care of him, when I get my chance. The only thing wrong with him
at the moment is that he is not blushing with embarrassment. I think he looks
so pretty when he blushes."
Susan looked across at her
friend, her face wrinkling prettily as she spoke. "Well I suppose if you
have your way, he will be blushing one long blush for the rest of his
life." Gail looked up, her face suddenly turning to a serious expression.
"I shall make sure of it, I promise."
Sometime later after Penny had
left the house, Timothy was gently woken up by Hazel and handed a cup of tea by
Mrs. Grant. The girls had already released him from the stirrups and to his
relief Mrs Grant covered his genitals with a towel while he drank his tea.
"Right Timothy, up you get,
you can go into the sitting room and sit with Susan and Gail, while Mrs. Grant
and I tidy this room up a little." Timothy blushed as Hazel casually took
the towel from him and helped him from the bed. It was a few minutes before she
glanced around to see him standing by the door clasping his hands to his
genitals. Hazel looked at him crossly. "Are you still here, I thought I
told you to go into the sitting room." Timothy began to stammer. "But
I think my shirt is still in the bathroom."
"You can get that later. It
is getting cooler in here and I don't want you to catch a cold, so go into the
sitting room like a good boy." Hazel's voice sounded cross as she turned
back to the examination couch and took the other side of the sheet that Vickie
was holding. Together they pulled it tightly across the surface of the
examination table and tucked it in so that the material was smooth and neat
across the surface. Hazel looked around at Timothy once more, her expression
darkening as she saw him standing there cowering.
"I am sorry Vickie,"
She said to Mrs Grant, "I shall have to deal with this." She turned
once more to the boy and took his arm in a firm grip.
"I warned you Timothy, not
to disobey me." Timothy looked up at her beautiful face, his lips
trembling as she scolded him.
"If you don't go now I shall
punish you right in front of everyone... and you wouldn't like that would
you?"
Timothy blushed profusely, his
cheeks reddening to a dark hue and tears appearing in his eyes. "Please er
Misss... errr... please let mee er have my shirt." It was obvious to him
that he should not have spoken. Hazel suddenly turned him around and quickly
smacked him three times on his bottom.
"Now are you going to obey
me?" She asked, her voice slow and measured.
"Oh pleeasse miss err
Hazel." Timothy looked up at her pleadingly. Whether or not the boy was
going to plead again for his shirt, Hazel did not wait to find out. She
tightened her grip on his arm and led him from the room.
He was squirming like an eel, his
knees pressed tightly together and his hands grasped tightly to his groin as he
entered the sitting room. His face was already red and blushing as Hazel
tightened her grip on his arm and marched him to stand in the middle of the
room. Vickie followed behind; intrigued to see how she would handle him.
Susan and Gail were sitting on
the settee as they watched Hazel almost drag the boy into the centre of the
room. Gail could clearly see tears in his eyes as Hazel made him stand in front
of them.
"My you are a naughty boy.
What on earth is the matter with you?" She looked down at him, her hands
holding him by the shoulders.
"Now stand up straight,
while I get a chair. I promised you that if you disobeyed me one more time that
I would smack your bare bottom in front of everyone... and that is exactly what
I am going to do."
She left Timothy cowering in
front of the two girls as she fetched a chair from the dining table and placed
it facing the settee.
She looked at both Susan and Gail
as she spoke. "I am sorry Timothy has behaved so badly, especially when
you have all been so kind to him." Without preamble Hazel sat down on the
chair and pulled her skirt up to mid-thigh, before catching hold of the boy
around his waist.
Timothy was beside himself with
embarrassment. He could not help quickly looking at Gail and Susan to see if
they were observing his humiliation. He was mortified as he caught their eyes
looking at him
Hazel grasped his hands and with
a grip that surprised him as she pulled them away from his genitals. He had
never felt so humiliated as she held him close to her and placed him over her
knees. Taking both wrists she held them up behind his back, forcing his head
further down as she lifted his arms up. Suddenly he stopped squirming as the
sheer futility of his situation became apparent to him. Tears flooded his eyes
as he began to sob and plead.
Please.... Errr misss...n'not in
front of er.."
His sentence was never completed
as the first hard smack of Hazel's hand landed squarely on the cheeks of his
bottom.
His embarrassment increased as he
felt Hazel relax her knees at the exact time that the first blow landed,
suddenly allowing his genitals to drop down between her thighs. She squeezed
her thighs together, holding his penis and testicles captive between the soft
smooth flesh.
"Pleeeeeeeeeeeeaaaaaaaaaaaassssee
miss."
He sobbed as Hazel smacked his
bottom as hard and as rapidly as she could. The flesh of his buttocks bounced
and shuddered as she calmly delivered smack after smack upon his bare bottom.
Gail was amazed at the sight
before her. She felt a thrill run through her young body as Hazel methodically
reddened every inch of the boy's buttocks. She could see that already his neck
muscles were tightly tensed and his reddened face was held in a fierce grimace
as his punishment progressed.
Almost instinctively, Gail spoke
to him, surprising herself as she uttered the words. "My... Timothy you
must have been very disobedient to deserve such a punishment... is it hurting
very much?"
As she spoke, she slid off the
settee on to her knees and knelt by his head. Gently she took his face in her
hands and turned it towards her, watching him flinch and gasp as his bottom was
soundly smacked. "Poor Timothy, how embarrassing for you."
Gail's words and touch were too
much for the boy to bear; his anguish knew no bounds as the deliberate and
methodical chastisement of his bottom continued. What was left of Timothy's
self esteem had finally been eroded. For Gail to be talking to him in normal
conversational tones, while his bare bottom was raised up in the air and being
soundly spanked.
"I'mmm.... argghhh...
sorreeeee... argggh... misss."
The tears were flowing down his
cheeks as Gail looked into his eyes. She had never felt such a thrill as she
did now, holding his head captive while his bottom was methodically and
comprehensively smacked by his pretty cousin.
"Smaaaacccckk....
Smaaaaaaaccccck....
The punishment continued
unabated. Hazel did not seem to be showing any kind of fatigue; in fact she
looked cool and calm as she delivered smack after smack to his bottom. Vickie
looked on at the young boy's punishment.
`My God,' she thought; this young
woman certainly does not do anything by halves. "Argggggggghhhhhhhhh...
pleeeeeease... er no more please."
Timothy sobbed, acutely aware of
Gail looking into his eyes... a witness to his utter humiliation and
subjugation.
Gail could not resist further
embarrassing him. "Are you going to be a good boy when this is over
Timothy? Hazel is only spanking your bare bottom for your own good you know.
Promise me you will be good Timothy."
Her words further inflamed the
boy's sense of shame and despair, plunging his sensitive emotions into the
depths of abject misery.
"Smack... smack... smack...
smack..."
"Poor baby, you do seem to
be having your little bottom severely spanked. Never mind Timothy I am sure it
will all be over soon." Gail's words inflamed the young boy as Hazel
calmly continued her chastisement.
Hazel methodically covered his
buttocks with stinging slaps. Not one inch of his upturned cheeks was spared
from her attentions. He was red from the top of his bottom to the upper part of
his thighs. Her hand had even spanked in-between the crease of his bottom, the
access being made easier as he had moved his hips and legs in frantic
gyrations, vainly hoping to escape the pain of his chastisement.
"Arggggggghhh....
Pleeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeease m''missssssssssss."
Timothy sobbed, his bottom on
fire as Hazel calmly administered a comprehensive spanking.
"Poor, poor baby. Does it
really hurt Timothy... my you are getting a sound spanking." Gail
continued with her chiding of the young boy, aware that every word she uttered
caused him acute visible distress. "Does it hurt Timothy, poor baby, never
mind I am sure it is all for your own good."
"I promeeeeeeeeeeeees...
argggggggggghhhhhhhhhhh....oooooooooooooohhhh pleeease... n'nooooo
mooooooreee"
Suddenly the punishment stopped.
Calmly Hazel looked down at his face as Gail held his head in her hands.
"Well Timothy, have you learned
your lesson, or shall I continue, remember I can easily fetch my strap"
Timothy shuddered and sobbed, his
bottom stinging and smarting as if he had been stung by a swarm of bees.
"Pleeeeeeeeaaaase
nnnooooooooooo missssssssss.I'mmmmm mmm s'ssorry."
Timothy shuddered and sobbed, not
just with the pain of his spanking but the utter humiliation of it all.
"Well then... if you
promise, then it is all over."
Hazel gently began to stroke her
hand delicately over his bottom. Her fingers trailing between his cheeks and
down in between his thighs. Her touches were soothing and caressing as she
spoke softly to him.
"There then my poor baby,
it's all over now." She released his wrists and placed his arms at his
sides before stroking her hand over his back, her other hand gently caressing
him between his legs. She listened to his sobs as she quieted him as one would
a young foal.
Gail leaned forward and placed
her lips against his cheek, whispering gently.
"My you have had a sound
spanking haven't you... poor Timothy, what are we going to do with you."
Hazel could feel his penis
suddenly respond to her soft caresses. She felt a sudden throb against the
inside of her thighs as she squeezed them tightly together, adding further
pressure to his penis.
"Right Timothy, I am going
to let you up now. You must not touch your bottom yet... and of course you now
know better than to touch your penis... don't you?"
Timothy blushed, but such was the
redness of his cheeks that it would have been hard to discern were it not for
Hazel and Gail's close proximity to the boy.
"I... er... ppromise
miss." His body shuddered as he stifled a sob.
"Well come along, let's have
you up off my knees."
Hazel helped him up, watching
closely as his penis came into view. Although it was not erect it was engorged
and hanging downwards, thick and plump between his legs. Gail noticed it too;
taking both her hands from his face and watching him intently as he stood
upright.
Hazel immediately took hold of
his hips and placed him front of her so that his legs were touching her knees.
Timothy stood upright, his hands by his side, naked and shamefaced as she
placed her hand under his chin and looked deep into his eyes.
Both Susan and Gail watched
intently as Hazel spoke firmly but kindly to him.
"Well I think you can start
by apologising to every one. You may start with Mrs. Grant and then Susan and
Gail. Go and stand in front of Mrs Grant... off you go now.
Even Hazel could not have known
the extent of the boy's humiliation as he walked... stiff legged towards Mrs.
Grant. He was acutely aware that his penis was throbbing visibly, but dare not
cover himself. He sobbed as he approached her; standing some way back from her
in deference to his modesty. Even that was not to be allowed as Hazel spoke
sternly to him. "Move closer than that... come along, I want no more of
your nonsense." Timothy hung his head in shame and moved closer to Mrs.
Grant who was standing waiting to see what he would do.
Even in her wildest dreams,
Vickie would not have believed that she would have Timothy standing naked
before her, compliant, humiliated and subjugated to such an extent that he
would obey her without question.
His lips were trembling as he
looked up at her. She could see the embarrassment and humiliation in his eyes
as he spoke to her in trembling voice. "I am so sorry Mrs. Grant.... I
er...promise to be good. He looked down immediately, acutely aware of his
nakedness and the close proximity of his naked body to her. Vickie did not answer
him but instead placed her delicate fingers under his chin and lifted his head.
"My you have been in the
wars today haven't you Timothy. Never mind, I am sure you will behave yourself
from now on."
Before the boy could move away
she deliberately reached forward with her other hand and cupped his testicles,
her cool fingers enveloping his scrotum in a gentle but firm grip. The young
boy gasped in shock as she held him, his face showing his abject dismay as she
looked into his eyes.
Both Susan and Gail were
surprised at the familiar way Susan's mother handled the boy. They looked on
with anticipation as Vickie spoke gently to him. "Now Timothy, you will
have to get used to being handled and examined, we all have your best interests
at heart and we mean you no harm. I know that young boys get embarrassed by
having their genitals examined, but it is quite obvious that you have a problem
that must be dealt with."
Rather than let the boy go she
took her hand away from his chin and nonchalantly took hold of his penis. She
could feel him shiver as she quickly slid the foreskin back until it was
stretched tight.
"Right young man, you don't
seem to be sore, but I do think that your testicles are still quite large and
full for someone your age."
She turned her head towards
Hazel, who was delighting in her young charge's humiliation.
"I think Hazel that perhaps
you should check him before he goes to bed... If he seems any worse, you might
consider emptying his testicles before he goes to sleep. You don't need to
worry about measuring the amount, I was thinking more for his comfort."
Timothy felt his penis begin to
throb as Mrs. Grant casually lifted his erect flesh and at the same time hefted
his testicles, rolling the soft orbs between her fingers as she deftly slipped
his foreskin back up over the rim of his penis, before patting it softly. She
had never felt a penis so engorged and stiff as it throbbed under her delicate
touch.
"Right off you go and
apologise to Susan and Gail... and then perhaps you should have an early
night."
Timothy was close to fainting
with sensation as Vickie let go of him. He blushed profusely, his whole body
colouring up as he turned towards the two young girls. It was as if he was in a
trance as he approached them, acutely aware of his erect penis bobbing about as
he reluctantly walked towards them. He felt his stomach churn in dread, their
amused expressions giving him no respite from his humiliating nightmare. It was
Gail he spoke first. Laying her hand gently on his shoulder she drew him
forward.
"Poor baby, I know you are
sorry for being a naughty little boy, but we forgive you don't we Susan?"
Susan almost broke out in a giggle as she heard Gail's words.
"Of course we do... but you
still have to apologise, doesn't he Hazel?"
Hazel moved to stand behind
Timothy; placing one hand on his waist she smacked him briskly on his bottom.
Timothy gasped as he turned his head towards her. Hazel could see the look of
embarrassment and hurt on his face as she spoke to him.
"Now Timothy, place your
hands upon your head and stand up straight with your legs wide apart. "
Timothy blushed once more, a tear
rolling down his burning cheek as he quickly put his hands upon his head and
shamefacedly moved his feet until his legs were placed wide apart.
"That's better... now I see
that your penis is erect Timothy. Don't you think that that is rather rude
behaviour for a young boy? I think that you ought to apologise to the girls for
your rude behaviour too."
Timothy was almost near to fainting
with embarrassment as he turned his head to face forward and looked at Susan
and Gail.
"I am s...soooo sorry ...er
miss er and miss... I am sorry for er... being... er rude as well... er
pleaeeeeeeeease..."
Timothy choked on his words and
burst into tears. His humiliation complete as he stood naked and ashamed in
front of the girls. He could not believe his position, naked and fully on
display, in front of the two prettiest girls in his school.
If he had thought that his
embarrassment could not get any worse he was in for a shock as Gail deftly took
hold of his penis.
"Don't cry Timothy... I know
you are really a good boy. I suppose it is your medical condition that makes
this so stiff."
She accented her words by
squeezing the shaft of his engorged flesh. Skilfully she retracted the foreskin
at the same time she cupped his testicles with her other hand.
"Don't worry, I am sure that
everyone will help to make you better. Just turn around for me so I can have a
look at your poor bottom." She nonchalantly helped him turn by pulling on
his penis before letting go of him.
Susan stepped forward as Timothy
turned around and placed one hand on each of his bottom cheeks.
"You seem very red."
She said, as she spread the cheeks of his bottom. "Just bend over so I can
see you properly, you can take your hands down and hold your ankles... just as
if I was going to smack your bottom for you."
Vickie smiled as she watched her
daughter manipulate the boy to ever further degrees of embarrassment. She looked
on, rather taken aback by the confident way her daughter parted the young boys
buttocks, her young hands roaming over his flesh before slipping her fingers
between the pliant cheeks of his bottom, making him gasp with the intimate
contact. Susan smoothed her fingers between the crevice before sliding her hand
between his legs and grasping his testicles. She slid the other hand around his
waist and took a firm hold of his erect penis. She ignored the boy's
protestations as she handled him as though she already had a deft familiarity.
"I agree with mummy, I think
Hazel ought to milk you again when you get home... after all, your penis must
hurt with being so stiff and straight."
Timothy began to shiver, the
sexual sensation making him feel near to ejaculating as Susan casually played
with his genitals as if it was a completely normal occurrence. Gasping and
groaning he endured her intimate examination of his body as he stood bent over
with his hands grasping his ankles. He shivered and shook his mind in turmoil
at the embarrassment and humiliations of the day.
It was another fifteen minutes
before the boy was led, embarrassed and blushing down the garden path towards
his home. His penis still stiff and engorged tenting the tee shirt that Hazel
had clothed him in. He had followed obediently as Hazel walked in front of him,
opening the door of their cottage and beckoning him through.
Now as he lay in bed he
contemplated the events of the day, blushing as each embarrassing episode ran
through his mind. Hazel had bathed him, making him stand in the bathtub as she
had washed his body. Her hands had delved into every crevice, her thoroughness
sparing him no modesty. His penis and genitals as well as the sensitive opening
of his sphincter had been carefully soaped and washed.
He had been made to lay naked in
bed like a young child with the sheets and blankets drawn down to his knees.
Hazel had told him to just relax and that she would be back later.
Timothy could not help himself as
his thoughts turned to the humiliations he had suffered. Over and over he
replayed the most embarrassing moments, his face blushing an ever deeper red.
It was not long before Hazel returned.
To his surprise she had changed
into a white tunic dress, very similar to those worn by cosmeticians and dental
nurses. She was carrying a metal bowl in which were jars of moisturising creams
and tubes of lubricants. She placed the bowl on the floor by the side of the
bed and sat on the edge looking down at him.
He could not help but blush once
more as she examined his nakedness.
"Right young man, I am going
to milk you of anything you have left in these testicles of yours."
Casually she leaned forward and
lifted his scrotum away from his body. Timothy gasped at the cool and sudden touch
of her fingers upon his body and the humiliation of her words. It was only the
thought of another chastisement that kept him from clasping his hands to his
groin. He shivered as she gently placed her other hand between his thighs and
moved his legs apart.
"Now just lie still, and I
will attend to you. Just put your hands behind your head, there... that's the
way."
The next moments were composed of
acute embarrassment and bliss, as gently she leaned forward and blew gently on
his penis, watching as the flesh slowly became engorged and turgid. He closed
his eyes as her gentle fingers caressed him until he was fully erect.
Without warning she leaned
forward and kissed him full on the lips, her tongue invaded his mouth sending
him into ecstasy as her hand stretched the skin of his foreskin down the shaft
until it was stretched tight. Suddenly she pulled away from him, seeing his
mouth sag open with acute sensation.
"There my baby... lie
still... just part your legs a little more... there... that's the way."
He felt her hands leave his body
and heard the unscrewing of jar tops and caps before suddenly gasping as he
felt a lubricated finger slip between the cheeks of his bottom. His eyes flew
wide open as deftly she slid her finger up into his bottom. He gasped in
disbelief at the suddenness of his impalement.
"Arggggghhhhhhhhh...
oooooooooOOOOH... er miss" He cried out as Hazel slipped her finger
further up into him, finding the soft pliant flesh of his prostate gland.
"Just lie still, there's a good
boy." She cooed as she slipped her other lubricated hand around the
hardened flesh of his penis.
She leaned over him and whispered
softly. "Just relax now... it will all be over soon." Her soft voice
and sweet scent played havoc with his feelings, as did the soft hands that
probed inside his bottom and over the very tip of his penis.
Skilfully and diligently she
milked him, her finger applying a firm pressure and motion to his prostrate as
her fingers moved over his penis, pulling his foreskin up and down over the
corona of his sensitive flesh.
"Now then, I want a nice big
ejaculation from you... so open your legs wider and relax." Timothy had
begun tossing his head from side to side; such was the intensity of her
caresses.
Suddenly he felt his penis throb
uncontrollably; he squeezed his eyes shut as he felt the impending ejaculation.
Hazel felt it too and suddenly jabbed her finger hard against his prostate as
she began to milk him faster and faster. His hips reared up as the first spurts
of semen sprang from the tip of his penis.
"argggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...oooooooOOOOOOOOOOOOOOhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
Timothy thrashed his head from
side to side as the intensity of the orgasm took over his body from any
coherent movement.
"There my baby... what a good
little boy you are... let me just have a little more."
Hazel's finger stroked over his
prostate before jabbing hard at the sensitive gland, her deliberate firmness in
contrast to the softly spoken words, as she watched the young boy writhing in
torment from her ministrations.
"There we are," she
said brightly. "Lets just squeeze the last drops from you... then it's all
over. My you have been a good boy!"
Timothy gulped for air as he felt
her finger roam inside his bottom and her delicate fingers slide up the shaft
of his penis, ejecting the last drops of semen from him. She withdrew her
finger gently from his bottom and let go of his penis.
Taking the towel she wiped the
semen from his tummy and chest and folded it before wiping it between his legs
as if he was a baby. She drew up the covers and kissed him tenderly on the
lips.
"There... my poor baby; it's
been an exhausting day for you.... Never mind just lie back and go to
sleep."
Before he could collect his
senses she had left the room and turned the lights out. He slept almost
immediately. Such was his exhaustion that he never felt the covers being lifted
or the feel of the warm wash cloth that wiped over his chest and tummy and
in-between the cheeks of his bottom.
---------------------------------------------------------------------------
---------------------------------
Gail and Susan were lounging,
rather than sitting, on the opulent white leather corner-suite that occupied a
large area of the Old Rectory's sitting room. The stone-built Rectory was a
huge building, a testament to the affluent days of the clergy. It had been
bought by Gail's great grandfather after he had started the family business of
auctioneers and estate agents.
The business had flourished and
had soon become one of Europe's largest and most respected companies. The
Goodman family, although certainly one of the country's richest families, were
well liked and well respected within the rural community of Lincolnshire.
Constance Goodman was a woman of
quite outstanding beauty and grace. Her eclectic conversational skills and
fluency in several languages made her a natural choice as the county's
principal socialite.
Mrs Goodman was a keen and well
organised charity worker as well as a local magistrate. There was not a charity
ball, Gymkhana or cocktail party held within the county that she did not
organise. Her social skills were such, that most of her time was taken up with
her good works. She employed two secretaries, as well as a housekeeper, a cook
and two maids.
Her household staff enabled her
to delegate a considerable amount of the work, as well as always being prepared
for entertaining, visiting dignitaries or friends, at a moments notice. She saw
very little of her husband, who travelled almost constantly between the various
branches of the company throughout Europe and the Middle East. However their
marriage was a happy combination of individual interests, punctuated by
carefree holidays at home and abroad.
Constance entered the sitting
room, smiling at the two girls as she sat upon an ornate Georgian chair, facing
her daughter and Susan. She turned her head as Ami, the younger of the two
maids, entered with a tray of cocktails. She watched as the pretty young maid
bent over to place the tray upon the low coffee table situated in front of her.
Constance noted the sexy appearance of the young maid, wondering if perhaps the
pleated skirt of her uniform was perhaps a little short for the outward
conformity of the household.
She smiled at the girl, who curtsied
prettily before turning to leave the room. "Thank you Ami." She said
as the girl walked daintily to the door.
"You are welcome
Ma'am." Ami's well modulated voice called back as she exited the room.
Constance looked thoughtfully at
the two girls as she leaned forward and poured some of the contents of the
ornate cocktail pitcher into the three sliver stemmed glasses.
"Well from what you both
tell me I think that Timothy must be a very special looking boy... and I am
sure that Susan must have the same discerning taste as yourself Gail, that is
if you mean to pursue everything that you have told me. I remember meeting
Timothy's mother at a small charity gathering that we had here. I remember
thinking that she had a fragile beauty that is quite at odds with the look of a
lot of the ladies that we usually meet at these sort of functions. She was well
educated and well read, if I remember her correctly. I hope that she is soon
able to recover from her illness."
Constance watched as her daughter
picked up two of the drinks, passing one to Susan. She looked closely at her
daughter and friend, admiring the beauty of both of the girls as they sipped
their drinks.
Deep in thought, she looked out
of the open French Windows towards the ornate pool area, watching the strong
morning sunlight dance on the clear water of the kidney shaped pool.
Constance had not been shocked at
the knowledge of what the two girls had been up to over the last few days, nor
at the candid and detailed account of how they felt sexually, at being
intimately involved in not only Timothy's therapy, but his chastisement and
subjugation.
What had surprised her, although
not to any great extent, was their own calm and clinical assessment of their
intimate sexual excitement in having a boy under their control. Constance
smiled as she remembered Gail asking whether she thought that her excitement
was a sign that she was a dominatrix.
Constance allowed them to drink
their drinks without further conversation. She had wondered how long it would
be before her daughter would perhaps demonstrate a sexual trait that she
herself had kept so well hidden from the outside world. She had not known for
certain, but small incidents over the last few years had made
Constance suspect, that perhaps
her daughter was inheriting more of herself than just her beauty. Constance had
indulged herself freely, if not openly, in her sexual desires. She thought back
to the previous evening, when her daughter had stayed at Susan's house. She
closed her eyes for a moment as she relished the visual image. She had stood
looking down at Ami. The maid's naked body was being held face down, and
spread-eagled across the massage table. Her secretaries, Pat and Geraldene,
were each holding one of the girl's legs as Jessica held her arms stretched
forward. Constance had already delivered four stokes of the cane across the
trembling girl's naked buttocks. She had cruelly let the pain be absorbed into
the gentle writhing of the young girl's body before she had quickly delivered the
last two stinging strokes.
She shivered as she remembered
quickly delving her hand between the young maid's legs, eagerly thrusting her
fingers into the softness of the open moist vagina and frigging her to a
prolonged and relentless orgasm.
Now, she thought... as she looked
across at her daughter, it seems that Gail has found her own playmate.
Breaking the quietness of the
moment Constance spoke. "So you are having him here today, while Vickie
Grant takes Hazel over to Grantham for some shopping and then dinner... and you
say a nurse is coming here to er... relieve him of his semen?"
She smiled at her own loss of
words as both Gail and Susan grinned at her. Well I suppose that I will be able
to have a good look at this young man... and see whether he is worthy of you
both."
Gail could not help laughing as
she spoke her mother. "You will be able to get an absolutely first class
view of him, as we will be using the main bathroom and your massage table... so
I it will be quite natural for you to walk in at anytime." Constance
laughed, knowing that her daughter knew exactly what she meant.
"I could ask Pat and
Geraldene to give you a hand if you would like, I am sure that they would be
quite delighted to have a handsome young man at their mercy." Constance
laughed as the thought of her two young secretaries ministering to the naked
young boy.
Gail laughed, displaying her
perfectly white teeth between her beautifully made up lips. "I am sure
they would... and I don't think that that is such an outlandish idea... after
all they are most discreet and very attractive. Any way they will probably see
him in the pool as I don't intend that he will be allowed to keep his swimming
trunks on all day."
Gail looked at her mother
seriously for a moment. "I am going to be very careful... I cannot help
the excitement I feel having him under control, but I promise to temper it with
love and affection, after all I am going to look after him all his life...
although he doesn't know it yet."
Constance smiled. She was quite
confident of her daughter's standards of humanitarianism and knew that she
would have already thought things through. Gail smiled again as she continued.
"There is one thing I am
thankful for and that is that I have plenty of money to provide for whatever I
need."
Constance laughed at her lovely
daughter. "Well, your own inheritance from your Grandfather is over twelve
million and is growing nicely... and then of course it looks like Charlotte is
already going to be equally as successful in the business as your father is, so
I think your shares will bring in you so much money that you will never have to
touch your capital, however much you decide to spend."
Susan laughed as she spoke,
punching Gail lightly on her arm. "You really are a little rich girl
aren't you? But I must say you are the nicest little rich girl I know."
Both girls laughed as they relaxed against the huge cushions of the leather
suite. Constance got up from her chair, her lithe and well toned body was
graceful in movement,
"Come along you two.. it is
nearly half past nine. We need to make sure that you are ready with everything
for when the nurse arrives... and of course you will want to look your best for
Timothy."
The day had already been full of
embarrassment for Timothy. He had been woken by Hazel with morning tea and left
to drink it while she had run a bathtub of water. She had dressed in a smart
suit which accented her figure beautifully. Her makeup had been applied
perfectly and her hair shone with health as she passed in front of the window
upon re-entering the bedroom.
"Now Timothy, hop out of
bed, I am going to give you a thorough wash from top to bottom. I want no
nonsense from you as I will not be with you today. So I am going to ensure that
every inch of you is squeaky clean."
Timothy blushed as he looked up
at his cousin. Her beauty overwhelmed him, making him feel awkward and gauche.
He was acutely aware of his morning erection and of his nakedness beneath the
covers of his bed.
"Come along... up you
get."
Without waiting, she flipped his
bed covers, exposing his naked body to her gaze. Timothy responded almost
automatically, his hands shot down to his groin, clasping his genitals as Hazel
looked him up and down.
"Come along... I want you in
the bathroom now."
She ignored his blushing face and
his abject embarrassment as he lay upon his side with his hands clasped to his
groin and his knees pulled up, vainly trying to hide his naked body from her.
Without further comment she turned and walked into the bathroom, hearing his
movements as he struggled from the bed.
She watched as he entered the
bathroom. His hands were clasped to his groin and his knees were pressed
closely together as he teetered rather than walked through the door. She looked
at his naked body, admiring the perfect physique. Not too muscular and yet firm
with a natural tone. Perfectly proportioned, she thought as she moved towards
him.
She quickly raised her hand and
immediately slapped him hard across the cheeks of his bottom. She watched him
blush guiltily as she pulled his hands away from his body and propelled him
towards the bath. She saw to her delight that his penis was fully erect,
wobbling up and down as she manoeuvred him into the warm water.
"Stand up straight facing me
with your hands clasped on top of your head."
She stood back as she spoke and
watched with delight as awkwardly and with a shiver of shame he obeyed her
instructions.
She stood for several minutes
examining his body in minute detail. She felt a thrill run through her as she
realised that she had complete control and authority over him. His naked body
was hers to do as she pleased.
His embarrassment and humility
seemed to add to her excitement as she leisurely examined every inch of him.
His penis throbbed visibly and his body trembling as she prolonged his
humiliating examination.
He watched in shame as she took
off her suit jacket, revealing the crisp white cotton shirt she wore beneath.
He could not help but look at her large firm breasts as they pressed against
the sheer cotton. He blushed once more as she reached for the rubber apron that
hung behind the bathroom door, pulling it over her head and tying the canvas
tape tightly around her trim waist... she looked at him sternly.
He shuddered involuntarily as at
last she moved towards the bath and, stretching out her arm, she placed the
fingers of her hand between his legs and cupped his testicles. He could not
help the gasp of pure anguish that escaped from his lips as she held his testicles.
Moving closer she delicately took hold of his penis between her finger and
thumb.
"Now Timothy, look at me and
tell me, why your penis is erect like this?"
She felt him shiver as he looked
into her eyes, his face colouring to a deep crimson. He felt utterly humiliated
as he stammered a reply.
"I'm er... sorry er miss. I
don't mean it to... it just er.. happened.. er sometimes miss.. er in the
morning it er.. happens." His voice was tremulous as he tried to explain.
"Well we will have no more
nonsense with you. Now get those legs further apart and arch your back, come
along... yes that's the way. Now stay like that while I wash you all over. I
shall endeavour to ignore your stiffness."
She squeezed his penis between
finger and thumb to accent her words.
"But I won't always tolerate
such lewd behaviour."
Timothy shuddered at her words.
His penis throbbing uncontrollably as she held him. Her hands felt soft and
cool against his skin as she squeezed his scrotum and his penis firmly before
finally letting him go.
He was trembling all over as she
washed his chest and underneath his arms, her fingers deliberately grazing over
the sensitive nubs of his nipples.
She washed him, leisurely
enjoying the feel of his body and his utter humiliation. Her hands slid down
over his hips as she began to soap his thighs. Occasionally she leaned forward,
her cheek brushing against the tip of his erect penis as her hands soaped the
inside of his legs. Timothy was in absolute anguish and torment as he steeled himself
for the inevitable washing of his genitals. He shuddered at the thought that he
might lose control and ejaculate when she finally took hold of his penis to
wash it.
Hazel was enjoying the moment.
She realised that it was really the first time that she had the boy to herself
in a properly conditioned state. Although humiliated and embarrassed, she knew
that he had learned, through her punishments and ministrations, that it was
futile to protest. She looked at his face which was suffused in red blotches,
she smiled to herself as she saw his expression of utter humiliation. She
placed her hands on each of his hips and looked him straight in the eye.
"Well Timothy I want you to
open your legs wider and bend your knees, do you think you can do that for me?"
Her tone was softer and her voice caring as she looked at the stricken boy.
Timothy blushed instantly as he looked into her eyes.
Slowly and reluctantly he spread
his legs into and even wider posture. Trembling with indignity he allowed his
knees to bend outwards, his face flushing to a deep crimson, knowing that his
lewd position made him look ridiculous. He sighed with embarrassment as he felt
Hazel gently exert pressure on his hips, lowering his body even further. He was
acutely aware that his testicles hung freely from his body that he was
completely accessible to her.
Hazel let go of him and took a
step backwards to look at him. She took her time examining him from head to
toe, delighting in his expression of utter embarrassment.
She picked up a container of
liquid soap from the side of the bath and began to coat both hands with the
soft creamy liquid. She was aware that Timothy's eyes were transfixed to every
movement of her hands. She felt a thrill run through her whole body as she
stepped forward and slowly and deliberately brought her hand up between his
widely spread legs.
She flattened the palm of her
hand and grasped him firmly behind his testicles, her fingertips sliding
between the cheeks of his buttocks and his soft swollen testes resting against
her wrist. Slowly and deliberately she pushed her fingers between the cheeks of
his buttocks, hearing him gasp in protest as she slipped her middle finger up
into his bottom. His gasp turned to a groan as she slid her finger further up
into him, her knuckle sliding easily past the tightly stretched sphincter.
"Ooooohhhhhhhhhh.... Miss er
please noooo er miss."
He could not help protesting as
her finger seemed to fill him completely. He tried to rise up only to feel her
other hand grasp his testicles firmly, pulling down on the tender orbs as she
curled her finger inside him. The motion of her finger immediately stimulated
his prostate, so much so that he could do nothing but groan mightily.
"Arrggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
His mouth was wide open with
anguish as she stimulated the soft pliant flesh of his prostate. He began to
tremble as suddenly her hand let go of his testicles and instead grasped his
erect penis in a firm grip. Deftly she slid his foreskin down the shaft
exposing him fully.
"Arrrggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhh. Oh
please miss er... please I feeeell er"
His pleading was cut short by a
firm jab of her finger up into his bottom.
"Now Timothy, keep still
like a good boy, this won't take a minute. I am merely going to drain you of
any build up in semen you may have. Try and keep still and allow my hands full
access to your body, you will feel much more comfortable when I have
finished."
Hazel felt another thrill run
through her body as she enjoyed the utter delight of pressing her finger hard
against his prostate and stretching the skin of his penis back at the same
time. She could not have explained why this action gave her so much pleasure;
perhaps it was the utter control she was demonstrating over the boy.
"Oooooohhhh oooohhhhh
pleeeeeeeeeeaaaaaaaaaase MISSSSSS."
Timothy could not help but cry
out as his penis throbbed mightily in her hand. He seemed to have lost control
of his limbs as his body trembled violently.
Hazel's voice was deliberately
soft and gentle as she spoke.
"Poor baby, it will all be
over soon, try and be a good little soldier while I just do this."
Her measured tone belied the firm
action of her finger inside of his bottom or the firm pumping action of her
fingers around his penis.
"Arrrrrrrrrggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhh."
His moans only confirmed what she
already knew, that he was beyond the point of control. She milked his penis
quickly as she curled her finger incessantly in a `come here' motion against
his prostate. Suddenly she felt his body stiffen as if he were in a trance. She
could see that his eyes were wide open in shock as simultaneously she jabbed
upwards with her finger inside his bottom and scraped her fingernails over the
tip of his penis and down the shaft.
"Poor baby, it will all be
over soon, be a brave boy."
She cooed, as she expertly
brought him to the point of ejaculation. She deftly pushed her finger even
deeper inside him as she stimulated him mercilessly. She watched as huge
globules of semen erupted from his penis.
"There my baby... let's just
have a little more... oops... yes there we are."
Her voice was cool and collected;
in contrast to the firm manipulations of her fingers around his penis.
"There we are... one more
big squirt now.."
Hazel slid a second finger into
his bottom and pushed both straightened fingers hard up against his prostrate.
Timothy felt his sphincter being stretched wide and then suddenly an incredible
pressure deep inside him.
"Arrgggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh"
He cried out as his body
straightened and he stood up on his tiptoes.
"Arrrggggggggghhh...
pleeeeaaaaase... er miss."
Hazel was in heaven as the boy
stiffened totally as if he had been subjected to a violent electric shock. His
voice was filled with anguish as she forced a further eruption of semen from
his penis.
"There my poor baby... what
a clever little boy you are."
She slowed her hands and gently
extricated her fingers from his bottom.
"Let's just rinse you off
and then I will help you out of the bath."
Hazel could not help squeezing
her legs together as yet another thrill ran through her body. She watched the
naked boy as he tried to compose himself. She caught his eye, delighting in the
immediate deep flushing of his cheeks as he looked down in embarrassment.
She rinsed his body, her hands
causing him further embarrassment as she deftly and nonchalantly handled his
genitals, causing him to wince and groan as she stripped his foreskin back to
rinse behind the glans. He shuddered several times as she quickly slipped a
finger up into his bottom and then withdrew it again.
"There Timothy, just look at
you, you are all nice and clean. Now take you hands off your head and hop out
of the bath."
Her voice was bright and held no
warning of what she was to do next. She watched him struggling stiffly from the
bath, noting that his penis although not fully erect was swollen and turgid.
She took a chair and placed it in
the middle of the bathroom. Then she took two large bath towels from the airing
cupboard and a large plastic bottle of talcum powder from one of the shelves.
"Right Timothy come and
stand in front of me and I'll get you dried off." Hazel sat down on the
chair and smoothed the rubber apron over her lap.
Timothy could only sigh in
embarrassment as he stood before her. He blushed as she took hold of his hips
and pulled him forward. She parted her knees and drew him closer, before taking
the towel and drying his body.
He could not help look down at
the beautiful girl as she casually took hold of his penis... and, as if it was
the most natural thing in the world, retracted the foreskin with her delicate
fingers, before drying the sensitive flesh beneath. Timothy shuddered at her
intimate touch... and to his horror felt his penis begin to erect once more.
Hazel smiled to herself as she
lifted his testicles with the towel and... without concern for his modesty,
held his penis out of the way while she dried the soft and sensitive flesh.
"Right turn around and let
me do your back."
Timothy was a little quicker in
obeying her command: anxious to hide his tumescent penis from her gaze. Hazel
quickly dried his shoulders and then spoke to him; her voice bright and cheery.
"Right young man, bend over
and touch your toes. Come along now."
Timothy groaned as he complied
with her request.
"Now relax your bottom
completely I need to get right in between the cheeks."
Timothy blushed, as he tried to
relax his buttocks; his embarrassment seemingly never ending. He felt a sharp
slap on his bottom and then her cool hands upon his hip.
"That won't do at all, come
and stand by my side... no not like that... like this. There that's the way...
now over you go." Timothy was beside himself with anguish as Hazel
demonstrated that she wanted him to lay face down over her knee. "Oh
pleeeease misss... er."
"That will do Timothy."
Her tone brooked no argument as
she placed her hand on the small of his back and taking his arm, gently pulled
and pushed him until he was laid face down over her knee. His immediate
impression was the coolness and slipperiness of the rubber apron against his
penis and testicles, as he laid face down looking at the tiled floor.
"There that's better, you
must learn to do things first time. Now I am going to dry you and then I will
smack your naughty bottom for your punishment for bad behaviour before I talcum
powder you."
Timothy could not believe his
ears. He shivered at his own total humiliation as he felt her pry open the
cheeks of his bottom. Suddenly there was a firm slap upon the cheeks of his
bottom. He gasped as the hurt suffused through his buttocks.
"Now I should warn you
Timothy that I will add to your punishment if you do not obey me. Now RELAX
your bottom and allow me proper access."
All he could do was shiver and
blush with embarrassment as he allowed the cheeks of his bottom to go slack. He
tried hard not to squirm as he felt her fingers deftly explore the sensitive
flesh deep between the crease of his buttocks. He shivered and jerked as her
fingers, followed by the tickling of the towel, pried everywhere before she
seemed satisfied.
He felt utterly humiliated as she
placed her hand on the back of his head and pushed it down until he was looking
underneath the chair.
"I think that that is an
appropriate position for a naughty boy who is going to have his bare bottom
spanked over his guardian's knee, don't you Timothy?"
It didn't seem but a minute
before she had clasped her arm around his waist and delivered the first
stinging slap to his bottom.
"Smack... smack...
smack..."
Hazel's method of spanking was
set at a leisurely pace. She could feel the hardness of his penis through the
rubber apron as she proceeded to redden his bottom. She involuntarily squeezed
her knees together as she felt yet another thrill course through her body.
Timothy was beside himself as
painful smack after painful smack was administered to the tender bare cheeks of
his bottom.
"My word... I don't know
what to do with you Timothy... does it not embarrass you... having your cousin
take you over her knee and smack your bare bottom mmm...?
Timothy's embarrassment and utter
humiliation were so acute that he could hardly speak. "Oh pleeeease
miss" he cried between the sharp slaps that were covering his bottom.
"Oh please stop now miss... I promise I will er... obey you ...er
properly"
Hazel kept up a steady rhythm,
her hand stinging as she watched the cheeks of his bottom shudder and quake
with the onslaught. She could hear his sobs grow louder as she continued his
punishment; at last she stopped. Her hand gently smoothed over his bottom
cheeks in a caressing touch.
"Do you promise to be good
Timothy... or do I have to fetch my strap to you."
"Oh no pleeeease... miss...
I promise I will do everything you say. His voice was punctuated by sobs as he
spoke.
"Now lay still while I apply
your talcum powder."
Timothy didn't speak such was his
shame as he felt her apply talcum powder to the cheeks of his bottom. He could
not help but groan as her fingers again slipped between the cheeks of his
buttocks; her hand actually stretching them wide apart as she applied talcum
powder.
"Right Timothy... do you
promise to be good if I let you up off my knees?" Timothy shuddered and
sobbed as he answered her. "I promise... er miss... ohhhh... er I
promise."
"Well then I will take your
word as a gentleman I have never known so much fuss."
Hazel thrilled once more as she
saw that his penis was violently erect as she helped him up from her knees.
"Right stand in front of
me.. legs stretched apart either side of my knees, so that I can powder your
penis and your testicles."
Timothy blushed at her
humiliating instructions, acutely aware that his penis was pointed upwards and
was as stiff as it had been while he had been so intimately milked in the bath.
Shuffling his feet and blushing
furiously, Timothy followed her instructions, he could not hide the expression
of utter shame from his tear stained face.
"Now you see, Timothy. You
can do things when you apply your mind properly to it." He blushed once
more, groaning inwardly as he watched his pretty cousin casually empty a large
amount of talcum powder into her cupped hand.
Casually she took his penis
between the finger and thumb of her right hand and gently slid her left hand,
which was almost overflowing with talcum powder, between his legs.
He could not help shudder at her
intimate touch, gasping as she fondled his testicles before sliding her hand
behind the soft orbs of flesh and jiggling the testes as she covered the scrotum
with powder.
He was unable to stifle a groan
of anguish as she pulled his foreskin back exposing the sensitive flesh
beneath. Holding him firmly she took the bottle of talcum from her lap and
sprinkled the entire organ with white powder.
Placing the bottle down on her
lap she used both hands to rub the powder in the entire length of his erect
penis; ignoring his moans and gasps as she manipulated his most intimate flesh
as if it was a perfectly natural and everyday task.
She squeezed his penis hard
before she let him go.
"Well Timothy, I think you
are done. I am afraid you were not as obedient as I thought you would be, but I
shall of course thrash that out of you at some later stage. Now run along and
put on your gym shorts and tee shirt... er socks and training shoes. Do NOT put
on any underwear as I want your testicles to be free of encumbrance."
Timothy would have protested at
what she had told him to wear; but such was his hurry to get away... and the
thought of another smacked bottom, that he said nothing; instead walking
quickly to his bedroom.
An hour later, Timothy was seated
sulkily in the back seat of Mrs. Grant's car. His ears were burning with shame
as he listed to the conversation between Hazel and Mrs. Grant.
"Of course I had to smack
him yet again. He insisted upon clenching his buttocks, so that I could not
powder his little bottom properly; sometimes I really despair at the actions of
young boys. I mean after all, it is not as if he has anything to hide."
The journey continued with one
embarrassing comment after another. He tried to shut out the sounds of the
conversation from the front of the car... and instead concentrated upon the
views from the rear window. It was not long before they entered through the
ornate gates of a long driveway. It seemed impossible to Timothy, that anyone
could own so much land that it could take almost ten minutes to travel from the
gateway to the house. He was immediately in awe of the imposing building, it's
carved stonework and elegant portico publicising it's opulence and grandeur.
They pulled up in front of the
main entrance, the little Morris Minor looking insignificant against the
largeness of the stone steps that invited one to the large double oak doors.
No sooner had they stopped than
were greeted by Gail and Susan who happily skipped down the steps and ran
towards the car. Both Hazel and Vickie got out to meet the girls. Timothy could
not hear their conversation as they all stood together at the foot of the
steps. Occasionally one of them would look towards Timothy as he sat slouched
in the back of the car. He felt hot and sullen as well as ill at ease after the
humiliation of the morning. However he had not forgotten his punishment and as
such was attentive enough to make sure that his name was not being called to
get out of the car.
It must have been at least
fifteen minutes before Hazel opened up the door of the car and spoke to him.
"Come along Timothy, time to get out." There was something in Hazel's
voice that made him obey immediately. He got out of the car and walked with
Hazel towards the house.
"Right girls, remember what
I have told you. He has promised to be on his best behaviour, but if he should
forget himself, or resort to silliness, then you have MY permission to smack
his naughty bottom... and if you have to smack him I would like you to make
sure you do a thorough job. The correct way is with his trousers down and his
bare bottom over your knees. Do you think you could both do that for me, should
he be silly enough to misbehave?"
Hazel turned towards Timothy.
"Now young man, I want to hear you promise in front of the girls that you
will promise to behave yourself. Now... let me hear you say it."
Timothy was blushing furiously at
the demeaning words, his self esteem at its lowest ebb as he looked towards
Gail and Susan. His bottom lip was trembling as he lifted his blushing face to
address them both.
"I ...er ...er promise to be
good." His voice trailed off as he stood, shifting his weight from one
foot to another.
"Well I hope so..."
Hazel looked at Mrs. Grant. "Would you like to check his testicles, before
we leave? I think it might be and hour or two before the nurse gets here and I
wouldn't want to leave him in any discomfort."
Hazel knew that her words would
cause him far more discomfort that anything physical as she watched the boy's
cheeks immediately blush to a deep crimson. Before he could protest, Vickie had
moved towards him... and to his utter humiliation she slipped her hand around
his waist and drew him towards her, slipping her other hand quickly down the
front of his shorts.
The suddenness and the shock of
such an intimate and embarrassing action left Timothy standing stupefied with
his mouth wide open as Mrs. Grant casually explored between his legs before
hefting his testicles in the palm of her hand. He trembled in embarrassment as
she casually handled the soft orbs, her body pressed close to his as she
squeezed and weighed his genitals as if he were a prize animal.
He was acutely aware of her heady
perfume and the softness of her breasts as she leaned over him. Her wrist
brushed over the tip of his penis, making him gasp as she continued examining
his testicles at her leisure. Involuntarily he gave in to his curiosity to see
if the girls were observing his embarrassing inspection only to discover, to
his horror, that both girls were watching him with avid interest. He looked
away quickly, in betrayal of his acute and utter anguish, almost certain that
Susan had caught his eye as Mrs. Grant continued to squeeze and fondle his
testicles.
She sounded slightly out of
breath, as she stood up withdrawing her hand from within his shorts. He could
not believe that he had so summarily been subjected to such an undignified and
belittling experience.
"Yes... he will be fine. I
presume that you had to milk him this morning?" Mrs. Grant turned to
Hazel, talking as if the boy was not there.
"Oh yes, I gave him as
thorough an evacuation as I could. Of course, I really need more than one pair
of hands to do the job properly."
She turned to the two girls.
"You will ask the nurse to milk him thoroughly won't you? I think at least
twice on each occasion, I know the doctor would like him thoroughly
drained."
Timothy could only blush as the
girl's looked first at Hazel and then at Susan's mother, before turning their
attention towards him.
"Of course" Gail
replied. "I will ask whoever they send to make sure that he doesn't have
anything left inside his little balls."
Hazel could not help smiling as
she listened to Gail's reply. She knew that both the young girls could not wait
to get their hands on the boy.
3
Moments later, Timothy was being
led through the corridors of the grand house. Gail was leading him by the arm
as Susan followed behind. Timothy was trembling with embarrassment feeling
utterly gauche and awkward as he was herded through the opulence of the
ornately panelled corridors. His face was still suffused in a blush of bright
red.
His skin felt goose-pimpled at
the embarrassment and indignity of his humiliating examination by Susan's
mother. He could still feel the effect of her cool hands as she had handled his
genitals in such an intimate manner. Had he known of the preparations the girls
had made for his day at Gail's house, he might have fled there and then.
Both Gail and Susan had taken
great care with their preparation for the day ahead. They had dressed
carefully, knowing full well the effect that their good-looks had on Timothy.
They both chose summer dresses from Gail's wardrobe. The quality and French cut
of the dresses had impressed Susan so much that Gail had to laugh.
"I can't help it if mummy
always insists on buying me the best... just learn to enjoy the luxury."
They had decided that both of their dresses looked far sexier without a bra.
Susan had bent low over the dressing table as Gail was carefully applying her
makeup. The glimpse of bare breast through the vee of her neckline made Gail
laugh out loud.
"My god, the boy won't know
where to look if you bend over him like that." They both giggled as Gail
opened one of the drawers of her dressing table and handed a pair of sheer
French panties to Susan. "Put these on, they are so wonderful, it is like
wearing nothing at all." Gail could not help admiring the perfect form of
her friend as she lowered the small white cotton panties she was wearing.
Lazily she stroked her hand over Susan's shaven pubis as the girl daintily
stepped out of her own panties and put on the pair Gail had given her. Susan
held her dress above her waist as she admired the tiny triangle of lacy
material. "God, if you don't look sexy Susan." Gail rolled her eyes
as Susan twirled in front of the mirror, her buttocks were completely bared,
the wisp of material at the rear was completely hidden between the cheeks of
her bottom.
Later, impeccably dressed in
their summer dresses, they had paraded themselves in front of Gail's mother.
They both wore freshly applied makeup and their hair was brushed to a shine as
they twirled around.
"I must say that you both
look absolutely stunning. I hope that he doesn't faint at the sight of two such
beautiful girls. That dress looks so good on you Susan, that I am sure Gail
will agree with me that you should keep it." Gail nodded enthusiastically
before Susan had chance to protest at their generosity. "Don't say a
word... the dress is yours... now I think we just have time to add a little
perfume... remember you might want to arouse all of his senses." They all
laughed, the girls knowing full well that perfume would indeed assail the boys
senses even further.
* Timothy hardly had time to
appreciate the luxury of the furnishing and tapestries that adorned the wide
corridors as he was led through the large house. Gail held his arm in a firm
grip as she led him like a small child. They turned right and left several
times until they reached the large sitting room.
Constance was seated, her
beautiful figure poised gracefully with her arms resting on each arm of her
chair. Behind Constance, stood Pat and Geraldine, her two secretaries and to
the side of the room stood the two maids. Both Ami and Jessica were dressed in
short black silk skirts that showed off much of their shapely thighs. They
stood primly with their hands clasped in front of them as if waiting to be of
service.
To Timothy, Constance Goodman
appeared regal and serene as she sat in the large ornate chair. He felt awkward
and ill at ease as Gail led him to the centre of the large room. He blushed to
a bright red as she made him stand in the centre of lavishly patterned carpet.
Her deliberate positioning of him enabled everyone to have a perfect and
unobstructed view of his trembling form and at the same time instilled in
Timothy a feeling of humiliation. It was a perfect example of a young boy being
`on the carpet', an expression well known to many an English schoolboy who has
fallen foul of the school rules.
Constance was dressed impeccably
in a navy blue suit. Her face was beautifully made up; her hair beautifully
styled and brushed away from her face accenting the exquisite bone structure of
her face and the firm line of her jaw. Timothy looked down at his own clothes,
feeling utterly inadequate in his loose shirt and gym shorts. He shivered as
Constance spoke to him, her voice sounding so well modulated and cultured that
it further added to his feeling of inadequacy.
"So you must be Timothy.
Welcome to my house young man. My daughter tells me that you are a very nice
little boy, so I hope you are going to enjoy your day with us." Timothy
could only blush as Constance spoke to him. Her referral to him as a nice
little boy made him feel even smaller and more humiliated than he could have
ever imagined. It was no accident that Constance had chosen to address him as a
little boy, or that she had earlier suggested that Gail should place him in the
centre of the room. She could see by his blushing cheeks that this combination
was having her desired effect upon the young boy.
She was able to examine him at
her leisure as he stood before her with his head bent looking down at the
floor. She could immediately see that his face and physique were perfect in
every detail. He was she thought, the most delightful looking young boy that
she had ever seen. She remembered the fragile and delicate beauty of his mother
and understood where much of his good looks and rare physical form had come
from.
His shirt was tucked into his
shorts, accenting his slim waist. The shorts themselves displayed much of his
legs and Constance delighted in the fact that very soon she would be able to
examine his body without the hindrance of clothes.
Gail and Susan were standing to
the side of the room and Constance looked at their young faces as they in turn
watched Timothy. It was difficult for Constance not to smile as she glanced around
the room. The two maids were watching the boy in an almost predatory fashion.
She looked up over her shoulder, noting that there seemed to be similar
interest in the boy by her two young secretaries. In fact, Constance thought
that the atmosphere in the room seemed expectant and poised.
She looked across at Ami as the
delicate and tuneful sound of the door chimes echoed within the room. She had
no need to speak as Ami was already walking towards the double doors that led
to the main corridor.
"Tell me Timothy," she
continued, "would you like a drink of something? I have some fizzy drinks,
or perhaps a glass of milk. I know little boys need their milk if they are to
grow up to be strong and healthy." Constance watched his cheeks blush with
redness as he raised his head. Rather than wait for his reply she looked across
at Jessica and spoke softly to her. "Would you be so kind as to fetch our
young guest a glass of milk dear?"
Timothy blushed again, this time
his cheeks deepening in colour to an almost purple hue. He felt utterly
embarrassed and humiliated. Not merely at the belittling and humbling
experience of being addressed as a young child, but also of being the centre of
interest of so many beautiful young women. Each time he looked up at Constance
Goodman he was aware of the interest of her two young secretaries. He looked
down at the floor again, acutely aware that his stature in the eyes of Susan
and Gail would be further diminished by the condescending words of Gail's
mother.
It was in a haze of humiliation
and trepidation that he heard Ami return to the room and announce, "Nurse
Bishop has arrived Madam. I have taken her through to the main bathroom and
left her to make her preparations as she requested. I will go and give her a
hand and then bring her through to introduce her to you."
Constance looked up as her maid
spoke and then smiled at her benevolently. "Thank you Ami, yes do bring
her through as soon as she has finished, I would like to talk to her."
Timothy could not help himself
looking across towards the young maid. Her expression told him instantly that
she already knew why the nurse was here. He felt his cheeks burning with utter
embarrassment as she looked him up and down, her eyes openly lingering on the
area below his waist. He shivered involuntarily as he saw the glint of
amusement in her eyes and the sardonic look upon her face. He watched her as
she turned to leave, her short skirt swaying with the movement of her hips, a
movement which deliberately attracted his attention to the beauty of her long
legs.
Constance watched the young boy's
display of utter embarrassment. She was delighted that the nurse had arrived
early. What could be better than his present position as she asked the nurse
about his treatment. She looked to her right as Jessica entered the room
carrying a silver tray upon which was placed a tall glass of milk. Constance
smiled to herself as she saw that the glass held a brightly coloured plastic
straw. She watched as Jessica approached the young boy, enjoying his further
embarrassment as Jessica stood next to him and gently stroked his cheek as if
he were a small child. Jessica bent her head so that her face was close to his
and spoke softly to him." Here you are Master Timothy, I've brought you a
straw so you don't spill it"
Constance could see his
indignation and embarrassment as Jessica took hold of his hand and raised his
arm to take the glass from the tray. "There you are sweetie; take the
glass in both hands now like a good boy and hold on tight so that it doesn't
slip... there, that's the way." Jessica put the tray down on one of small
coffee tables and watched the boy take the glass.
Constance Goodman was delighted
with the performance of her maids. It was a masterly stroke for Jessica to
bring him a straw and make him hold the glass with both hands. The boy's abject
humiliation was manifested in the trembling of his hands as he put the straw to
his lips and sucked. She could see that he was so embarrassed that he did not
know what else to do. His blushing cheeks and trembling lips were a delight to
behold as she leaned back in her chair and watched him in his discomfort. He
shivered visibly as Jessica causally placed her hand on the nape of his neck
and ran her fingers upwards through his hair, tousling it as one would to a
very small child. Constance thrilled as the boy blushed again, his face
colouring quickly with an abrupt flush of shame.
To her delight Jessica stood over
him and watched him drink through the straw, her delicate fingers caressed his
neck as he half emptied the milk. He lowered the glass and looked at the pretty
young maid. His bottom lip was trembling as he proffered the glass to her. She
spoke gently but firmly, her eyes looking into his as he stood holding the
glass towards her.
"Now, be a good boy and
drink it all up. You want to grow up to be a big strong boy don't you?"
Before he could answer she took the glass from him and stepping behind him and
brought her arms around either side of his body, holding the glass next to his
face.
Timothy's arms were effectively
pinioned to his sides as she teased his lips with the tip of the straw. She
pressed her cheek next to his as she whispered softly to him, her perfume
assailing his senses with a delicate aroma as she spoke.
"Now sweetie, drink your
milk like a good little boy. There you see I am holding it for you so you need
not worry about spilling it." She brushed her lips against his cheek as
she pressed her body closer to his and teased the straw into his mouth.
Timothy was in turmoil as he
involuntarily drank from the glass until it was empty. His body trembled and
shivered as Jessica deliberately held him close.
"There you are sweetie, you
drank it all up like a good boy." She brushed her face against his cheek
before taking the glass away and stepping backwards. She smiled as she observed
the fresh flush of red which suffused his cheeks and the tremor which ran
through his body.
Constance disguised her delight
at the maid's management of her young guest. Instead she looked into his
blushing face, ignoring his shame and embarrassment.
"Well Timothy, what would
you like to do today? It is already quite warm outside, so perhaps you would
like to play in the pool. It is quite shallow near the steps. I know that
little boys enjoy splashing about in water." She did not wait for a reply
but instead raised her arm and indicated Pat and Geraldine. "I haven't
introduced you to my secretaries. This is Miss Patricia Foster and this is Miss
Geraldine Drew. They are both excellent swimmers so they will be able to keep
an eye on you when you are in the water. You can simply address them as `Miss'
if you are unable to remember their names.
Timothy was blushing with shame
and quite ready to protest his maturity when he was interrupted by the return
of the Ami who ushered the nurse through into the room. "Nurse Bishop
Ma'am." She announced as Penny walked towards Constance Goodman and held
up her hand in greeting.
"Please call me Penny
Ma'am." Penny was dressed in a white tunic which finished just above her
dainty knees. The thin fine-cotton tunic had buttons at the front which covered
the entire length of the garment. Constance noted that several of the buttons
were undone at the hem, revealing much of the girl's thighs as she moved and
also that the buttons at her cleavage were also undone. Penny moved forward and
stood by Timothy's side. "Thank you for the facilities Ma'am. I will be
able to manage quite well. I will just need some help as we don't have stirrups
for his legs."
Timothy blushed profusely as
Penny casually mentioned his impending treatment. He shivered as Penny
continued. "If it is alright with you, I will take him and give him his
enema... er and I think he will need shaving again."
All eyes seemed to descend on Timothy's
shorts as Penny casually announced that he was to be shaved again." He
started to tremble visibly as Constance spoke.
I was hoping er... Penny, that
you might explain his treatment to me. What exactly is the matter with
Timothy?"
Penny smiled, knowing full well
how shameful it would be for Timothy to listen to a detailed explanation of his
treatment. "Well ma'am he has a urological problem caused by his sexual
development... he has been producing semen at quite a high rate, He has never
ejaculated until the doctor extracted his semen the other day. His testicles
were so full that his scrotum was stretched to the point were it had become
painful. Doctor Ashcroft has decided that until he can be further examined that
he should be drained at regular intervals and observed to see if he gets down
to a normal level of production."
"I see, so is his scrotum
still swollen and painful?" Constance looked at Timothy as she spoke,
watching him quickly drop his eyes and look down at his feet.
Penny smiled at the question,
noting that Constance showed no embarrassment. "No ma'am. He is very much
better and the amount of semen I have extracted already shows signs of
decreasing in volume. Would you like me to show you, it will be easier and more
precise that my just telling you." She moved the boy forward by his arm
until he was standing in front of Mrs Goodman.
Timothy began to shiver as the
nurse moved in front of him and dropped down on to one knee. She reached for
the shoelaces of his white Gym shoes and began to undo them. To Timothy's utter
dismay she held his ankle and made him lift his foot, quickly divesting him of
both his shoe and sock.
"er plea..se NO Miss."
Timothy tried to protest as Penny
quickly removed the shoe and sock from his other foot and tucked both his socks
into his shoes and placed them to the side. She stood up so that her face was
only inches from his and spoke firmly.
"Now Timothy, be a good
little boy and let us have no nonsense." He blushed immediately. His
bottom lip trembled and a tears appeared in his eyes as he realised that his
body was to be bared in front of everyone..
He was about to plead again when
he heard Gail's voice. "Now Timothy, don't be awkward. You know jolly well
that Hazel has instructed both Susan and I to punish if you are a naughty
little boy. Now you wouldn't want everyone to watch you while I took you over
my knee and smacked your bare bottom would you?"
Timothy blushed mightily. His
face turning a deep purple as the shaming words were spoken. He watched as
Susan and Gail moved to stand next to the Gail's mother. He shivered as they
watched him, their faces showing no signs of sympathy for his embarrassing
predicament.
Tears welled up in his eyes as
Penny took his arms and lifted them above his head. He trembled as she pulled
his shirt up out of the waistband of his shorts and deliberately slipped the
palms of her hands under the material, sliding the garment upwards. All eyes
were upon him as she bared his torso. She pulled the shirt up over his head and
folded it neatly. It was Pat who stepped forward and took the item of clothing,
bending as she turned away to also take the shoes and socks. She placed the
items on one of the coffee tables. Quickly she returned to her position behind
Constance, careful not to miss any of the proceedings as Penny gently cupped
her hand under the boy's chin.
She looked straight into his
tearful eyes and smiled benevolently at him. "That's the way... just do as
you are told and you will be fine. You may put your hands down and keep them by
your sides."
Timothy looked at her, his eyes
pleading for her to halt the embarrassing stripping of his body in front of
everyone. Instead she patted his cheek and then took hold of his wrists and
placed his hands at either side of his body. "Just stay like that and hold
your head up so that everyone can see you. It is not good for little boys to
slouch." Timothy could never have envisaged the utter humiliation he felt
as he looked up. He could see that the maids seemed openly amused at his
obvious embarrassment and that both secretaries were watching him intently.
Penny moved around to his rear
and bent down on one knee. Deliberately she placed a hand on either side of his
waist, making him shiver as her cool hands touched his bared flesh. Slowly,
almost ritualistically she slipped her fingers inside the elasticised waistband
of his shorts, making sure that everyone was watching as she slipped them
downwards. She could feel his body shiver as the shorts cleared his buttocks. Her
face was almost touching the smooth mounds of flesh as she heard his gasp of
anguish as his penis and testicles were suddenly bared to the view of everyone
in the room. She deftly pushed them down over his thighs to his ankles, before
standing upright and moving around to his side. She bent down and took his
ankle, making him lift each leg in turn to step out of the shorts.
She could see that his penis was
swollen although not erect. She quickly glanced upwards, noting the look of
terror on his face as he managed another mighty blush. Penny took the shorts
and placed them with his other clothes. She was pleased to see that the boy had
not tried to cover his penis although she was certain that he was fighting a
hard battle to keep his arms by his sides.
His legs were pressed tightly
together and he was shivering as they all examined him from head to foot. There
was an audible sigh from Geraldine as she admired the boy's perfect physique.
Penny made sure that she did not obstruct anyone's view as she moved to his
side and tapped his buttocks lightly. "Stand with your legs wide apart and
place your hands behind your head for me there's a good little boy." She
placed her hand upon the back of his leg and almost sensuously slid her fingers
in-between his thighs, pressing against his flesh until he reluctantly parted
his legs. The coolness of her fingers and the embarrassment he felt caused him
to shiver as slowly he raised his arms and clasped his fingers together behind
his head.
To his utter dismay he felt his
penis twitch, the warning throb that he had been dreading so much suddenly
pulsed through his penis. Whether it was the cool touch of Penny's hands, or
that his body had been bared in front of such beautiful girls he did not know.
He trembled as a further pulse ran through the shaft of his burgeoning penis.
He dare not look down, but was acutely aware that his penis was erecting. Penny
stood behind him and looked around him, making sure that everyone had a perfect
view of his naked body.
Gail and Susan watched as Penny
repeated the tapping of her fingers against the inside of his thighs until the
boy was standing with his legs spread widely apart. Susan was fascinated by the
gradual lengthening and thickening of Timothy's penis. She watched it as it pulsed,
the foreskin retracting backwards from the mushroom shaped head. It twitched
and grew until it was pointing outwards and upwards from between his thighs.
Both Pat and Geraldine smiled with amusement as the boy's turgid member
extended to a full and throbbing erection.
Suddenly the embarrassment became
too much for Timothy. In a fit of acute trauma his hands quickly darted to his
groin. He grasped his penis and pulled it against his tummy, his hands
flattening as he hid his genitals from view.
Penny did not seem the least bit
perturbed by the action. Her voice was cool and measured as she addressed Mrs
Goodman and the girls. "Oh dear I am afraid little boys seem to want to
play with their penises at any opportunity. It is an unfortunate and dirty habit.
I think perhaps Timothy is a little boy who needs taking firmly in hand."
Timothy could not help shivering
with embarrassment as Penny spoke as if he were a small child. He was about to
protest that he was merely covering himself out of modesty when Gail and Susan
moved to stand at either side of him. Without a word they gently took his
wrists and pulled his hands away from his groin. They held his arms outwards at
almost at shoulder height. Gail managed to hold his arm in position while she
moved to stand behind him. She bent his arm upwards until his fingers were
touching the back of his neck and then beckoned for Susan to place his other
hand in the same position.
"Now keep your hands clasped
together like the Nurse has instructed."
Timothy gasped as Gail smacked
him firmly upon his bare bottom.
"Do you understand me
Timothy?"
He gasped, hardly managing to
speak with the sudden indignity of being smacked by the young girl. He blushed
and hung his head in shame.
I'm sooooo sorry ...er ... misss"
"You may well hang your head
you naughty boy. I should think you are... very sorry indeed. Now we will have
no more nonsense while my mother inspects you. You are a very lucky little boy
to have so many people take an interest in you. So my young man you will do as
you are instructed... do I make myself clear?"
Timothy groaned in anguish, his
voice tremulous as he replied. The shame and utter humiliation had drained him
of any further resistance as he turned his head to look at Gail. Tears rolled
down his cheeks as he spoke.
"I am so sorry miss... er I
promise."
Gail delighted in her authority
over the beautiful young boy. Deliberately she looked him over from head to
toe, making sure that he was aware of her casual inspection of his naked form.
She stood back and admired the red mark her hand had made on the soft flesh of
his bottom before she accompanied Susan to stand next to Pat and Geraldine. She
spoke to Penny who was standing back several feet behind Timothy.
"Please proceed with whatever
you were going to do. I am sure Timothy will behave like a proper young man
now." Penny delighted in Gail's handling of the young boy as she stepped
forward and without preamble slipped her hand between his buttocks, sliding her
fingers down between the pliant mounds of flesh and then forward slipping them
between his legs until she was able to cup his testicles. She slid her other
hand around his waist so that her fingers rested on his tummy. She could feel
the young boy shiver at the intimate contact of her fingers.
She addressed Mrs Goodman
deferentially. "If you would like to feel his testicles you will notice
how large and swollen they are compared to other little boys of Timothy's
age."
Penny had been careful in her
description of the boy, taking her cue from the Mrs Goodman and the girls. She
continued, her tone nonchalant as if it was perfectly normal to have a young
boy stripped naked and standing with his hands clasped behind his neck and his
legs splayed wide apart while his testicles were being held forward for
everyone to see.
Timothy shivered as Penny
casually rolled his testicles within his scrotal sac. His nakedness was
accentuated by the cool breeze that wafted through the double glass doors which
were opened to the outside patio and pool area. He looked at Mrs Goodman as she
spoke. His cheeks blushing as she stood upright, her graceful body only inches
from his own nakedness.
"I have some medical
knowledge and I think this would be an excellent opportunity for me to examine
him."
Although Penny was surprised that
Constance had not immediately taken hold of the boy's testicles, she smiled as
she realised that Constance intended to examine the young boy far more
thoroughly. She let go of his testicles and letting her fingers trail between
his legs, stepped backwards and stood to the side.
She watched as Constance placed
her hand under the boy's chin and held his head so that he was forced to look
at her. She spoke softly as she looked him in the eye.
"Now Timothy... open your
mouth I want to have a look at your teeth. His chin was trembling with emotion
as he opened his mouth. Constance moved closer to him and immediately felt the
tip of the boy's erect penis press against her thighs. Deliberately she let the
material of her skirt play against the tip of his penis as she examined his
opened mouth. She moved his head from side to side as she looked into each
side, noting the whiteness and the symmetry of his teeth.
Gently she placed her hands on
either side of his head, feeling the bone structure of his cheeks and moving
her hands gently around his small ears. Constance was already quite sure that
she had never encountered a young boy of such perfect proportions and such good
looks. Apart from the obvious sexual pleasure of having a young boy naked and
obedient to do with as she willed, Constance also had a purpose to her
examination. She was sure that Gail had already had an opportunity to examine
the boy closely, but Constance was keen to see if he was really as perfect as
he appeared at first glance.
Timothy was in turmoil he could
feel his penis throbbing wildly with the constant stimulation from the contact
with Mrs Goodman's body as she moved to and fro. The touch of her hands was
soft and gentle upon his face and head, almost a caress as her fingers traced
downwards on to his neck. The sexual stimulation to his senses was so great
that he felt a fierce throbbing between his legs, a jolt of sensation that
seemed to travel upwards from deep inside his bottom to the very tip of his
penis..
Constance was well aware of the
effect she was having upon the young boy. Fearing that he might suddenly
ejaculate, she stepped back abruptly and placed her hands upon his chest.
Watching his blushing face carefully for signs of sexual emotion, she allowed
herself the luxury of smoothing her hands over his young torso, her fingers
played around his nipples causing the sensitive nubs of flesh to stiffen. She
continued her exploration of his body, letting her hands gently trail down over
his tummy and then ultimately slide around his slim waist.
She looked at his throbbing
penis, marvelling at the stiffness and size of the straining flesh. She was
aware that he had followed her gaze and she quickly looked into his face,
seeing his cheeks flush with redness as she caught his eye.
She smiled at him as one would to
a small child and spoke in a gentle voice.
"Now Timothy I want you to
keep very still while I examine your penis and your testicles. Do you think you
can do that for me?" She delighted at the tremor of embarrassment that ran
through his body as she sat down on the edge of her chair and placed her knees
daintily together between his legs.
She looked into his eyes, waiting
for a reply. She observed a second shiver of embarrassment as he struggled to
speak.
"Er... y'yes er...
miss."
No sooner had he spoken than
Constance leaned forward and delicately took hold of his penis. She placed her
thumb beneath the pulsing shaft and her fingers in a row upon the top of it as
if she was holding a clarinet.
"Now keep very still while I
retract your foreskin."
Timothy shivered and shook as
Constance gently smoothed the outer skin of his penis backwards towards the
base of the shaft. He groaned as the foreskin slid away from the glans, revealing
the entire head of his throbbing member. He watched in horror as she placed the
forefinger and thumb of her other hand gently against the rim of the glans and
stroked the end of the foreskin back even further until it was stretched tight.
The sensation of her cool fingers
against penis was almost too much to bear; he could not help but look at what
she was doing as she spoke to him, her voice bright and matter of fact.
"Well you are nice and clean
behind your foreskin Timothy. Did you manage to wash yourself, or did your
niece have to wash you?"
The Question embarrassed him so
much that he looked around as if for help, only to see that Gail and Susan were
both looking down at his throbbing penis as indeed was everyone else in the
room. He expelled his breath in burst of exasperation and abject dismay as his
humiliating experience continued.
Constance looked into his eyes,
her pretty lips pursed as she waited for the boy to reply. "Well
Timothy... were you able to manage to wash your penis yourself?"
He groaned inwardly, his face
turning bright red and his fingers clenching together behind his head in
anguish. He could feel his penis throb as she held his member delicately
between her fingers, her gentle touch keeping him erect and in utter humiliation.
There was a trembling in his
voice as he looked at the beautiful face of Mrs Goodman.
"... oh... er...please....
er ...it was urm Hazel miss...that washed er... me."
Constance smiled at him as his
bottom lip began to tremble. Her beautiful features held an expression of
kindness and care as she spoke gently to him.
"I thought as much, she was
obviously very thorough. Little boys should be discouraged from touching their
own penises. It is a disgusting habit and one that I am sure your mother would
never condone. I am sure that your niece will take you in hand while your
mother is away. Gail tells me that she is a very competent young lady."
As she finished talking she let
go of his penis and then casually tapped it with her fingers as if to emphasise
the point. She watched the rigid flesh wobble and sway as she tapped it once
more. She waited a moment, delighting in his embarrassment before taking a much
firmer hold of his member with her right hand, gripping it tightly while she
scraped the tip of her perfectly manicured finger nail over the opening of his
urethra.
His immediate reaction was to
push his bottom backwards and gasp loudly as he tried to escape the acute
sensation. Constance held him firmly and repeated the procedure, ignoring the
frantic gyration of his hips as she teased the sensitive opening. She paid no
attention to the boy's acute dilemma, instead she addressed Gail and Susan as
she held his penis tightly.
"Have you both noticed how
beautifully he has been circumcised? The foreskin has been cut so that it still
extends over the glans but leaves the skin quite free to travel backwards and
forwards. If you ever need to bathe him, you will find it quite easy to retract
the skin so that you can wash him thoroughly. Most little boys are not as lucky
as Timothy to have someone to wash them properly and make sure that they are
absolutely clean."
Timothy could not help but look
at Susan and Gail as he heard Mrs Goodman's demeaning comments. There was a
look of pure horror on his face, almost a plea to the girls that what she was
suggesting must never happen.
Casually Constance tightened her
grip upon his penis as she placed her left hand beneath his testicles. She
delighted in his tormented movements as he tried to stand on tiptoe to escape
the acute sensation of her fingers. It was to no avail as her fingers enveloped
his scrotum. She squeezed the soft orbs firmly, but not hard enough to cause
him pain although the anguish upon his face was there for all to see.
"Well Penny he seems in very
good order. His testes are very large aren't they? I am sure he will feel
better after you have made him ejaculate. Would you turn him round for me and
bend him over so that I can look between the cheeks of his little bottom?"
Timothy blushed again... an
immediate and violent reddening of his cheeks as he heard Mrs Goodman's words.
Like all young boys he had a fearful dread of having his bottom stretched and
bared for everyone to see. He shuddered as she squeezed his testicles and
stretched his foreskin backwards once more, holding him completely captive
while she looked into his blushing face and addressed him.
"No nonsense now young man.
Do as Penny instructs you, promise me now!"
She held him firmly by both his
penis and testicles as she looked into his face. His lips were trembling
visibly and his cheeks were flushed with crimson as he fumbled for words.
"Arrggghh... ooohhh... I
er... promise miss."
His voice was tremulous, his
nervousness and sense of utter humiliation was written all over his face.
Constance could see at a glance that he was almost in tears as she let go of
him and leaned back in her chair while she watched Penny manipulate him into
position. The young nurse spared him no modesty as she moved and adjusted him until
he was well bent over with his legs wide apart. Penny had deliberately made him
spread his legs far wider than necessary and to add to his humiliation she had
made him grasp his ankles like a schoolboy waiting for punishment.
She looked satisfied with her
final positioning of the young boy, observing that his penis and testicles were
hanging down freely from between his legs. His penis, although engorged, was
not fully erect.
Constance could see his bright
red face, which was partly obscured by his genitals as she leaned forward and
studied him intently. The sound of his breathing had become quite laboured,
partly because of his bent position, but more, Constance thought, because of
his feeling of acute embarrassment.
She had heard the quick intake of
breath from the girls behind her as the boy was made to assume his position.
Even with this undignified posure, there was no denying the symmetry of his
form. Constance had a sudden urge to stick her finger straight up into his
bottom, although outwardly she appeared cool and clinical as she leaned forward
and placed her hands upon each cheek of his bottom.
Gail watched with delight as her
mother lifted her elbows so that the fingers of both hands met exactly over the
deep crease of his buttocks.
"Now Timothy... just relax
your bottom cheeks while I examine you."
Her voice was soft and caring as
she pressed the tips of the fingers between the crevice of his bottom cheeks.
She thrilled at the sudden quaking of his buttocks as she pried open the firm flesh.
She could see from between his legs the sudden blush to his upturned face as
she stretched him wide.
"argggghhhhh... oooh
please...er noooo."
He could not control his
involuntary plea as his buttocks were forced apart. He began to shiver, not just
with the physical discomfort he felt, but also with the utter embarrassment of
having the very core of his bottom exposed for everyone to see.
Constance was delighted with the
small and neat rosebud of his sphincter. She would have liked to impale him on
her finger there and then, but had already decided that there would be plenty
of opportunity later.
"I see that you are clean
here too Timothy. Am I to presume that your cousin washed your bottom for
you?"
Timothy was in turmoil, his
humiliation complete and utter. His buttocks were stretched widely apart and he
could feel the cool air from the open doorway against his sphincter. He knew
that everyone in the room was watching his intimate and humiliating inspection.
He heard the question through a haze of abject embarrassment and anguish. He
hardly recognised the sound of his own voice as he replied.
"er... Hazel washed er... me
miss."
His words were so soft and
tremulous that they were almost inaudible as he admitted the embarrassing fact
to Mrs. Goodman.
He shuddered involuntarily,
feeling a huge shiver running through his body, as her fingertips moved further
in-between his buttocks. He moaned suddenly as he felt the first contact to the
sensitive opening of his bottom.
"Arggghh... oooOOOH...
please noo... no"
His gasp of anguish did nothing
to deter Mrs. Goodman from proceeding to tease his sphincter. Deftly her neatly
manicured nails traced over the puckered entrance to his anus, causing the
flesh to recoil and constrict violently each time she touched it.
"Keep still now, I am not
going to hurt you, but I will smack your little bottom if you are going to
behave like a baby."
Her words completely defeated the
young boy. He shivered in shame as she continued her probing.
"Now just relax your
buttocks and give me proper access. Sometimes I despair at the antics of little
boys."
Constance looked up at Penny who
had been enjoying watching her competent examination of Timothy. Constance
spoke to her as if the boy were not present... although she still held his
buttocks apart and was completely ignoring the squirming and shivering of his
naked body.
"I will not examine inside
his bottom until after he has had his enema. I am sure that Ami and Jessica
will help you prepare him and then perhaps Pat and Geraldine can come through
and help you when you are ready to extract his semen. Does that sound alright
to you?"
Penny smiled to herself; she
thought that Constance would have loved to have penetrated his bottom with her
finger. She resolved to make sure that she provided her the right opportunity.
Timothy listened in horror as they discussed him. He felt so belittled and
humiliated that tears welled up in his eyes. He felt Constance remove her hands
from the cheeks of his bottom and then a light tap on both of his buttocks as
she bade him stand up.
"Come along Timothy up you
get and off you go with the nurse." Constance watched him struggle to an
upright as she beckoned her maids to come forward. Ami and Jessica did not need
any further prompting as they quickly moved to each side of the boy and took
his hands in theirs. Timothy blushed once more as the pretty maids looked down
at his swollen penis. Neither of them bothered to hide their amusement at his
embarrassing nakedness.
Penny could not help smirking as
Timothy shamefacedly looked down to see that his penis, although not fully
erect, was pointing outwards towards the young nurse.
"If you will bring him
through, I will get him ready." Penny announced to the young maids as she
turned around and proceeded towards the corridor which led to the large
downstairs bathroom.
Gail and Susan watched with
delight as Timothy was led out of the room, the young maids walking at either
side of the naked boy as they followed the nurse towards the door.
4
Timothy was in turmoil. Never in
his wildest dreams had he contemplated a predicament, so humiliating, so
utterly embarrassing that he was in constant angst. Just a few days ago he had
viewed himself as being a mature young adult. His role as man of the house had
certainly been true as far as the tasks he performed. His mother had always
treated him as being a caring and useful son who, after the death of his father
and as soon as he had become old enough, had taken care of the many tasks that
were required within the household.
He had, like many young boys,
always felt embarrassed and awkward when he was in the company of the opposite
sex. If the girls were pretty he felt doubly shy, always feeling gauche and ill
at ease in their presence. Susan was the only pretty girl that he had ever
dared to talk to... and that was because she lived next door to him and that
his mother often instructed him to go over and help with some chore or other.
Since the age of ten he had made
sure that wherever possible he was never in circumstances where he would be
undressed in front of others. He had always locked his bathroom door, at least
until the time he was sure that his mother was respecting his privacy.
At school he had relied on the
indifference and hurry of the changing rooms to make sure that he was alone
when he had to change to and from his sports clothes.
He had balked as he first entered
the large ornate bathroom. Right in the middle of the black and white tiled
floor of the bathroom, stood a huge cast iron and enamelled bath. Next to the
bath was a semi-circular freestanding sink with a large flattened area between
the taps where Penny had placed many of the creams and lubricants she carried.
Timothy had not been able to help
himself from looking at the large table which stood next to the portable
massage bed; its surface was littered with several clear plastic enema bags,
each holding a litre of solution. Long tubes which were attached to the corner
of each of the bags, they appeared ominous with their large bulbous shaped
nozzles. There were several gel suppositories of various sizes as well as
several pre-lubricated retention plugs. To Timothy the most frightening object
was the huge syringe which had already been filled with a clear liquid.
As he lay naked upon the massage
table, his distress was so great that he felt near to fainting. They made him
sit upon the table and lie back until his head touched the pillow. The two
pretty maids unceremoniously lifted his legs and splayed them outwards so that
his knees were pressed towards his chest, raising his bottom up from the table.
He felt completely open and exposed. His buttocks were parted and stretched
wide and his genitals lay bare between his raised thighs, rudely displayed for anyone
who cared to look.
Both Jessica and Ami were able to
hold his legs easily with one hand. Jessica began to stroke the inside of his
thigh, her fingers trailing lightly over his smooth skin as she looked into his
blushing face.
To his distress he felt his penis
becoming erect as the nurse casually donned rubber gloves and openly and
deliberately made a great show of applying gel onto the fingers of her right
hand. She made sure he was watching as she lowered her hand towards his widely
parted bottom.
"Deep breaths now sweetie
and just try and relax like a good boy. There that's the way... in out, in out.
Nice and deep."
Penny delighted as the boy
struggled to breathe deeply, his trauma interrupting his breathing with a gasp
as Penny slipped her hand between his buttocks.
"There that's the way."
She cooed as she deftly inserted a lubricated finger up between the cheeks of
his bottom. The maids watched in fascination as Penny intimately teased the
young boy's sphincter with the tip of her finger. They watched as the muscle
seemed to recoil as she moved her forefinger in a circular motion.
"Relax now sweetie... I am
just going to open your little bottom up for the nozzle. Don't clench your
bottom so... oops there we are."
Timothy closed his eyes in
embarrassment as he felt the nurse's fingertip suddenly slip through his
sphincter and up into his bottom. The sensation was agonisingly intense as she
casually probed his bottom opening, her finger first retracting and then
pushing further inside him with an upward movement. When she was satisfied that
he was sufficiently lubricated she slid her finger up in such a vigorous motion
that her knuckles slapped against the cheeks of his bottom.
"Oooohhh pleeease miss...
arggghhh."
"Just relax sweetie pie,
your little bottom is so tight and I don't want to hurt you with the
nozzle."
Timothy blushed, his cheeks
turning bright red and his eyes squeezing shut, as the nurse continued probing
deeper and deeper into his bottom. Suddenly he felt soft fingers curl around
his testicles and lift them upwards. Involuntarily he opened his eyes to see
that it was Ami who had casually taken hold of his scrotum. Her sexy
mischievous eyes held an enquiring look as if she was daring him to reveal the
sensation her hand was eliciting from his sensitive flesh.
Deliberately she jiggled his
testicles, causing his penis to wobble back and forth. Ami knew just how to
elicit the maximum of sexual sensation from her touch. Her long slender fingers
and beautifully manicured nails caressed and grazed over his plump testicles in
such a way that the he felt a throb deep within his penis.
The onslaught of stimulation at
the hands of the young nurse and the maids was too much for him to bear and he
moaned desperately for them to stop.
"Ooohhh pleeeeeeeeease....
Er mmm... misss.. er nurse."
He shivered with embarrassment as
Ami looked down at him, observing his distress with an almost wicked delight.
She curled her fingers behind his testicles, letting her nails scrape gently
against the puckered skin.
"Poor baby, having such
swollen testicles at your age! It will much better when the nurse empties them
for you."
Ami delighted in the blush that
suffused his cheeks as she spoke to him like a young child. Her fingers
suddenly squeezing the soft orbs of flesh she was holding.
Timothy's mind was in an utter
confusion of emotions. His flesh felt goose pimpled and sensitive to every
touch. He could feel every movement of the nurse's finger inside his bottom.
His hips were trembling as he felt an incredible pressure each time her knuckle
slipped in and out of his sphincter. His testicles were being cajoled and
fondled so casually and nonchalantly by the pretty young maid, that it was if
the sensation she was causing to him was of no consequence.
He turned his face to pillow in
shame as he felt his penis throb and pulse as the girls casually stimulated
him, seemingly without concern as to his feelings.
Penny saw his penis throb
violently and noted that a clear drop of glistening moisture had appeared at
the very tip. She knew that if she was not careful that it would not be long
before he lost control and ejaculated.
Quickly she pulled her finger
from his bottom and reached over to the table for one of the enema bags and a
large gel suppository. With a deft and practiced movement she slipped the end
of the nozzle into his bottom and released the tie. She pushed upwards as water
began to enter into the long tube.
"Arggghhh....
oooooOOOHH."
Timothy almost yelped as penny
slid the lubricated tube up into his colon. Immediately she began to squeeze
the bag, observing the boy's face as the water flooded into his tummy. She
continued to squeeze in a long fluid motion that kept the water at a constant
pressure.
"Arrggghhh... ooohhhh.. please
miss."
Penny saw him grimace and stopped
for a moment. "If you would rub his little tummy Jessica, it will make it
easier for him. Jessica smiled knowingly at Penny and promptly laid the palm of
her hand flat on his tummy and began to stroke in a circular motion. She made
sure that her wrist smoothed over the tip of his penis as she caressed his
flesh. Penny could not help give Jessica a conspiring look as the young maid
deliberately brushed her wrist against the boy's penis on each rotation of her
hand.
"Ooooohhh er... please er
missss."
Timothy was writhing upon the
table by the time the entire contents had been expelled from the bag and into
his tummy. Although he was not in pain the acute sensation of the water gushing
inside him had stimulated his prostate. The maids continued to caress his
flesh, their experienced touches eliciting the maximum amount of sexual
stimulation from the young boy's sensitive body.
Penny held the bag high and
squeezed once more, making sure that the entire contents had entered his
bottom. She placed the empty bag on the surface of the table and took the gel
suppository. With a practiced motion she slid the tube from his bottom and
quickly pushed the large gel suppository hard against his sphincter.
"Ooooh missssss."
Timothy hissed as he felt the pressure against the opening to his bottom.
"One big deep breath... you
can do that for me Timothy."
Penny did not wait for Timothy to
take a deep breath. Deftly she slipped the large torpedo shaped gel suppository
straight up into his bottom, her finger sliding up through his sphincter as she
pushed it home.
"Argggggggghhhhhh...
Nooooooo..."
"Never mind sweetie it's all
in now." Her voice was soft and gentle in contrast to the firm thrust of
her finger as she forced it well up inside him.
"There sweet baby... that
should keep you water tight while I just give you a quick shave." She
could see his face freshly reddening as she left Ami holding his testicles and
Jessica slowly smoothing her hand over his bloated tummy.
His shaving was carried out in
complete silence. The embarrassment of having his testicles lifted this way and
that, while shaving foam was liberally applied over all his pubic area and
in-between the cheeks of his bottom, left him dumbstruck.
He sighed and laid his head to
the side in utter shame as Penny carefully shaved every inch of his genital
area. Her cool soft touch was accompanied by that of the maids as they lifted
his testicles and moved his penis to and fro to facilitate the movement of the
safety razor.
His shame knew no bounds as
eventually they helped him down. The nurse's hand pressed tightly up between
the cheeks of his bottom as he was made to hobble towards the toilet bowl.
His crowning humiliation was when
the nurse casually put her hand flat against his bloated tummy as he sat
shame-faced upon the toilet seat. Without warning she pressed the palm of her
hand firmly into his tummy in a flurry of vigourous thrusts. Timothy did not
know what was happening to him until suddenly the suppository burst from anus
and the entire contents of his tummy rushed out of him and into the toilet
bowl.
His shame was so great that he
looked up at the young nurse in complete bewilderment, tears suddenly forming
in his eyes as he realised that everyone had observed the emptying of his
bowels.
The maids and the nurse looked
down on him as he instinctively clasped his hands to his genitals. Ami had an
amused expression on her pretty face as she turned towards the bath and bent
sexily over the taps as she pushed the plug into the waste.
Timothy could do nothing but sit
where he was as Jessica watched over him while Penny went to the table and took
the large syringe. The look of pure anguish on Timothy's face made Jessica
smile. She could not help her amusement as the boy watched Penny liberally coat
the nozzle of the large syringe with a lubricating gel.
He visibly trembled as the nurse
approached with the syringe in her hands. The nozzle looked fat and thick as
she held it towards him.
"Pleeeeeaaase nnnooooooooo
misss... er pleeease, please not that."
Timothy could not stop his
emotional outburst as the nurse approached him.
"Pleeeaaase er n'nurse not
with that... oh no, pleeeease no."
Penny could not deny her own
pleasure as she observed his horror at seeing the syringe. She could not have
explained the thrill she felt when she inserted the nozzle into a young boy's
bottom and pressed the plunger... or the thrill as he gasped and arched his
back as his insides were flooded. Nevertheless she did not intend to deny
herself this special occasion with such a perfectly beautiful boy as Timothy.
"Come along my young man;
let's have no nonsense, shall we?" She turned to Jessica.
"Would you be so kind as to
wipe his bottom for me?" Timothy suddenly turned pale as Jessica smiled at
him and laid her hand on his shoulder as she reached over and tore off several
sheets of toilet tissue from the roll. She took his wrist and gently pulled
first one hand and then the other from his genitals and placed them on his
thighs.
He was near to fainting as
Jessica spoke to him, her beautiful face only inches from his. "Now open
you legs wide like a good little boy and let me wipe your little bottom for
you."
Timothy shamefacedly parted his
knees a few inches. Penny admonished him immediately.
"Now I have warned you
before, I will not tolerate this naughty behaviour from young children. Now get
those knees as wide apart as they will go. I can easily take you across my knee
and smack that naughty bottom of yours."
Timothy's pallor was suddenly
replaced by an almighty blush. He opened his legs, aware that his penis was
hanging down between his legs, completely on view to the nurse and the two
maids.
"That's better sweet boy,
now I can just slip my hands between your legs and wipe your little bottom for
you."
Jessica's sweet and caring voice
did nothing to assuage the acute embarrassment and humiliation that Timothy
felt. He looked up to the ceiling in shame as he felt Jessica rest her left
hand upon his thigh while she reached between his legs. Deliberately she let
her wrist and forearm rub against his penis as she slipped the tissue between
the cheeks of his bottom.
To Timothy the shame of having a
pretty young girl wipe his bottom for him was all too much. He could feel the
tears roll down his cheeks as Jessica wiped thoroughly between his buttocks.
Jessica let the tissue fall into
the bowl as she stood up. She crossed over to the sink to wash her hands as
Penny moved to stand in front of the boy. She held the nozzle of the syringe
between her fingers, sliding them up and down over the bulbous end almost as if
it were a penis. The lubricant glistened on her fingers as she looked down and
spoke to him.
"Stand up and go over to the
bath. I just want to have a look in the toilet bowl to see what you have
managed to do."
Timothy blushed again as he
struggled to his feet, his hands once more clasping together over his genitals.
He stumbled over to the bath, his hands clasped desperately to his groin as he
tried to avoid the interested gaze of the two maids.
Ami had filled the bath to a
quarter full and was now standing looking at Timothy with an amused expression
on her face. He blushed as she raised her eyebrows and looked down at his hands
which were clasped firmly to his groin. He turned away from her in
embarrassment, facing the bath as he heard the toilet flush and the voice of
the nurse.
"Right young man, its time
for you to bend over and grasp your ankles. Legs wide apart if you
please."
He trembled as he heard Penny's
instructions. He did not move, instead he looked over his shoulder at the young
nurse, his face a testament to his humiliation.
"Come along..." Penny's
voice was bright and cheerful as she addressed the trembling boy. "I want
you bent over, your legs spread apart and your hands clasping your ankles. I am
warning you that your unwillingness will not go unrewarded."
Timothy trembled and shook as he
bent over, slowly he shuffled his bare feet until his legs were spread wide and
then, unclasping his hands from his genitals, he bent further over until he
could grasp his ankles.
Penny savoured the moment as she
stood behind him and examined his body. His buttocks quivered as she held the
syringe with one hand and placed her fingers gently on his bottom. She was not
surprised as a huge shiver ran through his body. She knew that the trepidation
he was feeling would be manifested at the first touch of her hand upon his
naked body.
"Don't be nervous now and
try and relax... this won't take a minute. Her greased fingers caressed the
nozzle once more as she spoke to Ami and Jessica. Would you both hold his
buttocks apart for me? If you stand one at either side that will be ideal to
stretch his little bottom open."
Although she had instructed Ami
and Jessica in what to do, her words were also intended for the young boy. She
could see his knees shaking as Ami and Jessica casually bent over the boy at
either side of his body. Penny smiled as the delicate fingers of the young
maids slipped deep into the crevice of his bottom and together they stretched
the pliant mounds of flesh wide apart.
"arggghh...oh...oh...oh...
miss...er oooohhh."
Timothy's protestations were
music to her ears as Penny stood admiring the sight of the boy being so rudely
exposed. Penny relished every moment as she placed her greased hand between his
bottom cheeks. Deliberately she teased his sphincter, watching as the flesh
recoiled at her touch. Dexterously she insinuated her finger into the small
opening, pushing gently but firmly until her knuckle disappeared inside him.
"OOOOooooohhhhhhhhh...
arggggggggggggghhhhhh."
Timothy wailed as he felt the
slender finger of the nurse impale his tender bottom.
"Oooooohhhhh"
He cried out as her finger began
to slide in and out of him, the knuckle producing an intense sensation as it
passed through the ring of the sphincter.
"Now take a deep breath and
relax your bottom for me, my sweet child. I am going to insert the nozzle up
into your little bottom."
Penny was in heaven as she
introduced the bulbous end of the syringe to the opening of his bottom. In one
fluid motion she slipped her finger from his sphincter and immediately pushed
the tip of the syringe against the opening. She watched in fascination as the
muscle tried to resist the intrusion of the bulbous tip of the syringe... and
then suddenly give way to the pressure she was exerting, allowing the nozzle to
slide up easily into his anus.
The effect on the boy was
startling... his body tensed and he tried to rear up, only to be held in
position by Ami and Jessica.
"OOOOOOOOOoooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhh...
aaaarrrrrrrrrgggggggghhhhh."
His wail of distress filled the
bathroom with the sound of anguish as he was impaled firmly upon the end of the
syringe.
Penny's voice was cool and calm,
belying the excitement she felt, as she pushed the nozzle even further up into
his quivering bottom.
"Oooohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
pleeeeeeeeeeease nooooooo"
Penny ignored his pleas; instead
she spoke to him as if he were a small child.
"There we are try and relax
now... just keep well bent over while I rinse inside your little bottom."
She turned her head towards Ami,
but addressed both of the maids.
"You can both let go of him
now, I am sure he will be a good little boy and take his medicine like a
man."
Ami gave both Jessica and Penny a
knowing look. She had a very good idea what the reaction of the boy would be
and understood why Penny had instructed them to let him go.
Timothy waited...his feeling of
acute nervousness enveloped his whole body. He felt like a young schoolboy
awaiting the first stroke of the cane.
For a moment there was absolute
expectant silence in the room.
Suddenly... coolly and
clinically, Penny pushed the plunger.
She knew from experience that the
boy would not be able to stand up quickly enough to escape the full contents of
the syringe. She also knew that however well disciplined the subject was, that
they would inevitably stand upright as the water squirted into them.
She made sure that she moved
forward with the syringe as she pressed the plunger firmly. Timothy's reaction
was better than she had hoped. He arched his back... and with a cry of despair
let go of his ankles and stood upright with every muscle tensed as if he had been
electrocuted.
His buttocks clenched together
and for a moment, his body froze rigid... every muscle locked in a spasm.
He closed his legs together and
to Penny's absolute delight stood up on his tiptoes with his face raised
towards the ceiling as he wailed in distress.
"OoooooooooooooooooooOOOOOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHHH."
Penny could not help pushing the
syringe further into his bottom as he cried out. Her words were cool and calm;
almost teasing as she spoke to him like one would to a young child.
"Poor baby, never mind, it's
all over now. Jessica and Ami will help you bend over again while I withdraw
the syringe and you can go and sit on a chair for a while before I let you sit
your little bottom on the toilet." She looked at Ami and Jessica who had
watched the proceedings with hidden delight.
"Will you bend him over and
hold him firmly. I would like his bottom stretched wide again while I extricate
the syringe from his little bottom."
Eventually the maids got his
trembling and shaking body into position as Penny patiently held the syringe.
She slipped a gel suppository from her pocket and as the maids stretched his
buttocks wide, she slowly withdrew the nozzle until the bulbous tip was
stretching his sphincter muscle.
"Oooohhhh... oh..oh"
She heard him moan as she let the
muscle be dilated by the tip for a few seconds, before quickly withdrawing it
and at the same time slipping the suppository straight up into his bottom. She
pushed up quickly with her finger, ignoring his distress as her knuckle
disappeared inside him.
"There... all done. What a
fuss you little boys seem to make about your bottoms."
Penny's words brought another
blush of shame to his cheeks, his face already red from his bent position.
She left the maids holding him
while she replaced the syringe back on the table and took off her rubber
gloves. She took a straight backed chair and placed it behind him.
"If you would both like to
sit him down on the chair he can stay like that for a few minutes to let his
rinse work properly."
The maids helped a shameful and
utterly humiliated Timothy onto the chair. Mischievously Ami looked him in the
eye and then looked down at his penis and testicles. His penis was hanging down
limply between his legs, he was just about to cover himself when Ami reached
down between his legs and took hold of his flaccid member. She looked into his
face and spoke gently, noting the glistening of tears in his eyes.
"I think you would do well
to put your hands on your knees rather than keep touching your little penis. It
is not good for little boys to keep playing with themselves."
Timothy blushed instantly as the
maid held his penis within her long slender fingers. Her bright red nails
contrasted sharply with the pale timid flesh of his genitals. She patted him on
the cheek before letting go of him.
Penny smiled to herself as she
heard Ami admonish Timothy. She busied herself tidying her equipment as she
thought about which way would be the best way handle the boy to the
satisfaction of everyone. She beckoned Ami and Jessica across to the other side
of the room, occasionally glancing across at Timothy as they spoke in low tones
well out of the earshot of the young boy.
The girls talked together for
about ten minutes, glancing over to Timothy occasionally, as he sat with his
naked buttocks upon the wooden chair.
It was ten minutes later before
she placed Timothy upon the toilet. She took hold of both his penis and
testicles and lifted them up gently as she looked between his legs as he
evacuated clear water into the bowl.
"There we are... what a good
boy. Your bottom is nice and clean now, so I am going to let Ami and Jessica
give you a nice bath while I tell Mrs Goodman that you are ready. Timothy
blushed immediately as Ami and Jessica quickly took his arms and led him to the
bath.
It was Jessica whom instructed
him. "Right hop in young man and then stand up straight with your legs
spread apart. I am afraid we will need those hands of yours out of the
way."
They made him step into the bath
and stand up with his hands placed upon his head and with his legs spread wide
apart. Both of the maids stood back and examined him intently. Jessica leaned
forward and taking the soap, dipped her hands in the water. She lathered her
hands, watching his horrified expression as she made a deliberate show of
applying the lather. Ami followed suit, both girls standing in front of him as
he began to tremble with the indignity of his position.
It was Ami that first moved
forward. The palm of her hand was placed in an upward position as she reached
between his legs and cupped his scrotum. Timothy jerked his hips backwards with
the acute sensation of her fingers as the young maid casually took hold of his
testicles. Her other hand reached forward and without preamble took a firm grip
of his penis. "Now keep still while we wash you thoroughly. Jessica moved
around the bath to the other side. Ami heard the boy gasp in shock as her
friend deftly parted the boy's buttocks and slipped her fingers in-between the
firm cheeks.
Penny smiled as she watched the
competent handling of the young boy by the maids. Penny knew that there was
obviously more to the girls than mere servants to fetch and carry. She smiled
to herself as she left the room to inform Mrs Goodman that the boy was ready.
"Stand up straight for Mrs
Goodman now!" Ami spoke gently as she placed her hand on his shoulder.
Timothy was standing in front of the massage table; his face was contorted in
distress and seemed near to tears as he watched Mrs. Goodman and the nurse
enter the bathroom. They were accompanied by the two young secretaries, Pat and
Geraldine, as well as Gail and Susan.
The last thirty minutes had been
a constant and relentless sequence of embarrassments for the young boy. He had
been made to adopt the most undignified of positions while the young maids had
bathed him. They had delighted in handling him so intimately that he had felt
close to ejaculating several times. Their hands had spared him no modesty as
they had washed every inch of his body. The final humiliating act had been to
continually pour cold water over his penis and testicles until his rigid member
had finally become flaccid.
He was still trembling and
blushing from this indignity as the maids had dried him quickly and made him
stand in front of the massage table with his hands on his head, waiting for the
return of the nurse.
Mrs Goodman spoke to him; her
voice was soft and gentle. "My you do look a nice clean boy! I am going to
let the nurse and my secretaries position you on the table so that I can have a
little feel inside your bottom and then Penny is going to make you
ejaculate." Mrs Goodman ignored his look of horror as she continued as if
it were the most common thing in the world to tell a young boy that he is to be
forced to ejaculate in front of so many young women.
"Now just stand still for a
moment, Geraldine just needs to measure you." Geraldine moved forward,
holding a small tape measure in her hands. Quickly, she looped it around his
waist and noted the measurement. She moved to his side and held the end of the
measure against the small of his back and let it rail down over his buttocks.
As if it was of no concern to her, she reached between his legs, her hand
brushing against his penis and testicles as she caught hold of the tape and
pulled it through, this time moving his penis and testicles aside as she
stretched the measure up and held it against his navel. Again she noted the
measurement to herself as she released the end which was pressed against the small
of his back. She placed the tape back in the pocket of her skirt and moved in
front of him.
"Keep still please
Timothy." She watched his face contort with embarrassment as he watched
her cup her hands together and clasp them around his penis and testicles. She
thrilled when she felt him shiver at the touch of her cool fingers enveloping
his genitals. She watched his face blush and heard him gasp as she encased her
hands around his intimate flesh. "There that's fine." She took her
hands away and turned to Mrs. Goodman. "I am sure I can make something
appropriate, it will only take a few minutes." She moved away and watched
as Mrs Goodman stepped forward, her lithe body only inches away from Timothy as
she looked into his blushing face.
She stroked her hand against his
cheek as Pat and Geraldine quickly moved to each side of his naked body and
took hold of his arms. Without a moments delay they moved him backwards until
his bottom was touching the end of the table. "Take your hands from your
head and sit up on the table, here let me help you." Geraldine's voice
sounded low and sensual as both girls quickly got him up and sitting on the end
of the table.
"Over we go now." The
alarm and embarrassment on Timothy's face delighted the young secretaries as
they laid him back and placed his arms at each side of his head until they were
stretched out and laying flat on the table. Gail and Susan quickly moved to the
head of the table and took his hands in theirs, holding him firmly as they
looked down into his face observing his acute distress. His lips were trembling
and as Gail stroked her hand against his cheek, he flushed a deep shade of red.
Timothy was trembling visibly.
His young body was stretched out with part of his bottom and his legs hanging
over the end of the table. He could feel the cool air around his freshly shaven
genitals. He looked up to see Gail looking down at him. Her beautiful face and
perfect body unnerved him, he blushed as she leaned over him.
Try and be good while mummy
examines you." Gail spoke softly as her face moved closer to his. Her lips
felt soft and gentle as she kissed him tenderly on the lips. Timothy looked at
her, his face betraying his feelings of love and supplication at such a tender
gesture. Gail continued to look into his eyes noting how vulnerable the young
boy was to even the most simple act of affection.
Susan moved around to the end of
the table and took both of his hands placing them flat on the bed with the
palms upwards. She leaned over so that her breasts fitted exactly against each
upturned hand. She took hold of his arms, holding him completely captive as her
breasts pressed deliciously against his hands.
She could see that Constance was
busy lubricating the fingers of her right hand. The clear gel made her hand
glisten under the strong ceiling lights as Constance greased several of her
fingers before screwing the cap back upon the large tube of lubricating gel.
Holding his attention with her
tender look and loving expression, Gail made a kissing gesture with her lips,
aware that her mother had finished her preparations for the boy's internal
examination. She placed her hand tenderly on his cheek as Pat and Geraldine
unceremoniously hoisted his legs into the air, pushing backwards and outwards,
until his knees were spread wide at either side of his chest. Gail felt a
thrill as he gasped at the indignity of the positioning of his legs, grunting
again as suddenly Mrs Goodman deftly slipped her lubricated finger straight up
into his bottom.
"There my poor baby, try and
relax while mummy examines inside your little bottom." Gail's soft and
gentle voice was at odds with the vigorous impalement of his bottom. He tried
to rear up but was held gently by the girls. The young maids had moved to each
side of the bed, their soft hands stroking over the inside of his thighs as he
began to tremble with emotion.
"Now try and relax your
bottom and I will be as gentle as I can." It was Mrs Goodman who spoke as
she probed more deeply with her finger. Timothy gasped loudly as her finger
quickly located his prostate gland. The slender tip of her forefinger gently
probed and teased the soft firm flesh as she spoke once more.
"Yes... I think you feel
fine up there. One more little push now and it will be all over."
Constance delighted in the squirming of his hips and his gasps of indignation
as she firmly pushed deeper and deeper into his bottom. The excitement she felt
was overwhelming and for a moment she felt a pang of envy that her daughter
would be able to enjoy this experience as and when she wanted.
Gail certainly echoed her
mother's excitement at the boy's humiliating impalement and his obvious
embarrassment and humiliation. For Gail the pleasure was in watching the boy's
face as she inflamed his senses with her soft and gently spoken words of
comfort, knowing full well the stimulating effect that her mother's finger was
having upon the young boy's body.
She delighted in his torment as
he tried to turn his head from side to side, his face blushing profusely and
his breath rasping through his trembling lips. Gail leaned over him with her
lips close to his. "Poor baby... never mind... there, there it will all be
over soon. Now try and be a brave boy when the nurse milks you and keep your
little bottom relaxed so that she can get her finger right inside of you.
Although Gail's voice was
soothing and comforting, her well chosen words had entirely the opposite effect
upon him. Rather than putting him at his ease, she had deliberately caused him
to blush profusely, his face flushing to such a bright red that she could feel
the heat from his cheeks. His lips trembled with utter embarrassment as she
looked into his eyes.
"Poor baby... having to have
his little bottom examined, never mind... just relax now." Gail kissed him
gently on his forehead and at the same time laid her hand upon his chest.
Callously she pinched his nipple, timing the action to the firm thrust of the
finger within his bottom as she watched her mother out of the corner of her eye
Constance could not relinquish
the pleasure of one firm last push up into the boy's rectum before she
reluctantly withdrew her finger from his sphincter, the tight ring of muscle
protesting as her knuckle passed through it.
She noted that the boy's penis
had begun to twitch and slowly distend, rolling to and fro upon his tummy as he
squirmed with distress. Not surprising, she thought, considering the amount of
stimulus the boy was receiving from the hands of the girls.
Penny was aware of the reluctance
at which Constance had withdrawn her finger from the young boy's bottom. She
was also very much aware that she had witnessed someone who was well used to
handling and stimulating the erogenous zones of the human body. The deft entry
of Constance's lubricated finger into the boy's bottom and her expert probing
had quickly elicited a deep and anguished response. His body had shuddered and
quivered with emotion as Constance had tailored the movement of her finger to
his naive attempts to escape her torment.
Penny made up her mind and looked
at Constance, making sure that her face betrayed none of the surprise she felt
at the woman's expert and experienced handling of the young boy's body.
"I wonder if I might ask you
to er... stimulate his prostate while I take care of his penis. Would that be
alright?"
Constance was as ever the perfect
diplomat as she looked at the nurse and replied nonchalantly. * Yes of course
Penny." Constance immediately took the tube of lubricant as Penny turned
to Ami and addressed her loudly so that the boy would also hear her words.
"If you would take the place of Geraldine and hold his leg, keeping it
well away from the table... yes that's the way... nice and wide so that his
bottom is properly stretched." She turned to Jessica.
"Jessica, if you would do
likewise and take the place of Patricia."
She watched as the girls changed
places, noting that the two maids had stretched his legs even more widely apart
than before.
"Right Geraldine, if you
would be ready with one of the test tubes. All you have to do is place it near
the end of his penis as he ejaculates. I will tell you when."
Geraldine smiled, the mischief in
her eyes signalling her delight at the task ahead. Deliberately she placed one
of her hands on the juncture between his pubis and his thigh, feeling his body
shiver at the intimate contact of her cool fingers. She turned to the table and
took one of the large glass test tubes. Making sure that the boy had a perfect
view she held up the test tube and spoke to him, her tone brisk and clinical as
she observed his blushing face and trembling lips. "Now we want a nice big
ejaculation from you, so try and be a good boy and allow the nurse to extract
as much as she can from those plump testicles of yours."
Constance could not help smiling
to herself as she heard her young secretary address the boy, her words
obviously intended to increase his embarrassment and humiliation.
Penny beckoned Patricia to stand
by the boy's waist. "If you would lift his testicles for me and keep them
out of the way Patricia, I think we are ready to start."
Penny looked at Timothy, who had
to his utter embarrassment heard every word. "Right young man... I am
going to make you ejaculate; I want you to try and control yourself and resist
the temptation to release your semen for as long as possible. Will you try and
do that for me?"
Timothy groaned with utter
embarrassment, his face was on fire with the anguish and humiliation he was
feeling. To make matters worse, his totally humiliating and shameful milking
was to be enacted in front of Susan and Gail. He blushed again, his whole body
shivering with emotion as Gail added more fuel to his shame. "Answer the
nurse Timothy, will you try and control yourself while the nurse milks you?
Timothy could only shiver and shake
as he muttered his reply. "er.. pleeeease... er y'yes er miss... er I mean
nurse."
Gail smiled at him, the soft and
gentle smile that one would give to a small child.
Penny watched as without further
preamble, Patricia reached forward and cupped the young boy's testicles in the
palm of her hand. She ignored his gasp of anguish as she nodded towards
Constance, lifting his testicles upwards so that Constance had ample access to
the widely splayed cheeks of his young bottom.
"Take a deep breath
now." Penny commanded as she watched Constance tease the tightly puckered
anus of Timothy's sphincter with the tip of her finger. Suddenly Constance
pushed her finger forward, watching the carefully manicured nail slip through
the quivering ring of muscle. Slowly, inexorably... her finger slid upwards
causing him to groan in anguish as he was fully penetrated.
Penny smiled to herself as she
watched the boy's penis start throbbing, lifting off his tummy by its own
volition. Casually she gently flicked the tip of the penis with her fingers,
moving her hand from side to side as her nails brushed over the sensitive tip
with the merest of pressure .
"Ooooohhhhhh... er
pleeeease.. er" Timothy was beside himself with shame and embarrassment as
Penny continued toying with his penis until it was standing straight up in the
air. The rigid flesh was straining and throbbing with the combined and
continual sensations the girls were inflicting on his body.
It was a pure act of self
indulgence as Penny reached forward and grasped the shaft of his penis in her
right hand. Pulling the foreskin back as far as it would stretch; she flattened
the palm of her right hand and placed it over the sensitive opening of the
urethra.
She knew full well what the
reaction of the boy would be as casually, almost nonchalantly, she rubbed the
palm against the opening of the urethra in a circular motion. Instantly the
boy's body tensed as if he had been given a mild electric shock. He gasped
loudly, his hips writhing as he tried to escape the acute, almost unbearable
sensation. Gail watched Penny out of the corner of her eye, noting that the
young nurse was holding his penis firmly and completely ignoring the frantic
writhing and squirming of his hips.
Gail looked down into Timothy's
face, noting the look of absolute anguish and terror in his eyes as he thrashed
his head from side to side.
"Arggggghhhhhhhhhh...
ooooooooOOOOOOOOOOHHHH please er missss er stop oh ohh pleeease stop."
She could never have explained
the thrill she felt as she spoke to him calmly, her tone deliberately soft and
gentle, in absolute and utter contrast to the tormented movements of his body.
"Poor baby, it will all be
over soon.... there, there my sweetie, be a brave little boy."
Her words seemed to inflame the boy's
senses even more; he writhed and groaned in abject anguish as Penny forced him
to endure the movement of her hand against the tip of his penis. She nodded to
Constance, who casually stretched his sphincter upwards as she slipped a second
finger up into his bottom. Suddenly Penny took the flattened palm of her hand
way from the tip of his penis and pulled the foreskin up and over the head.
Quickly and expertly she used both hands to manipulate the flesh in a smooth
and expert milking motion.
Timothy looked upwards in anguish
as his penis was expertly stimulated to an unbearable and excruciating fever
pitch and at the same time, his sphincter stretched wide to accommodate the
relentless probing of his prostate gland. He felt that his whole being was being
invaded; every part of his body seemed to be at the mercy of the girls' expert
and sensual stroking.
The beautiful face of his head
girl looked down at him, her expression serene and aloof, clinically observing
his dire humiliation and embarrassment.
Penny was aware that, because of
the constant sexual arousal Timothy had been subjected to from the moment he
had entered the house, he would not be able to control himself for very long.
She could already feel the vigorous throbbing of his penis as she milked him
expertly and thoroughly, her hands moving up and down in a constant and
dominant cycle of squeezing and stroking.
As if on queue, his hips raised
from the table, his body incapable of any control as he trembled and shook with
emotion. Penny smiled as she saw Gail look at her with a knowing smile and then
bend her head until her lips were close to Timothy's.
The boy arched his back in utter
abandonment, his bottom lifted off the table and his legs tensed. His muscles
locked into a solid mass as if he was in cramp. Nonchalantly the maids altered
their grip upon his knees, handling his quivering form with ease. They adjusted
their position and in doing so pulled his legs even wider apart as they held
him captive and at the mercy the nurses busy fingers.
Several things happened
simultaneously as the first globules of semen suddenly erupted from the tip of
the boy's penis.
Jessica calmly held the test tube
close to the tip of the straining flesh of his penis, competently catching the
strings of viscous milky fluid in the glass as they jetted upwards. Constance
thrust her fingers firmly up into his bottom, jabbing and prodding the prostate
gland mercilessly as she watched his anguished ejaculation. Patricia suddenly
squeezed the boy's testicles, firmly applying pressure to the soft and swollen
orbs of his testes. She could feel them move in her hand as semen continued to
pump from his penis. She relished the thrill that coursed between her thighs as
she casually instinctively smacked his upturned bottom with the palm of her
hand.
"Slap... slap....
Slappppp... smackkkk." Her palm beat rapidly against his unprotected
flesh. His bottom cheeks quivered and shook as she calmly slapped his buttocks
as if he was a naughty child. Constance showed no surprise, knowing full well
the depth of knowledge that her young secretary had in sexually stimulating the
human body.
Penny however was suitably
impressed with the nonchalant way that the young secretary soundly spanked the
young boy's buttocks with a dozen hard slaps before gently rubbing her hand
round and around over his injured flesh.
"Arghhhhhhhh ooooohhhhhhh
argggghhhhhh MMmmmmmm."
Suddenly Timothy's anguished cry
was cut short as Gail fastened her mouth over his, his chest heaving violently
as he was immediately denied breath. Susan held his arms firmly, her young
breasts thrusting down hard against the palms of his hands as she watched Gail
feel for his nipples and then cruelly squeeze both of them between her fingers
and thumbs.
The girls held him in this state
of agonising suspension for several seconds. His body tensed in a paroxysm of
complete and utter torment. His penis pumping semen into the test tube as his
body was locked in one massive and absolute spasm.
His flesh shuddered in relief as
Gail suddenly released his lips, allowing him to draw air in one mighty intake
of breath. She could see from the glazed look in his eyes that he was near to
fainting; she looked down towards his genitals, fascinated by the amount of
semen that was still squirting from his penis. She spoke to him coolly, her
voice eliciting an even more anguished expression from his young face.
"Try and give me a few more
big squirts, there's a good little soldier. Nurse wants you to try your
best.... there that's the way."
She squeezed his nipples once
more before laying her hands flat against his chest and stroked downwards over
his tummy. The action seemed to cause the boy even more distress as Gail
demonstrated the fact that she had complete access to every part of his body.
Suddenly the tension seemed to
drain from his body. His muscles relaxed and his hips fell back on to the
massage bed. He gasped, his mouth sagging open as his reluctant and climatic
orgasm came to an end.
Penny slowed her hands squeezing
upwards towards the head of his penis, patiently milking him until the last
bead of milky fluid appeared at the tip.
She patted his bottom as she took
her hands away from his softening flesh. She watched as Constance slipped her
fingers from the boy's bottom and Patricia casually squeezed his testes before
letting them hang unhindered between his widely spread thighs. Timothy looked
upwards at Gail. His embarrassment was complete and total as she looked down at
him, the picture of her beautiful face was etched upon his psyche as he
trembled with deep emotion.
Her words completed his utter and
abiding degradation. "My oh my, little boys do seem to make so much fuss.
Don't you feel ashamed at making all that noise while you were having your
little penis milked? I hope you are not going to continue to be a naughty boy
when it's time for the nurse to empty the rest of your semen from those soft
little plums of yours, are you?"
Timothy was beside himself with
embarrassment and humiliation. He could never in his wildest dreams have
contemplated such utter degradation and anguish. He blushed with shame as Gail
leaned over him, her words sending shivers through his spine as she casually
brushed the back of her hand over his chest.
She felt him shiver with even greater
anguish as her fingers trailing lightly against his skin; deliberately she
traced a circle over his tummy before brushing the palm of her hand further
down his body. She looked into his face, watching the blood rush to his cheeks
as casually she smoothed her delicate fingers over his flaccid penis before
gently cupping her hand under his testicles.
She delighted in the look of pure
anguish on his face as she nested the soft testes in the palm of her hand.
"Well these must feel a lot more comfortable now Timothy. The skin is
nowhere near as tight."
She jiggled them, watching his
eyes flinch as she gently squeezed his scrotum, lifting the scrotal sac up and
out from between his legs. "Yes Timothy... you ought to say `thank you' to
the nurse for draining you so thoroughly." She looked down at him, her
smile showing her even white teeth between her beautiful lips.
Timothy had a sudden and
incredible urge to try and cover himself. The slight movement of his hands
caused him even more embarrassment as he felt Susan press her body down firmly
against his upturned palms. The feel of her soft breasts made him blush in
confusion as she stifled his movements.
To Constance's growing admiration
for her daughter, it was Gail that took charge and ushered them all out of the
large bathroom. The only remaining people were Gail, Susan and the young nurse.
Gail had used a soft hand towel, folded into a triangle, to cover the young
boy's naked loins.
She had kissed him softly on the
lips and instructed him to close his eyes and rest for a while. A tear had
slowly run down his blushing cheek as he had obeyed her instruction. She
beckoned the girls to leave the bathroom quietly, as she gently stroked her
hand over Timothy's chest, noting that his body was still shivering with the
trauma of his violent ejaculation.
The warmth of the room and the
silence that ensued after the girls had left allowed him to drift into a light
sleep.
It was twenty five minutes later
when Gail gently touched the boy's cheek, her fingers trailing softly over his
young skin. He awoke slowly, his He looked around to see that the young nurse
and Susan were also standing by the massage bed, watching him as he awoke.
"There we are Timothy,
you've had a nice little rest. Now we are just going to get you up on to your
hands and knees." She watched the boy open his eyes and look at her, his
expression was one of surprise, quickly turning to alarm as she told him what
she was about to do to him.
"The nurse thinks it would
be best if both Susan and I have a little feel inside your bottom in case there
is an occasion when there is no-one else to help her with your therapies. I
promise we will be gentle with you and you need not feel embarrassed as there
is only Susan and myself here apart from the nurse of course. Now will you roll
over on to your tummy and then get up on you hands and knees."
Timothy blushed immediately, his
cheeks turning to a bright red as he heard her softly spoken words. His
embarrassment deepened as Susan nonchalantly placed her hand on his chest and
smoothed her fingers down over his tummy to his waist. She looked at him,
noting the alarm in his eyes as she lifted the towel which covered his genitals
and folded it into a square. She placed the towel on the table behind her and
pressed her hand on his waist. "Right over you go... let's get you up on
to your hands and knees." Timothy began to shiver with humiliation as the
girls casually examined his genitals, noticing that his penis was full and
plump again after his short nap.
In complete silence they helped
him turn over and then to his utter dismay helped to position him so that he
was up upon his hands and knees. Gently but firmly they made him spread his
legs until his knees on each side of the bed. The final humiliation was when
they made him go down on to his elbows.
Penny spoke gently as she admired
the boy's humiliating position.
"There that's fine; your
bottom is nicely positioned for our examination Timothy! I am going to let
Susan examine you first, so try and relax while she lubricates your little
bottom for you." Penny delighted in the sight of the boy's genitals, which
hung down between his widely splayed thighs. His penis was already distended,
the foreskin slowly retracting back from the bell-shaped head as it swayed to
and fro, prompted by the anguished squirming of his hips. "You will have
to try and keep still while Susan inserts her finger up into your little
bottom... will you do that for me?"
The nurse's words caused Timothy
to grunt with embarrassment as Gail placed her hand upon his cheek and turned
his head towards her. She spoke softly to him as one would to a timid child.
"Now try and relax your
bottom and keep your head turned towards me, so I can see if there is any
discomfort. Gail delighted in the profuse flood of colour that suffused his
cheeks as she looked into his eyes. "Now the nurse will want you to take
nice deep breaths... in and out... in and out." She waited while the boy
naively followed her instruction and began to breathe deeply.
It was with utter delight and
excited anticipation that Susan lubricated her fingers. She had not bothered to
don rubber gloves, instead preferring to lubricate her bare fingers. She
watched his bottom shudder as she gently placed her left hand upon his
buttocks. She could not remember when she had felt so much excitement, as she
placed the tip of her forefinger against the puckered star of his sphincter.
Gently she began to lubricate the sensitive flesh, her actions eliciting an
immediate vocal protest from the trembling boy.
"Oh... miss... please no...
er nooooooooooooooooooooooooooo."
Susan probed the opening,
ignoring his protestation as she bent to her task. She probed more firmly,
fascinated as she watched his sphincter recoil at her impudent investigation of
his timid flesh.
"Pleeeeeease
nooooooooooooooooooOOOOOOOOOO."
His voice rose to a fevered pitch
as Susan suddenly felt her finger slip through into the tight channel of his
anal passage. Curiously, she explored the soft flesh inside his bottom. She
felt Penny gently put her hand around her waist as she stood closer to her.
"Now Susan if you curl your
finger downwards... yes that is the way... you will feel a dome of soft round
flesh... that is his prostate gland. It is located more or less at the other
end of the penis. Can you feel it?"
"Argggghhhhhhhhhhhhh."
Timothy's anguished cry almost drowned out Susan's reply.
"Ah... yes... I think this
must be it."
Her prediction was immediately
confirmed by the frantic squirming of the boy's hips. Penny quickly took hold
of him around the waist, holding his body in a tight grip which stifled his
anguished movements. Although he was now incapable of motion, Susan could see
the smooth firm flesh of his bottom quivering as if he was in fever.
She felt her finger encounter the
pliant plumpness of the gland. Instinctively she smoothed her slender fingertip
over the walnut shaped mound, aware that the boy was beginning to tremble
uncontrollably. Each time she moved her finger she could feel him shudder. She
wondered what it must feel like to have such an intimate part of one's body
stimulated so profoundly. She closely observed the boy's reaction as she ran
her finger over the mound of his prostate. She experimented by moving her
finger in different directions until she was able to tell which part of her
gentle probing elicited the most visible response.
"Argggghhhh... pleeease...
noooo.... Nooo more... miss pleeeeeease."
Penny ignored the boy's anguished
plea as she held him firmly, leaning forward over his buttocks she whispered to
Susan.
"If you take hold of his
penis you will be able to feel it throb... it will tell you when you have hit
the right spot. Try a prodding action; you will be able to feel how his penis
reacts to it!"
Susan, could hardly contain her
excitement as she delicately wrapped her fingers around his penis and prodded
the soft mound of flesh deep within his bottom. Immediately she felt him
shudder and his penis throb as he moaned in protest at her relentless stimulation
of his sexual organs.
"OOOooooooohhhhhhHHHHH....
Noooooooooooooooooooooooooooooo... arggh please miss... please nooooooo more
miss."
Gail looked into his eyes, seeing
the look of terror on his face as he gasped and shook with utter anguish and
humiliation. "There, there Timothy... try and be a good boy and relax your
bottom. It is very important that Susan has complete access... now push your
bottom up and dip your back so that your buttocks are well open and spread
apart. Do you think you can do that for me? I am sure that Susan is being as
gentle as she can be!"
Timothy' could not believe how
embarrassed and anguished he felt. His degrading humiliation at the hands of
the young girls seemed total and complete. Naively he tried to dip his back,
pushing his bottom upwards as he felt her finger take advantage of the action
and proceed to roam even deeper inside him.
His breathing became heavier as
Susan smoothed her finger over the gland; she could feel it contract violently
as a globule of clear fluid escaped from the tip of his penis and slowly
descended in a sticky droplet on to the bed below. She knew that even though
she was only squeezing his penis, rather than milking it, that Timothy would
not be able to hold back another ejaculation for much longer.
She prodded the prostate with a
firm thrust of her finger, noting how the shaft of his penis throbbed in
response to her stimulation. Timothy tried to rear up as she casually
experimented, her finger employing a series of prods and pokes and then moving
to a massaging movement over the gland. Susan was enthralled by the absolute
control she had over the boy's emotions. She admired the perfection of his
buttocks as they quivered and shook, open and available to her every whim.
Surprising even herself she partially withdrew her finger and then with a swift
movement introduced her middle fingertip to the opening of his sphincter.
Ignoring his loud gasp of indignation she slipped a second finger up into his
bottom, feeling the sphincter tighten against her knuckles as she pushed up
firmly. It was all Penny could do to hold the boy as he tried to rear up, his
anguished protest echoing around the tiled bathroom.
"Arrrrrrrggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
noooooooooooooooooohhhhhhh.... Pleeeeeeeeeeease... oh please, please, please
miss... ooooooooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhh...
arrrrrrrrrrrggggggggggggggghhhhhhh."
Gail held his head firmly, making
him look into her eyes as she spoke softly to him as one would to a wounded
animal.
"There, there Timothy... try
and be a brave little boy, it will all be over soon."
Her beautiful face looked calm
and serene, an incredible contrast to his own anguished expression as he gasped
and shook with deep tormented emotion. Holding his face in her hands she bent
her head and kissed him on the cheek. She could not explain her excitement at
his tortured expression as she fuelled his abject and utter embarrassment with
her gently spoken words.
"Just a little bit longer,
try and be brave... I want Susan to be able to complete her examination inside
your bottom without any more fuss... so just keep your bottom relaxed and open
for her, sweet child."
Susan delighted in the grunts and
groans of the young boy as she curled both fingers against the sensitive gland
of his prostate. She found that it was quite easy to tell which of her many
movements caused him the most stimulation by the pulsing and throbbing of his
penis. She could feel the sphincter seem to recoil and tighten against her
fingers each time she prodded the walnut shaped gland. She felt confident that
she would be able to stimulate the boy quite easily, controlling his sexual
emotion by the dexterous movements of her fingers. She was certain that by
employing careful and subtle ministrations to his prostate that she would be
able to make him ejaculate exactly when she wanted.
She looked over the boy's
buttocks at her friend Gail, who was holding his head gently in her hands. She
smiled to herself as she realised that Gail had not allowed the boy to psychologically
detach himself from the proceedings, but rather she had made him look into her
eyes and display his emotions openly. Every humiliation to his young body was
being casually and clinically observed by the by the very girl that he was in
awe of.
Gail could not have explained how
or why she knew how to mould the boy's psyche to a dependency upon her. Perhaps
it was part of an instinct that she had within herself that prompted her
actions to elicit such a deep and emotional response from him. But she knew
that little by little she was binding the boy to her... a psychological
authoritarian relationship that would be deeply etched into his character. She
had already witnessed his look of love and supplication... and she knew that in
time the boy would be inextricably bound to her for as long as she wished.
Penny held the boy firmly as she
bent low and looked under his tummy at his penis. She could see the clear
viscous fluid that was leaking from the head of his penis as it was being
squeezed by Susan's slender fingers.
Susan too, was aware that she
would have to curb her intimate prodding and probing of the boy if he was not
to ejaculate prematurely. His body was quivering from head to foot and his
breathing had become heavy and irregular, such was the intensity of the sexual
stimulation that she had produced within him.
"Just one more little push
Timothy and I will have finished... deep breaths now." Susan's voice
echoed in his ears as he tried to control his emotions. Suddenly he felt his
bottom stretched wide as she thrust two fingers firmly up into his bottom and
at the same time he felt her firmly squeeze the head of his penis.
Susan was delighted as the
combined effect of both ends of his penis being stimulated so flagrantly caused
his whole body to shudder in a violent convulsion. The sensation seemed to
invade the very core of his being and he groaned in anguish.
"Arrrrrrhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
Gail looked at him, her face
betraying none of the incredible excitement she felt as she looked deep into
his eyes. Coolly and clinically she observed his acute distress.
"Well Timothy that wasn't so
bad now was it. I wonder why little boy's have to make so much fuss when their
little penises and bottoms are examined. You should be grateful that Susan is
being so thorough in examining you. I can see that someone is going to have to
take you firmly in hand."
Susan looked at Gail, suppressing
the sudden giggle she felt as her fingers tightened around his penis and she slipped
both fingers from his quivering bottom. She felt the sphincter tighten over her
knuckles as she withdrew her hand from between his widely spread buttocks.
Reluctantly she loosened her grip upon the hard and throbbing shaft of his
penis, observing another shudder of emotion which ran through his body as she
let go of him.
Penny held him firmly for a few
moments until she was sure that he would not try and rear up. She moved to
stand beside Susan and slapped the boy lightly on his upturned bottom cheeks.
"Right young man," she
said brightly as she smoothed her hand over his quivering buttocks. "Gail
is going to let you recover for a few moments before she examines you... so
just stay in that position and try not to move."
Gail looked deep into the boy's
face. She made sure that his anguished eyes were fixed firmly on hers as she
spoke to him.
"Promise me that you will do
as the nurse asks of you."
She could see the apprehension he
felt as he looked at her. What excited her was his obvious acceptance at his
subjugation to her. She was sure that he would continue to protest and plead at
his treatment, but there was a clear indication that he was accepting her
authority. Allied to this was his overriding feeling of awe when he was in her
presence. She had been well aware for a long time of the effect that her beauty
had on men as well as boys and she knew how to use the superiority this gave
her in a subtle and natural way.
As she looked closely at him she
was aware that his feeling of anxious apprehension was coupled with a strong
desire to please her and that any admonishment would wound him deeply.
She spoke again, her voice clear
and matter of fact and in contrast to the absolute thrill she felt as she
anticipated his dismay at her words.
"Now Timothy... listen to
what I have to say very carefully. I am going to have to examine inside your
bottom. It is for your own good and it is necessary, so I want you to promise
me that you will relax and that you will allow me proper access."
Gail delighted in his
embarrassment as she continued.
"As you have already had
your semen extracted once, I am going to help the nurse make you ejaculate for
a second time... that is after I have examined you. The nurse will milk your
penis for you while I see to your bottom and then she will probably have to
give your testicles a little squeeze or two, just to make sure that we have it
all. I am going to ask Miss Foster and Miss drew to come back into the bathroom
and hold you while you are being milked, so I want you to promise me that you
will do as you are instructed.
One final thing... if you are
naughty or disobey me I will punish you like naughty boys should be punished.
You are in a very good position to have your bottom smacked and I shall not
hesitate to give you a sound and thorough spanking in front of Susan and the
nurse as well as Miss Drew and Miss Foster, so I think it is in your best
interests that you behave. Will you promise me to behave Timothy?"
As she was speaking Gail had
observed his cheeks change colour from bright red to a deep purple. He looked
so embarrassed that for a moment, Gail thought he might even faint. She could
see that his eyes were already glistening with tears as he looked at her in
utter anguish. His voice sounded cracked and dry as he mumbled his response.
"Oh... er please Miss... er
.. I, I promise."
She brushed her hand against his
cheek in a tender gesture. "Stay quite still sweetie while I fetch Miss
Drew and Miss Foster. You may lower your head now and rest your forehead on the
pillow."
Gail was rewarded by his
immediate acquiescence; she stood for a moment looking at his beautiful young
body as he knelt with his forehead resting on the firm pillow. His bottom was
still thrust upwards and she could see that his penis was still fully erect.
Timothy knelt naked and ashamed.
He seemed to be in a cocoon of utter torment and anguish. He could feel that
his whole body was open and exposed. The mildest movement of air within the
room instantly reminded him of his rude and humiliating posture. He could feel
his penis throbbing of its own volition, openly exposed between his widely
spread thighs. He felt that every part of his body was open and exposed to
whatever the girls wished to do to him.
For Timothy, the most
embarrassing and humiliating aspect of his ordeal had been the presence of Gail
observing his most intimate arousal and ejaculation. Her beauty had always
unnerved him. Even at school he would blush in embarrassment if she so much as
glanced in his direction.
He had not recovered from the
humiliation of her gentle words and admonishments as he had lain over Hazel's
knee and had his bottom smacked soundly while Gail had closely observed his
shame and anguish. He shivered as he pictured her beautiful face looking at him
as he had cried and gasped with pain and indignation as Hazel had thrashed him
soundly. Now he blanched at the thought that she was to stand behind him and
insert her finger into his bottom and that he would be powerless to stop her.
Gail did not immediately leave
the room but stood back and looked at the naked boy. She savoured his absolute
humiliation as he knelt upon the bed, his knees spread wide apart and his
bottom thrust high in the air, open and accessible to anything she might wish
to do to him.
To his absolute dismay he felt
her hand stroke gently over his back and up over the twin hillocks of his
bottom cheeks. Her fingers trailed down between his buttocks before she encased
his testicles within her slender fingers. She did not speak, her absolute
mastery of him was apparent to both of them. Gail heard him quickly draw in his
breath as she squeezed his testicles lightly before taking her hand from him
and abruptly slapping both of his bottom cheeks. He gasped in dismay, even though
the smacks she had administered were not heavy.
"Good boy, now stay where
you are and don't move, I promise you that you won't have to wait long before I
return to help the nurse milk you."
No boy could have been more
embarrassed and humiliated at that moment than Timothy. His cheeks burned with
shame as he knelt upon the table. Gail had demonstrated to him that no part of
his body was to be private or sacrosanct and that she would spare him no
embarrassment or humiliation.
Although Gail was looking forward
to experimenting with the boy's physical stimulation, she was aware that his
long term subjugation to her would be owed to her management of his psyche. She
had also become aware that her pleasure in observing his distress and
humiliation was overwhelming. She could feel the thrill and excitement each
time the boy looked into her eyes begging for his torment to stop.
She remembered reading a book
some years before which had thrilled and excited her and had perhaps inspired
her actions. She had not been aware of the latent tendency deep within her
until she had read and re-read a particular passage.
The book had dealt with the
torture of prisoners by the Nazis during the Second World War. Much of the book
had not really aroused her interest until she had read about a young female
Gestapo officer Helga Klimpt, who had become one of the most successful
interrogators of male prisoners during the Nazi occupation of France.
One of the passages had fully
described Helga and one of her sessions where she and her team of four female
officers had interrogated a young English soldier.
He had been strapped naked and
spread-eagled upon the wooden table that she had had made to her own design.
His legs had been strapped down and stretched painfully wide with his penis and
testicles placed upon a wooden block.
Helga Klimpt, was described as
being quite beautiful and very young. She had the high cheek bones and fine
features of the true German aristocrat. Her blonde hair was always drawn back
into a bun so that all of her beautiful features were clearly visible.
Helga always made-up her face
impeccably before her interrogation sessions, carefully applying her lipstick
and eye shadow to the best of effect. Invariably she would be wearing a subtle
perfume to accent her femininity.
Even her smart Gestapo uniform
was tailored to accent her full breasts and slender waist. She would draw up
her chair so that she could look down at the prisoner's head and lean over him,
so that her exquisite features completely filled his vision.
Gail had been surprised at her
own excitement as she read how Helga had delicately smoothed her hands over the
young prisoner's chest and face. Her words of sympathy were always soft and
low, even as the young prisoner gasped and screamed at the pain that Helga's
fellow officers were inflicting upon his body. The girl would lean over him,
her lips only inches from his.
"Poor baby... is the pain
too much for you? Tell me all about it... there... there poor baby." She
would then whisper an instruction to one of the girl's. The instructions,
however subtle and complicated were always issued in numbers. Each of the
numbers signified a different well rehearsed action to be performed by each
member of the team of four young female torturers. All of the torture sessions
concentrated only upon the prisoners sexual organs.
"Number two... and Heidi...
if you would add a little of number four."
Again she would lean over the
anguished prisoner... "Poor baby... are the girls hurting you... does that
feel too big inside you... never mind... just tell me what you were doing and I
will make the pain go away..."
She would kiss the prisoner on
the forehead, her lips soft and gentle against his skin before issuing another
instruction. "Number nine please." Immediately the prisoner would cry
out in pain and anguish as his testicles were squeezed or one of the large
metal phalluses's that she used, was thrust further up into his anus.
"There poor baby, let me
make them stop... poor baby... so much pain for such a young boy to bear."
She would watch out of the corner of her eye as she tailored the pain to his
genitals. Sometimes she would instruct the girls to manipulate his penis until
it was erect and then have them slide a long electrode down into the urethra
until the tip was inside the prostate gland. She herself would control the dial
to the electric current, which she kept on a small table beside her, as she
talked softly to the prisoner.
"Poor baby, just a little
more pain and then you can tell me all about it." She would observe him
clinically as his hips would rise up from the bench in pure and exquisite pain
and anguish.
"There my little one... just
a little longer and then I will let tell me all about it... poor baby...does it
hurt my baby... never mind I will make it go away soon. There... there"
Her hands would stoke over his body as if he were a young child.
During her interrogations she
would always have the girls make the prisoner ejaculate. She would have an
electrode placed up into his bottom and then instruct her young team to
masturbate him until he ejaculated. As his semen spurted upwards the girls
would slide a probe into the opening at the tip of his penis and Helga would
apply a small electrical current to the two electrodes. The prisoner would
scream in a mixture of agony and ecstasy as she skilfully controlled his
anguished orgasm. She was so practiced in her craft that she could make a
younger prisoner ejaculate four times within an hour. The prisoner's final
orgasm would be so tormented that he would often shiver and shake
uncontrollably for over an hour.
Gradually she would wear her
prisoners down... her skilful manipulation of pain and her softly spoken words
of comfort causing them to be completely disorientated and anguished.
The interrogations would continue
for hours on end until the prisoner invariably told her what she wanted to
know.
It had been several years since
Gail had first read the book and yet she could still remember the intense
sexual pleasure she had felt at the vivid description of the Nazi officer's
torture methods. Gail realised that subconsciously, or perhaps consciously, she
was employing similar methods upon the beautiful young boy that she was about
to examine.
Timothy shivered in dread as a
few moments later he heard the footsteps of Gail and the two young secretaries
as they entered the bathroom. He could not help the involuntary shiver as he
heard Gail's clear voice instruct the two young girls.
"If you would both stand at
either side of him and make sure that his bottom is kept nice and accessible
while I examine him. Patricia, let the nurse stand near to me so that she can
reach underneath him with both hands...you will need to take the test tube, I
will try and warn you when he is about to ejaculate. I am going to lubricate my
fingers and give him a little examination before we extract his semen. Timothy
has promised to be on his best behaviour, haven't you Timothy?"
Timothy was trembling with
embarrassment as he heard every word of Gail's instructions. His body was
trembling visibly as Susan moved to the top end of the bed and placed her hands
gently on either side of his head. She could feel him shiver as she spoke to
him, her voice gently echoing the tones of a nurse or mother.
"Poor Timothy, having to
have his little penis milked again, never mind we will all take good care of
you."
Although technically Penny was in
charge of the proceedings, it seemed to Susan that the authority had somehow
shifted towards Gail as her young friend spoke to the nurse.
"Before I insert my fingers
into his bottom, I would like you to show me what you were doing when you
flattened the palm of your hand and rubbed it over the end of his penis. I
noticed that Timothy seemed to be particularly stimulated by that."
Penny smiled at Gail; she was not
surprised at the forthright and unembarrassed way that the young girl had
spoken to her. Rather than be put out with her demand, she was impressed with
her maturity and indeed the rest of the Goodman household.
She smiled at Gail and indicated
the boy's penis, which although not fully erect hung down, thick and turgid
between his legs. Both Penny and Gail could see that the swollen flesh was
throbbing, the shaft bobbing forward with each pulse.
"If you would like to take
hold of his penis Gail and pull the foreskin back tightly so the head is fully
exposed. Then flatten the palm of you hand so it is stiff. This will give you
an ideal surface to stimulate the opening of the urethra. You will find that he
is very, very sensitive to stimulation at the very tip. The ideal method is to
rub the palm of your hand in a circular motion. You will have to hold the shaft
tightly or he will try and evade you. I think it would be best if the girls
were to hold him tightly before you start."
Gail smiled at the matter of fact
way that Penny had mentioned that Timothy would try and evade her. She was
quite sure that however inexperienced she was at the moment, that it would not
take her long to explore the boy's sensitivities. She fully intended to become
quite expert in stimulating Timothy. In fact she was determined to be able to
handle the boy so skilfully that both his mind and his body would be entirely
controlled by her.
"Patricia and Geraldine,
would you take hold of Timothy and make sure that he remains still while I
examine him." Gail watched as both Patricia and Geraldine placed their
hands around his waist. She could see the boy shiver as their cool hands
touched his naked flesh. She anticipated with delight the moment when she would
first place her hands upon his nervously quivering body. She intended to
prolong his torment as long as possible and also increase his apprehension at
what she would do to him. Rather than immediately take hold of his penis, she deliberately
placed her hand flat against the sensitive flesh high up on the inside of his
thigh.
Her first touch had exactly the
effect she desired. He shuddered from head to toe like a startled rabbit,
involuntarily trying to escape her touch. Deftly she placed her left hand
between his legs and encircled his penis within her slender fingers.
"Arrrgggghhh...
oooohhhh." The boy could not help crying out with anguish, such had been
his acute nervous anticipation of the first touch of her hands upon his body.
"There my baby... shhhh quiet now, while I examine you."
Gail had already asked that Susan
would not talk to the boy while she examined him. She wanted to make sure that
it was her voice, and her voice alone, that would be imprinted on his memory as
she manipulated his flesh to an orgasm.
She stretched the foreskin back
until it was pulled taught against the base of the penis. She placed her right
hand higher up upon the shaft so that she could hold the skin back and at the
same time have a grip nearer to the head. She was now able to let go of him
with her left hand, and she flattened the palm, stretching her fingers outwards
as she mimicked the earlier actions of the young nurse.
She could hear the boy's
quickening of breath and his gasp of anguish as she placed the palm of her hand
against the end of his penis. For a moment she held it there and then with
utter delight she began to rotate the palm against the sensitive tip of his
penis. The effect was electric! He tried to rear up to escape the almost
unbearable sensation he felt within the tip of his penis. He gasped and then
cried out as, slowly and inexorably, the palm of her hand rubbed against the
tip of the urethra.
Pleeeeeeeeaaaaaaaaasssssssssssssseeeeeee...
noooooooooooOHHHH.
His voice rang out in pure
anguish as Gail nonchalantly increased the pressure of her palm against the
most sensitive part of his flesh. Although she was excited at the sheer torment
she was so easily able to inflict upon the boy, she had the common sense to observe
each bodily reaction as she began to vary the way she applied the stimulation
to his captive penis.
The next few moments were a
torment of unremitting intensity for Timothy as Gail deftly applied the palm of
her hand to the tip of his penis. She could feel the shaft of his member pulse
and throb, each movement of the palm of her hand clearly manifesting itself in
an answering palpitation from within the swollen flesh of his organ.
She carefully noted each response
until she was sure that she knew the movements that would elicit the most
sensation from his quaking flesh. To make sure she again applied a firm
pressure to the head of his penis and moved her hand more rapidly. Immediately
the boy cried out, his voice wailing in a plea for respite.
"Pleeaseeeeee....
Pleeeeeeeeeeeease... noooooo it is toooooooooo... argggghhh sensitive...
pleeease missssssssss."
"Poor baby... never mind it
will all be over soon, try and be a brave little boy." Her soothing words
belied the rapid movement of her hands as again she made him cry out in
anguish.
Pleeassssssssseeeeee
oooooooohhhhhhhhh... noooooooooOOOOOOHHHHH."
Suddenly she stopped and
immediately released his penis. She watched as it throbbed and pulsed of its
own volition. Instinctively she cupped her hands around his swollen testicles
and squeezed them gently. Her voice was soft and soothing as she spoke gently
to him.
"Poor Timothy... never
mind... I will be gentle with you... don't fret so." Her words did nothing
to assuage the boy's utter anguish as she placed her hand on his bottom.
"Now I am just going to apply some lubricant to your sphincter so that I
can slip my fingers up into your bottom nice and easily, so do try and keep
still."
Again Gail deliberately chose the
right words to completely embarrass the boy to the fullest degree. She looked
between his legs to see that his eyes were tightly closed and that his face was
completely suffused in a deep blush of red.
She smiled as Penny held the tube
of lubricating gel and squeezed a generous amount on to her fingers as she held
them out towards her. After she had thoroughly lubricated them she held out her
finger and watched as penny squeezed a long line of clear gel on to her
forefinger.
Even to Gail the long line of gel
looked ominous as she moved closer to the boy's widely parted buttocks. For
effect, rather than of necessity she placed her hand left hand on the flesh
inside the cleft of his buttocks. She felt his body jolt in fear as she brought
her lubricated hand upwards, her index pointed forward.
"Now hold him very tightly,
he might try and rear up when I penetrate his bottom."
Although ostensibly, she had
spoken to the two young secretaries, her words were really intended for
Timothy. She could feel him begin to shiver as she stood with her finger only
inches away from the opening to his bottom. Without further preamble she
pressed her finger against the tightly shut muscle of his sphincter. She saw
him try and rear up as the girls held him firmly.
"Now relax Timothy, you have
already earned yourself a punishment for your behaviour so far, I do not want
to embarrass you by having to smack your bare bottom in front of everyone. So
relax your bottom and allow me full and free access."
Gail knew that there was no
possibility that the boy would be able to relax any part of his body, but she
also knew that her words and change of tone would be deeply imprinted upon his
memory when eventually he involuntarily relived his ordeal.
She gently pressed her fingertip
against the sphincter, watching as it seemed to recoil at her touch. Slowly,
with deft strokes she lubricated the entire area around the opening to his
bottom. Gradually her probing finger became bolder, firmly she pushed against
the opening, her fingertip causing the boy to gasp and groan as suddenly the
tight rosebud of his bottom hole was penetrated by the tip of her finger.
"Take deep breaths now, I
want to hear you breathe... in and out, in and out... that's the way." Her
voice was firm and resolute as she pressed her finger firmly against his
bottom. She listened to him as he began to take deep breaths. Slowly and
inexorably she pressed her finger upwards into his bottom, watching intently as
it disappeared up inside him. She began to press more firmly as the knuckle
approached the tight ring of muscle which guarded the entrance to his bottom.
Suddenly it slipped through and she was able to impale him fully.
"OOOooooooohhhHHHHH...
argggggghhhhhhhh... "
His cries rang in her ears as
eagerly she felt around inside him, almost immediately she encountered the
plump mound of flesh that was his prostate gland. She slipped her other hand
around from his bottom cheek, feeling beneath him until she located his penis.
She could feel it throb beneath her slender fingers as she gripped it firmly.
Now that she had his engorged flesh held captive she proceeded to explore
inside him. Gradually she traced her finger around the pliant channel of his
rectum. She took her time, exploring as deeply as he finger would allow her.
She had already made up her mind that she would introduce a second finger into
his bottom. She felt sure that she would be able to penetrate him more deeply
with two fingers.
She rotated her finger, pressing
hard against the sphincter as she turned her hand to accommodate the movement.
Gradually she withdrew part of her forefinger as she pressed her middle finger
against the opening to his bottom.
"Relax now, and take deeper
breaths... come along in and out... in and out." Timothy was beside
himself with embarrassment and humiliation as he heard her instruct him to
breathe more deeply. Suddenly he felt an incredible pressure against his bottom
and then felt his sphincter being stretched wide as a second finger was thrust
up rudely inside him.
"Ooops... there we are, you
see... you can relax if you try." Gail was well aware that his sphincter
was stretched wide as she pushed both fingers up inside him. She completely
ignored his tormented cries as she began her intimate exploration.
Carefully she moved her hand inside
him, this time having far more access than with a single finger. She began to
mentally catalogue her prodding and probing, taking careful note of the
anguished pulsing of his penis as she moved her fingers over his prostate
gland. She jabbed her fingertips against the soft mound, immediately eliciting
a low and anguished moan from him as he shuddered with the sexual torment of
her fingers.
She fuelled his abject
humiliation with softly spoken words, deliberately designed to heighten his
awareness of her mastery of him. "Poor Timothy... try and keep still while
I just probe a little deeper. I will be as gentle as I can with your little
bottom... there that wasn't so bad was it now?"
She thrilled as he howled in
anguish as she jabbed her two fingers mercilessly against the centre of the
plump mound of pliant flesh.
"Argghhhhhhh...
oooooooohhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
"Do try and keep still
Timothy... I would hate to have to punish you... now just try and relax, you
may feel a firm pressure but it is nothing to worry about. She pushed hard,
feeling the knuckles of her hand press firmly against his tightly stretched
sphincter. She could hear him groan as once more his body shuddered with
anguish.
Gail continued her intimate
examination of the young boy. She thrilled as she observed his distress at her
intimate and thorough examination inside his bottom. His widely spread buttocks
shivered and shook as she prodded and probed incessantly... her fingers
squeezing his penis as she observed his reaction to her complete and thorough
testing of his senses.
When she felt that he was close
to ejaculation, she would still her fingers until she was sure that the
temporary crisis had passed. She listened intently to his moans and
protestations as she diligently examined every millimetre of his rectum. Only
when she was finally satisfied that she knew exactly how to extract the maximum
amount of sensation from her probing of his bottom did she turn her head
towards Penny.
She looked at the young nurse,
noting the look of admiration on her young face as she observed her handling of
the young boy. Gail spoke, but her words were addressed to Timothy. Her tone
was brisk and forthright, brooking no argument as applied a firm pressure to
his prostate. She could feel him shiver with torment as she spoke clearly and
concisely.
"Right young man... the
nurse is going to extract your semen from you, so be a good boy and let's have
no nonsense. As you ejaculate I will squeeze your testicles... just to make
sure that we have extracted the maximum amount of semen from you. I won't hurt
you... but you will feel a firm pressure... so you have been warned."
She smiled to herself as she
heard the boy groan in dismay. Ignoring him completely, she loosed her fingers
from around the shaft of his penis and watched a Penny took both of her hands
to the turgid and straining flesh.
"Now we want nice big
squirts... and I am sure that eventually these little plums of yours will feel
so much better."
She accented her words by
deliberately taking hold of his testicles in a firm grip. She moved the swollen
testes to and fro within the scrotal sac, hearing him gasp with utter anguish
as she manipulated his vulnerable testicles so intimately.
She watched as Penny flattened
the palm of her hand and drew the foreskin of his penis down the shaft until
the shiny flesh of the corona was completely exposed. Gail timed the first jab
of her fingers to the vigorous rotation of the nurse's flattened palm upon the
opening of his penis.
The boy's response was violent
and predictable. Both Geraldene and Patricia leaned over his body, stifling his
movement as he tried to rear up off the bed.
"ArrrgggggggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH."
His wild groan of agony echoed
around the tiled room as Gail and Penny proceeded to stimulate the boy. Their
hands busily engaged in the most skilful ministrations to his penis and
prostate gland. Patricia looked down between his buttocks to watch Gail's
fingers as they reamed through his sphincter, the gel glistening under the
overhead lights as repeatedly her two fingers almost exited the opening before
being pushed firmly back until they disappeared from sight.
It was all the young secretaries
could do to hold the boy as Penny began to slide his foreskin up and down the
shaft of his penis. His breathing sounded jagged and disjointed as Gail timed
the push of her fingers to Penny's tightening of the young boy's foreskin. Gail
stooped a little to watch what Penny was doing. To her delight Penny had left
the foreskin stretched tightly down the shaft of the penis and was using her
bare fingers to stimulate the ring of the corona.
Timothy cried out, his voice a
wail of pure agony in response to the intense sensations that the girls were
eliciting from his young body.
"Pleeeaaaaaaaaaaaassssssssseeeeeee.
Noooooooooooooohhhhhhhhhhh."
Gail began to press more firmly,
her fingertips prodding the plump gland. Each time she pushed she could feel
the boy try and rear up. She could see out of the corner of her eye that
Patricia was holding a glass test tube in her hand as she leaned over the boy,
gripping his waist firmly.
Suddenly his body stiffened! The
surface of his flesh turning to goose-bumps as his sinews locked in a violent
spasm. Gail could not help the tremor of ecstasy that ran through her body as
she watched the boy's body contract. His body had responded with a total and
violent reaction, every sinew was clearly visible as he tried to arch his back;
his cry was a plaintive wail of pure agony and torment.
"Arrrrgggggggggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
Gail surprised even herself as
she nonchalantly jabbed her fingers hard against his prostate and at the same
time squeezed the soft sac of his scrotum. It seemed that his body was
suspended in a hiatus of rigor mortis before suddenly shuddering in an
agonizing display of deep and tormented emotion. She could see that Patricia
was now bent low with her hands beneath the boy's heaving hips, while Geraldene
had pressed her breasts against his back, preventing him from rearing up.
"Let me have a nice big
squirt from your little penis now Timothy. I want your little testicles to
empty for me now... that's the way... let me have it all now." Gail was
surprised that she was able to keep the excitement she felt out of her voice.
She knew that her words would further torment the boy as she prodded his bottom
vigorously with both fingers.
His penis erupted with a stream
of viscous creamy fluid. His body shuddering as each spurt of semen jetted into
the proffered test tube. He gasped and groaned as Penny milked him firmly. His
stomach convulsing visibly as Gail aided his tormented ejaculation with firm
and unrelenting prods of her finger. She could feel his sphincter squeezing her
fingers tightly as it contracted with each eruption of semen from his penis.
"There... what a good boy
you are. You see... you can be a good boy if you try. Now let's have a few more
squirts. I am going to squeeze your testicles for you now... don't be alarmed I
won't hurt you."
Gail squeezed firmly, the almost
callous gesture making the boy shiver uncontrollably. The testes felt soft and
yielding as her fingers curled around them, exerting even greater pressure as
she squeezed once more. She thrilled as she observed his anguished response.
His whole body shuddered violently and he cried out in utter torment as she
maintained the forceful pressure. She pushed her fingers further up into his
bottom as he writhed and squirmed, his hips juddering in total and complete
abandonment.
Gail felt a second thrill course
through her body. Involuntarily she pressed her pubis against the edge of the
table, unable to stifle the urgency of her own impending orgasm. The sight of
the boy in such torment, with her own fingers firmly impaling his bottom was
the final stimulus that determined her own intense pleasure. She pressed her
hips harder against the edge of the table, her face only inches from his
quivering buttocks as she felt the familiar sharp sliver of ecstasy that seemed
to emanate from deep between her legs. She felt it knife through her whole
body, making her nipples harden and her flesh shiver in a spasm of delicious
and extreme emotion.
Penny diligently milked the boy's
penis until the last globule appeared at the tip. She could feel that his penis
had stopped pumping and she relaxed her grip. Casually she scored her thumb
upwards from the underside of the shaft, making sure that the last vestiges of
semen had been extracted. She glanced at Gail, fully aware that the young girl
was in the extremis of her own deep and violent orgasm.
Letting go of his penis she moved
behind Gail and casually slipped her hand beneath the full skirt of her summer
dress. Whether it was instinct or sheer bravado, Penny did not know as she
reached upwards for the waistband of Gail's French panties and pulled them down
over her buttocks. Quickly she slipped her hand between the soft cheeks of the
girl's bottom and onward between her legs. Her slender fingers slid easily
between the plump soft peach slices of her moist pubic mound. She felt Gail
immediately accommodate her fingers as she stroked upwards and over the erect
clitoris, scraping her nails against the erect nub of flesh. She could feel the
wetness on her fingers as Gail silently completed her orgasm.
Not a word was said as moments
later Penny slipped her hands from between Gail's legs, both girls returning
their full attention to the naked young boy. Penny was delighted to see that
Patricia had taken hold of his penis and was stretching it downwards towards
the lip of the test tube. The boy was shivering violently from the intensity of
his reluctant orgasm. His chest heaved as he fought for breath. His mouth was
sagging open and his lips trembled with emotion.
His whole body felt drained and
his mind tormented with his humiliation. He could not countenance the utter
embarrassment he felt at having the girls witness his disgrace as he
ejaculated. His mind was in a state of turmoil. He felt guilty and ashamed that
his feelings had been so openly displayed; his ejaculation was his final
degrading act in front of the young girls.
He could feel his bottom hole
being stretched wide as Gail extricated her fingers from inside him. He
shuddered and gasped as her knuckles passed through his tightly stretched
sphincter. He felt her gently caress his testicles, her fingers scoring the
underside of the scrotal sac before her hands left him completely.
He rested his head on the pillow
in shame and humiliation. His face was flushed a bright red, a testament to the
utter degradation he felt.
Gail was now very much in control
of her emotions as she spoke to Timothy. "There, there poor Timothy...
it's all over now... we are going to turn you over and leave you to rest for a
little while after we have washed your bottom... and your penis and
testicles."
As the two young secretaries
turned him over, Gail was able to see the look of pure and anguished shame upon
his face. She caught his eye, seeing him immediately avert his gaze and blush
profusely with embarrassment. The young secretaries had laid his arms along the
bed above his head so that his body was entirely open for their inspection.
Patricia and Geraldene went to the sinks and busied themselves with further
preparations as Gail spoke to the shamefaced boy.
"Look at me Timothy."
She commanded as she helped place his legs so that the backs of his knees
rested upon the edge of the bed with his shins hanging down.
Grimacing with humiliation, he
reluctantly looked at Gail, his face colouring up the moment he caught her eye.
"That's better Timothy, now can you feel a difference in these little
plums of yours, they feel so much smaller and lighter than before."
He watched in horror as she moved
around to the side of the bed and nonchalantly cupped his testicles in the palm
of her hand, weighing them as if it was a perfectly normal procedure.
"Tell me Timothy do they
feel more comfortable now? The nurse has been very thorough in extracting as
much of your semen as she could... don't you feel grateful to her?"
Timothy blushed again as Gail
looked at him, her beauty and forthright manner overwhelming him once more. She
let go of his testicles, letting the soft orbs rest back between his thighs.
"Er... y'yes miss... I mean
er... thank you er... nurse."
His face revealed his deep shame
as he looked at the young nurse. Penny gave him her professional smile before
turning away to the table.
Susan moved around from the head
of the bed. She looked at the boy's distraught face as she moved to stand next
to Geraldene. Gail spoke to her, watching Timothy's face intently as she
addressed her friend.
Would you feel his testicles for
me Susan, I think I am right in saying that they are definitely smaller and
feel so much lighter. Tell me what you think." Gail watched, her sardonic
expression fuelling the humiliation and helplessness that the young boy was
feeling.
She watched as Susan delicately
took hold of his penis between her finger and thumb and lifted it, hearing the
boy groan with misery as she scooped up his testicles in her other hand and
held them up from between his thighs.
"They are very much lighter
aren't they Gail. I think he should be very, very grateful to the nurse."
She squeezed the tip of his penis, feeling the answering throb from within the
plump flesh. She looked at his face, seeing the look of dismay upon his face as
she squeezed the shaft once more.
"Really Timothy, can't
little boys control themselves at all. I can feel your penis beginning to
stiffen again." She let go of his penis and flicked it from side to side
with her fingers, watching as the flesh became fat and turgid. She looked at
Gail and spoke to her so that the boy could hear every word. Little boys have
very little control do they... and they try and give the impression that they
are mature when really they are still babies!"
Gail was delighted with Susan's
words. She could see that Timothy had turned his head to the side in utter and
abject embarrassment.
Patricia and Geraldene had
already begun preparing hot soapy wash cloths in a bowl of water as Penny
turned towards them. She took one of the cloths and turned back towards
Timothy, waiting while she had his full attention.
"I am going to give you a
nice table bath while Miss Foster and Miss Drew hold your legs up out of the
way so that I can get at your little bottom. Now try not to make a fuss and
allow me proper access... will you do that for me sweetie?"
She observed the boy's acute
discomfort as the two secretaries moved to either side of the massage bed. Without
preamble they took hold of his legs behind his knees with their wet hands and
hoisted his legs in the air. They stretched them upwards and outwards so that
his bottom was lifted well above the surface of the table. Penny was delighted
in seeing an expression of utter dismay appear on his face as she slapped the
soapy washcloth against his buttocks and began to wash him vigorously as if he
were a small child.
Timothy grunted and groaned as
Penny washed him thoroughly. His face was bathed in a deep red blush as the
young nurse changed washcloths several times, casually lifting his penis and
testicles as she diligently washed around his pubic area.
He was in a state of pure
humiliation as the young girls watched his naked body being intimately bathed
and then dried by the young nurse. Gail was delighted with Penny's performance
as she observed the boy's acute embarrassment. She knew that however
embarrassed he felt at the moment it would be nothing compared to what she was
to do to him next.
She watched as Penny finished her
task, patting his plump penis as the girls released his legs down on to the
table once more. She took a plastic container of Talcum Powder from the table
and began to shake some of the powder onto the palm of her hand. She stood at
his side so that he had an unhindered view of her, waiting patiently until she
was certain that she had his full attention.
Her voice was crisp and
authoritative as Timothy looked at her in dread. "Now young man, I am
going to powder your bottom and your genitals so you won't get sore. Miss Drew
and Miss Foster will lift your legs again, so just relax. She paused as
Patricia and Geraldene hoisted his legs back into the air.
She made sure that the boy was
watching her before she deliberately and deftly placed her left hand over his
penis and brought her right hand up between the cheeks of his bottom. She
smoothed the powder over his groin, pushing his penis from side to side as if
it was of no consequence. His freshly shaven genitals felt smooth to her touch
as she deliberately let her hand push his plump penis this way and that as she
powdered him copiously.
She could see that he was near to
tears with embarrassment as she reached for her coup de grace. She examined his
face intently as she held up one of the nappies that Patricia and Geraldene had
made for her. The towelling material had been neatly hemmed after Geraldene had
managed to cut three of them out of one large white bath towel. The young
secretary had deliberately tapered the triangle, making the diaper as brief as
possible.
Timothy looked at Gail in horror
as she slipped the degrading baby napkin beneath his raised buttocks, letting
the ends trail down over the sides of the massage bed.
"Pleeeaaassseee... er...
misss.... er... what's... er what."
The boy was blushing profusely as
Patricia and Geraldene lowered his legs onto the bed and then casually pulled
his legs apart so that his thighs were hanging over the sides.
"I am sorry Timothy, but
Hazel has insisted that your genitals are not encumbered with tight clothing...
so this seems to be the best solution."
"but... but... er miss... oh
no... please no."
Gail looked at him sternly.
"I know of a little boy that will be wearing a red bottom as well as a
nappy if he does not remember his manners. Now Timothy, would you like me to
redden your little bottom before I pin up your diaper... or would you rather
lay on the bed displaying yourself to all the girls instead of me covering
you?"
Timothy was too embarrassed to
speak as Gail looked at him sternly. She motioned for Patricia and Geraldene to
take his legs once more. Deftly the two girls grasped his legs and raised them,
pushing backwards until his knees were placed to either side of his chest. He
grunted and then cried out as Gail cradled his penis and testicles in her left
hand, holding them up and away from between his legs.
"I warned you young man that
I would not hesitate to smack your naughty little bottom in front of everyone.
She raised her hand and began smacking his bottom cheeks. She surprised herself
with the severity of her slaps as he writhed and moaned in utter embarrassment
and torment. Slap, slap, slap, slap, slap, slap, slap, her hand delivered a
flurry of hard slaps upon his tender bottom cheeks. She could see the flesh
reddening as she proceeded to smack his bottom soundly.
"Pleaaase... nooooo...
missss... er I'm sorrreeee." Gail did not stop, but continued, feeling
another delicious thrill course through her body as she smacked the young boy's
buttocks. After about thirty sharp slaps she stopped and looked at his tear
stained face.
"I will give you one more
chance Timothy, are you going to be a good boy or am I going to have to punish
you here in front of everyone?"
Timothy looked at her his face in
shock. The slaps she had given him had been really quite painful. Did she mean
that those slaps were not even part of a punishment? He knew one thing, that he
did not want her to continue smacking his bottom!
"Oh please miss, I will be
good a promise, I am very sorry."
"Well I hope you are. But
just to make sure I am going to ask Susan to give you ten good hard slaps to
your bottom, just to make sure that you remember what I have told you."
Timothy was about to protest,
when he thought better of it. Susan leaned over and nonchalantly raised her
hand. She smacked his bottom good and hard, her hand moving rapidly from one
bottom cheek to the other as she delivered the ten smacks.
As soon as she had finished,
Timothy looked up, his face turning not to Susan, but towards Gail. There were
tears of humiliation in his eyes as he spoke to her, his voice tremulous and
pleading. "Oh please miss, I am sooo sorry. I promise I will be good.
Gail delighted, not just in his
words but in the fact that he had addressed her directly, even though it had
been Susan that had been smacking his bared bottom. He spoke in such a
subjugated manner that she felt a thrill run through her body. She hid her
delight as she spoke to him, her voice soft and low.
"Well, Timothy I will take
your word that you will behave, but should you deviate from good behaviour I
will be forced to punish you. Now I will powder you once more and then pin up
your baby napkin between your little legs."
She spoke directly to Patricia
and Geraldene. "Would lift his legs higher so that I can powder well
in-between the cheeks of his little bottom? I know that little children,
especially little boys, can become quite sore around their bottom and their
little penises."
She watched his face flood with
colour as she nonchalantly lifted his testicles and began to apply powder
in-between his buttocks. She held his genitals, casually moving them this way
and that, as she smoothed the fine powder all over his pubic area. By the time
she had finished she could see that his penis had stiffened, although not
erect, it lay fat and plump upon his lower tummy, pointing down to his navel.
She re-arranged the baby napkin
on the surface of the massage table and gestured for Patricia and Geraldene to
let down his legs and spread them to the sides of the bed. To the boy's utter
humiliation and shame she drew up the nappy, bringing the end up between his
legs and drawing the two sides together, until all three corners met at his
navel.
She took the large nappy pin that
Penny was holding out to her and pinned the three ends together. She stood back
and looked at him. She could see how skilfully Geraldene had tapered the
diaper. The part that passed between his legs was quite narrow, widening out to
accommodate his penis and testicles, before narrowing again towards the pin.
The effect was that his pubic
area was bare of covering. Only his penis and testicles would be hidden from
view, encased in the fluffy white towelling. She knew that most of the sides of
his buttocks would also be bared too when eventually she let him stand up.
3
The girls were laid out on two of
the many `sun lounges' which surrounded the ornate mosaic tiling of the
swimming pool. Standing upon the glittering marble which formed the outer
perimeter of the pool, stood low wrought iron tables. The tops of the tables
were magnificently finished in blue and gold inlays which echoed the pattern of
the pool flooring. Large blue and gold sunshades were interspaced between the
brightly coloured mattresses of the chairs and lounges.
Both Susan and Gail had changed
from their summer dresses into bikinis, allowing the sun's rays to caress their
young bodies as they lay on their backs. Their heads were turned towards each
other as they conversed quietly. They had made Timothy lay down upon a large
bath-towel which had been placed ready over one of the beds. The lounger had
been deliberately positioned on its own near the shallow end of the spectacular
kidney shaped pool. The girls had made sure that he would be well out of
earshot of their conversation.
Occasionally the girls would look
across at him as he laid face down on the blue and gold striped towel. They
could both see that his face was still blushing from the accumulated
embarrassments that he had suffered during the morning.
Gail and Susan were well aware
that he had chosen to lay face down to hide his excruciating embarrassment at
the brevity of his covering. Timothy was constantly reminded by the warm gentle
breeze that flitted across the pool area, that his buttocks were completely
bare and that the baby napkin hardly covered the crease of his bottom. He was
also aware that it would have been even more revealing to lay face upwards. He
could feel the soft fluffy material rub against his penis every time he shifted
his position upon the sun-bed.
It had been an hour since they
had left the large bathroom and Timothy had taken his embarrassing walk from
the house to the pool area; his hands being held by the girls as they walked at
either side of him, leading him captive and ashamed towards the pool.
Deliberately they had left him to lie in the sun on his own, so they could talk
about the day's events. Gail was delighted with the progress she was making
with the young boy, but she was keen to interspace her domination of him with
periods of normality.
They had watched him blush
profusely when the young maids had served him sandwiches and orange juice. They
had hidden their amusement when he had endeavoured to keep his hips pressed to
the surface of the bed as he turned to mumble his thanks to the maid.
The girls talked together, lazily
stretched their beautiful bodies as the sun grew hotter. Timothy appeared to be
dozing too as Gail continued looking across at him, gesturing at Susan to
observe the young boy's beautiful body. She whispered to her friend,
"We'll give him another half
hour and then I think it will be time for him to have a swim... in his little
napkin." She almost giggled as she thought of the boy's impending
embarrassment.
It was indeed half an hour before
Gail got up and stood next to the boy's bed. She took the opportunity to
examine the contours of his body, especially the firm twin hillocks of his
buttocks as he laid slumbering, face down upon the sun lounger. She leaned over
and placed her hand, not upon his shoulder as one might normally do to awaken
someone, but gently upon his upturned bottom causing him to awaken with a jerk
and turn his head towards her in alarm.
"Poor baby, you must have
been sleeping... did I startle you? If I had known I would have left you to get
some rest. This morning must have been traumatic for you. Never mind, now that
you are awake I think you ought to have a little swim. Don't worry, Geraldine
is coming down to keep an eye on you in case you get out of your depth."
Gail had observed the boy's face
turn from its normal colour to a deep shade of red as his feelings of utter
embarrassment and humiliation returned to him.
He was once again, acutely aware
of the brevity of his covering as Gail took his arm and made him stand up. To
Timothy's horror he realised that his penis had stiffened during his short
sleep and was clearly outlined against the fluffy white towelling of his brief
covering.
The girls' carefully-laid plans
could hardly have been more perfectly executed; as if on cue, Geraldine walked
down the steps towards the pool area. She was wearing a one piece bathing
costume, her perfectly formed figure giving her the appearance of an athletic
goddess as her lithe legs traversed the stone steps.
Timothy blushed deeply; his short
sleep had been his only escape from the embarrassment of the day. Now as he
stood nervously aware of the stiffness of his penis as it pushed against the
soft material of the diaper, he felt his body shiver from head to foot.
Geraldine approached him, her bright smile, which displayed her perfectly white
teeth, did little to allay his fears of further embarrassment and humiliation.
The beauty of her body immediately put him ill at ease as she came to stand in
front of him. Her face was freshly and exquisitely made up. Her beautifully
shaped reddened lips pouted as she mimed concern for his nervousness and
embarrassment.
"Poor Timothy, did the girls
wake you from your little sleep.... never mind, you can have a little swim and
I will stay here and keep an eye on you."
Her voice was patronising and
aloof as she touched his burning cheek with the tips of her beautifully
manicured fingers. The bright red nails still contrasted against his blushing
red cheeks as she moved her fingers almost tenderly over his perfect skin.
The tender but condescending
gesture caused Susan to almost giggle at the overt way Geraldine was
embarrassing the young boy. She watched with amusement as Geraldine turned him
around and gleefully patted his bared buttocks as he stumbled in utter shame
towards the steps that led down into the shallow end of the pool.
All three of the girls moved to
sit at one of tables, the umbrella above them, effectively shading their bodies
from the sun, as they watched the boy begin to swim. It was an ideal vantage
point from which to leisurely examine the movements of his young body as his
limbs pushed fluently against the water.
"I can see why you are
enamoured with our young swimmer." Geraldine said mischievously as she
looked at Gail.
"He has the most perfect of
all physiques, not too muscular and with excellent proportions. Now how badly
do you want Patricia and I to embarrass him... just a little or an awful
lot?" She tilted her exquisite face and laughed as she saw Gail's impish
grin. Gail thought for a moment before she replied.
"It is not just the
embarrassment; I want you to make him feel small... as if we think of him more
as a child. I know he is quite acquiescent as it is, but I want him to feel
that perhaps he is not as old as he thinks he is... if you get my meaning...
and exaggerate the gap between our ages"
Geraldine looked at Gail
intently, her face becoming serious as she pondered.
"I think I know exactly what
you mean... although he will know he is not a child, I think I can certainly
bolster your authoritarian approach. To emphasise... that while you are an
adult... he is still in his childhood"
Gail smiled in appreciation.
"There you are Geraldine... you have it in one!"
Timothy avoided looking up as he
turned to swim back to the shallow end; in fact he managed to avoid the
acknowledging the avid attention of the girls altogether, as he began to swim
lengths of the pool. He was thankful that the diaper had been fastened tightly
enough to stay in position while he swam, although he avoided more violent
movements as a precaution against it coming loose. He began to enjoy the feel
of the water and for a while became absorbed in his swimming.
It must have been over half an hour
before Timothy suddenly became aware that Gail was standing in the shallow end
of the pool. As he approached her she gestured for him to get out of the pool
and then, much to his relief she turned around and went back to the table. He
grasped his diaper firmly at either side as he exited the water. To his horror
the weight of the sodden material threatened to slide down from his body. He
could feel water running down between his legs as he struggled up the steps.
He felt ill at ease and awkward
holding the diaper up. He looked across at the girls as he headed towards his
sun-bed. Thankfully he managed to grasp the large blue and gold bath-towel and
wrap it around himself. Although he was able to dry his body easily, he could
feel the copious amounts of water that still drenched his diaper. He tried to
avoid looking at the girls but was unable to avert his eyes sufficiently to
avoid seeing Gail gesture for him to come over to their table. He noticed that
Geraldine had left the pool area and felt relief that she would not be there to
further his embarrassment.
The beauty of the two girls,
dressed as they were in only the skimpiest of bikinis, troubled him so much
that he was only able to blush profusely and look at the floor as he approached
them.
Gail's voice was bright and quite
authoritarian as she addressed him. "Now Timothy I want your little body
dried properly. We must not have you catching cold with so much treatment still
to come. Do you think you can do that yourself... or would you like Susan and I
to dry you? Little boys can be so remiss in looking after themselves!"
Timothy managed to blush to such an extent that his face turned bright red.
Gail felt sure she could almost feel the heat from his cheeks as he bent his
head and looked at the floor before mumbling a hasty reply.
"Oh please ...er noooo er...
missss. I will do it myself... er I am nearly dry." Gail looked at him,
her heart skipping with a beat of delight as he clutched the towel to his body.
Reluctantly he had to look up at her, feeling the need to assure her that he
was able to dry himself.
His face was a picture of
embarrassment as she caught his eye and held her gaze, not allowing him to
avert his eyes, even for a second." Give me your towel and let me look at
you... I am certainly not reassured that you are able to dry yourself. Susan,
please take the towel from him and I will have a look to see if he has dried
himself properly."
Timothy blushed again, as he
looked at Susan's pretty face. Her expression showed some sympathy for his
embarrassment as she held out her dainty hand and took the towel from him.
Desperately he grasped the sides
of his diaper and pulled the napkin up into position. He looked at Gail
nervously as she steeped forward and brushed her hands over his chest. Her
gently fingers immediately playing havoc with his senses as she sensuously slid
her fingers down over his tummy to his waist. She grasped the waist of the
sodden napkin and pulled his body closer to her.
"Why Timothy, you are a
naughty boy. This diaper is soaking wet, it has not dried at all. I have a good
mind to smack your bare bottom for telling me such fibs."
Timothy managed to blush once
more as Gail grasped the napkin firmly and turned her body away from him.
"Now come along, I am going
to take you into the house and get you dried properly."
She led the confused and
flustered boy firmly by the waist of his diaper, almost pulling him up the
steps and towards the house. Instead of taking him back to the main patio doors
she led him towards the east wing of the house, where a stout portico shielded
a white painted doorway. She altered her grasp upon the waist of his nappy, her
finger tips touching the freshly shaven flesh of his pubis as she guided him to
the threshold of the sturdy studded door. She turned him towards her as they
came to a stop.
"Now Timothy, when you go
inside, I want you to ask either Miss Foster or Miss Drew to give you a dry
nappy."
Her words and stern look reduced
Timothy to blushing even more deeply, his lips trembling as he looked at the
beautiful `Head Girl'. He was near to tears of embarrassment as he turned
towards the doorway and waited, acutely aware of how near her fingers had been
to his penis as she let go of him.
"I am very cross with you
Timothy, trying to hide your wet nappy. I want you to promise that you will be
a good boy from now on. I have the responsibility of making sure you behave and
you know what that could mean, don't you."
Timothy blushed once more a Gail
looked at him sternly. "Now knock on the door like a good little boy and
wait for someone to answer you." She turned away from him, and strode off
back towards the pool area, leaving the boy blushing as he clutched the soaking
diaper to his waist.
He held the nappy firmly with one
hand and knocked timidly upon the stout door. He shivered with embarrassment as
he stood clutching the sodden material to his body and waited for someone to
answer the door. The portico which covered the doorway shielded his body from
the sun and it was not long before his pale flesh was covered with goose
pimples as he stood shivering. He felt cold and clammy, detesting the feel of
the water which dripped down the insides of his legs from the soaked diaper.
Patricia and Geraldene were each
seated behind their office desks. Each desk was equipped with a neat and
expensive computer terminal as well as two telephones. The top surface of both
desks was covered with a large leather trimmed blotter pad. Geraldene had a
ledger opened and Geraldene was using her computer terminal.
The large room was oak panelled
from floor to ceiling. The rich grain of the panelling shone from the light of
the windows, which also extended from the floor right up to the stone pelmets
which met the ceiling.
Stout oak filing cabinets
surrounded the room, the glass doors revealing the rich leather bound files and
reference books. The oak boarding of the floor was highly polished, setting off
the beautiful Persian rugs that presented the room with an extra air of
opulence and luxury. The guided and scrolled secretarial desks used by Patricia
and Geraldine were set at right angles to each other facing into the centre of
the room. A large mahogany table occupied the centre space which was used by
Constance Goodman for meetings with her staff, and on some occasions, suppliers
of goods or services for the household. The table was normally bereft of
covering, it's beautifully figured wood grain surface, regularly polished to a
perfect shine.
Today it was covered with a
protective pad which had been designed to shield the table when not in use. The
underside of the pad was made of felt, which protected the rich surface of the
wood, whereas the top was made from a tough vinyl which allowed even heavy
objects to be placed on its surface without damage to the wood.
On top of the padded table
covering, there had been placed a luxuriously large bath towel. The fluffy
white material had been folded in half and spread inwards from the end of the
table. A tray had been placed in the centre upon which stood an assortment of
containers and jars as well as two neatly folded towels. To the side of the
tray had been placed two diapers and on top of these two large safety nappy
pins, each four inches long. The nappies and pins had been deliberately positioned
in such a way that they would be immediately noticeable even to the most casual
observer. On the floor beneath the table was a large bowl of hot water and
immersed in the water were two wash cloths.
Patricia and Geraldene were both
dressed smartly and similarly. Both wore white sea- island cotton blouses and
navy blue skirts. Although their choice of dress had been specifically chosen
to give them an air of efficiency and purpose, the tailoring also showed off
the beauty of their lithe and athletic bodies. Both girls were exquisitely
made-up. Their beauty was stunningly amplified by the careful application of
their expensive cosmetics.
At the sound of knocking upon the
door which led into their office, Patricia leaned forward, her beautiful
breasts pressing against the shiny surface of the desk as she smiled knowingly
at Geraldene.
She waited and then called out
nonchalantly... "Come".
She had to repeat her instruction
before she heard the handle of the heavy oak outer door begin to turn. She looked
at Geraldene and quickly stifled a giggle as she saw her fellow secretary
studiously smoothing her hand over the nipple of each of her breasts. Patricia
could see that the plump nubs of flesh, naked beneath her cotton shirt, had
stiffened and now stood out in sharp relief, enveloped by the sheer cotton of
her blouse.
They heard the boy enter the
vestibule which was separated from the office by French doors. They could see a
vague image of the young boy through the mullioned panes of glass as he turned
to close the door behind him.
Both Geraldene and Patricia
pretended to concentrate upon their work as Patricia called out to the boy.
"Please come through."
Clutching his soaking diaper with
one hand, Timothy managed to turn the handle of the glass door. Nervously he
walked through into the room. He blushed in confusion and embarrassment as saw
the two secretaries and the lavish environment of the room.
The contrast between his almost
naked state entering the apparent normality of an office environment made him
shiver with an acute feeling of utter stupidity. He quickly clutched his napkin
with both hands, aware that neither of the two secretaries had yet looked up
from their work. He wrestled with the urge to flee as he stood shivering with
trepidation, aware that the moment when they would look up and see his
nakedness, was still to come.
He stood blushing and fidgeting
nervously as slowly both girls raised their heads and looked at him. He felt an
involuntary and violent shudder run through his naked body as they looked at
him. Their eyes flicking over his naked form, taking in every detail of his
shivering form.
"Ah, Timothy... its you is
it! Well come over here and stand in front of my desk." Geraldene said.
Her voice was calm and quiet as her eyes continued to look the boy over.
Timothy blushed even more
violently as he clutched his nappy and stumbled, rather than walked over to
stand in front of the young secretary's desk.
Suddenly Geraldene gasped.
"Look at you, your nappy is soaking wet. You will catch your death of
cold. Just look at him Patricia, his nappy is sodden."
Geraldene looked Timothy in the
eye once more, causing him to blush to an even deeper red as she spoke.
"Oh dear Timothy have you wet your nappy. I have never seen such a wet
nappy. Why didn't you ask someone if you wanted to go to the bathroom? To wet
your nappy like that is unforgivable... what on earth must have you been
thinking about to get your self in such a state?"
Timothy could not believe what
the young secretary was saying. He stammered and stuttered, finally getting the
words to form. "Oh noooo... er miss. I was... er swimming... er
misss."
Patricia smiled at the boy's
distress. "That's right Geraldene. Didn't you tell me he has been
splashing about in the pool. Mind you... his body is dry and yet his nappy is
still soaked so perhaps he has wet himself after all. Little boys never seem to
be able to control themselves."
Ignoring the boy's look of horror
and disbelief at her words she stood up and looked at him keenly.
"Well either way we will
have to get you cleaned up... and that little nappy of yours changed. I would
hate you to catch cold. Little boys can catch cold so easily. If you would give
me a hand Geraldene we can lay him on the towel and see how wet he is. I see
that Jessica has brought some fresh nappies and some powder for his little
bottom."
Timothy looked around the room in
anguish, not knowing if he was looking for help or a chance to escape. He
started to shiver as his eyes caught sight of the nappies and pins and jars of
talcum powder which had been placed upon the table. He looked at the two
secretaries as they both came around from their desks and approached him like
beautiful predatory goddesses. His close proximity to their beauty overwhelmed
him. He looked down at the floor in dread as they stood at either side of him.
He could not help the flush of blood to his face as Patricia gently placed her
hand under his chin and raised his head. She looked into his eyes, her
expression, almost a parody of concern and tenderness.
"Poor baby, fancy having to
stand shivering in a wet nappy... never mind sweet child, we know how to take
care of little boys with wet nappies."
Timothy's humiliation knew no
bounds as she spoke those humiliating words to him. He wanted to protest, but
such was his trauma that he merely gasped. He felt heady as they placed their
soft hands around his waist. The aroma of their perfume and the closeness of
their bodies made him tremble with humility. Both girls bent forward, their
hair brushing over his chest and tummy as they held him around his waist and
reached with their other hands around the back of his thighs. Unceremoniously,
he felt himself being chair-lifted gently but firmly up on to the table. He
shivered in humiliation as they placed him upon his back on top of the fluffy
towel.
He blushed and trembled as he
suddenly realised his position. He squeezed his eyes shut with embarrassment as
he felt his arms being placed flat on the table above his head. To his horror,
busy fingers were already undoing his nappy. His eyes flew open in horror as
the nappy was swiftly unfastened and the front pulled off and down between his
legs, leaving his genitals bared and exposed to their gaze.
"Pleease... oh noooo please....sssss."
He could not help his cry of
anguish as they unceremoniously lifted his legs up into the air and then over
his chest as the wet nappy was pulled out from beneath him.
Both Geraldene and Patricia
thrilled at the sight of the young boy, his perfect body now naked and exposed,
available to their every whim. Geraldene could not resist trailing her fingers
upwards over his thigh, caressing his flesh as she spread her hand and
deliberately brushed his penis from side to side.
"Poor baby... your body is
all clammy... even your little winkle is damp!"
Timothy turned his head to the
side in shame as he tried to avoid the embarrassment of seeing the two
beautiful girls looking at him.
Patricia was determined that she
would not allow him to any respite from their attentions. Gently she took his
face in his hands as she heard Geraldene take a wash-cloth from the bowl of
water. She looked deep into his eyes and moved her face close to his, her lips
pouting in sympathy as she spoke in an even more childlike voice to him.
"Poor Baby... you must have
felt very uncomfortable wetting your nappy so... never mind sweet child... we
are going to give you a nice table bath with lovely warm water. We know just
how to take special care of baby boys."
She held his head so that he
could not avoid her eyes as he blushed profusely at her words. She saw him
suddenly flinch as Geraldene slapped the wash cloth down over his penis and
testicles and began to wash him.
"There, there... is that
better my poor baby... mmmm sweetheart?"
Timothy did not know where to put
himself. He felt soft fingers hold his penis as the washcloth was pushed
between his legs. In horror he watched as Patricia stood upright and took his
legs behind the knees, bending them over his body as he felt the washcloth
pushed firmly between the cheeks of his bottom.
Timothy could not help watching
in horror as Patricia parted his legs allowing Geraldene to probe his bottom
with a soapy finger. He tried to squirm away from her ministrations, but could
not avoid her finger as it pressed against the opening of his bottom.
"Oops... there we are."
She remarked triumphantly as she inserted her finger deep into his bottom. She
turned her face to Patricia and spoke matter of factly.
"Well at least he has
managed not to mess his little nappy with poo poo. I'll just make sure his
little bottom is nice and clean. There... we are... just one more little push
now and Patricia can wash your little penis for you."
Timothy squirmed his hips from
left to right as Geraldene rotated her finger deep within his bottom, her
thrusts deft and sure, allowing him no escape from the acute and humiliating
sensation. Patricia held his legs firmly as Geraldene continued thrusting her
finger even more deeply into his bottom. She could see his face grimace with
anguish as she rotated the flesh of her forefinger over his prostate gland.
Seeing that his penis had already
begun to engorge, Patricia looked keenly at Geraldene and began to lower his
legs. Geraldene took the hint and gently extricated her finger from his bottom.
She helped Patricia position his legs so that they were laid widely apart,
bending his knees so that his genitals were rudely exposed.
Patricia looked at the boy and
spoke softly to him.
"There my sweet child... I
am just going to wash your little winkle and then we will powder your bottom.
Before you know it you will be snugly wrapped in a nice dry nappy... it will
feel lovely after that old wet one!"
Timothy could do nothing but
helplessly watch her as Patricia bent over and took his tumescent penis between
her finger and thumb. Her gentle touch startled him, he felt an involuntary
throb run through his loins as she quickly pushed the foreskin back and held
out her other hand to Geraldene.
"Please pass me a new wash
cloth would you dear." She curled her fingers around the shaft of his
penis and gripped hard, pulling the foreskin down until it was stretched
tightly. As if it was of no consequence she slapped the soaking wash cloth down
over the head of his penis, watching him jerk his hips in anguish as she drew
the coarse material over the very tip.
"There now sweetheart, we
are nearly done."
She felt the throb of his penis
beneath her fingers as she deftly washed behind the glans of his penis. She
continued running the material over the tip and the sensitive rim of his penis
until he was completely erect and his timid flesh was throbbing violently.
Nonchalantly she took the entire cloth in her hand and slapped it noisily
between his widely parted legs, drawing it upwards over his swollen testicles.
Timothy was in turmoil as
Patricia held his penis in a firm grip while they washed him thoroughly.
Patricia was aware that she would soon have to release his penis, if he were
not to ejaculate right there and then. She reluctantly let go of his pulsing
flesh, and together the girls dried him with white fluffy towels, lifting his
legs high and wide as they dried his bottom.
"Right now my little man...
we are just going to turn you over so we can powder your little bottom."
Without waiting for a response
they quickly rolled him over so that he was laid on his tummy. Again Geraldene
took the opportunity to spread his legs widely apart as Patricia took a
container of talcum powder and liberally sprinkled his bottom with its
contents.
Timothy moaned in embarrassment
and confusion as they pried open his bottom cheeks and ran their fingers
between the crease. Their hands were soft and gentle; their fingers penetrating
every crevice as they sensuously stimulated his sexual feelings.
Timothy moaned, not only in
response to their ministrations, but also with the acute and degrading
embarrassment of his treatment.
On and on and on, they stroked
and smoothed their hands over the cheeks of his bottom and between the deep
cleft of his buttocks. Time after time they deliberately scored their
fingertips over his sensitive sphincter until he cried out in anguish.
"pleeeaaaaaaaaasseee... er
missssssss." The final word was enunciated like a hiss as they inflamed
his senses to a fever pitch. Patricia watched as he tried in vain to turn his
head towards her, his neck muscles tensed and constricted as he gasped with the
sensation of it all.
"Hush now little one... we
know what is best for baby boys... just try and push your bottom up like a good
boy so that we can powder in-between your little cheeks."
They continued for a further few
minutes, delighting in the young boy's utter humiliation and as he squirmed and
shivered under their diligent stimulation of his body. They looked at each
other, both smiling mischievously as in turn, their fingers probed impudently
between the tender cleft of his buttocks.
Patricia stood upright and
delightedly smacked both of his cheeks with the flattened palm of her hand,
causing him to jerk his body in shame and surprise.
"There we are that should do
now let's get you turned over so we can powder your little Winky."
As they rolled him over they were
surprised at the turmoil and anguish that was written on his face until they
saw how violently his penis was throbbing. He shuddered and shivered as they
manoeuvred him into position, once more stretching his legs widely apart.
To Timothy's horror, his penis
was standing straight up in the air and his testicles had recoiled until they
had become one very large bulge of flesh beneath the shaft of his penis.
Geraldene waited until he was
looking at her at her, before she deliberately held the container of talcum
powder high in the air and sprinkled it down upon his erect penis and swollen
testicles. He shivered as the cool contents enveloped his smoothly shaven
genitals.
"Oh look Patricia... his
little Winkle is standing straight up in the air. I hope he is not going to
wee-wee again. Little boys can make such an awful mess, especially when their
Winkles are so stiff."
Geraldene observed the look of
pure and exquisite embarrassment as it washed over his face. His dismay was
almost palpable as she lowered her hand in a slow and deliberate motion towards
his penis, watching the look of pure horror on his face as she placed the
container between his legs and deftly took a firm hold of his throbbing shaft.
Looking him in the eye she began
to smooth the powder up and down the length of his penis. She could feel the
violence of his pulsing and throbbing flesh as she nonchalantly stimulated him
to a fever pitch.
Patricia took the container and
generously filled the palm of her hand with the glistening powder. She too
looked into his eyes as she began to smooth the talcum powder over his swollen
testicles.
The sensations became too much
for Timothy, his penis began to throb violently. His mind was in turmoil as he
realised that if they did not stop he would ejaculate. He began to move his
head from side to side, his mind in turmoil. He could not contemplate the
ignominy of ejaculating while the girl's seemed unaware of his plight.
"Ohhhhhh....
Pleeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeaaaaaaaaaassssssssssse missssss... noooo. Er.... Please
miss... er I am goinggggggggg to er... oooohhhhhhhh."
Patricia and Geraldene both
looked at him as if surprised by his gyrations, although they both knew that he
was near to ejaculation their outward expression appeared indifferent, as if
they were unaware of his plight.
"Now try and keep still...
there's a good boy. What on earth is the matter with you?"
She cocked an enquiring eyebrow
at him as she began to squeeze his testicles in time with Geraldine's fingers.
Their hands seemed to be in synchronisation as they rapidly stroked over his
erect penis and squeezed his testicles.
The boy's head was thrashing from
side to side as Patricia slipped the fingers of one hand between the cheeks of
his bottom while she squeezed and fondled his testicles with the other. She
could feel the contractions of his sphincter as she pressed the tip of her
finger hard against the tightly puckered flesh.
"My, my... baby boys do seem
to fidget so when they are having their little nappies changed. Now try and be
a good boy and keep still while we powder you."
The calmness of Patricia's words
was in contrast to the deft and practised movement of her hands. She could feel
his sphincter contract violently as she pressed hard against the puckered star
of flesh. His testicles seemed to be pulling upwards of their own volition, as
she observed the strong throbbing of his penis beneath the rapidly moving
fingers of Geraldine's hand.
"Now try and keep still my
sweet baby... we'll soon have you all...."
Her words were curtailed by the
anguished cry of the young boy as he suddenly and reluctantly ejaculated high
into the air. Long ropes and globules of semen shot upwards as his tummy heaved
and his hips shuddered in an anguished and prolonged orgasm.
"Arggggghhhhhhhhhhhh...
Oooooooooooooooohhhhhhhhh... misssssssssss."
Geraldine pumped even faster with
her hand, making sure that the semen which had not already shot over her
shoulder, landed on the towel between his widely spread legs. Neither Patricia
nor Geraldene could hide their delight from each other as the young boy's body
constricted until it was locked in a traumatic spasm, his pale torso arching as
he was deftly and thoroughly milked of every last drop of his semen.
"Ooooooooooooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
I'mmmmmmmmm soooooo sorrrrrrrryyy missssssssss. His lips were trembling and his
face was almost purple with humiliation and anguish as both Patricia and
Geraldene slowed their hands.
Patricia watched as Geraldene
expertly elicited the last globules of semen from his penis, catching the final
driblets with the edge of a towel.
"Oh dear Timothy... what on
earth have you done. It seems little boys have no control at all. What a
naughty thing to do!" Patricia looked across at Geraldene as she spoke.
"Little boys are so much worse than little girls. Well never mind... at least
you managed to keep stop him messing himself again. I don't know what we are
going to do with him."
She looked at Timothy, his
shameful face and tearstained eyes were certainly that of a very young boy.
"Never mind sweetheart... little boys always seem to be having little
accidents."
She watched as he began to cry in
shame. She leaned forward and kissed him gently on the cheek. She could feel
the heat from his skin as she took his head in her arms and nestled him to her
breasts. "There... there my poor baby boy... don't cry... we'll make it
all better now just lie your little head back and relax." She laid his
head down gently and smoothed his arms down above his head. She could clearly
see the intoxicating effect her beauty had upon him as he lay childlike,
looking up at her. She could not resist bending her head and gently kissing him
on the lips, feeling his rapturous breath upon her cheek.
Gently they smoothed their hands
over his body, soothing and claming him as he lay panting with emotion. Geraldene
gently applied more talcum powder to his genitals, carefully avoiding the now
acutely sensitive tip of his penis. Patricia gently lifted his hips as
Geraldene slipped the new diaper under his bottom. She could see the boy
blushing as she brought the material up between his widely parted legs and
gently lifted his testicles as she tightened the fluffy nappy.
Patricia closed the sides of the
diaper and Geraldene fastened the completed napkin with one of the large pins.
Patricia stood next to Geraldene who was looking down at the boy. Mischievously
she slipped her hand under her friends skirt and felt between her legs, the
moistness immediately telling her of Geraldine's pleasure at the afternoon's
events. She made sure that the boy's eyes were still closed before she grinned
impishly at her friend.
"Just lie quietly now little
Timmy... perhaps you are ready for an afternoon nap... little children should
always have an afternoon nap."
Their mission accomplished, they
left him to himself and returned to their desks. Patricia picked up the phone
and spoke quietly for a few moments before replacing the receiver. She almost
laughed out loud as she saw that Geraldene was walking quietly away to the
bathroom.
It was perhaps twenty minutes
later that the girls aroused Timothy. He had not heard the young nurse enter
the room and looked at her sleepily. His composure was soon rudely disrupted
when Patricia spoke to the nurse.
"I am afraid that Timothy
here has been a naughty little boy and has... er... had a little accident. I am
afraid he ejaculated as we were changing his nappy. I know little boys have a
job to control any of their bodily functions, but I am afraid he took both
Geraldine and I completely by surprise."
Timothy blushed furiously, his feeling
of abject humiliation and shame returning to him in an instance. He wanted to
speak... to try and explain, but it seemed the young nurse was having none of
it.
"I am sorry you have had to
witness such disgusting behaviour Patricia. It must have been distressful for
you and Geraldine to have to witness this sort of behaviour when there was no
medical reason for him to do such a thing."
Penny was aware that both Pat and
Geraldine were near to giggling. She looked straight at the boy capturing his
attention before he could see the smirk upon the girls faces.
Well Timothy my boy. You will
still be required to give two full samples for the doctor, whether you have
recently ejaculated or not... and so unfortunately for you... I shall have to
place you upon your hands and knees so that I can get a firm and unhindered
pressure to your prostate gland. I will not let you shirk away from giving me
two complete samples, so you can look forward to a firm and vigorous
milking."
She watched Timothy as tears of
shame rolled down his blushing red cheeks. His bottom lip trembled as listened
to the stern rebuke.
Penny could see his distress and
softened her voice. She moved closer and stroked her hand upwards upon the
inside of his thigh.
"Now promise me you will be
a good little boy and I will let you have a nice big glass of milk and a little
nap after I have positioned you on the table in the bathroom. Now let me help
you up and then I will let you hold my hand while I take you into the main part
of the house. Now just let have a little feel inside your nappy to check you
over and then we will be ready to go"
Before the boy could protest,
Penny had slipped her hand inside the waistband of his nappy. Without preamble
she slid her hand down over his penis and cupped his testicles.
"Ermmm... yes." Her
fingers squeezed his testicles gently. "I think there will be plenty there
to give me two good samples. It is a good thing for that Miss Gail is still at
the pool otherwise I think she would be warming your little bottom cheeks for
your, don't you?"
Penny felt the boy shudder with
shame as she squeezed his testicles once more before taking hold of his penis
and examining the plump flesh within her fingers. Slowly she withdrew her hand,
but not before she had felt an answering throb from the shaft of his timid
member.
"Ah well Timothy, sometimes
I forget just how immature little boys really are!"
Timothy was beyond coherent
thought, such was his absolute shame, that he was completely incapable of
uttering even the briefest of replies. Tears of shame and utter humiliation
rolled down his face as the girls gently helped him from the table and he
walked shakily towards the door.
Both Geraldine and Patricia
watched as Penny bent her head and kissed him gently on his trembling lips and
then took his hand in hers as she led him from the room.
4
It was five o'clock by the time
Gail had driven Susan and Timothy back to Susan's house. Gail had seemed to
have taken complete charge of the young boy. Vicki Grant had telephoned to say
that she and Hazel were staying in town to have dinner and so would be not back
until late. To Gail's utter delight, she had asked that both she and Susan bath
Timothy before putting him to bed. She had also asked that they ring the nurse
to tell her that neither Vicki nor Hazel would be available to help with the
boy's semen extraction that evening.
Susan had telephoned the nurse
while Gail had prepared Timothy's tea. Anxious that there would be some periods
of normality, Gail had walked Timothy over to his own house and had waited
downstairs while he went up to his bedroom to change into his normal clothes.
He had reappeared in chinos and a T shirt and was wearing his favourite
trainers upon his feet. "Hey, that outfit really suits you," she had
said.
She could immediately see the
boost to his ego, although he could not help blushing at the compliment, as she
watched him come down the stairs. Gail had smiled at him knowing full well that
it would not be long before he was embarrassedly taking them all off again.
She thought back to the second
milking session he had been subjected to at her mother's house. His torment had
not been helped by the young nurse's absolute determination to extract two full
samples from the helpless young boy.
Timothy shivered every time he
thought back to the afternoon; to his utter shame he had been most thoroughly
milked by the young nurse. Penny had placed him in the most embarrassing of
positions making him thrust his young bottom high in the air as he knelt upon
his elbows, his knees having already been spread wide apart by the two young
sectretaries.
The presence of Mrs Hartman, had
not only added to his embarrassment, but her beauty and almost regal appearance
had made him feel humble and gauche.
He had been forced to give one of
the most agonizing ejaculations yet. Patricia and Geraldine had held him
captive while the young nurse, true to her word, had expertly elicited nearly a
full rest tube of semen from him.
His embarrassment had been compounded
by Gail who had held his head and made him look into her eyes while he was
being milked. Her words, rather than being comforting, had caused him even more
embarrassment. "There's a brave little soldier... nurse is going to make
your little penis spurt soon, so try and do your best. Patricia will squeeze
your little testicles to help you fill the jar."
She had held his head steadily
gazing into his eyes as he gasped and groaned. "There, there... it will
soon be over... mummy is just going to smack your bottom a little bit as you
squirt."
Indeed Constance Hartman had
delighted in giving the young boy six sound slaps; his hips had bucked and
writhed as he squirted helplessly and deliriously into the waiting test tube.
They had left him lying on the massage table for over an hour, before Gail had
come to rouse him.
He had shivered with trepidation
when he realised that he had not been spared a second milking. Instead Penny
had made him stand with his legs spread widely apart. She had instructed Patricia
and Geraldine to hold him with his arms outstretched and then lower him to a
squatting position with his knees outstretched while she had inserted a well
lubricated finger upwards into his bottom. The deep penetration had been aided
by his widely spread cheeks, his sphincter stretched and unable to resist the
deft penetration of her finger.
He had almost yelped with
sensation as he stood upright, not only to feel that her finger had stayed
within him, but incredibly had slid even further up inside his anus. The
stiffened digit of her hand had prodded his prostate so effectively, that it
caused him to shudder as she reached around and nonchalantly lifted his flaccid
penis away from his body.
Cleverly Penny had made sure that
the only adult left to help with her ministrations would be Constance Hartman.
Constance did well to hide her delight as Penny asked innocently whether she
would mind manipulating the boy's penis.
"I will be able to do a far
better job if I only had to massage his prostate gland while you... er milk
him. Would that be alright Mrs Hartman?"
Constance had moved to the boy's
side and had taken a firm hold of his penis with one hand while cupping his
testicles with the other, her deft handling demonstrating an obvious
familiarity with the male genitalia.
"Oh thank you Mrs Hartman...
he won't take but a moment to ejaculate in this position," she had said
helpfully as she saw Susan pick up the new test tube and clutch it to her
breasts.
Susan was aware that they had all
looked at her. Defensively she had said; "I'll collect all his squirts
shall I Mrs Hartman? Do I just hold this to the end of his little penis when I
think he is ready to spurt?"
Gail had nearly laughed out loud
as she heard Susan's words, instead she moved behind her and gently squeezed
her bottom. If Timothy had not been looking Susan would have turned around and
grinned at her friend.
Gail moved past Susan and stood
in front of the young boy. She had looked him straight in the eye and whispered
to him.
"Now be a good boy... and
give nurse some nice strong squirts when the time comes. I will be watching
you... so do your best for me will you?" Gail felt a thrill of
satisfaction when she saw the boy blush an even deeper red at her words.
She rested her delicate hand
against his heaving chest as she kissed him on the cheek. Constance had felt
the boy's penis throb in her hand. She felt sure that it was in direst response
to Gail's kiss.
Although they had all been
referring to his "little" penis, Constance Hartman was well aware
that the male organ she held in her hand was unusually well developed for such
a young boy.
*
Now as Susan and Gail sat in the
kitchen of Vicki Grant's picturesque cottage they talked avidly about the
events of the last few days. Gail had made sure that the kitchen door was
closed and that Timothy, who was laid upon the settee in the sitting room, was
well absorbed in watching the television set. They had waited until the boy had
settled down to watch his programs before changing their clothes. Both girls
had giggled and laughed at the transformation as they had stood in front of
Susan's mirror and admired themselves.
Gail looked at Susan. "You
realise that he has already changed his attitude to you, don't you? If you
think about it... he was used to addressing you as Susan... and now if you have
noticed... he calls you either miss... or miss Susan."
She leaned forward, her beautiful
and breasts pressing sensuously against the sheer silk of her blouse. Neither
girl was wearing a bra; instead they had carefully chosen outfits from Gail's
wardrobe and tried them on in Gail's lavish bedroom. Their outfits combined a
formal look with more than a hint of sexiness. The outlandishly expensive
material of their navy skirts and white silk shirts had seemed to cling and
then swing free of their young bodies in such a mesmerising way, that even
Constance Harman had commented on their appearance. Rather than wear the
clothes for their journey back to Susan's house, Gail had carefully packed the clothes
in a suitcase so that they could surprise the young boy. She also carried in
her bag several other items that her mother had said `may come in handy'.
"That is what I mean about
moulding his psyche," she continued. "Eventually when Hazel leaves...
we... and I do mean we, will be able to continue with a more authoritarian
attitude over him.
His mother would never be able to
cope with all the problems of a teenaged boy if he were a wild youth and mixing
with the wrong sort. So I think she will just be thankful that we are his
friends... and grateful that his `out of school' time is taken up with people
that she knows and trusts. I would just love to be in Hazel's position... I
mean," Gail rolled her eyes, "did you just see how she spanked him...
wow!"
She leaned forward as Susan
beckoned to whisper to her. "Well you said we are going to spank him
tonight... and I for one just can't wait."
Gail laughed. "Calm down my
pretty one... patience is a virtue."
Gail giggled again and put her
finger to her lips as she heard the doorbell ring. "Shhh..." she
motioned to Susan as she called out. "Oh Timothy see who that is at the
front door would you sweetie."
Both girls knew exactly who would
be waiting outside, but hesitated for a moment before quietly opening the
kitchen door and peeping along the corridor. They watched as the young boy
answered the door. Gail would have loved to have been able to see his face as
he stepped back in astonishment at the sight of the two young nurses. While
Timothy's back was turned, both Susan and Gail quickly made their way to the
sitting room and seated themselves primly upon the settee.
Gail felt a thrill run through
her beautiful body as Timothy entered the room, his face already blushing
profusely. His look of astonishment at the sight of Susan and Hazel in their
white shirts and navy skirts brought a look of astonishment and terror to his
face. Gail ignored him and looked up at Penny.
"Do take a seat both of you
and er... Timothy... would you go the bathroom please and take off all of your
clothes. I want you stripped completely naked. Now don't dawdle, the nurses are
very busy. Just strip off as quickly as you can and wait for the nurses to come
through."
She pretended to ignore the look
of pure terror on his face as she looked at the two young nurses. "It's
Tina isn't it... if you remember, I saw you at the school medical examinations?
Now, would you both have time for a cup of tea before you give little Timmy his
enema?" She looked back at the horror struck boy. "Come along
Timothy... don't just stand there off you go, I want you stripped bare and
ready for your treatment."
She watched as his face blushed
as red as beetroot. Reluctantly he turned away and stumbled rather than walked
towards the bathroom. She made sure that her voice was raised enough for him to
hear as she spoke to Penny. "I thought Susan and I might observe you as
you give him his enema. I need to be sure that he behaves himself and sometimes
a smacked bottom seems the only way with young Timmy."
Timothy was so humiliated that he
could hardly see the door handle through his tears of shame as he stumbled into
the bathroom.
His emotional state was such that
tears ran down his cheeks as he looked around the large tiled room. He saw that
towels had already been laid out across the table and also that several new
jars of lubricant and gels had been set up on a low table next to the cast iron
bath. He shivered at the thought of his impending treatment as he caught sight
of the toilet, surely Susan and Gail would not be there to watch him as he
evacuated into the bowl. He shivered in dread as he began to undo the belt of
his trousers.
Somehow, the sight of Susan and
Gail had distressed and embarrassed him thoroughly. Their style of dress had
lent them an extra air of formality and authority which seemed to diminish his
sense of self esteem, although if he were to admit it, he had very little self
esteem left. He blushed again at the thought of the two girls witnessing his
humiliating treatment. He could not have explained his confusion when he saw
them sitting primly on the settee. Their appearance had immediately brought
home to him the absolute and total embarrassment of his position.
The expression on his face as he
had first caught sight of them, had instantly confirmed to the girls, that the
style, appearance and the fine quality of the clothes that they were wearing,
was the perfect choice with which to impose their authority.
The sensual smoothness of the
material of their white shirts and navy blue skirts had the effect of making
them seem older and at the same time confirming their superiority in a
stunningly visual way. Gail and Susan both knew that their presence during his
humiliating ordeal would be heightened by the formality of their dress...
providing a complete and shameful contrast to his nakedness.
Timothy fumbled with the buckle
of his trousers, his trembling fingers hardly able to cope with the simple task
of undressing. He had taken off his shoes and socks and had pulled his T shirt
over his head and laid it on the seat of one of the bathroom chairs.
In shame he took off his
trousers, standing naked apart from his underpants as he laid his trousers over
the back of the chair. He shivered in shame as he hooked his fingers in to the
waistband of his underpants. In utter humiliation he felt his turgid penis
spring free from the confines of the material as he lowered the garment to his
ankles.
He stepped out of his underpants
and through tearful eyes, stuffed them underneath his T-shirt.
Out of sheer desperation at the
embarrassment of his position he clasped his hands to his naked groin. The
shame at being made to wait naked in the large bathroom, knowing that four
pretty females would be coming through to view his nakedness, was so strong
that he felt near to fainting.
He stood cowering as, to his
utter dismay, he heard the door handle turn. He looked up to see that only
Susan had entered the room. He quickly looked down, clasping his hands firmly
to his genitals as he pressed his knees together. His whole face and much of
his chest was covered in a deep flush of redness as Susan nonchalantly looked
him over from head to toe.
"My, my... you are in a
state." She said as she approached the blushing boy. Hold your head up and
let me see your face." Timothy shivered and groaned inwardly as she held
out her hand and lifted his chin until he was looking into her eyes.
"Oh dear, I suppose you feel
embarrassed at being naked, is that what it is Timothy?"
Timothy blushed even more as she
held his chin so that he could not avoid her enquiring look. His shame was
paramount as she looked at him sympathetically. Her pretty face, serene and
beautifully made up, seemed in utter contrast to his own blushing and
perspiring countenance.
He shivered in shame as she let
go of his chin and walked to the table. She smoothed her hands over the fluffy
towels which had been laid on the table and turned and looked at him as he
stood crouched and cowering. He stared at her in utter anguish as she announced
her intentions.
"The nurses want you
arranged upon the table, so I thought that I would get you positioned while
they have their cup of tea. Now you are not going to give me any difficulty are
you... my little Timothy."
He blushed profusely as she
looked him in the eye and crooked her finger, beckoning him to approach the
table.
His bottom lip began to quiver as
he reluctantly approached her. He flinched with anguish as she laid her hand
upon his shoulder. His reluctant gesture seemed to stiffen her resolve. Quickly
she grasped him around the waist and with a vigour that surprised him; she
smacked him several times upon his bottom cheeks. His surprise and humiliation
showed in his face as she stood him up straight and looked him in the eye.
"Now Timothy, you are
obviously not going to behave yourself without having to be disciplined. I want
you to put your hands upon your head and stand with your back to the table. I
won't ask you again, instead I will take one of your tennis shoes and bend you
over and give your bare bottom a sound spanking."
Timothy could not believe his
ears. His mind could not come to terms with the fact that, less than a week
ago, Susan had been the girl next door in every sense of the expression. She
had joked with him and praised his expertise in helping her mother out with
some of the small maintenance jobs in the cottage. Although he had always been
in awe of her beauty... and the fact that she was older than himself, he had
never the less felt that she was a friend.
Now he was standing naked before
her and being instructed to uncover his penis and testicles to her gaze, at the
threat of being soundly spanked with his own training shoe.
He shivered in shame; his whole
body shuddering as he slowly took his hands from his groin, his eyes
involuntarily looking down in shame as his plump penis sprang forward.
Susan also felt a shiver run
through her body, but there the similarity ended. She felt a delicious tingle
between her legs as she gloated in triumph at the naked boy, watching him as he
hesitantly placed his hands upon the top of his head.
She did not try and disguise the
fact that she was looking straight at his penis and testicles as she stepped
backwards. Instead she instructed him firmly. "Now Timothy, stand with
your legs apart and straighten your back. I intend that you will obey me
without question. I know it may be embarrassing for a child to have to stand
with his legs apart and show his little willy, but I promise you that I will be
forced to smack you very hard if you dare to disobey me again."
Timothy blushed mightily; he
could feel the heat from his cheeks and neck as he reluctantly looked at her.
She stepped forward and grasped his penis in her delicate hand, holding him
firmly as she looked into his eyes.
"Now spread those legs and
place your back against the edge of the table." She could not help another
thrill running through her body as she gently tapped his penis before letting
him go. She stood back and watched as he struggled with his desire to cover his
genitals. Hesitantly he stood as he had been instructed, acutely aware of his
shaven pubic area and genitals as he spread his legs and arched his back
against the edge of the table.
Susan felt dominant and confident
as she realised that the boy was following her orders without further question.
"Now I want you to tell me
that you will promise to obey me without any further nonsense. Now look at me
and tell me!"
Timothy was shivering from head
to foot, his shame and humiliation paramount as he stood bared and shamed in
front of the pretty young girl. Susan looked cool and calm as he stammered his
reply.
"I'm sorry er... er... miss
er.. Susan... er I promise to be good." Tears rolled down his cheeks as
Susan gently placed her delicate fingers against his burning cheek.
"There, there never mind...
be a good little boy and follow my instructions." Her voice was soft and
gentle, causing him to feel even more embarrassed as he stood naked before her.
She spoke softly and gently, as a
mother would to a young baby. "Now sweetheart, I want you to sit up on the
middle of the table and lay back. Do you think you could do that for me, mmm...
sweetie?
Timothy's complete humiliation
and confusion seemed to culminate in a mist before his eyes. He somehow found
the strength to push himself up on to the table. He felt utterly stupid and
gauche as he shuffled his bottom into the middle and then laid back. His
humiliation was cruelly sensitising every nerve ending in his body as he
performed the shameful act of laying back and rudely exposing himself so
openly.
His chest heaved with emotion as
he saw Susan looking down at his bare body. He flinched as her slender fingers
came to rest upon the inside of his thigh. Slowly and reluctantly, he obeyed
her instruction. "Open those legs nice and wide... spread your knees until
they are over the sides of the table. The nurses want a full and unhindered
access to your little bottom... there we are... that's the way."
Susan was inwardly gloating; a
full and invigorating sense of triumph pervaded her body as she moved to the
side of the table and placed her hand gently upon his heaving chest. She looked
over his naked body, seeing that his plump penis now hung gown between his
widely stretched legs. His swollen testicles seemed to move up and down of
their own volition as his chest heaved with shame and humiliation.
She saw that even through his
embarrassment he could not help looking at her. Deliberately she moved her hand
from his chest and made absolutely sure his eyes were following the movement of
her hand, before delicately taking hold of the tip of his penis between her
finger and thumb.
She could clearly see his body
quake in embarrassment and acute sensation as she lifted the plump flesh, until
she held it completely upright from his body.
"Argghhh...." He moaned
as she felt the flesh suddenly throb between her fingers.
"Now keep still. I just want
to slip your foreskin back and expose your penis fully to make sure that it is
completely free and that you are not sore." Susan had chosen her words
carefully to ensure that Timothy would be further embarrassed.
Timothy could not help his
emotions. He could feel his penis begin to throb as the flesh engorged. His
humiliation knew no bounds as he watched and felt the fingers of her other hand
wrap themselves around the shaft of his throbbing member.
Susan drew in a deep breath as
she felt another thrill course through her body. She held her breath as she
prepared to savour the moment. Delicately she stretched his penis upwards and
with the fingers of her other hand, slipped the foreskin slowly down the shaft.
She could feel a series of quick throbs pulse beneath her fingers as the boys
hips jerked with violent sensation. She held the foreskin back, stretching the
skin tightly as she felt his penis begin to throb and pulse constantly,
burgeoning into a hard shaft of flesh.
His body could not resist the
acuteness of the sexual stimulation and his hips jerked in response to her
clever manipulation of his flesh.
Her voice was cool and calm,
concealing the excitement she felt as subjected the boy to extreme stimulation.
"Try and keep still Timothy, I want to look beneath your foreskin. We
can't have you being sore behind here, can we?" She teased her finger
around the rim of his erect penis as if to illustrate her point, her fingers no
longer necessary to hold the flesh upright.
A droplet of clear liquid emerged
from the tip of his penis as she slid the foreskin upwards and over the rim of
the glans.
"Oh dear Timothy, little
boys seem to have no control. Look at you, your penis has become erect and
there is already a drop of liquid coming out of it. I will have to get a tissue
and wipe it for you." Susan was secretly delighted as the boy turned his
head away in shame.
She took her hands from him and
walked to the low table by the bath. She saw that next to the tissues was a box
of latex gloves which had been propped against a large jar of lubricant. On
impulse she took a pair of the gloves and sensuously slid them on her hands.
Next she took the large jar of lubricant and a several pieces of tissue and
walked back to the table.
She placed the jar between his
legs and took a tissue. Deftly she took hold of his penis, hearing him groan as
she expertly skinned his foreskin back to reveal the large bulbous head.
"Argghhhh...ooooOOOHHH." He groaned
as she nonchalantly wiped the drop of glistening liquid from the end of his
penis. She delighted in the writhing of his hips as she casually wiped around the
glans of his penis. She held him firmly making sure that the soft tissue made
good contact with the sensitive parts of his penis.
"Now come along shuffle down
the table, I want your legs hanging over the end and your bottom right on the
edge." She watched him blush and noted the look of anguish on his face as
she took the jar of lubricant from between his legs and unscrewed the top. She
waited patiently as he struggled to do her bidding. When he had his bottom far
enough towards the edge of the table she put down the container of lubricant
and placed her hands on his thigh.
"Right young man... lets
have these legs hanging over the side so that your bottom is nice and
accessible." She saw his immediate blush as she pulled his thigh towards
her until his calf was hanging over the edge of the table. She walked around to
the other side and pulled his other thigh even further apart until the crook of
his knee was over the edge of the table and his lower leg was hanging down.
"Now stretch your arms out
along the bed behind you head... come along push them out and stretch your
fingers... there that's the way." She watched delightedly as he innocently
obeyed her, his young perfectly proportioned body was stretched out before her,
his penis and testicles bared and his bottom open and available for her
pleasure.
The result of her positioning of
the boy had left him with his legs spread so widely apart that his sphincter
was completely revealed. She moved to the bottom edge of the table between his
legs and deftly slipped her cupped hand underneath his plump testicles.
"Arggghhh... ssssssss"
He hissed in embarrassment as she
gently lifted the delicate orbs and peered between his bottom cheeks. She could
see that his penis was still pulsing as it stood pointing straight up towards
the ceiling. She loved the feeling of holding his testicles in her hand. It
seemed to her that she held his entire essence. She scored her finger nails
over the tight skin of his scrotum, marvelling at the way the skin recoiled as
she stimulated it.
She turned her attention to his
buttocks, admiring the firm and beautifully contoured flesh. She could not have
explained why she had an urgent impulsive desire to thrust her hand hard
between his cheeks as if she was impaling him. Susan had already learned a lot
about herself, her increasing confidence in handling the boy had already
pleased her and she intended to be very much a part of the boy's immediate
future.
"Yes I think you accessible
enough; I am just going to lubricate your bottom so that you are nice and
greasy for the nurse to slip the nozzle up into your bottom." Her words
were again designed to increase his embarrassment.
She reached forward to retrieve
the jar of lubricant and waited with the jar held overtly in her hands until at
last, her hesitation caused him to look up at her.
He blushed as she deliberately
dipped two fingers into the jar and drew them out very slowly, allowing
globules of the viscous and glistening lubricant to drip back into the jar. She
placed the jar on to the table by his waist and looked him in the eye.
"Now I want no fidgeting...
do you hear me?" Timothy looked at her in horror as she deliberately
lifted his testicles, her delicate fingers cupping his scrotum delicately and
sensuously.
"Now relax your bottom and
allow me proper access." Her words were immediately accompanied by the
firm pressure of her lubricated fingers against his sphincter as she pushed
them rudely between his bottom cheeks.
"Ooooohhhh... er.. er...
misssss." His embarrassment was paramount as she began to rotate her
fingers around the sensitive outer flesh of his sphincter. Slowly and
inexorably he felt his sphincter being penetrated, until suddenly her
forefinger entered into his bottom.
"Ooooooooooooooooohhhhhhhhh."
He cried, as she deftly pushed her finger up into him. She could feel her whole
body vibrate with the thrill and sensation of impaling his bottom with her
finger. She pushed deeper, immediately feeling the swollen mound of flesh of
his prostate against her fingertip.
"Now keep still, while I
just rotate my finger." Her words were almost lost in his groans of
protestation.
"Oooooooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....
Hooo... hooo" His head shook from side to side as he moaned and groaned in
his tormented state.
She could not believe the anguish
she produced in him at each firm touch of her finger against his prostate.
Cruelly she added to his torment as she spoke softly and gently.
"Open wide, there's a good
boy." Her words merely fuelled his utter humiliation as she swirled her
finger around, deep inside his bottom. Susan could not believe the absolute
thrill she felt each time she elicited another groan from the boy. She realized
that she was delighting as much in the boys sensual torment as in the feel of
his beautiful body. She felt the opening of his bottom relax as he tried to
draw his bottom away from her busy fingers. Instinctively she pressed her
middle finger against the pulsating muscle of his sphincter, feeling it slip
inside easily beside her forefinger as she increased the pressure.
"Arghhhhhhhhhhh...
oooooooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhhhh... please missssss."
His cry of torment was
accompanied by a small spurt of clear liquid from the end of his penis. She
immediately slowed her fingers, suddenly fearful that he might lose all
control.
"There we are Timothy, that
wasn't so bad, was it now?" Her words were spoken calmly. "Now just
keep still while I slip my fingers out of your little bottom. Really Timothy I
never realized how much fuss little boys make over such simple things."
Her demeaning words caused him to hang his head to the side as she slipped her
fingers out of his bottom with a satisfying sucking noise.
Casually she wiped her gloved
finger on a tissue and moved to stand by his waist, looking down at his bright
red face. "Now keep still, while I clean you once more. I can see that you
are obviously not concerned about the rude state of your penis. I just hope
that we never catch you playing with yourself. Just think how embarrassing it
would be to have to be spanked for playing with your penis."
Timothy blushed immediately, his
upper body suddenly erupting in an abundance of bright red flesh. He squeezed
his eyes shut in utter embarrassment as Susan chided him. Susan smiled to
herself as she took hold of his penis in a satisfyingly firm grip and slid his
foreskin down the shaft of his penis in one deft and practiced movement.
She could feel his flesh shudder
in utter degradation as she nonchalantly wiped the sensitive flesh without
thought to his humiliation.
She stood back and waited for him
to open his eyes before speaking to him. "Now Timothy, I want you to
really stretch those arms out behind you and keep exactly in the position I
have put you. I hope for your sake that your penis subsides before the nurses
see you... I am sure that they would be shocked by your rude behaviour."
She looked down at his naked
body, his legs splayed widely apart showing off his plump testicles. His penis
still standing straight up from his smoothly shaven flesh. "I warn you
that if you have moved from this position I will take you over my knee and
spank your bare little bottom cheeks."
Timothy felt butterflies in his
stomach as he looked up at the beautiful girl. She looked cool and self assured
as she admonished him. He could not believe how open and exposed he felt as he
watched her lay her delicate hand upon his tummy. He shuddered in embarrassment
as she causally examined his naked body.
He had never had his legs
stretched so widely apart before and the position humiliated him beyond belief.
He watched in horror as she nonchalantly smoothed her hand over his tummy and
smoothly shaven pubis, until her fingertips were touching the shaft of his
erect penis. He groaned as she suddenly raised her hand and tapped the bulbous
tip, making the plump and throbbing flesh sway backwards and forwards.
He felt utterly drained of any
self respect, his utter embarrassment paramount as she looked him in the eye.
Her expression was almost mocking as she made sure that he was paying complete
attention to her.
"Well Timothy, are you going
to obey me... and stay exactly in this position?"
His answer delighted Susan so
much, that she found it hard to contain her feeling of utter triumph.
"Oh... yes miss. I promise I
will always obey you ... er I didn't mean any harm... erm I'm just so
embarrassed er... miss Susan."
She tapped his erect penis once
more and then instinctively bent low over his outstretched body. Stretching out
her arm she took a firm hold on his penis and lowered her head to his and
suddenly kissed him full on the lips. She could feel his heart pounding as she
pushed her tongue into his mouth and at the same time slid his foreskin up and
down the shaft of his penis in a rapid motion.
As she pulled her mouth away from
his, she could feel his breath upon her cheek. She looked into his eyes, seeing
the look of rapture and supplication in his young eyes.
Susan felt she was walking on
air; such was her triumph as she turned to him once more. She could not help
herself as she suddenly decided to further embarrass the boy.
"The nurses will be in
shortly to slip a nozzle up into your bottom and when they have finished they
will take you through to the examination room to have your little penis milked...
so be a good boy and just wait quietly."
He groaned in anguish as he
watched her walk to the door, his humiliation distressingly complete when he
saw that his erect penis was throbbing and pulsing violently as it pointed
straight up towards his head.
Susan gave the boy one last look
as she held the door open. She could see that his penis was bouncing up and
down the head touching his tummy then pulsating upwards in an involuntary
cycle. She smiled to herself as she imagined what Gail's expression would be
when she got a chance to tell her exactly how she had handled their young
charge.
It did not seem many moments
later that Timothy heard the handle turn and the bathroom door open. He groaned
in dismay as he saw the two nurses enter the room. They were quickly followed
by Susan and Gail. He could not help turning his head in shame as the nurses
put down the bags they were carrying and began unpacking the contents on to the
small table by the bath.
It was Gail who approached him;
bending over his head she looked into his eyes and gently laid her hand flat on
his tummy. To Timothy's utmost embarrassment, he felt his penis begin to throb
violently, the shaft bobbing upwards away from his tummy and then bouncing back
with a slap. He looked at Gail almost pleadingly as if she might extricate him
from his embarrassing position. Her expression was soft and caring as she
leaned her face close to his and gently kissed him on his parted lips.
The gesture caused Timothy to
look up at her beautiful face in awe as she whispered softly to him. "Poor
baby... never mind it will all be over soon." She casually slid her hand
down over his tummy, her fingers brushing against the head of his penis as she
slipped her delicate fingers between his widely spread legs. He gasped in shock
as she gently encased his scrotum and lifted his testicles free of his body.
"There... sweetheart, it
won't be long before we empty your little plums for you, so just lay back and
keep your hands stretched out, like a brave little soldier."
Timothy blushed so violently that
Gail could feel the heat from his cheeks as she looked into his eyes. She
noticed that his pupils had almost defocused with the utter embarrassment of
his humiliating position. She felt a thrill run through her as she straightened
up, leaning over his hips so that she could examine his testicles in detail.
She could not resist letting her hand roam over his flesh as she lifted the
soft orbs upwards.
He has the most perfect body of
any boy I have ever seen, thought Gail as she stroked one hand over his tummy,
her fingers brushing against his throbbing erection, as she held his scrotum up
from between his legs.
It was not many minutes before
Gail and Susan were able to step back and watch as the nurses deftly took charge
of the young boy. A lubricated gloved hand was quickly thrust between his
bottom cheeks as Tina used her other hand to lift his testicles out of the way.
The boy's gasps and groans let the girl's know that his bottom had been
penetrated almost immediately. Susan and Gail watched as Tina's hand thrust
hard up in-between his bottom cheeks as he was deftly impaled. Gail leaned
forward to see that Tina was already probing deep inside his bottom with two
fingers.
"Argggggggggggg...ooooooooooohhhhh."
Timothy could not contain himself as he felt the fingers abruptly withdraw from
his bottom cheeks and be immediately replaced by a hard bulbous object. His
hips rose up from the table in anguish, as his sphincter was skilfully
penetrated by the enema nozzle.
Tina's voice was quite causal and
measured as she turned her head to Gail and Susan. "I am using a large
sized nozzle; it is an excellent device for making the water swirl up inside
him... and it will also keep his sphincter stretched so that I can use two fingers
to penetrate him while Penny is milking his penis."
Timothy was cocooned in a mist of
humiliating anguish as he listened to the nurse casually explain her methods to
Susan and Gail.
For Gail and Susan, the absolute
thrill of the boy's torment was a pleasure to be savoured. Whether his young
body was writhing with pain or pleasure made no difference to the thrill they
felt. To be able to control his emotions... to watch his pale torso arch in
anguished emotion, was such a fulfilling sight that neither girl intended to
ever deny themselves this new-found pleasure.
Tina attached the large clear
plastic bag of liquid to the flange of the stainless steel nozzle; nonchalantly
she continued probing his bottom, watching the device move easily in and out of
his sphincter as Penny placed her fingers around the enema bag. "He has
obviously only recently been to the lavatory, his bottom seems clean, but penny
is going to give him two bags full anyway." She turned to Timothy and
spoke sharply. "Have you just been to the toilet Timothy?"
Timothy could hardly answer such
was his distress. Tina had not lessened her vigorous probing of his bottom,
instead she seemed to punctuate her words with even firmer thrusts of the large
bulbous nozzle.
"Oooohhhh... errr ooooohh
yesssss...misssssss."
His words ended with a hiss of
anguish as Penny suddenly squeezed the bag, sending a fierce gush of water deep
into his colon.
"There... that is obviously
having an effect, I'll just attach the second bag and fill you up and then you
can evacuate into the toilet bowl." Penny smiled at the stricken boy as
she closed off the large nozzle and detached the empty bag. The boy was left
with the nozzle sticking out of his bottom like a large dildo. Gail and Susan
smiled as they saw how his hips squirmed as Tina deliberately pushed and pulled
the nozzle to demonstrate to the girls how firmly it was being held by the
muscles of his sphincter. Penny casually attached an even larger bag of fluid
to the stainless steel flange and began to squeeze the bag with a steady
pressure.
Gail could see the anguish on the
young boys face as Tina casually took hold of his penis as well as his
testicles and squeezed them firmly.
For Timothy, the sensation of
having his penis touched never lessened. He could feel every nuance of the
incredible touch of her cool fingers as she wrapped them around the sensitive
skin below the glans. The causal way that she teased the foreskin down the
shaft, baring him completely, caused him untold embarrassment and sexual
trauma. He could feel the fingers of her other hand deliberately envelop his
scrotum and her grip tighten as she held him firmly. It humiliated him beyond
belief that she could so casually control his every emotion, her cool
expression appearing almost callous as she looked at his face.
"Just a few more squeezes of
the enema bag and we will let you go to the toilet... there.. how's that?"
Penny need not have asked the question as she saw the boy writhe around with
the sensation of the water filling his tummy.
Timothy was in turmoil. The water
seemed to have filled him completely. He could feel a firm and urgent pressure
to expel as the nurses held him for a few minutes before putting their hands
under his bottom and almost lifting him from the table. He felt the nozzle
stretch his sphincter wide as it was deftly removed. A wad of dressing was
quickly thrust between the cheeks of his bottom as the nurses helped him to a
sitting position and then off the bed and on to the floor, helping him to walk
almost bowlegged towards the lavatory bowl.
He was blushing furiously as he
looked at Gail and Susan who were standing in the middle of the room watching
his every move. Their expressions gave no clue as to the thrill they were
feeling at seeing him being so thoroughly and expertly humiliated at the hands
of the young nurses. They stood relaxed, their expressions cool and appraising.
The prim and elegantly cut skirts and blouses added to their authoritarian
stature and distanced them in rank from the blushing and humiliated young boy.
Timothy felt utterly awkward and
foolish. He had no defence against the unending onslaught of degrading
humiliation. One of the nurses held his arms to steady him, while the other
firmly held the wad of dressing between the cheeks of his bottom. He was
acutely aware of his erection as his penis bobbed to and from between his legs
as he walked between the two young nurses. He could not help looking up as he
passed Gail and Susan, to see whether they had noticed his erection swaying to
and fro between his legs. His cheeks caught fire in a stomach wrenching wave of
embarrassment, as he saw their raised eyebrows at his shameful plight. Their
pretty faces seemed to have an amused and yet disdainful look, as if his
erection was to be the expected behaviour from such a naughty child.
The next twenty minutes seemed to
engulf Timothy into a mire of such deep embarrassment and humiliation that he
trembled and shook through the entire proceedings. His body was cocooned in a
seemingly endless aura of shameful blushing. After he had embarrassingly voided
the contents of his tummy into the toilet bowl, he was made to bend and touch
his toes. A large syringe was deftly inserted between the cheeks of his bottom
and then pushed further up until it slipped through his sphincter. The ensuing
gush of water made him stand upright, as if an electric shock had been applied
to his bottom.
Again the nurses had sat him on
the toilet and waited while he shamefully voided. His feeling of utter
humiliation accumulated with each procedure, until he felt totally drained of
any self respect. Such was his shame that he trembled and shook as they stood
him in the large bath and bathed him. His embarrassment and shock was apparent
to everyone, as his foreskin was deftly pulled back and his throbbing penis
exposed fully.
Shivering with shame, he was laid
back upon the table while the nurses dried and powdered him, his legs being
held high up in the air as extra talcum was applied deftly and summarily
between the quivering cheeks of his bottom.
When the nurses were entirely
satisfied with his preparation, he was led briskly into the examination room
and perfunctorily laid on the examination couch. He had moaned and groaned as
both Tina and Penny hoisted his legs in to the stirrups so that his knees were
bent backwards towards his chest. A folded towel was placed under the small of
his back, further elevating his bottom from the surface of the examination
table.
"There that should make you
nice and accessible when I come and pop my fingers up into your little
bottom." Tina had said embarrassingly, as she deliberately patted his
bottom, emphasising the absolute rude and open exposure of his young naked
body.
The girls had left him in this
position and exited the room, leaving him to ponder his fate in a blinding
fever of anguish and shame.
*
"The Chablis is from my
mother's cellar... I hope you like it," Gail said as she finished handing
the glasses to Susan and the two nurses."
"I had noticed that everything
that you have seems to be of the best," Tina said, her tone completely
without malice or envy, as she took her glass. "I think our young boy in
the next room would certainly fit in with the quality of your er... possessions
quite nicely."
Gail had to smile, realising that
perhaps Tina had already guessed some of her intentions. Gail leaned back and
sipped from her glass as Tina continued.
"When I saw him at the
school medicals, I couldn't take my eyes off him. He really is perfection isn't
he... I have seen a lot of naked young boys... and fancied rather a lot of
them, but I have never seen any boy that comes close to the physical perfection
of Timothy."
Tina was not the least
embarrassed as Penny and Susan had looked at her quizzically as she had mentioned
fancying some of the boys at their medicals.
"Look I would never admit it
at work, but I often deliberately embarrass a boy. I have made lots of them
ejaculate when I have bathed them or shaved them. If I am working on my own I
like to massage their prostates, some of them don't even know what's happening
until suddenly they are spurting all over the place." She smiled at Gail.
"I know one thing, I envy you having Timothy to play with... he's
delicious." The girls could not help grinning as Tina sat back and made a
funny face.
Gail looked serious for a moment
and then spoke. "I need to ask you something... er both Susan and I... er
well, perhaps more...er... me actually, would like you to make him ejaculate
only once. I would like him to have something left for when we put him to
bed... if you don't mind?"
Tina laughed and patted Gail's
knee. "Think nothing of it, however you would be surprised how many more
times, that young man in there is capable of ejaculating. His output is more
than most mature men can manage. There is nothing physically wrong with him as
such.... and eventually, when he becomes sexually active, he will just be
someone who has a high sexual drive... lucky, lucky lady I say."
The Girl's giggled in unison as
Tina pulled another funny face and slipped her hand down on to her lap...
"God I feel... erm... well you know." She raised her eyes to heaven
as all the girls erupted into peels of laughter.
Timothy's embarrassment knew no
bounds as the girls walked into the examination room. His rude and widely
spread position afforded him not one vestige of dignity. He almost jumped off
the bed as Gail leaned over him and placed her hands on each of his nipples,
her beautiful face coming close to his as she whispered to him.
"There sweet boy, lay back
and relax... nurse is going to milk your little penis... so try and be a brave
little boy and not make a fuss. Now promise me you will be good and I will give
you a little kiss while nurse pops her fingers into your bottom. Now relax the
muscles in your bottom for me, so that she can slip right up inside you."
Susan, who was standing at the
head of the bed, leaned forward. Her soft breasts pressed against his forearms
as she placed her hands upon his shoulders, effectively pinning him to the bed.
Gail leaned forward too; she
could feel the heat of his body as she pressed her soft breasts against his
trembling flesh. Her fingers gently toyed with his nipples as she pressed her
lips to his and forced her tongue into his mouth. She kissed him deeply as she
raised one hand to signal to Tina.
She could not resist the thrill
that ran through her body as she felt the boy try to rear up as she realised
that Tina had slipped her greased fingers up between the cheeks of his bottom.
The young nurse's fingers urgently searched for the tightened muscles of his
sensitive sphincter. Tina hesitated... savouring the moment before deftly
pushing upwards, slipping her slender finger right up through his quivering
orifice.
Gail could feel the boy's entire
body shiver with emotion as she thrust her tongue deep into his mouth. Her
action stifled any cry of protest that the young boy might utter. She could
feel his anguish as Penny deftly slipped the skin of his foreskin down to the
very base of the shaft of his penis. Her fingers curled tightly around his
timid flesh, before she started milking his throbbing member. Her strokes were
fast and urgent as Tina located the plump mound of his prostate gland. Gail
knew that she would soon have to let the boy take a breath. His young body
trembled with emotion as his chest heaved upwards and his back arched in
absolute torment.
She drew back her head and
watched as his mouth opened wide and he inhaled deeply. His eyes were wide
open, defocused in anguished sensation as the nurses quickly stimulated him to
an almost unbearable frenzy of emotion.
He looked at Gail, his eyes
betraying every nuance of his utter humiliation as he gazed at her beautiful
countenance. Her perfect beauty and cool appraisal of his distress, added to
his feeling of degradation. Her small, perfectly formed mouth and beautiful
large eyes betrayed nothing of the absolute thrill she felt as the boy groaned
in utter torment. His young torso was heaving with emotion as he fought to
control his senses.
"Poor baby, never mind it
will all be over soon... try and be a brave little boy, I am sure the nurse is
being as gentle as she can." Gail looked around to see that, rather than
being gentle, Penny was milking him with her right hand, his penis engulfed in
a rapid and vigorous motion. The fingers of her other hand were wrapped around
his scrotum, lifting and squeezing his testicles as Tina expertly slipped a
second finger straight up into his bottom. Tina was already holding the test
tube as she winked at Gail in a conspiring gesture, as if to tell her that the
boy was already at the very edge of ejaculating.
"Arrrrggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
The boy moaned in absolute distress as Gail moved her face closer to his.
"There, the nurse is just
going to make you ejaculate, try and do your best for me... I want a nice full
test tube for the doctor. Now keep looking at me so that I can make sure you
are doing your best... there... that's the way...let me have a nice big
squirt... there that's the way."
Gail's softly spoken words seemed
to spur the boy on. His penis erupted with a violent ejaculation. Large
globules of semen shot into the jar as Tina casually held it against the tip of
his penis. Gail could see that she was jabbing rapidly between the widely
spread cheeks of his bottom as he moaned and groaned his way through a deep and
wracking orgasm. His chest was thrust upwards and his back was arching off the
surface of the bed. He gulped and gasped for breath as the young nurses held him
in the throes of agony and ecstasy.
"Oooooohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
misssssssssssssssssssssss." To Gail's absolute delight, it was to her that
he looked at as his penis erupted with eruption after eruption of thick semen
into the waiting rest tube.
She looked back quickly, watching
in fascination as his penis continued to erupt in an endless and violent
expression of thick, milky white globules of semen.
She turned back to him and
lowered her head to his. Her kiss was one of delicious emotion, as she thrust
her tongue deep into his throat, robbing him of his breath at the very point he
needed it most.
Her lips held him in the absolute
throws of utter abandonment. Her instinctive knowledge of his dilemma thrilled
her more than she could have possibly expected.
Clinically and deftly the girls
manipulated his body, agonisingly plundering his tender emotions to such an
extent that he felt he would explode with the overwhelming sensation of it all.
Gail suddenly released his lips,
watching his young body heave and shudder as he drew precious air into his
lungs. Her beautiful face seemed to mesmerise him as blackness surrounded his
peripheral vision and for a moment he lost all control.
The girls caressed him, smoothing
their delicate fingers over his body as he struggled to regain control of his
senses. He gasped as Tina's fingers were gently slipped from in-between his
bottom cheeks and his testicles were squeezed firmly. He shuddered as Penny
nonchalantly coaxed the last vestiges of semen from his rigid and throbbing
member. He could feel the cool touch of her fingers as she slipped his foreskin
upwards over the sensitive glans of his penis. She could feel every anguished
tremor of his body as she casually went about her business.
*
Timothy was lying on the couch
watching the television. He was dressed in his chinos and Tee shirt. Although
the programme was one of his favourites, he found it hard to concentrate on
anything other than his latest humiliation. Thankfully he had been spared a
second milking, but even that had been little comfort as the nurses had
casually held his testicles up from between his thighs and asked both Susan and
Gail to come and feel the size of them.
"Well as long as his little
penis does not become stiff again, I suppose one semen extraction will be
enough for this evening." Gail's words had shamed him in to turning his
head to the side and closing his eyes as she had causally squeezed his scrotum.
Gail had told him to lie quietly
until he felt rested, then he could get dressed and they would take him back to
his mother's cottage. Tina had brought him his clothes. She had laid them on
his tummy as she released his legs from the stirrups. To Timothy's horror, she
had taken hold of his penis and pulled the foreskin back, revealing the soft
tissue beneath.
"I bet this little fellow
doesn't stay soft for very long." She had squeezed the timid flesh before
letting him go and kissing him gently on the cheek. Her amusement at his
embarrassed expression made him blush profusely. She stood back and looked him
straight in the eye.
"See you next time
Sweetie" She had chuckled as she left him in his haze of humiliation and
confusion.
Later, Gail and Susan had walked
him over to his mother's cottage and told him to sit quietly and watch the
television. The girls left him and made their way to the dining room. Although
Timothy's mother did not entertain guests very often since the death of her
husband, the dining room had always been kept in ready for an occasion, should
it arise.
The dark mahogany dining room
table was surrounded by eight chairs; the formal positioning of the table was
accented by the slightly darker furniture of the dressers and china cabinets
which surrounded the walls. The two tall bookcases which stood at each of the
opposing walls provided a quite formal ambience to the dining room.
Gail and Susan laughed at each
other as they arranged the dining chairs. They placed two of the chairs in an
open area of the room and positioned the others so that four of the chairs were
behind the table with one at each end. This arrangement left one side of the
table free and facilitated the classic formal interview situation. Although in
this case, the interviewee would have to stand. The crowning touch was the
placing of a large Victorian footstool on the floor, directly in front of the
table.
The Girls stood back and admired
their work. Mischievously, Susan stood on the stool and placed her hands upon
her head, imitating their proposed positioning of Timothy. She placed her feet
well apart on the broad wooden platform, realising that the stool would elevate
the boy admirably for their purpose.
Gail could not help laughing as
she moved behind Susan and slipped her delicate fingers under her skirt. Susan
shivered as Gail slid her hand up between her thighs and clasped her hand over
the gossamer material that covered her prominent pubic mound.
"Naughty Susan, I think I
have just time to scratch that naughty itch of yours." Susan shivered
again as she felt Gail's gentle fingertips tease their way beneath the material
and slide between the pliant puffy lips of her labia. Without warning Susan
felt the scissor motion of Gail's fingers as they clasped the nub of her
clitoris. Gail ignored the girl's moans as she quickly worked her fingers over
Susan's sex. She could feel Susan's body shiver, a fine tremor running through
her loins as she quickly worked her fingers knowingly between the girl's legs.
Gail knew that Susan's climax was
imminent. She would have admitted that, had it been the other way round, that
it would have only taken a few minutes before she herself would have succumbed
to the same kind of stimulus. Gail suddenly quickened the pace of her fingers,
holding the girl tightly as she expertly stimulated her sex. Almost cruelly she
scored her fingernails over the hardened nub of the girl's clitoris, until
Susan gasped and bit her lip to stop herself from crying out.
Gail did not lesson the pace of
her fingers until she felt Susan's body almost collapse as she climaxed. Her
knees felt week as Gail held her around the waist and benevolently slowed the
pace of her fingers, suddenly caressing rather than fuelling her sexual desire.
"Oh my God... oh Gail you
are good... don't think that the compliment will not be returned. Oh my... can
you imagine what Timothy must feel with all the stimulation we give him, no
wonder the poor boy faints."
Gail looked at Susan. "You
know Susan we are very lucky girls... I can't wait to get my hands on him
again. I think afterwards I will certainly be accepting your offer."
Both Gail and Susan were in fits
of giggles as Susan lowered her hands and cheekily caressed Gail's breast
through the silky material of her blouse. "Come on let's go and get ready,
I need to... er you know... er and I think the occasion calls for fresh makeup,
don't you think?" Susan bright eyes and earnest expression made Gail laugh
once more as she looked at her friend.
"Oh just one minute..."
Gail said, "What do you think of this, it's nice and soft, but with a nice
satisfying slap. Gail fumbled around in the bag she had brought and found the
suede slipper. She held it up and slapped it against the palm of her hand; the
slap was loud and staccato. Susan looked at it, noting the thinness of the sole
and the velvety softness of the leather.
"That is ideal, I would
imagine if you gave enough strokes it would smart, but not be at all severe.
Gail that is perfect... slip it onto the seat of the chair and then you can
show it to him at the appropriate time."
*
It was thirty minutes later that
Timothy looked up, his face suddenly turning pale as he looked and sensed that
something was wrong. Their immaculate formal dress and the severe expressions
on their faces suddenly put him ill at ease. He felt a shiver run through his
body as Gail addressed him.
"Well Timothy, because of
your behaviour today we both need to have a word with you. Turn the television
off and then go and brush your hair and clean your teeth, I would like you to
make yourself a little more presentable. Then we both want to see you in the
dining room, don't keep us waiting so... get to it."
Gail held up her hand before the
boy could ask questions... or perhaps protest.
"Off you go and we will see
you in the dining room in five minutes."
Before the boy could utter a
word, Gail and Susan had turned away and walked off towards the dining room.
Timothy sat foolishly for a minute and then reluctantly got up and switched off
the television set. He felt a gnawing dread in his stomach as he went upstairs.
Hurriedly he brushed his teeth,
feeling a growing fear as he caught sight of himself in the mirror. He realised
that his face was flushed and could clearly see that his lips were trembling.
He brushed his hair... and at the last minute took a new Tee shirt from the
pile in the bathroom's airing cupboard. He changed and examined himself in the
mirror before pushing his bare feet back into his training shoes. He turned
quickly and opening the bathroom door, he exited the room. He realised that he
was trembling quite profoundly as he descended the stairs towards the dining
room.
Although Timothy had always had
the full use of the house, he could not remember ever having used the dining
room. It was usually unheated and did not have the casual comfort of the rest
of the cottage. Like all young teenagers, Timothy preferred the comfort of
lounging on a settee or sofa rather than sitting formally. He tried to think
why they would want to see him in his mother's dining room rather than the more
comfortable areas of the house.
As he walked towards the closed
door oak door, he could feel his stomach churning with unease. He felt as if he
had been summoned to the headmistresses study rather than to his own dining
room. He stumbled rather than walked the last few paces. He stood at the door
and wondered what to do next. He bent forward and undid the laces of his
training shoes and took them off, leaving his feet bare. Subconsciously he had
remembered that his mother had always asked him to remove his shoes before
entering the dining room. The carpet had been laid some years ago and was an
expensive item that his mother kept in pristine condition.
He stood up straight and raised a
trembling hand to the door. Taking a deep breath, he knocked on the solid oak
wood; the gesture of knocking on his own dining room door seemed somehow
incongruous - and yet he felt deep down that it was the right thing to do.
Susan and Gail were seated in the
two centre chairs behind the mahogany table. Their formal apparel and beautiful
grooming gave them an air of authority and an appearance of maturity over and
above their years. They sat upright in a carefully studied pose... their beauty
and grace was such that even the most confident of male youths would have found
their appearance to be humbling.
Gail and Susan both turned to
each other, grinning triumphantly, as they heard the timid knock upon the door.
Earlier Gail had turned on the chandelier which hung from the middle of the
ceiling. The bright lights of the ornately tiered arms illuminated the room
very brightly, in contrast to the pretty wall lights that were normally used to
light the room for dining.
Gail waited for a moment,
savouring the suspense, before whispering to Susan to call him into the room.
Susan was surprised at how calm and authoritative her voice was as she called
out clearly. "Please come."
The Girls quickly composed
themselves, their expressions calm and serious as they watched the handle turn
in the oak door. To their delight Timothy was trembling as he almost shuffled
rather than walked into the room. The expressions on Gail's and Susan's faces
were cool and nonchalantly appraising as Timothy stood in the doorway.
"Please close the door
behind you, will you Timothy and then come and stand in front of the table
where we can see you properly."
The boy's nervousness was overtly
apparent as he closed the door and turned back towards them. He blushed
immediately as both of the girls watched him approach the table. Their delight
was not apparent to their timid and apprehensive quarry.
"Come closer to the table
and stand up straight, shoulders back and hands at your sides... come along
don't dawdle, we have some very serious words to say to you."
Gail's opening address caused the
boy to blush a deep shade of red as he struggled with his emotions. Eventually
he managed to step forward and stand straight with his hands pressed to either
side of his thighs. He managed to look at the girls, but not without blushing
furiously as they both eyed him calmly.
Their appearance intimidated him
to such an extent that he felt a tremor run through him. The beauty of both
girls was amplified by their immaculate grooming and make-up... and yet their
appearance was foreboding. He could not help noticing the fullness of their
breasts as they leaned forward against the table-top, or the sharp outline of
their nipples against the silky crisp-white cotton of their tailored shirts.
The juxtaposition between their stunning beauty and the forbidding formality of
the setting, had the young boy at sixes and sevens.
He felt utterly foolish and
humbled as he stood trembling before them, feeling like an errant schoolboy
awaiting a severe admonishment. The girl's absolute authority was now
unquestionable. He stood a few feet from the table and dropped his head, his
embarrassment so acute that he was no longer able to look at them.
Gail raised her head and spoke
clearly, her beautifully cultured voice, articulate and concise.
"You will see a footstool in
front of you, please step up on to it and stand straight with your hands at
your sides. When you have done so, please raise your head so that we can see
your face. Come along now, we urgently need to have a very serious talk young
man."
Her words caused another
immediate and furious blush to suffuse the young boy's cheeks. He felt unable
to compose even the simplest of replies... or any protestation. Humbly he
shuffled forward and with trembling embarrassment stepped up on to the low
wooden footstool. He felt his thighs press against the edge of the table as he
stood up straight and timidly raised his head.
It was Susan whom opened the
proceedings. Looking him straight in the eye, she spoke softly and quietly. Her
words were deliberately intended to instil upon the young boy, a further layer
of humiliating guilt.
"Timothy, you have behaved
abominably today. With all the goodwill in the world I cannot countenance such
behaviour from you. You have disobeyed instructions and protested at every
opportunity." Susan watched his face turn from bright red to an almost
purple hue as her words were absorbed. His lips began to tremble and a tear
formed in the corner of his eye as she continued.
"In fact you have been a
very silly little boy... and you have demonstrated your immaturity to everyone
that has tried to help you. What do you have to say for yourself?"
Such was the boy's utter shame
that he could hardly articulate his words. The seriousness of the almost
courtroom-style setting, allied to his humbling admonishment, made him feel
utterly foolish and belittled.
He drew in his breath and spoke,
his voice cracked and trembling.
"Oh please miss... I am so
sorry." A tear rolled down his burning cheek as stammered. "I promise
miss... I will be good..." He started to cry as his voice trailed off into
complete silence.
Gail leaned forward. She could
have reached out and touched him across the table if she had wanted. Instead
she rebuked him sharply.
"Pull yourself together
Timothy and look at me." The boy looked startled, suddenly stiffening his
body and standing up straighter as Gail continued.
I know you have made some
improvement, but that does not mean that you should not be rebuked for your
earlier behaviour. Now face forward and keep your head up and tell us both what
you intend to do to rectify your behaviour.
Timothy took a deep breath; the
sharp rebuke had suddenly stifled his emotion. He looked at the two beautiful
girls; his humiliation so utterly engulfed him that he felt foolish beyond
belief.
"I... er... I will do
everything you say... er from now on miss. I promise... er truly I will."
"Well Timothy, I will take
your word... if you mean what you say! We have been lenient with you in not
referring today's behaviour to your cousin Hazel, but I warn you that this is
the last time that I will ever allow such a thing. Now promise me again."
Timothy exhaled his breath
slowly... he felt relief that somehow Gail had seemed to let him off the hook.
"I promise miss that I
will... er obey without question!"
Gail squeezed Susan's knee under
the table as she looked at Timothy. Her face softened and she spoke gently.
"Alright Timothy... I will
take your word. Now cheer up a little. I have finished scolding you. It is
unfortunate that you have to have medical treatment, but there it is. So you
must obey everyone from now on. I am not going to lecture you any
further." Gail looked at her watch.
"It is getting late... so
Susan and I will get you ready for bed and you can have a good night's
sleep." She watched Timothy intently, seeing the relief on his face before
she delivered her `coup de grace'. Her voice was bright and pleasant, as if her
pronouncement was nothing more than a mere formality.
"Now we will just get you
punishment over with as quickly as we can. Please bare your bottom for
spanking."
Both Susan and Gail watched with
delight as the boy's face fell. His look of astonishment and surprise was
exquisite. He blushed again, this time his colour was so vivid that Gail
thought he might have a fit.
"But... er but..."
Gail's voice was firm and sharp.
"I thought we agreed that there would be no `buts'. You will do as you are
told or your punishment will be prolonged and made much more severe. Now do as
I have told you and bare your bottom for a sound spanking."
Timothy looked in horror at the
two girls. His embarrassment and humiliation was so acute that he felt faint.
Slowly and with trembling fingers his hands moved to his belt. He looked up at
the two girls as if to ensure that he had heard correctly. Their faces betrayed
not one iota of compassion or hope for him as he timidly loosened the buckle.
The girls watched avidly, hiding
their excitement as they watched him unzip his chinos and pull them down to his
thighs. Gail's delight was almost palpable as she watched him hesitate and then
reach behind him under his T shirt and slide the waistband of his boxer shorts
down to the lower part of his buttocks. He remained completely covered in front
by both the front of his boxers and by the length of his T shirt.
Gail waited, biding her time,
until at last the boy looked up at her. She made sure that she had his full
attention, before turning to Susan. "There is a slipper on the chair
beside you Susan. Would you be so kind as to start his punishment?"
Timothy watched in horror as
Susan lifted the slipper from the seat of the chair and brought the implement
out into full view. He looked stunned as she got up and walked around the table
to stand behind him. His attention was suddenly drawn back to Gail as she spoke
to him. Her voice was sharp and businesslike as she held his gaze. "Hands
on your head... come along no dawdling now!"
Slowly and with utter dread
Timothy placed his hands upon the top of his head. His body shook involuntarily
as Susan placed the slipper upon the table in front of him and then placed her
hands on his waist. Without preamble she reached under his shirt and slipped
her hands into the waistband of his shorts, her delicate fingers causing the
boy to shiver as she touched his skin.
Casually she slid the garment
down, pushing his chinos with it until both his trousers and shorts were around
his ankles. Without a word, she lifted each foot and divested him of both his
chinos and boxer shorts. Standing upright again, she watched him shiver
uncontrollably as she stood to his side and placed the flat of her hand upon
his bottom. She hesitated for a moment before gently pressing her other hand to
the front of his thigh and slowly began sliding her palms upwards against his
bare flesh. To his horror Timothy felt her hand brush right over his penis and
testicles as she raised the front of his shirt. She continued the progress of
both hands until she slipped the shirt up over his head. She raised it further
until she could pass it over his arms.
She stood on tiptoe pulled the
shirt upwards in a quick jerking motion, causing his hands to leave his head
for a moment as she stripped him completely.
Gail watched with delight, once
more admiring his perfectly proportioned body. His nakedness thrilled her, his
penis and testicles just inches above the surface of the table were clearly
reflected in the lustre of the wood. She examined him in minute detail,
noticing that his plump testicles had been drawn up by the tightening of his
scrotum as it reacted to the exposure of cool air.
Gail noticed that he had shut his
eyes in order to block out the embarrassment of being stripped naked. His
feelings were not to be spared as Gail had no intention of letting him evade
any part of their carefully planned chastisement.
"Now Timothy, open your eyes
and look at me. I want you to take your punishment with good grace." She
waited until she had the boy's full attention. His face was a picture of
anguish and humiliation as he reluctantly met her gaze. He could feel the cool
air on his genitals and felt utterly humiliated that he had been bared for Gail
to inspect as she saw fit.
"Now... Susan is going to
start your punishment. I want you to remain with your hands upon your head and
stand up straight. She is going to give your bottom a thorough slippering... I
want you to remain standing and looking at me while she is punishing your
bottom. Silly little boys that cannot behave themselves deserve to be soundly
spanked. Now stand up straight and take your punishment."
Although his eyes were firmly
fixed upon Gail, Timothy saw Susan take the slipper and move to his side.
He could not help clenching his
buttocks as Susan stroked the slipper over the perfect hillocks of flesh. He
shivered in anguish as she placed the palm of her hand on his thigh, just below
his testicles. He could feel the back of her hand brush his scrotum as the
first stroke landed against his tightly clenched buttocks.
"Slap... slappp...
slapppp." Susan began slippering him steadily and methodically, each
stroke of the slipper, perfectly aimed and delivered upon the very centre of
his bottom.
The indignity of standing naked
and being soundly spanked by a young girl only a few years older than himself,
made Timothy feel absolutely foolish.
The staccato slap of the slipper
against his buttocks echoed throughout the room. For Gail, the sound added to
the wonderful spectacle of the boy's punishment. She could see him flinch each
time the slipper landed against his buttocks. She held his gaze, sometimes
deliberately letting him see her eyes glance down at his genitals. She was
deliberately letting him know that she was watching, as his penis and testicles
shuddered and jiggled with the involuntary movement of his hips.
Susan continued her firm
application of the slipper upon his bottom. The flesh was already reddening;
the centre section of his buttocks becoming inflamed as she diligently beat the
boy. She could feel his testicles brushing against the back of her hand as she
continued her steady tattoo upon his young buttocks. She had never known such
delight as she enthusiastically performed her task upon his timid flesh.
"Slapp, slapppp,
slappp." His torment was applied methodically and diligently. Gail could
see that he was beginning to feel the sting of the slipper far more acutely as
the leather sole continually beat upon the same area of his bottom cheeks.
"Ohhh.... Pleeeease miss
ser.. please."
He cried out as Susan suddenly
increased the force of her strokes. The weight and suppleness of the sole made
her task easier, each stroke producing a loud crack as she held his thigh
firmly, thus increasing the intensity of her strokes.
"Oh pleeeease...miss... er
it er is hurting miss."
Timothy did not know to whom he
was addressing his plea; his buttocks seemed to have become acutely sensitive
as his slippering continued. His bottom felt as if it were burning.
He began to wriggle his hips, his
penis swaying wildly from side to side as he tried to evade his punishment. He
had received a good fifty strokes before Gail looked up at him and raised her
hand to Susan. The spanking stopped as Gail looked him in the eye.
"I will not have you try and
evade punishment in such a bombastic manner. You are here to be punished and as
yet you have done nothing but behave like a silly little boy who is trying to
avoid having his bottom spanked correctly. There is only one course of action
open to me. You will have to be taken over the knee like the silly little boy
that you are."
Gail did not wait for a reply
from the blushing youth. She got up from her seat and moved around the table to
one of the two chairs which had been placed in the centre of the room. She sat
down and spoke to Susan.
"Please bring him over here
would you Susan."
Involuntarily Timothy turned his
head to look over his shoulder. He blushed as he saw that Gail was seated on
one of the chairs. He felt Susan's cool fingers suddenly encase his penis and
turn him around by pulling on the sensitive flesh.
"Come along Timothy, Gail would
like you over her knees. I am afraid that if you won't take your punishment
like a brave little boy, then you will have to be treated like a small child
and have your bottom soundly spanked while bent over Miss Goodman's knee."
She let go of his penis and
slapped his bottom. "Come along, if you don't do as you are told, I will
have no alternative than to fetch the strap to you."
Timothy could not believe his
ears... the very thought that Susan would actually use the strap on him! He
could feel his eyes fill with tears of shame as she led him to the chair where
Gail was seated. As soon as he was within reach, Gail reached around his waist
and made him bend over. He was aware of a sudden flash of her beautiful thighs
as she brushed her skirt upwards out of the way and at the same time reached
underneath him. Her slender fingers closed around his penis and testicles as
she positioned them so that his genitals would slide down between her legs.
Timothy felt the weight of his
body fall over her lap. He supported his weight on his hands as his upper-body
was dispensed with. Ignominiously his head hung down towards the floor as he
felt her hand slide around his waist and hold him tightly. He could feel the
firm flesh of her thighs, press tightly against his penis and testicles as she
prepared him for punishment.
His ears were ringing with shame
as she spoke to him. The utter embarrassment of his position made her words
even more shaming.
"Fancy having to be taken
over my lap and having to have your bottom spanked. Don't you feel utterly
ashamed of yourself? It seems Timothy that you did not heed any of my words...
and so you will have to learn the hard way!"
Timothy was utterly shamed as
Gail placed the palm of her hand upon his reddened buttocks. Leisurely she
stroked over the firm flesh letting her fingers trail between the deep crease
of his bottom and then down between his legs. "Now relax your bottom I
want unhindered access." She let her hand continue to trail downwards, her
fingertips brushing sensuously over the sensitive skin of his bulging scrotum.
"Come along now relax your muscles or I will have Susan hold you
open."
Susan looked at the naked boy.
She could see that his face was red to the extreme as Gail continued to tease
his flesh.
Gail felt his buttocks begin to
relax, twitching occasionally as her fingers prompted an involuntary response
from him. "Now keep them relaxed while I spank you soundly. I am going to
treat you like the naughty child you are and spank your bare bottom with my hand.
Afterwards I am going to give you a good slippering. Are you going to behave...
or am I going to have to add several strokes of the strap?"
Timothy was in turmoil as he felt
her hand stroke over his bottom. He could feel his penis throb as her thighs
held his penis and testicles captive.
Her words shamed him into
complete submission as he stammered. "Oh please miss, I am sorry I really
promise to be good." His shame was completed when Susan knelt down and sat
back on her heels, taking his head in her hands and supporting it on her
thighs.
Her voice was soft and low, but
her words shamed him beyond belief.
"Now be a good boy and take
your punishment. Fancy having to be taken over the head girl's lap and have
your bare bottom spanked like a child. Don't you feel absolutely ashamed of
yourself?" He felt Susan's soft hands stroke against both cheeks of his
face as she held his head down.
Her words had underlined his
absolute shame and anguish.
Gail spoke to him once more.
"Now keep still while you are being given your punishment!" He felt
her remove her hand from his buttocks and almost immediately the sharp sting
over the very centre of the crease as she began his spanking.
Gail was almost delirious with
excitement as she watched the cheeks of his young bottom shudder and quiver as
she brought her hand down. She could clearly see the imprint of her palm upon
his flesh as she raised her arm and proceeded to deliver slap after slap on to
the quivering flesh. Even though she knew that her spanks were hurting him, she
could feel that his penis was throbbing quite dramatically. She realized that
the burgeoning flesh was quickly thickening into a full erection. She squeezed
her thighs together to confirm that indeed, not only was the young boy erect, but
that his penis was throbbing uncontrollably. To distance herself from the
intimate contact she admonished him as she continued spanking him soundly.
"Smackkk... smackkkk...
smackkk."
"What a naughty little boy
you have been. Don't you feel any shame all... having your bare bottom spanked.
What would the girls at school think if they could see you now?" Susan
felt his head shake in a miserable manifestation of shame and dismay at her
friend's words. He gasped and moaned in response to both his verbal humiliation
- and to the utter torment of the continuous and thorough spanking his bottom
was receiving.
He looked through his tears at
the bared flesh of Susan's thighs as she gently stroked her hands over the
burning cheeks of his face. He could not have articulated how utterly
humiliated and ashamed he felt. The very thought that he was being spanked like
a child with his head hanging down and his bottom raised in the air... and all
at the hands of the two prettiest girls in his school!
"Oh peease stop miss... er
I'm sooo sorry. Please miss nooo more"
Timothy's voice was trembling,
his bottom feeling as if it was on fire. He was shamefully aware of the
throbbing of his penis as Gail's firm hand continued to spank his bare
buttocks.
Susan continued to stroke his
face, her soft hands brushing away his tears as she held his head gently. She
lifted her hand and stroked the palm over his shoulders. "There, there...
you have to be punished... little boys have to have their bottoms spanked when
they are naughty... try and be a brave boy."
Susan's words, although
ostensibly comforting, were really designed to humiliate the boy even further.
Neither girl could have articulated why they felt such a thrill in punishing
and humiliating the boy, but the sexual excitement they both felt was very
real.
Gail felt a sudden thrill run
through her body as she continued the methodical spanking of Timothy's bottom.
The sensation was so overwhelming that she squeezed her legs together in a
paroxysm of delight. She felt an answering but involuntary throb from the boy,
as the smooth flesh of her thighs stimulated his smoothly shaven penis and
testicles.
"Smack... smack... smack...
smack."
Although the palm of her hand was
stinging from the constant smacking of his bottom cheeks, she did not feel the
pain unduly. She realised that the flesh of her hand was far more resilient
than the virgin flesh of his young bottom. She sensed that the boy was coming
to the end of his tether as he tried to raise his head. He arched his back and
lifted one hand from the floor to try and reach behind him to assuage the
onslaught to his bottom.
"Smack... smack... smack...
smack."
Tears were rolling down his
cheeks and his voice was cracked as he tried to articulate his words. "Oh
pleeeeeeeeeeeeeeease missss. Please er... nooo more...arggghhh...
ooooOOOOHHH... please..."
He had begun to moan and plead
constantly, as his buttocks were flattened against the palm of her hand at each
point of impact. Gail delighted in changing the pattern of her spanking by
bringing the palm of her hand smartly up against the underside of his bottom.
The already reddened flesh seemed to quake as each sharp slap contacted with
his quivering buttocks.
"Smack... smack... smack...
smack."
"What a naughty boy you are,
I hope you are learning your lesson well. Are you going to promise that you
will obey me without question... or would you like me to continue smacking your
bare bottom? Smack... smack... smack... smack. I would have thought that you
would feel ashamed of being spanked... look at you... crying and wriggling like
a little child."
"oooooHHHHooo...
arggghhhhh... please, please... oh please miss noooo more, I can't stand it
misss... oooooohhhhhh."
Susan could feel the wetness of
his tears as she brushed his cheeks, gently goading him with softly spoken
words. "Be a good boy and raise your bottom for your punishment... so that
Gail can spank you properly, you mustn't be a naughty boy and try and evade
your punishment... it is for your own good."
She was delighted as the boy
shuddered in absolute shame at her words. She watched as time after time Gail's
hand landed on his quivering buttocks. The sharp staccato sound seemed to add
to the thrill she felt as the boy was soundly and thoroughly spanked.
"Smack... smack... smack...
smack."
Timothy could not believe the
pain and torment he felt, his anguish was such that he felt delirious with
shame and humiliation.
"Arghhhhh... I promise
miss... I really promise. Pleeease misss nooooooooo more."
Gail knew that it was time to
stop. Instead of smacking him, she thrust her hand in-between the cheeks of his
bottom, just below the juncture of his buttock and thigh. Quickly she
insinuated her fingers between her own thigh and the boy's testicles, until she
could grasp the swollen orbs within her hand. She could feel the stiff and
swollen shaft of the perineum area as she enveloped his scrotum. She held him
firmly as she spoke.
"Now young man... I hope
that has taught you a lesson. What a silly little boy you have been... are you
going to promise us that you will obey our instructions from now on... or are
you going to have to be spanked again?"
"Oh please miss... I
promise, I will never disobey you again."
"Well I am going to imprint
that notion in your head. I am going to give you a further six sound strokes
with the slipper. Before you try and plead with me, I must warn you that if you
protest I will double the number of strokes." Timothy moaned and shivered
in dread as he felt Susan reach up and offer the slipper to Gail. At the same
time he felt Gail squeeze his testicles before withdrawing her hand from
between the cheeks of his bottom.
"Susan dear... would you
reach underneath him for me... and persuade him to raise his bottom into a
proper position for punishment?" Gail's voice was quite matter of fact and
yet Susan had to stifle an urge to snicker as she realised what Gail meant her
to do. She reached between her friends knees, cheekily caressing the inside of
her thighs as she quickly located the boy's erect penis. Timothy nearly jumped
out of his skin as Susan pushed the foreskin up, revealing the sensitive rim of
the glans underneath. Immediately, Timothy raised his bottom in protest,
jerking his hips as the girl's fingers impudently pinched the tip of his penis.
Slappppp...slapppppp...
slappppp... slapppp... slapppp... slapppppppp!"
"Arggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhh....
Argggggggggghhhhhhh... oooohhhhhhhhh. The boy's response was immediate. He
cried out in utter torment as Gail delivered the six strokes in rapid
succession. The flesh quivering and shuddering as an enveloping wave of
excruciating pain seared through his buttocks.
"Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....
Arggggggghhhhhhh," he wailed as the fire in his flesh seemed to build into
an ever increasing burden of torment and misery.
Gail's voice was calm and
scathing, belying the absolute thrill she felt as she looked at the boy's
beautiful naked body, writhing and shivering upon her knees.
"Pull yourself together
young man, you have only yourself to blame for your punishment." Her words
shamed him as he struggled with the pain in his buttocks. He felt her hand
casually delve between the cheeks of his bottom and her fingers wrap around his
testicles. At the same time he felt his foreskin being pushed further up the
shaft and then pumped up and down in a rapid motion. He felt his penis throb
vigorously in response. Susan felt the throb and immediately withdrew her hand.
She looked up at Gail and grinned as the boy shuddered in torment.
"Let's get you off my knee
and standing on your own two feet... shall we?" Gail spoke to the boy as
if her had been merely sitting on her knee, rather than having had his bare
bottom soundly spanked with both hand and slipper.
Susan quickly let go of the boy's
head and stood up. She took him by the shoulders, grinning at Gail as she saw
that her hand was holding him firmly by the testicles.
Both girls manoeuvred the boy
until he was standing upright. Gail smiled to herself as she saw him quickly
clasp both hands to his genitals and cover his erection, his face flushing to
an incredibly deep shade of red as he did so.
Gail quickly brushed her skirt
back over her thighs and sat primly, her pretty knees placed modestly together.
Susan stood behind the boy and looked over his shoulder at Gail.
Timothy shuddered as he looked at
Gail's pretty face. Her expression was serious as she looked up at him. The
tears were still running down his cheeks and his bottom was on fire. He would
have loved to rub the smarting flesh, but such was his shame that he dare not
uncover himself.
Suddenly Susan smacked him hard
on the cheeks of his bottom. "Smackkkk... now get those hands on your head
this instance. My word!! You know that you are not allowed to play with your
genitals. Now get those hands on top of your head. Smack... smackkk...
smackkkkk."
Her words were punctuated with a
serious of sharp slaps to the very centre of his sore buttocks. She could
clearly see his body shudder as he reluctantly uncovered himself and raised his
hands to his head. He could not help looking down as his erection sprang
forward, causing him to blush profusely as Gail looked directly at his penis
and testicles.
"Now what is this...?"
She raised her hand and tapped the rigid flesh of his penis, watching it sway
to and fro as it stood out from his body.
"Have you seen this
Susan?" Gail asked, as she pointed to the boy's genitalia. "His penis
is erect! I would have thought that the nurses had milked him sufficiently for
one day. Would you slip you hands between his legs and feel his testicles for
me, they look as if they are swollen again."
Susan was pleased that the boy
could not see her face as she grinned at Gail, almost causing her to lose her
serious expression. Susan leaned against him and placed her hand sensuously
around his waist and held the palm flat against the lower part of his tummy.
Deliberately she brushed her cheek against his ear as she whispered to him.
"Open your legs nice and wide and push your little bare bottom back towards
me. I am going to slip my fingers between your legs and feel your testicles. I
promise I will be very gentle with your little plums."
Gail nearly burst out laughing as
she caught the words that Susan had whispered in his ear. She could see that
the boy was trembling with emotion as he shuffled his legs apart.
To Gail's delight she noted that
the boy did not have to be told to spread them wider. He adopted a stance that
had his legs spread over a metre apart. Perhaps he has learned his lesson she
thought, as she watched him close his eyes in shame and steel his body for the
next indignity.
Susan bent her knees, causing her
hand to slip down his tummy until her little finger was resting against the
shaft of his penis. Her intimate handling of the boy did not stop there, as she
placed her other hand on his burning buttocks.
"My, my... your little
bottom is burning hot. No wonder you were crying like a baby. Now push your
bottom back so that I can slip my hand between your legs." She gently
probed in-between the cheeks of his bottom, before sliding her hand down and
through his legs. Deliberately she let her fingers caress his flesh,
stimulating his senses with delicate probing and soft touches. She nonchalantly
scraped her finger nails over the underside of his penis before cupping his
scrotum in the palm of her hand.
She closed her fingers over the
sensitive scrotal sac and grasped the soft orbs firmly in her hand.
The boy shuddered as he felt the
firm encasement of his testicles. He expelled air in an anguished breath as she
moved the testicles to and fro within his scrotum.
"Poor baby, they are really
swollen again aren't they." She squeezed the sac gently, before letting
him go. She stood upright her hand trailing over his buttocks to feel the heat of
the flesh.
Timothy felt utterly ridiculous
as he stood with his legs apart, blushing with the indignity of having had his
testicles held firmly and inspected as if he were a prize animal.
Timothy was in utter turmoil. He
could never have contemplated such gross embarrassment and humiliation. Never
in his young life had he felt so utterly degraded and humiliated.
The beauty of both Susan and Gail
unnerved him so much that each time he looked at either of them he felt an ache
in his tummy. The absolute shame of the girls seeing him naked, allied with the
utter torment of being spanked by Susan and then taken over Gail's knee was
overwhelming.
The very girls that he would like
to have impressed as an equal had shamed him beyond belief. Even just the `thought'
of being held naked over Gail's knee while he was being spanked like a child,
was too embarrassing to contemplate. He tried to shut every humiliating
scenario out of his mind... how could he ever hold his head up again?
Now he had to stand in the most
humiliating of positions while the girls discussed him as if his feelings were
of no consequence.
Susan moved around him to stand
beside Gail. Both girls looked immaculate and demure in their skirts and
blouses. Gail's face showed no sign of her physical effort in punishing the
boy's bottom so severely.
Susan spoke; her tone was light
and casual, as if whatever embarrassing treatment they would enact upon the boy
was of little importance to them.
"I am afraid that they will
have to be emptied, don't you think Gail?"
Gail looked up at Susan and
answered... her voice serious and matter of fact. "Yes of course, but
first I think he can do his corner-time and reflect upon his naughty behaviour.
Little boys should always be made to stand with their little bottoms bare and
reddened while they think about their silly behaviour"
She raised her head to the boy.
"Look at me Timothy." She waited until the boy shamefully met her
gaze, shivering uncontrollably as he looked into her eyes. His face betrayed
every nuance of his total and utter shame and embarrassment as she appraised
him coolly. Her beautifully modulated voice caused him further anguish as she
spoke.
"You can remain in the same
posture as you are now. We will leave you to reflect upon your punishment. If I
catch you touching your penis I will be forced to bend you over and use the
strap upon your bottom. It is unfortunate that I let the nurses go without
milking you for a second time. It seems that Susan and I will have to attend to
you ourselves." She noted the look of pure horror on the boy's face as she
continued.
"We are going to go and get
changed into something more suitable and then we will come back attend to the
obvious swelling of your testicles. To remind you of what you must do, I am
going to ask Susan to give you six strokes of the slipper." She watched
the startled expression upon his face as she stood upright and stepped forward,
immediately feeling his erect penis press against her body as she took his face
in her hands. His face was only inches from hers as she spoke softly and gently
to him.
"This is for your own
good... I want you to thank me after each stroke. Will you do that for me
Timothy?" Gail could see that his mind was in turmoil... whether to plead
and protest... or to acquiesce to further pain and humiliation. The closeness
of her beauty seemed to mesmerise him and suddenly... as if letting every
vestige of self respect leave him, he looked into her eyes with an overwhelming
manifestation of love and supplication. So open and submissive to her will...
so devoid of any guile... that she shivered in a delicious paroxysm of
pleasure. She felt the rapture of his sweet breath against her cheek and a
thrill of victory course through her body like a forest fire.
She was aware that Susan was now
standing behind him with the slipper in her hand. Without taking her eyes off
the boy's face, she moved her hips, feeling her dress brush against the very
tip of his penis. She saw his eyes flinch as his senses were further aroused.
She moved again, firmly brushing her skirt against the sensitive opening of his
erect penis. She could feel him shudder with sensation as she whispered to him.
"Be a brave boy and take
your punishment. I want you to arch your back and push your bottom out. Do you
think you can do that for me Timothy?"
She could see that the boy's mind
was in turmoil at being asked to help in his own chastisement. Gail held his
face firmly as she looked him in the eye. "Do try and be a brave little
boy." She took her hands away from his cheeks and cupped the fingers of
one hand under his chin, keeping his head turned upwards to look in her eyes.
"Now I want you to keep your
head turned towards me... do not try and look away... do you understand?"
Gail delighted in his expression.
His face betrayed his feeling of embarrassment and apprehension perfectly. She
took her hands from his face and placed the flat of each palm against his
nipples before running her fingernails lightly over the soft nubs of flesh. He
almost gasped with the sensation, his eyes flinching as she aroused the skin,
feeling the puckered points tighten as she toyed with them. She held his eye as
she let her hands deliberately slide down over his tummy, signposting his
further humiliation and her mastery of his young body. With one hand she
quickly grasped his penis and pushed the foreskin back, at the same time she
slid her other hand lower and firmly encased his bulging scrotum within her
delicate fingers.
She could see the anguish in his
face as she spoke quickly and quietly.
"I am afraid Susan that I
will have to ask that you use all your strength with the slipper. Would you
please give Timothy the first stroke... I want it placed exactly on the centre
of his buttocks."
Gail looked deep into his eyes as
she pinched his foreskin between finger and thumb. The soft skin folded over
the tip of his penis causing him to jerk his hips backwards just as the slipper
landed firmly on the very centre of his buttocks.
"ssssssssssssSSSSSS."
Timothy hissed with pain as Gail looked into his face. Her delight heightened
by his pleading expression. Her voice was calm and her tone caring as she spoke
softly to him.
"Now Timothy, don't forget
to thank me. I am having your bottom spanked for your own good. It is not
something that I want to do, but it is my duty to help you to remember to be a
good little boy."
His expression delighted Gail.
She could see that her beauty and her authoritarian manner had the young boy
firmly under her control.
"Ooooh... misss... thank you
miss."
No sooner had he uttered the
words than he felt his foreskin being jerked rapidly down the shaft of his
penis. The sudden intimate and yet nonchalant handling of his most private
parts made him jerk his bottom backwards. It was at that moment that the second
stroke of the leather slipper smacked sharply against the centre of the cheeks
of his bottom.
"Slapppppp."
He looked at Gail, his eyes
apprehensive and pleading as his buttocks absorbed the sting of the stroke. He
felt his testicles being squeezed firmly and his foreskin being pulled forward
over the head of his penis as he hissed in anguish.
"Sssss...
oh...oooohhhh...th..thank you misssss."
Gail did not acknowledge his
thanks as she pushed his foreskin back again and scored the nail of her thumb
over the sensitive opening of his urethra, causing him, once more to jerk his
hip backwards with the acute sensation being applied to the very tip of his
erect member.
"Slappppppp."
"Arggghhhhh..." He
moaned as again the slipper bit smartly into the cheeks of his bottom.
Gail could see Susan calmly stand
back and ready herself to apply the next stroke as the young boy shivered with
pain and embarrassment.
Timothy's words were almost
incoherent as Gail casually skinned back his foreskin and let her fingernails
rub against the sensitive rim of the glans of his penis. Again she squeezed his
scrotum, feeling the soft orbs of flesh move within the sac as the boy jerked
his hips backwards, trying in vain to escape the acute stimulation to his
genitals.
"Number four please Susan
and in the same place if you can manage it for me." Gail watched the boy's
face flinch with anticipation as Susan calmly delivered the stroke exactly over
the top of the last one.
"Slapppppppp."
Susan could see that his buttocks
were quivering from the infernal sting of the leather slipper. She felt a
thrill run through her body as she observed his young body shiver.
Timothy's emotions were in
turmoil. He looked into the beautiful face of his tormentress. He felt utterly
ashamed and humiliated, his naked body shivered as Gail looked at him with an
enquiring eye. He felt her delicate fingers squeeze his testicles and penis as
if to prompt him for a response.
"Oh... please er miss er.. I
mean ,,,er thank you miss."
He managed to stammer before he
felt his foreskin being pushed back until the skin was stretched tight. He
could feel his cheeks flush in shame as he was fully exposed. He could not
believe how casually she handled his most private parts, he felt utterly
ashamed as the fifth stroke was delivered firmly upon his bottom.
"Slapppppp."
He yelped in pain as Gail
nonchalantly took her hand from his testicles and grasped the shaft of his
penis, deliberately she stretched out her other hand, ready to rub the
flattened palm over the very tip of his penis. She was well aware that the
sensation would be almost unbearable for the young boy.
"Ooooooohhhhh...
argggghhhh." He cried as Gail again looked at him with a raised eyebrow.
"Haven't you forgotten
something Timothy?" She slowly rubbed the flattened palm just once over
the sensitive opening of his erect penis. His anguish was written all over his
face as he mumbled his reply, his hips jerking with the acute sensation of her
hand.
"Ooooohhh... misss....
arrggghhh... er.. th... thank you."
He had hardly managed to utter
the words when he felt the incredible sensation of her palm firmly rubbing the
tip of his penis, the motion so firm and rapid that he nearly jumped out of his
skin. The sensation was acute, so intense, that he jerked his hips violently,
his bottom jutting backwards to such an extent that Gail almost lost her grip
as the boy tried to escape her expert stimulation to his most sensitive flesh.
"Arggggghhhhhhhhhhh....
arrrrggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh"
He cried in anguish as Susan
coolly delivered the sixth stroke. She could see the boy's body stiffen and
then shiver uncontrollably as Gail reached forward to retain her grip of his
genitals.
To Timothy's shame and anguish,
his slippering made him wail with utter abandonment. The accumulation of the
six strokes, carried out with such apparent nonchalance, had broken his spirit.
He cried as a child would cry, his tearful eyes looking at Gail pleadingly, as
she held his genitals in a firm grip.
Her words caused him further
shame as she addressed Susan.
"Thank you Susan! Little
boys have to learn to do as they are told. It is unfortunate that this little
boy seems to have some way to go before he learns his lesson. Now stand up straight
Timothy while Susan has a look at what naughty little boys look like when they
have had their naughty bottoms spanked."
Timothy stood in utter shame, his
hands firmly upon the top of his head and his legs spread as Gail let go of him
and stood back to look at him. He shivered and shook, the tears pouring down
his face, as he shamefully looked at Susan as she came to stand in front of
him. He trembled as she took his erect penis in the palm of her small delicate
hand and squeezed the throbbing member. He gasped as she causally exposed him,
sliding the foreskin of his penis back until the skin was stretched tight.
"You have been a very silly
and naughty little boy Timothy. I hope from now that you will learn to do as
you are told." The shame of her words caused him to blush profusely, the
blood rushing to his head and chest, as he stood before the two girls feeling
utterly naked and humiliated.
It was Gail that spoke next.
"We are going to leave you. You are to stay as you are for forty minutes.
You can tell the time from the clock on the wall. When your time is up, you may
get dressed. When you are dressed I want you to go to the bathroom and wait for
me there. Do you understand me?"
Timothy was utterly shamed as he
stammered his reply.... "Er yes miss."
In that case it only remains for
you to thank Susan for slippering your bottom and to apologise to her for your
behaviour.
Again Timothy blushed as he
looked at Susan. He could not have believed that just a few days ago, she was
the pretty girl next door that he had tried to impress with his mature attitude
and helpfulness.
Now he stood ashamed and naked!
He could hardly countenance the utter indignity of being asked to thank her for
slippering his bare bottom, while she stood coolly and calmly in front of
him... holding his penis as if it was the most natural thing in the world.
He blushed furiously as he
stammered a reply, the tears rolling down his cheeks as he looked at her pretty
face.
"Oh pleeeeease miss. I am
soooo sorry misss."
Susan looked at him appraisingly
as uttered his apology. Her eyes failed to conceal a hint of amusement at his
abject plight. She tapped his penis, her fingertips slapping against the
underside of his penis in a derisory gesture. She looked at him realising that
her authority over him was absolute. She took her hand away from his genitals
and brushed the backs of her fingers against his burning cheek. She looked at
him curiously as she stepped backwards to stand beside Gail. She addressed as
if she were a school mistress and he, a recalcitrant child. Her voice was firm
and authoritative.
"I am pleased that you seem
contrite Timothy. I hope we have no further nonsense from you, when I have to
wash your little penis and testicles and pop my finger up into your naughty
bottom. You have been a very silly little boy... you can just be thankful that
it was Gail and I that have to deal with your naughtiness. I am sure that Hazel
would have been far more severe with you."
Timothy's shame was beyond
anything he had ever known as the two girls looked at him. He shivered as he
stood naked with his hands on his head and his erect penis jutting forward from
between his parted legs as both Susan and Gail examined his young body from
head to toe.
He shivered and shook as he
watched them turn and leave the room, his vision of them blurred through the
flood of tears that suddenly welled up into his eyes.
*
Gail and Susan had showered
together in Susan's bathroom. Afterwards, they sat side by side at the dressing
table, their naked bodies touching as they vied for a view in the mirror to
carefully re-apply their makeup. Susan still felt the tingle between her thighs
where Gail had cheekily slipped her hand and lathered the plump shaven mound of
her sex during their shower.
"We will have to hurry, but
I do want us to look devastatingly beautiful for the next part of our rather
scrumptious evening's entertainment." Gail pouted her lips in the mirror
as she saw Susan burst into fits of giggles at her remark.
Susan stood up and picked up one
of the two white tunic style coats that she had borrowed from her mother's
nursing wardrobe. "I still think those white coats are too much... I mean
without wearing anything underneath. You can see through them and even with the
plastic aprons, the boy is going to be able to tell that we are not actually
wearing anything underneath."
"Rubbish darling,"
drawled Gail. "He is going to be far to embarrassed to notice anything.
The plastic aprons will cover our nipples, but I am certainly going to leave a
little cleavage on show."
Susan could not help laughing as
she donned the white coat. She pulled the belted waist tight and admired
herself in the long mirror of the wardrobe. She was surprised at the sexy
apparition that gazed back at her from the long mirror. The short tunic hugged
her naked body with the hem well above her pretty knees. Mischievously she
undid the bottom four buttons and posed with her left leg forward. Her tanned
thigh slipped through the opening revealing the smooth skin almost to the top
of her leg. She undid the top two buttons and leaned forward in a pastiche of a
movie star pose, laughing out loud as she observed the sexy image that she had
created. Gail turned towards her and carefully examined the way the coat clung
to Susan's body.
"You may laugh Susan... but
that is exactly the look I had in mind. I think if you slip on the apron and
tie it tightly around your waist you will have the boy's eyes popping out of
his head. Can you imagine how unnerving that is going to make him feel. Think
of it, you will be firm and serious and yet your beauty will have him reeling
with embarrassment."
As Susan put on the clear plastic
apron and tied it around her waist, she stood casually with her feet spread
apart and her hand upon her hip. The image in the mirror confirmed Gail's
prophecy. She did indeed looking beautiful, but at the same time cool and
clinical... an obviously daunting vision for a young boy.
Gail looked at her, her
expression quite serious and studied. "Can you imagine how he will feel,
with you looking like that and telling him to strip naked in front of
you?"
Susan nodded sagely. She knew
just how sensitive and awkward Timothy could feel. She carefully examined every
inch of herself as she raised her chin and looked enquiringly into the mirror.
She could not help the lightening thrill that coursed through her body as she
suddenly realised just how traumatic an impact it would be for a naked young
boy to be handled and inspected by herself and Gail.
Gail and Susan felt cool and
fresh as they carried the two large bags across the Garden path from Susan's
house. Their matching outfits of white Nylon coats and clear plastic aprons
rustled as they walked purposefully towards Timothy's mother's house. They still
had ten minutes to spare as they climbed the stairs and entered the bathroom.
They had both looked at the closed door of the dining room as they had entered
the house, but had decided not to check on the boy. They knew that he would be
keen to get dressed before obeying their instructions and coming up to the
bathroom. Gail was particularly keen that the boy should not see them until
they had prepared the bathroom and were relaxed and ready to greet him.
Carefully and without hurry, Gail
ran half a bath-full of warm water, making sure that the water was only just
above body temperature. Susan had laid several towels upon the stout table and
had placed two large fleet enema bags on to the surface of the dressing table.
She unpacked the rest of the towels as well as the lubricants, test-tubes and
powders they had brought with them, before discarding the two plastic carrier
bags into the waste bin.
"Will he need another enema
Gail? These seem quite large in volume, although the nozzle seems a lot smaller
than the one the nurses use."
Gail laughed. "No he won't
actually need one, but he is certainly going to be given one. I know the pipes
are smaller in diameter, but I shall still lubricate him well with my finger. I
can't explain why, but I get such satisfaction from penetrating his bottom, but
it just thrills me, especially when he squirms with embarrassment."
"I know," Susan smiled.
"I feel just the same way. I just love the situation where he has to
acquiesce to whatever we wish to do to him, however embarrassed and humiliated
it makes him feel."
Susan looked at Gail, examining
her from head to toe. She realised that their appearance would certainly put
Timothy into an absolutely humiliating cocoon of shame the moment he saw them.
Gail had brushed her hair back from her face, which accented the refined
features of her beautiful face. She had also undone the top buttons of her
tunic. The cleavage of her young breasts dipped under the top of her apron and
yet the swell of firm flesh was still tantalizingly visible through the clear
plastic material. The tunic finished well above her knees and Gail, like Susan,
had left the bottom buttons undone. As she stood with her legs apart she
revealed the smooth lightly tanned flesh of her thighs.
Both girls checked the bathroom
for detail. Gail suddenly moved to the pile of towels they had brought with
them, feeling between the folds of white fluffy material and suddenly pulling
out the tapered diaper. "I think we might just have time to turn down his bed
and place this in full view. It should add a little frisson of delight to our
evening when he sees it... don't you think?"
The Girls walked from the
bathroom to the room next door. Gail switched on the main light and looked
around the room. She noted that, for a young teenage boy, he kept his room neat
and tidy. They stood at either side of his bed and carefully turned down the
top sheet and blankets until they were neatly folded and tucked in at the foot
of the mattress. Susan straightened the bottom sheet before Gail placed the
humiliatingly brief diaper out onto the middle of the bed. Susan watched as
Gail felt in the pocket of her tunic and brought out a large shiny safety-pin
which she placed on the centre of the diaper.
"I think that that large
container of talcum powder... erm perhaps placed on this bedside table would
just complete the picture for him... what do you think Susan?"
Susan giggled at the thought of
what the boy would feel when he saw the items waiting for him. She also felt a
thrill run through her body as she anticipated seeing him naked with his legs
spread apart, unable to resist whatever they felt inclined to do to him. She
fetched the container from the bathroom and placed it overtly in the centre of
the bedside table. The girls stood side by side in the doorway of the bedroom.
Susan slipped her arm around Gail's waist and squeezed as they took one last
look at the room before switching off the main light and closing the door.
"I think we will close the
bathroom door. It will be far more onerous for him to have to open it, not
knowing if we are here or not." Gail's expression was almost wicked as she
looked at Susan with a raised eyebrow. "In fact..." she whispered.
"I think I can hear him." The girls remained silent, listening as the
creak of the stairs revealed the boy's progress towards the bathroom.
Susan almost laughed out loud as
Gail stood up straight with her legs placed apart and her arms folded in front
of her. She faced the door, her expression stern as she waited for the young
boy to appear. Susan could hardly contain her excitement as she turned towards
the sink and turned on the cold tap. She began to wash her hands in the cold
water. `Cold hands against warm naked skin should ensure that he feels every
touch', she thought. She let her hands stay under the biting cold water as she
waited for the inevitable appearance of the young boy.
Timothy trod the staircase as if
in slow motion. He felt a sickening dread in the pit of his stomach as he
neared the bathroom door. He could not help the blush that suddenly suffused
his face and upper body as he placed his hand on the doorknob. The toes of his
bare feet curled against the carpet as he steeled himself to enter the room.
Shivering with humiliation he
opened the door and entered. In reality he had not known what to expect as he
stood, suddenly dumbfounded by the appearance of the two girls. Gail looked at
him and raised her eyebrow quizzically, her beauty causing Timothy to shiver
uncontrollably. His face betrayed the anguish of his inner feelings as his
cheeks burned with a second overwhelming rush of blood to his cheeks. He looked
down at the floor, shivering with humiliation as Gail approached him. She
placed her fingers under his chin and gently raised his head so that he was
unable to avoid her gaze.
"Now Timothy, you are going
to be a good boy and do as you are told aren't you. I still have my slipper
should you dare to disobey either Susan or myself."
He blushed and trembled as he
looked at the perfect features of Gail's face. He was dumbstruck by the almost
surreal apparition of the two girls. Their clinical apparel gave them an
immediate authoritarian appearance... at the same time accenting the unnerving
beauty and perfection of their bodies and faces. He stood awkwardly in front of
them... completely humiliated and humbled.
Gail quickly brought him out of
his trancelike state as she announced to Susan. "Please strip Timothy of
his clothes would you Susan. We have a lot to get through Timothy, so I want
you on your very best behaviour."
Timothy blushed once more as Gail
knew that he would. She looked at his face, noting that his bottom lip was
trembling as she stood back and let Susan stand in front of him. Although she
ostensibly busied herself arranging the enema packs upon the towelling surface
of the table, she observed Susan's handling of the boy.
Timothy looked up at Susan and
blushed as she took his wrists, her fingers cold against his burning flesh. He
trembled as silently she raised his hands until they were stretched out above
his head. He could not help shivering as her cold hands slipped under the waist
of his T shirt. She flattened the palms against either side of his waist as he
timidly stood with his hands stretched upwards. The ignominy of being stripped
by the young girl was heightened by the proximity of her beautiful face and
body. Shivering he reluctantly allowed the girl to slide her hands upwards, his
flesh shivering with goose-bumps as she slipped the garment up over his head.
His feeling of nakedness was already acute as she placed the T shirt on the
hook behind the bathroom door. Obediently he had left his hands raised in the
air as she returned to stand in front of him. With an almost deliberately
sensual motion, she brushed the hem of her tunic away from her legs and knelt
before him on one knee.
"Put your hands flat on top
of your head and keep still while I take your trousers down... there's a good
boy." The humiliating words were hardly out of her mouth when she
nonchalantly slipped his belt from the buckle and loosened the ends, letting
them hang to the sides as she began to unbutton his trousers. He trembled in
utter humiliation as she opened wide the fly of his trousers, before sliding
them down his legs to his ankles. One by one she lifted his feet and completely
divested him of the chinos. She left him standing in just his under shorts as
again she hung the garment on the hook behind the bathroom door.
He watched in dread as she
returned and bent down on one knee in front of him, the bared flesh of her
thigh unnerving him as she casually placed her fingers in the waistband of his
under shorts. He trebled as her cool fingers seemed to play with his bare
flesh. Slowly and with a casual nonchalance she lowered his shorts, inch by
inch the garment slid from his waist. He looked up to the ceiling in shame,
feeling the waist band brush over his penis as she bared him completely.
Slipping the material over his thighs and down to his ankles, she looked up at
his blushing face.
"There we are Timothy, just
lift your feet for me."
He could not help looking down as
she completely divested him of the last of his clothing. He could feel her
breath against his genitals as she unhooked the garment from his feet and stood
up. Her body was only inches from his as she looked into his face. "Well
done Timothy, now just stand with your feet well apart. I want to check your
testicles to see how swollen they are. I'll just hang these up and then come
back and check you. Feet well apart now!"
Timothy blushed as Susan smiled
innocently at him before moving behind his naked body to hang up his under
shorts. He looked towards Gail, blushing immediately as he saw that she was
deliberately looking down at his genitals. He dropped his head immediately as
she caught his eye, his face burning with the utter shame of his nakedness.
Susan hung up the shorts and
turned to examine the boy from the rear. His young body looked perfect in every
detail as she admired the swell of his buttocks and the firmness of his flesh.
She could see that his bottom was still reddened from his slippering and could
not resist adding to his humiliation by mentioning the fact.
"Your little bottom is quite
red Timothy, I hope that perhaps that perhaps my having to slipper you is going
to help you to remember to be obedient in the future." Deliberately she
ran her cool fingers lightly over the curve of his slender waist and down over
the hillock of his buttocks. She could feel the boy flinch at her touch. His
embarrassment seemed almost palpable as she moved her body close to his and
slid her hand down lower letting her fingers slip between the crease of his
bottom.
She slid her other hand around
his waist with her fingers resting flat against his lower stomach. She
tightened her grip, pressing her breasts against his back as she slid her
fingers between his buttocks and through his parted legs. With a sigh of
delight her fingers closed over the swollen flesh of his scrotum, encasing the
sensitive orbs within her gentle grasp.
She heard a sharp hiss of breath
escape from his lips as her cool fingers closed around the warm flesh of his
scrotum.
"My my Timothy, they are
swollen aren't they. I think we shall have to check you a lot more frequently
than we have been doing. What do you think Gail, they feel really full."
Gail did well to hide the smile
that played around her lips. She moved to stand in front of the naked boy,
making sure she had his full attention before she delicately took hold of the
tip of his penis between her finger and thumb, lifting the flaccid flesh
upwards so that she had a clear view.
"Now keep still and don't
fidget while I examine you."
She watched as Susan deliberately
jiggled the soft egg-like balls. Gail could clearly see how they stretched the
skin of the scrotum as Susan moved them around within her delicate fingers.
"Well Timothy, it is quite
obvious that your little penis will have to be milked." She slid the
foreskin back, carefully exposing the sensitive rim of the glans. She felt the
boy involuntarily jerk his hip as she exposed him.
"Now do try and keep still
Timothy. I really don't want to have your bottom slippered again so soon."
Nonchalantly she pushed his foreskin back until the skin was stretched tight.
Timothy felt that totally exposed and naked, as if Gail was exposing the very
core of his being. The shame of standing naked with his hands upon his head and
having his foreskin stretched back to fully expose his penis was just to
shameful to bear. He gasped. "Arrrrrrrrrrrrggggghhhhhh. Oh please
miss!!!"
Gail looked at him, moving her
head towards his so that he could not escape her gaze. Her expression was of
that of a mild enquiring look, as if to say... `I am not hurting you am I?
Timothy did not know where to put
himself, such was his shame as Gail spoke to Susan, her voice casual and matter
of fact as she held the boy's penis firmly.
"I am afraid that he will
have to be milked very thoroughly. His testicles are swollen and I can feel
that his penis is beginning to engorge. I am convinced that we will have to
stimulate him well inside his bottom if we are to completely drain him of his
semen. We will have to show his sample to the nurse tomorrow, so that will mean
extracting it straight into the test-tube." Gail could feel the boy's
penis begin to throb uncontrollable as the flesh quickly hardened into a firm
and vigorous erection. Timothy blushed with shame as Gail let go of his penis
and watched as it bobbed upwards of its own volition. The boy looked down at
himself in shame at his erection as Gail nonchalantly slapped the rigid flesh
from side to side.
"Really Timothy, you seem to
have no control over your emotions. Well I suppose that we can expect no more
than this sort of behaviour from little boys of your age."
Her words stung the boy to the
very core as she slapped his penis once more. He had never felt so shamed or
humiliated. Their `matter of fact' handling of his most sensitive flesh, allied
to their derisory remarks, had fuelled his utterly humiliating anguish to a
fever pitch.
"Come along Timothy, I want
you to bend over and rest your chest on the table with your legs spread apart.
I want them nice and wide apart now! I am going to give you an enema and I want
you to relax your cheeks so that I can lubricate your bottom properly. I shall
be inserting my finger, so I want you to make sure that you relax your buttocks
properly. You will be in a very good position for a sound spanking, should you
think of disobeying me."
Timothy's face was absolutely
bright red as the girls carefully positioned him against the table. Their hands
deliberately brushed against his erect penis as they reached underneath him,
positioning his legs widely apart with his trembling bottom raised into the
air. They placed his chest flat against the towelled surface of the table with
his head resting on his hands and his head turned towards the dressing table.
Gail made sure that the boy was
watching her as she took a tube of lubricant and asked Susan to coat her
fingers. She lowered her hand until it was in front of Timothy's face and held
out two fingers in a rigid posture.
Susan had to stifle a giggle of
delight as she squeezed lubricant on to the palm of her hand and rudely formed
her hand into a cylinder before sliding it up and down over Gail's extended
fingers.
Timothy groaned with
embarrassment and apprehension as he saw the two extended fingers and the
deliberate way that Susan was sensuously sliding her hand over them.
Involuntarily he squeezed his buttocks together at the thought of the impending
intrusion of Gail's fingers up into his bottom.
Susan stood upright and moved
behind Timothy. Without warning she slapped his bottom cheeks hard. She
thrilled as he gasped in shame and cried out. "Arggghhh... ooohhh."
Now that was just a little
warning to keep your bottom well relaxed, don't be such a baby." She moved
to the side of his hips and facing away from his head, leaned over his bottom.
Almost sensuously she slipped the fingertips of both hands between the cheeks
of his bottom and pried the flesh apart. She completely ignored his groans of
anguish as she watched Gail gently slide her extended fingers in-between the
quivering cheeks and begin to probe the sensitive flesh of his sphincter. Susan
leaned over the small of his back as she felt the boy try to rear up in
anguish. Quickly she let go of his left buttock and reached underneath him, the
back of her hand brushed against his throbbing penis as reached for his
testicles. Grasping the swollen sac firmly, she pulled downwards.
"Let's have no nonsense now.
This has got to be done for your own good Timothy. Now just relax...."
"Arggghhhh....ooooooooOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHHHH."
The firm thrust of Gail's fingers was immediately accompanied by an agonising
wail from the young boy. Gail had felt the sphincter relax for just a fleeting
moment and had immediately penetrated the boy deliberately and firmly. She felt
the tips of her fingers encased in the firm pressure of his sphincter muscle as
she impaled him.
"There we are, now try and keep
still while I open your bottom up a bit. If you move I shall slipper your
bottom so hard you won't be able to sit down for a week." Susan let go of
his testicles and grasped the shaft of his penis, feeling it throbbing
violently as she squeezed the rigid flesh.
Do you think his penis is
responding to your fingers in his bottom already Gail? It seems to be throbbing
quite heavily!
Gail smiled as she began to
insinuate her fingers up into the young boy's bottom. She felt a thrill of
delight as slowly and surely she slid her fingers further up into him. His
gasps and groans seemed to add to her feeling of control over his young body.
Timothy felt utterly foolish as
the girls discussed him as if he were not there. He could not help grunting and
groaning as Susan held his penis firmly and Gail plied her fingers skilfully,
carefully stretching his sphincter until she could slip her fingers easily up
into his bottom.
He grunted with the acute
sensation of Gail's fingertips finally penetrating him deep into his bottom. He
almost jumped out of his skin as she casually slid her fingertips over the
sensitive flesh of his prostate gland.
Susan felt the answering throb
from his penis as Gail stimulated the boy to a fever pitch. She looked at Gail
raising an eyebrow, and shaking her head in warning to Gail that the boy was
almost losing control.
Susan let go of his penis and
reached for the lubricant, slipping the nozzle alongside Gail's fingers and
squeezing more of the gel over the boy's sphincter.
"Arrrrrrrrrggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....
oooooooooooOOOOhhhhHHH." Timothy could hardly contain his anguish as Gail
firmly stretched his sphincter, feeling the firm muscle relax it's grip around
her fingers as she plied her fingers through the orifice again and again, until
they slid in and out with ease.
"There that should do, what
a fuss little boy's make when they are having their bottoms seen to." She
pushed her fingers in again as she motioned to Susan. "Be a dear and pass
me the enemas. I am going to let you give him them both... rather than empty
one first; it should be sufficient as he has already had one earlier."
Susan raised her eyebrows in
surprise at Gail's announcement. She could not help the thrill of delight as
she proffered the bag to Gail, who pulled off the seal with her free hand
before extricating her fingers from Timothy's bottom. Quickly she introduced
the thin clear plastic tube into the opening of his sphincter, watching as the
entire length slipped up easily into his anus.
"Would you squeeze the bag
in one firm motion so that he gets a thorough douche in one go.
Susan could hardly contain her
excitement as she took hold of the soft plastic which was heavy with liquid.
She moved to the side so that she could observe the boy's face and placed her
cupped hands at either end of the soft oblong container so that she would be
able to empty most of the contents with just one firm squeeze.
Gail looked at Susan as she
pushed the bag between the cheeks of his bottom. The boy grunted as the cool
plastic pressed against the cheeks of his bottom.
"Now keep still and take a
nice deep breath... come along Timothy, pay attention." Susan watched as
the boy began to draw in air. Susan did not wait for him to complete his breath
before she squeezed the bag, her hands pushing against each end with all her
strength. The result was astonishing as the boy reared up and threw his head
back in anguish.
"Arggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....
Ooh oh oooooohhhh", he cried. The wail increased in volume as Susan thrust
the bag hard between the cheeks of his bottom, emptying the remains of the
fluid in a sudden burst.
"Ooooohhhhhh...
missssssss." He hissed as Susan nonchalantly pulled the tube from his
bottom. Timothy clenched his buttocks firmly together as he stood upright.
Rather than let the boy recover from the shock of the water Gail quickly
delivered several hard slaps to his bottom, chiding him as she put her arms
around his waist and bent him over again.
"Over you go young man and
get that bottom well up and relax those cheeks... we will have no nonsense
now!"
"Ohhh pleeeeasse miss noooo
more," the boy sobbed. The shock of the smacks to his bottom and the
feeling of the cool water inside him caused him to shiver as Susan nonchalantly
greased the fingers of her right hand and quickly delved between the cheeks of
his bottom until she located his sphincter. Almost immediately she penetrated
the opening and pushed her forefinger through, feeling the muscle stretch as
she penetrated him fully.
"Oooooohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
The cry escaped from his lips as Susan quickly found the plump mound of his
prostate gland and scored her fingernail over the sensitive flesh.
"Now keep still while I
lubricate you Timothy." Susan managed to keep her voice calm, hiding the
excitement she felt at having the young boy at her mercy. She watched as Gail
settled the boy back into position and took the second of the enema bags. She
removed the sterile cap and placed the bag on top of the boy's buttocks. Susan
quickly withdrew her finger from his sphincter and took hold of the long tube.
Slowly and deliberately she teased the end of the tube around the puckered
flesh of the opening of his bottom, watching fascinated as the flesh recoiled
at each prod of the smooth plastic. She thrilled with delight as she watched
his hips jerk and shudder as she manipulated the tube into the opening of the
sphincter. "Now keep still Timothy, I don't want to have to take you over
my knee and smack you again." Without preamble she casually pushed the tip
right up into him. Taking hold of the bag, she introduced the rest of the clear
tube, watching as each inch of the clear tubing passed through his sphincter
and disappeared up inside him. Finally she pushed the soft plastic container of
liquid firmly between the cheeks of his bottom.
"Take a nice deep breath now
Timothy."
Again she waited until he started
to draw air into his lungs. Without further warning she suddenly squeezed the
bag firmly, watching the contents empty rapidly, as she forced the liquid up
into his bottom.
"Argggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhh....oooooohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
miss ser." His cry was cut short as Gail took his head in her hands and
looked into his face. She could see that the coldness of the water had shocked him
as she pouted her lips and looked into his eyes.
"Poor baby, never mind it's
all inside you now. Just try and stay as you are for a few minutes and then I
will sit you on the lavatory and you can empty your little tummy." She
stroked her hand over his shoulders and down onto his waist. She caught Susan's
eye as she stroked her hand down over his quivering buttocks. Her impish grin
had Susan stifling a giggle as she held the soft crumpled bag firmly between
the cheeks of Timothy's bottom.
The absolute ignominy of the
following ten minutes embarrassed Timothy so much that he blushed and trembled
his way through the humiliating procedure of being led to the toilet bowl and
made to sit while he expelled the contents of his stomach.
He was made to stand while both
Susan and Gail examined the contents of the bowl. They were not surprised to
find that the contents were absolutely clear as the nurses had made sure that
his earlier enema had been most thorough.
Gail issued instructions as they
helped Timothy towards the stout table. "Now come along up on the table on
your hands and knees, come along now that's the way." Timothy blushed and
trembled as the girls helped him up onto the table, their hands cheekily
spreading his legs until his knees were parted wide.
"Now down on your elbows, so
that we can get that little bottom further up into the air. Ah, that's it... do
you see Susan his buttocks are spread nicely apart... that position will do
nicely."
Timothy was blushing profusely as
he resting his head on his forearms, acutely aware that every intimate part of
his body was now rudely on display. He waited, not daring to look towards the
girls as they left him for a few moments while they busied themselves amongst
the bathroom sink and shelves.
Timothy heard their preparations
but was still surprised when a felt a warm wash cloth being placed over his
bared buttocks. He felt utterly ashamed as Gail placed her hand on his face,
making him open his eyes. "Now Timothy Susan is going to wash you first...
so keep still." Gail thrilled as she say his cheeks blush and his lip
tremble with embarrassment. She stroked his cheek and leaned forward do that
she could observe every nuance of the young boy's humiliation.
Timothy felt even worse as Gail
observed him so closely. He could not help blushing as Susan slipped the wash
cloth between his legs and proceeded to thoroughly wash his penis and
testicles. He flinched and gasped as Susan retracted his foreskin and rubbed
the cloth over the glans of his penis. The embarrassment was made worse as he
realised that Gail was watching not only his face, but also the deft
manipulation of his penis and testicles as Susan handled him without deference
to his modestly.
Gail looked into his eyes, her
beautiful features betraying nothing of the thrill she felt as she watched
Susan's actions out of the corner of her eye.
"Now be a good boy and try
and keep still for this next little bit... I know you can be a good little boy
when you try." Timothy blushed once more as Gail spoke to him as if he
were a young child. He could not help looking nervously at her cool expression
as her eyes quickly looked down towards his raised bottom.
His first inkling of what the
girls were going to do to him was when a lathered shaving brush was suddenly
slapped between the cheeks of his bottom.
"OOooohhhh." His gasp
of surprise was cut short by Gail's stern voice. "Now keep still you
naughty child while Susan shaves your bottom. I don't want you to fidget or
fuss while she is holding the razor."
Timothy refrained from uttering
another sound as he knelt in total humiliation as his young neighbour pried his
cheeks this way and that as she shaved between the crease of his buttocks.
Although Timothy was already bereft of any pubic hair, his flesh felt smoother
as Susan ran her fingers lightly over the area that she had just shaved. He
could not help gasping as she began to lather underneath his testicles,
nonchalantly moving his bulging scrotum this way and that, until he was
completely covered in foam. She carefully moved the razor over his skin feeling
the flesh by smoothing her fingertips behind the razor until his skin was as
smooth as marble. She smoothed her hand all over his buttocks and between his
legs before slapping him gently on the bottom.
Every part of Timothy's
embarrassment was closely observed by Gail as she looked into his eyes. Her own
expression betrayed nothing other than mild interest and surprise at the boy's
obvious humiliating distress. She smiled to herself as she watched yet another
expression of pure horror appear on his face as Susan addressed him, her voice
firm and authoritative.
"Right young man, I want you
lying on your back with your legs spread well apart so that I can have
unhindered access to your penis and testicles. Come along now, I have to shave
you thoroughly... so get to it."
Timothy could not believe the
embarrassment he felt as he turned himself over hesitantly parting his legs.
Without hesitation Gail took hold of the crook of his knee and placed his leg
until it was laid over the side of the table. Without a moment's thought for
the boy's embarrassment she moved around to the opposite side of the table took
his other leg. She could see the almost pleading expression on his face as she
stretched his legs wide as she placed the crook of his knee over the side of
the table.
Timothy gasped in anguish rather
than pain as his thighs were stretched widely apart. He felt so indecently
exposed that he almost fainted with the embarrassment of his position.
He could not help looking at Gail
as she turned his head towards her and held his face in her hands. "Now I
want you to keep quite still while Susan shaves your little penis."
He looked up at her face and then
watched in shame as she stroked her hand slowly down his chest and over his
stomach, her fingers eventually slipping beneath the flesh of his flaccid
penis. She began to flip it from side to side as if it were of no consequence,
watching the flesh roll over his bared pubis. She reached for the tip of his
penis with her other hand and gently pinched the exposed glans.
She ignored his gasps of anguish
as she spoke directly to Susan. Her words causing the boy to blush so
profoundly that his cheeks seemed to flush a deep shade of purple.
"I am just going to
stimulate his penis for you Susan, so that you can shave him more easily. It
should not take more than a moment for him to become erect, you know how little
control this young man seems to have over his emotions."
She lifted his penis from his pubis
and drew back the foreskin, exposing the glans completely. Without warning she
gripped the shaft and ran her flattened palm over the sensitive opening of his
member, ignoring the frantic jerking of his hips at the agonising sensation.
"Do try and keep still
Timothy, or I shall smack your bottom." She watched as he turned his
blushing face to the side and closed his eyes in shame. Gail could feel his
penis begin to throb as she continued the agonising sexual torture to the tip
of his penis. Susan could not help herself as she leaned forward and cupped his
testicles in the palm of her hand, feeling the flesh recoiling in response to
the agonising sensations that Gail was producing in his young body.
Suddenly she let go of his penis
and watched as it bobbed upwards of its own volition. "You see
Susan," Gail slapped his penis from side to side as she spoke, "He
has no control at all, little boys can be quite disgusting. I think that we
shall have to be very vigilant that this young man does not start playing with
his little willy." Susan was only just successful in stifling a giggle as
she looked down at the boy's naked body. She could see that his lips were
trembling and that a tear of shame had suddenly run down his cheek at Gail's
hurtful and shaming words.
Nonchalantly she slapped the
soapy shaving brush over his pubis and deftly took a firm hold of his penis.
She began to shave him, her deft strokes making a pathway of bared flesh
through the lather.
Timothy shuddered as he felt his
penis and testicles being handled so familiarly and casually. He could not help
jerking his hips as Susan causally stretched his foreskin up over the glans of
his penis as she began to shave the bottom of the shaft. His eyes flew open to
reveal Susan casually moving his penis to and fro as she bent to her task.
The apparition of his young
neighbour handling him in such a way, made Timothy feel faint. Her blonde hair,
which was tied back, accented the beautiful bone structure of her face. The
flesh of the upper part of her firm breasts was clearly visible as she leaned
forward. Her lips were parted as she diligently moved her razor over his
sensitive flesh.
Susan could not believe the
thrill she felt as she handled the young boy's penis and testicles. She
marvelled as his penis throbbed each time that she touched it. She took her
time, savouring every moment as she toyed with the boy's sexual emotions.
Gail watched the young boy. Her
control over him had progressed to such an extent that she was sure that she
could manipulate him just as she required. She bent over him and took his head
in her hands, forcing him to look into her eyes.
Timothy looked up at her, the
beauty of her eyes seemed envelope him as if he had dived into liquid pools of
heaven.
"Now try and be a good boy
for the next part won't you... just for me sweet boy." Timothy was
absolutely bewitched by her beauty and presence. "Will you do that... just
for me Sweetie?"
Such was the mesmerizing beauty
and subtle manipulation of his senses that he spoke in rapturous breath.
"Oh yessss...ssss
missss."
Susan knew that Timothy would be
regretting those words before long, but she also knew that Gail had
demonstrated her complete mastery over him. Whether it was the threat of
punishment or the request to please her, she knew that the boy would respond,
however reluctantly and whatever the anguish and embarrassment he was made to
feel.
Timothy jerked his hips as Susan
slapped the wash cloth over his groin and deftly proceeded to clean any lather
that was left, off his skin. Her indifference caused him acute embarrassment as
she brushed aside his penis and testicles, nonchalantly stretching back his
foreskin as she moved his intimate flesh to and fro.
She then took a towel and rudely
dried every inch of his genitalia and pubic area, her deft and nonchalant
actions causing the boy to blush in embarrassment and confusion.
It seemed that the girls were
performing a carefully orchestrated scenario; Gail looking into his face, her
expression cool and appraising, while Susan handled the boy's genitals and
sexual emotions, as if his feelings were of no consequence. The entire
procedure left the boy in a highly strung state of acute embarrassment and
confusion. His blushing face and trembling lips were a testament to the skilful
and deliberate attack on his naive sensibilities.
Abruptly, his torment came to a
stop. Without a word they took his legs and placed them together, before
helping him from the table. Shakily he let himself be helped down and supported
as they stood him in the bathtub of shallow tepid water. His respite from their
ministrations and their humiliating handling of him was short-lived.
"Right Timothy," Gail
spoke firmly as her eyes appraised every inch of his naked body. "I want
you to put your hands flat upon the top of your head and stand with your legs
wide apart. We are going to give you a thorough bath."
Timothy looked at the two girls,
his lips were trembling and even his legs were shaking as he looked at them in
acute embarrassment. They both stood with their arms folded, their legs
astride. Their white tunics and clear plastic aprons, gave them a clinical and
authoritative air as they stood examining his nakedness. Timothy could not
assuage the feeling of helplessness as he placed his hands on his head, the
action virtually stripping him of any defence against whatever they might wish
to do to his body.
He struggled with his acute
embarrassment as he shuffled his feet through the water until his legs were
stretched wide. He was acutely aware that his penis was still engorged and he
could feel the cool air around his testicles as they bulged freely between his
widely parted thighs. He felt a shudder run through his body as Gail moved
towards the sink and lathered her hands, she stood in front of him with her
hands held up like a surgeon. She looked at him enquiringly, her cool
expression daring him to protest as Susan moved to the sink and also lathered
her hands.
He stood trembling, not daring to
protest as Gail moved around the free-standing bathtub, while Susan moved to
stand in front of him. He almost jumped out of his skin at the first touch of
Gail's hands upon his body. She placed her hands gently underneath his arms and
began to wash him from the rear. Her delicate palms slid around his chest as
she began to bathe him. His reaction was that of a frightened animal being
soothed as Susan moved forward and placed her palms on either side of his hips.
He stood shivering with
embarrassment as the girls gently bathed him, their hands smoothing over his
skin gently and sensuously. They deliberately avoided his genitals and pubic
area, instead concentrating on his chest and his legs. He trembled and shook
with the acute embarrassment of the two beautiful schoolgirls bathing him. The silence
in the bathroom was only punctuated by their gentle breathing and his own gasps
and muted moans as their hands caressed his skin.
The humiliating procedure
continued with both girls carefully avoiding his bottom and his pubic area.
This deliberate omission made the boy acutely aware that each moment heralded
the time when they would eventually turn their attention to his bottom and his
penis and testicles. He grimaced and trembled as the girls bathed him, their
silence adding to the expectant atmosphere within the room.
He looked up to the ceiling in
despair as the girls deliberately caressed his flesh in a sensual manner. He
did not see the Gail signal to Susan, that their fun was about to begin.
"Arggggggggggghhhhhh."
Timothy gasped... the reluctant
explosion of breath wrenched from his lips as, abruptly and nonchalantly, Gail
slid her hand down his back and slipped her fingers into the crease of his
bottom at the very same moment that Susan ran her hand upwards over the inner
flesh of his thigh and cupped his testicles in the palm of her soapy hand.
"Oooohhhhhhhhhhhh."
Timothy could not help moan as the cheeks of his bottom were suddenly spread
apart and Gail's gentle fingertips prodded firmly at the very centre of his
sphincter. At the same time, Susan took a firm grip of his rapidly erecting
penis, slipping the foreskin back over the rim of the glans and stretching the
delicate skin down the shaft. The two simultaneous actions made him gasp with
deep anguish.
"Argggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhh...oooohhhhhhhhhhhh
please er missssssssss. Oh oh... please noooooooooooohhhhhhh."
Gail's answer to the boy's
pleading was a series of sound slaps to the cheeks of his bottom. He gasped in
humiliation as she smacked his bottom six times in quick succession.
"arrgggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhh." He
gasped with the embarrassment and indignation of being smacked by the young
head girl. He groaned as she chided him, at the same time slipping her hands
back between the cheeks of his bottom.
"My you are a naughty boy. I
had thought that both Susan and I had made you see the error of being
disobedient. I shall not hesitate to bend you over right here and now and give
you a sound spanking if you persist in this unseemly behaviour Timothy."
Timothy shivered and shook with
dismay and shame as the Susan began to diligently handle his genitals and Gail
slipped her fingers deep within the crease of his bottom. He jerked his hips
forward in a reluctant and anguished gesture as Gail deftly penetrated his
sphincter with a soapy forefinger.
"Now do try and keep still
and let's have no more nonsense." Gail's tone was that of a young
schoolmistress as she slid her finger right up into his bottom. The involuntary
reaction of his hips was taken advantage of by Susan who gripped his erect
penis firmly and slipped her fingers over the rim of the glans. He shivered and
shook, his body trembling in a violent spasm as she deftly encircled her
fingers over the sensitive rim and moved her hand up and down rapidly. The
sensation was overwhelming; he could not help pushing his bottom backwards at
the acuteness of the intense sexual sensation. The movement was quickly stifled
as Gail slid her middle finger alongside her forefinger and stretched his
sphincter wide as she penetrated him fully with both fingers.
"arggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
He moaned as Gail located his prostate. He threw his head back and wailed as
Gail quietly signalled to Susan. Incredibly the girls increased the movement
and intensity of their attack upon his senses. The motion of Susan's fingers
over the glans of his penis was almost a blur as she stimulated the flesh to a
fever pitch.
It was the sudden series of
insistent prods to his prostate gland that heralded the first orgasmic spasm of
ejaculation. The boy's body tensed into a rigid paroxysm of anguish and
blinding sensation, as delightedly Gail and Susan produced an almost volcanic
eruption of semen from his captive penis.
"Argggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....
oooooooooOOOOHHHH.... Pleeeeeeeeeeeeeeaaase....noooooooooooooooooooo."
Timothy threw his head back, his
jaw slack as he gasped and groaned his utter distress as he ejaculated wildly.
"ohhhh pleeeeeeeeaaaaaaaaaseeee missssssssssssssssss."
Time and time again his penis
erupted with a new spurt of semen, the violence of his orgasm jetting the semen
onto the front of Susan's Apron. His penis throbbed uncontrollably as the Girls
deftly milked him; their skilful manipulation of his most sensitive flesh
denuded him of any vestige of self control.
The girls ignored him as they
continued to stimulate his body. Their fingers were skilful and subtle as they
explored every nerve ending, eliciting every possible sexual sensation from the
young boy.
"Argggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh... ooohhhhhhhhh...
arggghhh... please misss please nooooooooo more... oh please miss." His
ejaculation held his body in a rigid trance until the pulsing began to subside.
Susan was amazed at the calmness
of Gail's voice as she spoke to the distraught and trembling boy.
"Oh dear Timothy... what on
earth are you doing. Goodness... little boys seem to have no control at all,
what a naughty boy you are. I can't believe that you are doing that... have you
know control over yourself. Just look at you... what sort of behaviour is
that?"
Timothy could not believe the
shame he felt as he reluctantly looked down. He gasped in dismay as he saw
Susan milk another thick globule of semen from the tip of his penis. He could
feel a deep throb within him as Gail prodded his prostate again. He watched in
shame as Susan squeezed the base of his penis and drew her hand upwards in a
milking motion to produce the last small tear of semen from the tip of his
penis.
Susan looked up at him, her
delight and sexual excitement hidden behind the calmness of her voice and her
rather disdainful expression.
"You are a naughty boy,
Timothy. You show very little control over yourself... you obviously need to be
taken very firmly in hand." She cupped her hand under his scrotum and
squeezed his testicles to emphasise her point.
"Now come along get out of
the bath so that we can dry you." Timothy felt the tears well up in his
eyes. He felt awkward and ashamed as Gail gently extricated her fingers from
his bottom, and patted his quivering buttocks.
They helped him out of the bath,
feeling his body trembling almost uncontrollably, as they bade him stand in
front of one of the bathroom chairs.
Gail moved in front of him and
sat down on the chair. Her knees were touching his thighs as she drew him
forward. She placed her hand between his legs and pushed his thighs apart until
she could draw the boy forward until his parted legs were placed at either side
of hers.
Gail was pleased that he could
not see Susan who looked across at her from the sink. Susan was busy cleaning
the front of her apron with a washcloth, to Gail's amazement; Susan picked a
small globule of semen from the top of her tunic and delicately held it on the
very tip of her finger before popping it into her mouth and licking her lips.
She looked at Gail and winked as she ran her tongue delicately over her perfect
teeth and mimed her satisfaction at the taste of the viscous fluid.
Timothy saw nothing of Susan
until she appeared at his side with two large bath-towels. She handed one to
Gail and then moved behind him with the other. He stood in total embarrassment
as Susan proceeded to dry his shoulders and back. He watched in trepidation as
Gail gently lifted the bath towel between his legs and dried his penis and
testicles. He shuddered violently, as she drew back his foreskin and rubbed the
towelling over the exposed glans. He blushed in shame as he felt Susan's
fingers deftly part the cheeks of his bottom and dry the delicate flesh within
the crease of his buttocks. The absolute shame of being handled like a small
boy increased his distress; he could not hold back the tears that rolled freely
down his cheeks.
He dare not look at Gail as she
drew him even closer, his genitals almost touching her breasts as he stood with
his legs parted at either side of hers. Gail delighted in the boy's position.
As soon as Susan had finished drying his bottom she dropped her towel to the
floor and placed her hands on his hips, before running her hands down the back
of his legs to the crook of his knees.
"Never mind Timothy, I can
see that it has caused you some distress, sit down on my knees, there... that's
the way. She pulled her hands forward against the back of his knees. She
watched as Susan placed her hands on his shoulders, pressing him down until she
could feel the full weight of the boy upon her knees.
Timothy felt utterly awkward at
his close proximity to Gail. The plastic material felt cold on the cheeks of
his bottom and genitals, as he embarrassedly sat facing Gail. Her breasts were
almost touching his chest as she delved between their bodies and took hold of
his penis and testicles with both of her hands.
He could feel her sweet breath
against his face as she looked him in the eye.
"Never mind... perhaps it
has all been too much for you. I was going to take you over my knees and smack
your bottom for being so naughty. But I will save your smack-bottom for another
time. Now dry your tears... and you can have a little rest." She let go of
his genitals and took the boy by the waist, she leaned back in the chair and
drew the boy forward, pressing his head to her shoulder. "Now my little
one, just lie against my shoulder... poor baby that's the way... just relax
now... there we are."
She positioned him until he was
resting comfortably, his burning cheek touching her face. She thrilled as his
body began to relax against hers, she turned her head slowly and kissed him on
the forehead.
She heard him murmur contentment
as she put her hand around the back of his head and stroked his hair. She
smiled as Susan took another chair and sat behind him, her delicate fingers
gently stroking over his back in a comforting gesture. Gail could feel the
occasional shiver and sob as he gathered himself... but she could tell by the
way he lay against her that he was completely under her spell.
It was almost twenty minutes
before Gail broke the young boy's idyllic reverie, gently brushing her lips
against his cheek, she spoke softly to him. "There... are you feeling a
little better now... mmm?"
Gail had been delighted to feel
the growing pressure of his penis against her tummy as he dozed with his head
against her shoulder. She had conveyed the fact to Susan with a look and a
raised eyebrow. Susan had made a face that would have normally had Gail in fits
of laughter.
Susan helped the boy up into a
standing position with his legs still spread either side of Gail's knees,
seated as she was with them primly together. To Timothy's shame he realised
that his penis had erected once more. He face was absolutely crestfallen as
Gail looked at him, her face betraying none of the delight she felt at his
utter embarrassment. "Well Timothy, you have had a little rest... and you
seem to have got over your tears. I am afraid that your little accident in the
bath will not preclude you from supplying a sample of semen for the nurse.
Stand still and let me feel your testicles." The boy almost jumped out of
his skin as Gail reached forward and pulled his scrotum out from between his
legs. With her other hand, she took hold of his penis and moved the stiffened
member to the side as she felt his testicles.
"They are still quite
swollen, although they are obviously not as full as I would have liked them.
The doctor needs to keep a proper record of your emissions and I am afraid that
your little performance while you were being bathed, will not help." She
looked up at the boy's blushing face.
"I am afraid that you will
need a severe stimulation to your prostate gland if we are to get anything like
a full sample. So I am going to ask you to assume the same position upon the
table that you were in while Susan was shaving the area around your penis. That
is, lying on your back with your legs spread outwards on either side of the
table. Will you go and do that for me now while we prepare what we need to
extract a full sample from you?"
Timothy could not have blushed
anymore than he did right now. He felt the blood suddenly and swiftly suffuse
his cheeks until they were glowing bright red. He stood looking dumbfounded as
Gail squeezed his testicles once more before releasing both his penis and
scrotum.
"Off you go now." She
watched him as he shuffled his feet back and turned towards the table. She knew
that it would be even more embarrassing for him, to have to lay himself down in
such an exposed position, than it would be for him to have herself and Susan do
it for him. The girls moved towards the dressing table and began to open the
tubes of lubricant. They both watched as the boy hesitated, looking at the
table in pure embarrassment, before he turned and sat up on the edge. Slowly he
shuffled himself backwards, glancing embarrassedly in their direction before
lying down.
They almost giggled with delight
as they watched him make several attempts to stretch his legs wide enough apart,
to clear the edge of the table. He grunted with the effort, as well as with the
embarrassment of his predicament, as he accomplished the task.
He detected a look of amusement
upon the girls' faces as they came to stand over him. He blushed profusely as
they both looked down at his genitals. Timothy could not help following their
gaze, shamefully looking down at his erect penis, which was standing upwards
from between his legs.
"Just put your hands behind
your head Timothy, I don't want to see your hands anywhere near your
genitals." She watched him blush at her remark as she continued. "As
we don't have stirrups to hold your legs up Timothy, I am going to ask you to
make sure that you relax the cheeks of your bottom so that Susan can have full
and unhindered access with her fingers. We will lubricate your bottom
generously, but I intend that you are fully penetrated so relaxing you bottom
is very important.... Do you understand Timothy?"
Timothy looked up at Gail, his
embarrassment complete, as she laid her hand upon his stomach, somehow the
action emphasized that he was completely open to their wishes.
Susan moved to stand at the end
of the table. Timothy could not help watching as she placed the specimen tube
and a large jar of lubricant between his widely stretched legs.
"Right young man, we will
waste no more time. If you are ready Susan then we will begin."
Both Gail and Susan looked cool
and clinical as Timothy eyed them warily. He watched in dread as Susan
unscrewed the lid of the jar, dipping all of the fingers of one hand, into it.
She scooped up almost a tablespoonful of the clear gel before setting the jar
down and leaning forward. Her voice was almost husky as she spoke to him.
"Just relax your bottom for
me, like a good boy." Her words failed to stop his gasp of shock as the
cold gel first touched his skin.
"Ooohhhhh. Arrhhh."
Timothy wriggled his hip as much as his outstretched position would allow.
"Relax now, like a good
little boy." Susan whispered through parted lips as she bent forward to
her task. She parted his cheeks and smeared the gel over the puckered flesh of
his sphincter. He gasped again as she curled her fingers, one after the other,
scoring her fingernails over the tightly shut opening to his anus.
"Just relax, there's a
sweetie." Her voice was almost a drawl as she teased her forefinger
against his sphincter, the flesh recoiling violently as she gently teased the
opening.
"Ooops... there we
are!" She pressed her forefinger through the tightly constricted muscle,
feeling the young boy jerk with the acuteness of the sensation.
Impudently, she see-sawed her
finger in and out of the opening of his bottom, watching and listening in
delight to the boy's moans of anguish, as she penetrated him.
Timothy groaned as he suddenly
felt her finger push further inside him, penetrating him past the knuckle. He
groaned again as suddenly he felt a second fingertip impudently prodding
against the opening to his bottom. He cried out in alarm as suddenly both
fingers entered his bottom. He tried to raise his hips off the table to
alleviate the stretching of his sphincter, gasping in anguish at the intrusion.
"Ooooooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhhh
oooooohhhhhh hooooo." Susan ignored him as she pushed firmly, feeling her
fingers slowly and inexorably slide upwards. She could feel his bottom
quivering violently as she let the steady pressure she was exerting, carry her
fingers fully up into his bottom.
"There we are, all in now...
just try and relax Timothy, I want a nice big sample from you. I am going to
just run my fingers over your prostate; I want you to tell me if you can feel
anything." Susan looked at the boy's horror stricken face. She could not
bring herself to look at Gail for fear that she would break into a giggle.
She looked at his blushing face,
seeing the look of apprehension on his face. Deftly she ran the flesh of her
forefinger over the pliant mound of his prostate gland. The effect of her
action caused the boy to nearly lift off the table.
"Arrgggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
ooooooooooooOOOOOOOOOOOOaaaaaaaaaaahhhhhhhhh uggghhhh"
Susan held her fingers firm as
the boy actually managed to gyrate his hips. "Keep still, I need to see
you reaction without you jiggling about all over the place." Instead of
decreasing the pressure, as Timothy expected from his protestation, Susan
prodded the sensitive flesh firmly running both fingers over the mound.
She could see that his penis was
throbbing mightily as she caused the boy to call out in anguish.
"Pleeeeeeeeeeeeeasse... er
miss er noooooo more."
Gail looked down at the boy's
anguished face as Susan relaxed the pressure inside him. She had yet to touch
the boy, instead enjoying the nuances of his impalement.
"Thank you Susan, his penis
has reacted nicely. Now young man I am going to manipulate your penis for you.
Because you have already ejaculated entirely of your own volition, like the
naughty boy you are, I am going to have to be far more firm with you. Now look
at me and listen. If you don't try and control yourself and stop squirming
about like a spoiled child I shall take the strap to your bottom. I believe
that you received three strokes from Hazel... I shall give you six. Now look at
me and tell me... are you going to behave?"
Timothy blushed and trembled as
he looked up at Gail's face. Her cool and appraising expression gave him no
hope of any leniency. He blushed again as he stammered.
"I will be g...good... er I
pp.promise."
"Well you have been
warned... now lie still." Gail delicately placed her finger and thumb on
the throbbing flesh of the boy's penis as, almost clinically, she slipped the
foreskin back to expose the sensitive rim of the glans. She watched as he
struggled to keep control of his emotions, looking up at her as she held his
penis. She raised her head to address Susan.
"I would like you to keep a
steady stroking motion over his prostate until he is ready to ejaculate.... as
soon as he starts to pulsate, I want you to try and coax a nice sample from
him. Ignore his squirming; children can be so awkward and naughty when they are
having their genitals seen to. Would you have the specimen-tube ready for the
collection of his semen, please?"
Timothy turned his head in shame
as Gail turned her attention to his genitals. Nonchalantly she took a firm grip
on the shaft of his penis with her left hand and reached between his bottom
cheeks with her right, smearing some of the lubricant on to her fingers.
"A firm pressure if you
would Susan!" The boy almost jumped out of his skin as he felt Susan score
her fingers over his prostate and at the same time take a firm hold of his
testicles. Gail wrapped her fingers into a tube-like shape around the rigid
flesh of his penis and began to stroke up and down in a firm controlled motion.
The boy shook his head from side
to side as his body was rapidly and firmly aroused by the two girls. Both Gail
and Susan knew that however well disciplined the boy might be, he would not be
able to control his reaction to the excruciatingly acute sensations that the
girls were eliciting from his young body.
The shaving, he had undergone
earlier, had made his flesh seem even more sensitive as Susan rolled his
testicles around in her hand. She delighted in his torment, thrilling as he
grunted each time she altered the alignment of her fingers deep inside his
bottom. Gail kept a close watch on the boy as he began to writhe, his reactions
almost delirious as they skilfully manipulated his flesh to a fever pitch. She
listened for his breathing, altering the speed and firmness of her grip upon
his penis as his breath quickened.
He was moaning almost constantly
as Gail looked at Susan and nodded towards his penis, gesturing for her to
observe. Susan watched apprehensively, occasionally glancing at the boy's face,
as Gail nonchalantly stretched the foreskin down the shaft. She held the skin
tightly in place with her left hand as both girls anticipated the boy's
reaction. The bared head of his penis was clearly exposed as Gail deliberately
formed the fingers of her right hand into a tube and purposefully slipped them
over the exposed glans and pumped up and down in rapid movement. The cry of
torment torn from Timothy's throat was so anguished that it took both girls by
surprise.
"Argggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
pleeeeeeeeeeeeeease... noooooooooooooooo"
His back was arched in agony as
he cried out in utter despair. To Susan's surprise, her own response was to
thrust her fingers deep into his bottom and stimulate his prostate with firm
prods to the pliant flesh.
"Argggggggggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
please...no...no... no more please... oh please."
Gail ignored his pleading cry as
she rapidly pumped her fingers up and down in a flurry of movement, each stroke
so sensitive upon his glans that the boy was beside himself with an acute and
agonising torment of sexual sensation.
"Argggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
His wail of anguish seemed to go on for ever as gave vent to his torment.
Susan was fascinated by the boy's
reaction as she nonchalantly let go of his testicles and reached for the glass
container. Her fingers were thrusting vigorously against his prostate as he
tossed his head from side to side. His mouth sagged open and he gasped loudly
for breath as she causally held the glass over the tip of his penis. She felt
his flesh tense and spasm deep inside his bottom; almost callously she scored
her fingernails over the sensitive gland.
"arrrggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhh...
ooooooooooohhhhhhh."
Gail nodded to Susan, her
expression cool and calm, belying the rapid manipulation of her slender fingers
over the most sensitive part of the young boy's flesh.
"Ohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....
Ssssssssssssss arrrrrrrrrrrrggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
pleeeease nooooooooooooooooo...."
Gail could hear the boy's heart
thumping in his chest as she bent low, watching as spurt after spurt of semen
entered the glass tube. Both Gail and Susan were surprised by the intensity of
the boy's orgasm. Gail knew that no one could have resisted the sensation of
bare fingers over the acutely sensitive uncovered glans of the penis. She knew
that the sensation would have been agonizingly acute for a young boy to bear.
Her hand slowed gradually, as the
violent pulses of ejaculation dissipated to a mere throbbing, although each
throb was still accompanied by groans and gasps from the distraught young boy.
Gail milked him diligently,
running her finger and thumb from the base of his penis right through to the
tip. Each motion elicited further globules of semen as casually she extracted
the last remains of the boy's agonising ejaculation.
Gently Susan extracted her
fingers from inside his bottom and gently cupped her hand around his testicles,
squeezing gently as she watched the last drops of semen slide down the wall of
the clear specimen-tube. It was Gail who left the boy for a moment and
deposited the tube upon the dressing table.
She returned to look down at the
distraught boy. His chest was still heaving as he looked up at her anxiously.
Gail did not speak but leaned forward and took his face gently in her hands.
Without warning she leaned forward and kissed him on the forehead. "Just
stay where you are for a moment sweet boy." Susan and Gail lifted his legs
and laid them in a more comfortable position over the end of the table. They
left him to rest, his strength utterly exhausted from the agonising torment of
his reluctant ejaculation. An ejaculation so thoroughly and skilfully extracted
from his young body.
Gail emptied the bath and then
turned on both taps to their full volume until she had filled it to over half
full with comfortably hot water. She readied shampoo and liquid soap by the
side of the bath as Susan fetched more towels to hang over the heated towel
rail.
It was perhaps ten minutes before
they roused the boy into a sitting position and helped him towards the bath. He
looked relieved as they sat him down and laid him back so that he was covered
almost to his neck in deliciously hot water. For the next fifteen minutes the
girls allowed him to relax in the water before Gail bent beside the bathtub and
began to wash his hair, rinsing it with a jug of fresh warm water that Susan
had filled from the sink. She washed his face and neck, watching him squeeze
his eyes shut as she soaped and then rinsed him.
By the time Gail had finished
washing his hair Timothy looked quite recovered from the ordeal of his wracking
ejaculation. He looked at Gail anxiously as she made him stand-up and face
forward.
"Come along Timothy, you
know the bath-time routine by now. Hands on your head and legs apart... that's
the way now."
She took his wrists and raised
his arms to his head as Susan moved to his rear and slipped her hand in-between
his legs, tapping the inside of his thighs gently until he had spread to her
satisfaction.
He blushed as Gail looked him up
and down and then bent to retrieve the soap from beside the bath-tub.
Without preamble she lathered her
hands and passed the soap to Susan. He flinched at the first touch as Gail
began to soap his chest and underneath his arms. He could not help shivering at
her gentle touch, suddenly jerking his body as he felt Susan run her soapy
hands up over his waist, widening the scope of her gentle hands, to wash his
back. The girls thoroughly cleansed every part of him, except for his bottom
and his genitals. Timothy looked apprehensively at Gail as both girls
deliberately, re-soaped their hands to a rich lather. He jerked his hips in an
embarrassed reaction to their touch, shuddering violently as both girls placed
their hands upon him at the same time.
Gail cupped one hand underneath
his testicles and gently took hold of his penis in the other, while Susan
impudently slipped her fingers between the deep crease of his bottom cheeks.
They washed his genitals and
bottom thoroughly, being particularly gentle at first and then growing bolder
as Susan slid a slippery finger up through his sphincter and into his anus.
Gail followed suit by slipping his foreskin back along the shaft of his penis
and washing behind the sensitive glans.
The boy shivered and shook as the
girls gave him no respite from their ministrations. As if on cue they slid
their hands from his body and stood back. To Timothy's utter dismay his penis
stood out rigidly from his body, throbbing visibly as Gail stood back and
examined him. He blushed profusely as she caught his eye, he blushed again as
she motioned to Susan to come around from the other side of the bath.
"Can you believe it Susan,
his penis is erect again... even though he has only just ejaculated. He is
obviously not being milked thoroughly enough...or perhaps the frequency needs
to be increased. We will have to tell Hazel in the morning."
Timothy blushed in shame as he
stood in the bath, his embarrassment made even more acute by the fact that he
had been made to stand with his hands flat on his head and his legs spread
widely apart.
He blushed again as Gail casually
reached forward and tapped her fingers against the underside of his erect penis
making it bob up and down.
"Oh well Susan, I suppose we
had better put him to bed... I really don't know what to do for the best."
To his shame and utter humiliation the girls helped him from the bath and began
to dry him. Mischievously, both Gail and Susan made sure that either the towel
or their hands kept touching his penis, keeping the rigid member erect and
throbbing. They made him bend over and touch his toes while Susan slipped the
towel between the crease of his buttocks and dried his bottom.
Timothy felt absolutely
humiliated and shamed as the Gail led him naked towards his bedroom, his penis
bobbing in front of him like a beacon to remind him of his utter humiliation.
She switched on the centre light and left Timothy facing his bed. She pretended
not to notice his groan of dismay as he caught sight of the diaper laid out on
his bed and the large nappy pin laid on top of it.
Gail's voice was bright and
matter of fact as she put her arm around his waist and whispered to him.
"Come along then Timothy, lie down on the bed. Sit your bottom right on
top of the diaper, it will be a lot easier for me to get you fastened up.
Here... let me move the pin, we don't want you sitting on that and it sticking
in to your little bottom, do we?"
"Butt.. er miss... please..
er I don't need a ,,,erm a erm nappy."
"Nonsense" Gail said
brightly... it will help to stop you touching your little willy. We don't want
you getting into nasty habits do we? Now come along now... it's far too late for
me to start having to spank your naughty bottom... so don't let me hear another
word from you."
Susan had stayed in the bathroom
to collect a few items that she knew that they might need. She placed a
specimen-tube in the top pocket of her tunic and took a tube of lubricant with
a long nozzle. Undoing the cap, she placed the tube upright inside the
specimen-container so that the clear gel would not ooze out if it were pressed
against her pocket. She hurried to the bedroom to see Timothy looking absolutely
crestfallen at the sight of the tapered diaper that they had laid out upon the
bed.
She took his shoulders and turned
him so that he was facing away from the bed and pushed him backwards so that he
was forced to sit down on top of the diaper. Without preamble she bent forward
and took his ankles and brought his feet around to lay them on the foot of the
bed. Gail slid her hand over his chest and laid him back.
"There what a fuss about
getting into bed! Now Susan would you talcum powder his little bottom as well
as his penis and testicles for me?"
Timothy blushed as Gail handed
the large tin of talcum powder to Susan. The tin had large holes in the top of
it and illustrations of babies in nappies upon the side. Timothy looked at the
tin and flushed a deep shade of red. He could not believe that the girls were
going to sprinkle him with baby powder. He turned his face into the pillow as
he felt Susan sit on the bed at his side and slip her finger in between his
thighs. "Come along Timmy, open your little legs for me and bend your
knees up so that I can sprinkle your little bottom and your willy."
Timothy groaned as Susan slipped
her hand between his knees and pulled one leg up until his knee was raised.
"Gail... would you help me... Timmy is being a very difficult little
boy."
Timothy could not believe his
acute embarrassment as Susan suddenly got up from the bed and both she and Gail
slipped their hands under his knees and raised his legs high in the air. Before
he knew what was happening, Timothy felt his legs being raised and bent over
his chest, leaving his bottom raised in the air. Seemingly without effort Gail
held his knees towards his chest as Susan began to smack his raised bottom as
if he were a child.
"Smack smack smack
smack..." Susan spanked his bottom until the cheeks began to turn red. She
almost laughed out loud as she observed his penis bobbing to and fro in time
with her smacks to his bottom cheeks.
Suddenly she stopped as Gail
lowered her head and looked into his eyes. "Now Timothy, don't you dare
start your naughtiness. Fancy Susan having to smack your bare bottom! Now keep
still and let us have no more nonsense."
Timothy felt so ashamed that he
turned his head away. He could not believe the abject humiliation he felt at
the hands of the two young girls. He felt Gail take hold of his ankles, keeping
his legs raised, but holding them further apart. To his utter humiliation he
felt cool talcum powder being showered over his upturned bottom and then the
unmistakable feeling of a soft hand gently smoothing the powder over his
cheeks. He turned his face further into the pillow as Susan's fingers suddenly
delved in-between the crease of his bottom.
"There that's better Timmy.
I can manage now Gail if you let his legs down. Don't you dare squeeze your
legs together Timmy, I want plenty of room to powder your little willy and your
testicles."
Timothy squeezed his eyes shut,
trying anything to distance himself from his humiliation at the hands of the
two girls. He did not think that he would ever be able to look them in the face
again; such was his utter shame and humiliation. Gail had very different ideas
on Timothy's participation. She took hold of his face and turned his head
towards her.
"Now Timothy... open your
eyes and look at me I want a very serious word with you." He flushed a
bright and heated shade of red as Gail waited until he opened his eyes. Her
beauty exacerbated his feeling of utter shame and anguish as she looked into
his face.
Now if you persist in this
behaviour I shall be forced to have to take you downstairs and bend you over a
chair while I severely chastise your bare bottom with six strokes of the
strap... now young man... tell me which is better, to behave... or to have your
bare bottom soundly thrashed?
"I am so sorry miss...
please miss not that..."
"Well then lie still and let
us attend to you," her face softened and she brushed her hand against his
cheek. "...we are only doing what is best for you!"
Gail suddenly saw him flinch as
Susan casually took hold of his erect penis and liberally sprinkled his
testicles and the area between his legs with talcum powder. Gail had look of
mild amusement on her face as if to say what a silly boy he was at making so
much fuss. "Poor Timmy, my you are a `silly billy'."
He could not help looking down at
himself as Susan wrapped her fingers around the top of his penis and slowly and
sensually sipped the foreskin down, uncovering the sensitive rim of the glans.
He blushed as she sprinkled the powder over the entire length of his penis
until it was covered in white.
"Look Timmy," Susan
cried out... "it looks just like a little snowman."
Timothy shivered in shame as both
girls laughed at his discomfort. It was Gail that looked at him seriously for a
moment and then stood up. She switched on the bedside light and then moved to
the doorway and turned off the main light.
Timothy watched her as she untied
her plastic apron. Almost bewitched by her beauty he watched her as she pulled
the apron over her head. He could not help looking at her in adoration as she
sat by his side and gently laid her hands on his chest.
"Poor Timmy... you have had
a really awful day haven't you... never mind. I am going to let Susan give you
a kiss goodnight and then I will do the same."
She turned and looked
meaningfully at Susan. "I think we had better make sure that he is
comfortable before we let him go to sleep, what do you think?"
Susan moved to stand behind Gail.
She knew that Timothy was watching as she lifted her apron over her head.
Deliberately she undid a further two buttons at the top of her tunic, knowing
that the sides of her breasts would be visible if she leaned forward. She
tapped Gail gently on the shoulder and moved aside to let Gail stand up. Gently
she sat down next to the naked boy. She took his face in her hands as she
leaned over him.
The soft light from the bedside
lamp seemed to accent her beautiful face as she leaned towards him. The boy
seemed almost mesmerised by her, as she pressed her soft almost naked breasts
against his chest. She lowered her head and gently brushed her lips over his.
She repeated the gesture several times until she felt Gail sit on the bed
behind her. She looked deep into his eyes waiting until she saw him flinch
suddenly. She knew that Gail had taken hold of his penis as she lowered her
head and pressed her lips to his, kissing him gently.
Timothy's heart pounded as Susan
kissed him, her hand slipping down over his stomach and pubis. Susan could feel
Gail's hand as it gently stroked his penis. She let her fingers trail between
his legs gently lifting his scrotum as she delicately parted his lips with her
tongue. Gently, almost reverently she slipped her tongue into his mouth,
feeling his heart pound against her breasts as lovingly, she kissed him. Slowly
she withdrew her lips and looked into his eyes. Close your eyes for a moment
sweetie... until I tell you otherwise. She watched as he obediently did her
bidding, his long eyelashes closing over his blushing cheeks. He lay with his
eyes closed feeling the hand leave his penis and movement as both girls sat on
the bed again. He could hear the rustling of clothes but nothing else.
He felt a hand gently brush his
cheek and Gail's voice as she whispered in his ear. It's time for my goodnight
kiss now Timothy. Just lay quietly my sweet boy. Gail trailed her hand down
over his torso, feeling him flinch as she carefully took hold of his penis.
Susan immediately slipped one hand delicately between the cheeks of his bottom
and slipped the other beneath his testicles. She waited until she saw Gail
begin to slip the foreskin backwards and forwards over the rim of the glans.
Gail looked into his eyes and
lowered her head to his; she saw the look of pure love and supplication in his
face as she closed her lips over his and pressed her breasts firmly against his
pounding chest.
Timothy's rapture knew no bounds
as Gail kissed him. The beauty of her face as she lowered her head to his was
firmly imprinted on his mind, to be kept forever. Her lips caressed his with
the merest pressure. Her right hand controlled his sexual emotion as she
slipped the foreskin up and down over the sensitive rim of his penis. Gradually
she increased the firmness of her fingers, feeling his body respond almost
imperceptibly. She gently teased her tongue through his lips as she scored the
nails of her left hand over his sensitive nipple.
She watched for each tell-tale
sign of his growing arousal, measuring and responding to his every movement.
His penis began to throb within her fingers as she delicately probed the inside
of his mouth with her tongue. Even in the dim light Susan could see Gail
suddenly hold out two fingers, the gesture accomplished without a break to the
cadence of her constant stroking fingers over the boy's penis. Susan could see
the head of his penis was pulsing with the desire.
She took the tube of lubricant
from her pocket and delicately insinuated the long nozzle of the tube up into
the crease of his bottom until she found the sphincter. She squeezed the tube
firmly, before slipping the slender nozzle through the tight opening. Gently
she withdrew the tube and smeared her forefinger before slipping her hand back
between the cheeks of his bottom.
She began to stroke the puckered
flesh of his sphincter, gently caressing the flesh... feeling it recoil at her
touch as the boy responded with small gyrations to his hips.
Gail felt his body begin to
tremble with desire as she gently lifted her lips from his and watched as he
inhaled deeply. She held out her fingers again in an urgent sign to Susan as
she lowered her head and closed her lips over his. She parted his lips with her
tongue and quickly thrust into his mouth, feeling his chest rear up as Susan
deftly penetrated his sphincter with her forefinger. Gail knew that the
sensation of her kisses and the manipulation of their fingers to his penis and
sphincter had brought the boy to the very edge of an ejaculation. She gave him
no chance to breathe as firmly and inexorably she explored his mouth with her tongue,
while her hand began to move rapidly over his throbbing penis. Again with
outstretched fingers she signalled to Susan as she thrust her tongue deep into
his mouth and squeezed his nipple firmly.
Susan took her cue, thrusting her
finger firmly up into his bottom, she jabbed his prostate with a series of firm
prods. Letting his testicles go free as she reached into her pocket and quickly
took the specimen-tube to the tip of his penis.
Her hurried action was only just
in time to catch his emission, as the boy's penis erupted with a violent
expulsion of semen into the neck of the tube. There was no sound from the boy
as he arched his back violently, his chest heaving as Gail robbed him of his
voice... his breath... and his sanity.
The girls held him in his violent
throes of ejaculation; Susan jabbing his prostate deftly and skilfully... while
Gail pumped his penis mercilessly, holding his lips captive against hers as she
thrust her tongue deep into his mouth.
One... two... three... four...
she counted to herself until twenty seconds had passed. She could feel his
chest pounding and his body tremble violently as she held in a suspended almost
catatonic state of orgasm.
"urggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
He gasped and groaned inwardly as suddenly Gail released his lips. Her hand
flew up and down over his penis as she milked him of every vestige of his
sanity. Susan felt the violent contractions of his sphincter against her finger
as she mercilessly prodded his prostate until the boy suddenly tensed every
muscle in his body. Every sinew became rigid as he spurted the last of his
semen into the waiting container.
Suddenly he went limp, almost as
if he had fainted, his jaw hanging slack as he groaned with exhaustion at the
intensity of the orgasm that the girls had cleverly wrung from his young body.
"Poor baby... there now... poor baby." Gail whispered to him as she
kissed him gently on his parted lips... there... there.
Susan delicately extricated her
finger from his quivering bottom and stood up. She carried the specimen through
to the bathroom and returned with a hot wash-cloth and warm towel. Gently she
washed the boy as Gail Kissed him tenderly, stroking her hands over his chest
and stomach as she soothed him.
His breathing was gentle and even
as Gail tenderly stroked his torso and kissed his young lips.
Susan dried him, her gentleness
causing him no distress as she dried his penis and testicles. Lovingly, she
re-applied talcum powder to his penis and testicles and between the cheeks of
his bottom, before drawing up the bottom triangle of the diaper through his
legs and placing it over his flaccid penis. She took the ends and, feeling
around the bed for the pin, fastened him snugly into the nappy.
She smiled as she looked at her
handiwork, his perfectly formed body diapered as one would a young child.
Gail kissed him one last time...
her tongue reaching into every crevice of his mouth as she held him in rapture.
She gently lifted her face from
his, running her fingers softly over his eyelids, in a motherly gesture to keep
them closed. Both girls looked down at his perfect form... smiling as they
examined his diapering.
They drew the covers up over him
and tucked him in before turning off the bedside light.
4
They had travelled by train, the
short half hour journey being spent in the comfort of the first class Pullman
car. Hazel had had the luxury of being able to observe the boy closely without
his knowledge as he ate his sandwich which had been served to him on a silver tray
by one of the smartly dressed waitresses. He was clearly impressed by the
quality of service and the fine surroundings. She wondered how he would take
the surprise that was in store for him at the doctor's office.
Hazel had been surprised at the
quality of the small brochure that had been sent along with Timothy's
appointment card. She had not realised that Dr. Lucy Ashcroft belonged to such
a prestigious private practice, or that their facilities were so comprehensive.
Hazel had telephoned her mother
and had a long conversation making sure that the date and time of the
appointment would be suitable. After she had put Timothy to bed, she had
visited Vicki Grant at her cottage next door and finalised the arrangements for
their visit. It had been decided that Vicki would make her own way there and
would meet up before Hazel arrived with the boy. They had also decided that the
boy would not be informed of who would be there, or in fact any of the
arrangements.
The doctor's office consisted of
large suite of rooms inside one of the newest and most exclusive business
blocks in the area. Even Hazel could not help admiring the beautifully finished
lettering and filigree work that was etched into the tinted glass of the double
doors entrancing the building, as she ushered Timothy into the opulent foyer.
She had dressed him in his school
uniform, deciding that this would probably be the most suitable outfit for his
visit to the large market town. She took his hand and held it firmly as she
approached the raised dais that was the centrepiece of the marble floored
reception area. To their right were two gold coloured elevator doors and beside
them an ornate placard showing the various names and titles of the occupants to
the floors above.
There were several girls facing
outward from the circular dais. Each girl, although different in looks and
colouring, had a certain air of superiority. It would have been too much of a
coincidence for so many pretty girls to be randomly chosen and Hazel rightly
assumed that their particular good looks had been a prime requisite of
employment as a receptionist at the business centre.
The gleaming glass of the
sculptured edifice was fashioned into partitions which allowed the client some
audible privacy when stating the nature of their visit over the carved marble
of the counter. Hazel advanced to the first empty partition and addressed the
girl clearly and confidently.
"I am visiting Dr. Lucy
Ashcroft at the Berger Clinic and have an appointment with her for two-thirty.
The appointment will be in the name of Timothy Althorpe, If you can confirm
that for me and tell me where the office is situated?"
The pin-striped suit that the
girl was wearing was new and suited her ideally. The lapel had a simple gold
badge which read. `Claire Jones'. Although the suit was not a designer label,
Hazel noted that it was of excellent quality.
The Girl moved her head to the
side, carefully examining the exquisite appearance of Hazel as she spoke. Her
attitude was pleasant and obliging as she smiled her acknowledgement and
immediately looked to the flat screen of her computer. Hazel had the feeling
that not only had she been carefully scrutinized, but that the young
receptionist seemed impressed and somewhat intrigued by her appearance.
"Ah yes... I can confirm
that your appointment is at two-thirty. You will find that Dr. Ashcroft is very
prompt and as such is not likely to keep you waiting. You can take the elevator
to the second floor, where you will find her reception area. You are quite early,
so you can either go straight up... or make use of the business centre
executive lounge, which is situated through those doors to the right. There are
hot beverages served continuously, as well as soft drinks."
Whether it was the way that the
young girl looked Timothy up and down as he stood awkwardly at the counter, or
the similarity to herself in style and demeanour Hazel could not be sure. But
she was certain that the girl had a prurient interest in the physical aspect of
her young charge.
She looked at Hazel and smiled.
The smart Chanel suit that Hazel was wearing had not gone unnoticed as the girl
pushed forward a leather bound visitor's book. If you would fill this in It
will only take a minute to book you into the building... you don't have to wear
a badge..." she smiled conspiratorially as she continued, "it would
be a shame to have to put a pin through such a lovely suit. Chanel... isn't
it?"
Hazel smiled, her teeth flashing
brightly as she recognized the good natured envy of the pretty girl. "Yes
it is!" She leaned forward, pulling Timothy further towards the counter I
won't bother with the business area... I may have to undress Timothy and get
him ready for his examination! Little boys can be so tardy when they have to be
examined."
The girl looked at Hazel
admiringly, raising her eyebrows in a pleasant gesture of surprise, before her
pretty face moved sideways to examine Timothy. She saw that he was blushing
profusely as she took note of the perfection of his features and the exquisite
form of his young body. She smiled at him professionally, as he stood with his
head bowed in shame.
"I hope that there is
nothing seriously wrong with him... is he a relative?" Hazel could tell by
the girl's tone that there was a most definite interest in the young boy and
that she would be delighted if she would go into further detail. She was almost
certain that the receptionist was most interested in her role as the boy's
temporary guardian. Instinctively she decided to add a few details and gauge the
young girl's reaction. Hazel did not lower her voice or sound in the least
conspiring, as she felt Timothy physically cringe at her reply.
"Yes he is my young
nephew... fortunately it's just a problem with his developing puberty. It just
seems that all little boys get embarrassed and awkward when they are having
their little genitals examined. I have an awful job with him when I have to
bathe him or examine him. You wouldn't believe the fuss he made over his bath
this morning. In the end I had to take his bare bottom over my knee and give
him a sound spanking."
Had Timothy been able to look up
at the girl amidst his confusion and utter embarrassment, he would have seen
the look of wide eyed admiration and intrigue upon her pretty face. As it was,
he could do nothing but look down at his feet and colour up to a bright and
burning redness which suffused his entire face.
Hazel knew that the girl was
absolutely enthralled by what she had heard. She did not look at her directly,
but waited until she had finished filling in their details into the visitor's
book. Suddenly she looked up and was rewarded with an unguarded expression of
avid interest. The young receptionist looked at the boy, again her eyes
travelling up and down his entire body. "He looks very fit and well... his
body seems... er very well proportioned... er I can't imagine um... er what
problems he could have with his erm... development."
Again Hazel did not disappoint.
She could now clearly sense the young girl's interest, but also the exquisite
embarrassment of Timothy as she took his hand firmly and made him stand
straight. She moved her head closer to the young receptionist and gestured to
the young boy. Timothy groaned in humiliation as the girls attention was turned
towards him.
"Well Timothy has been
rather a naughty little boy in not telling anyone of his problem until it had
developed into a painful complaint. His sexual development has been quite
rapid, so much so that his testicles had become quite swollen and painful to
the touch. It was discovered by accident when I had to take him for his school
medical... although of he was well aware of a problem; he took it upon himself
not to tell anyone about it. Now he has to have his semen extracted several
times a day."
Hazel looked at the young girl,
watching her surprise at the statement suddenly turn to an almost predatory
instinct as she licked her lips and looked towards Timothy's groin area. Hazel
was delighted as much with the boy's embarrassment, as with the obvious
interest of the haughty young receptionist. She decided to continue, knowing
full well that Timothy was suffused in embarrassment at her indiscrete and
matter of fact description of his condition.
Before Hazel could continue, the
girl pre-empted her by asking the obvious question. "Oh my, that was
naughty of Timothy not to tell anyone about his erm... condition. You say he
has to have his erm... semen extracted... er, how is that done... I mean does
he erm... do...?
Hazel saved the girl from any
further difficulty with her line of questioning. "No the doctor was of the
same opinion as myself, that little boys should not be allowed to play with
their penises. It can lead to clandestine activity that is not suitable for
boys such as Timothy. Of course it can also lead to a malformed penis... and so
I have the help of the nurses from Dr. Ashcroft's practice. Between us we are
able to massage his prostate as well as the obvious manipulation to his penis.
The benefit is that we are able to extract a large quantity of semen at one
session, which consists of two ejaculations about twenty minutes apart."
Although Hazel's tone was quite
matter of fact, she could see that the girl was beside herself with the
intrigue of the conversation. Again she decided to embarrass the boy with
further revelations.
"I am afraid that he finds
the treatment an embarrassment and I have to resort to punishment. Why don't
you tell the lady how naughty you are Timothy... having to have your bare
bottom spanked over my knees."
The girl gave Hazel a knowing
look, her expression full of admiration for the authority she demonstrated over
the young boy.
Claire would have given anything
right now to change places with Hazel, she could not help squeezing her long
legs together behind the counter, as she looked the boy up and down with a more
than casual interest.
She could see that he was almost
in tears with embarrassment as Hazel lifted his chin and made him look at her.
Claire looked into his face, her expression kindly but aloof as she spoke.
"You are a very lucky boy to
have someone so competent to look after you. I would certainly smack your bare
bottom for you if I was treating your penis and you suddenly decided to be a
naughty little boy."
Hazel almost giggled as she
realised that that was exactly what the young receptionist would love to do to
the boy. Hazel decided to provide some sort of opportunity as she raised her
head and looked at the young receptionist. Before she could speak the
receptionist looked at her in earnest. If there is anything you need while you
are here, please ask for me. My name is Claire Jones. If I am away from my
desk, they will page me, that is... if you ask for me personally.
"I haven't introduced
myself... I am called Hazel... and this obviously is little Timothy."
Timothy blushed immediately as Hazel described him as little. Such was his
anguish and humiliation that he trembled from head to foot. Both girls seemed
so aloof and authoritative that he wished a hole would appear in the floor and
swallow him up.
"We are travelling back to
Bourne by train... I don't suppose you could find the time to enquire of the
train service after five thirty... could you. You could perhaps telephone me at
Dr. Ashcroft's office... or pop up if you are able to take a break. Thank you
for all your help... I had better go and help prepare Timothy for his
examination."
Claire immediately took her
cue... her grasp of Hazel's meaning was all too clear to her. "... of
course I can look up the trains... and if we are not to busy, I will write them
all down for you and pop upstairs with them... if that would be alright."
"My mother's name is Claire;
I have always thought that it is such a lovely name." Hazel said, as she
looked keenly at the girl. She gave one more clue before she turned and ushered
|Timothy towards the elevator.
"It should take me at least
half an hour to get him booked in and then stripped and ready... I think
sometime close after that would be opportune... that is very kind of you
Claire... thank you!"
Timothy was still blushing
furiously as they stepped out of the elevator into a wide corridor that ended
in double smoked glass doors with the simple but elegant script which read `The
Berger Clinic'. Beneath the script was a list of doctors which Hazel noted were
of many nationalities, the leading name being that of Dr. Helga Berger. In the
middle of a list of about twelve names was that of Dr. Lucy Ashcroft.
Hazel pushed open one of the
doors and ushered Timothy through the opening before entering herself. The
reception area was quite small with just one elegant desk, behind which, sat a
young girl.
The girl was dressed in a simple
blouse of crisp white cotton. Her slender frame moved easily as she pushed back
her chair and smiled at Hazel and Timothy her eyes lighting up through the thin
owl-like spectacles she was wearing, with a confidence that belied her tender
years. The striking feature to Hazel was that the young girl had no striking
features... she was in fact perfect. Her young petite body was in perfectly
symmetrical proportions... and her beautiful face, small articulate nose and
small pretty mouth and lips were surrounded by the most exquisitely shaped
face. Her jet black hair was tied back and fastened with a simple velvet bow;
the almost blue/black reflection of her hair shone with health under the very
strong lighting of the office.
The girl could have been no more
than five feet tall, and yet her proportions perfectly matched her stature.
"No... don't tell me."
She smiled engagingly. "You are Hazel and this is Timothy. Reception is
ready for you. There are no forms to fill, as there are no charges for this
visit. The person you were expecting is already with Dr. Ashcroft, so it is as
simple as that. If you go through here..." She indicated the opaque glass
beside her desk, "Cynthia and Susie will take care of you. Now is there
anything I can do for you, perhaps some coffee and a juice for Timothy?"
The young girl nodded her affirmation as Hazel smiled appreciatively.
"Yes I would love some..."
said Hazel, "and Timothy..." She looked enquiringly at the blushing
boy. "Would you like an orange juice?" She turned to the receptionist
without waiting for Timothy's reply. "An orange juice would be fine for
Timothy."
The young receptionist got up
from behind her desk and placed her hand on the silver push-bar of the door,
revealing for the first time, the whole of her exquisite slender from. "Oh
I forgot to ask you Hazel... are there any travel arrangements you would like
me to make?"
Hazel was pleased of the
question. "Ah I almost forgot... Claire from the main reception centre
downstairs was finding me the times of the trains back to Bourne. She said that
she may have time to bring them upstairs. If she is able... would you show her
through... I would like to thank her personally."
If the young receptionist
understood the meaning behind Hazel's request, she covered it well, but at the
same time made sure that Hazel was aware of her actions in case they would not
suit.
"I will show her through...even
if you are busy at the time. I have met Claire; she is an extremely lovely
girl. I could imagine that you would both have a lot in common. The young
girl's clever phrasing told Hazel that should Claire appear in the next half
hour, then her visit would be most rewarding.
As they passed through the glass
door into the reception area proper, Hazel was quite taken aback with the space
and modernity of the room. Every piece of furniture and apparatus was of the
highest quality, all beautifully made in stainless steel and glass.
There were two desks spaced apart
from Japanese styled screens, which were made of semi opaque glass rather than
paper. The screens had been pulled apart, revealing a much larger room which
had weighing scales and several pieces of medial paraphernalia, the centrepiece
being an extremely modern and pneumatic powered, low profile examination couch.
The examination couch looked
ominous even to Hazel, with its stirrups already set high and wide as if
eagerly awaiting a victim. The walls of the room were made up entirely of
gleaming stainless steel frames which housed glass fronted cupboards. There
were two clinical trolleys at each side of the examination couch, each holding
a variety of instruments on their brilliant shiny surfaces. To the side of the
room was another pair of opaque glass doors and next to them a single door
which was made of smoked glass. This had the inscription `Consulting Rooms'
lettered in the same style of script as that of the main vestibule.
Both desks were occupied by young
girls; both girls were slender and petite, having the same style and look as
that of the girl that they had met in the preliminary reception. Hazel
immediately thought that they could all be sisters... even triplets; such was the
uncanny resemblance of the girls to each other. She thought how embarrassing it
must be for Timothy to be stripped and examined in front of girls that looked
almost as young as he did. Hazel was very much aware that their confidence far
outweighed their apparent physical age.
Hazel assimilated their
appearance in an instance, realising that both of the girls were hardly five
feet in stature and yet both their bodies were in perfect proportion to their
height. As with the girl in reception, their skin was lightly tanned, certainly
suggesting a recent visit abroad.
They were both wearing the same
style of round wire framed glasses, giving them a slightly studious but very
authoritarian air. Hazel thought that for Doctor Helga Berger to have found
three girls of such stunning good looks and uniquely perfect physical
appearance, was either very good fortune or the result of a very intensive
search.
The girl facing Hazel and
Timothy, was dressed in a white tunic which fitted her figure perfectly. Her
small breasts pressed against the fine cotton, leaving no illusion to the fact
that her young breasts were not in need of support. The other girl, who was
dressed in an exquisite navy blue silk blouse, was obviously also without a
bra. The silk profiled her small firm breasts, the firm shape of her pronounced
nipples was visible to such an extent, that Hazel thought that perhaps Doctor
Berger condoned and indeed supported the somewhat immodest and sexy charms of
her meet and greet team.
The young secretary, who was
dressed in navy, smiled at Hazel but did not speak as she deferred to the
clinical assistant..
The assistant stood up and
approached Timothy. Her slender figure moved easily and sexily, her white
clinical dress almost clinging to the firm contours of her lithe body.
"Don't look so glum... I am
sure Doctor Ashcroft will sort out your problems for you; you are such a
sweetie that I am sure all the staff here will take special care of you. Now I
am going to ask Hazel to get you undressed and then we can start you off."
Timothy blushed immediately, not
that his face had been any thing but bright red before this immediate onslaught
to his equilibrium.
"I had better introduce
ourselves before we start Hazel. I am Cynthia Jenkins, Dr. Berger's clinical
assistant and this is Susie Jenkins, who handles all of our patient's
paperwork. I handle many of Dr. Ashcroft's patients and clients... and we have
a team of pool nurses who belong entirely to the clinic. They are specially
trained and they look after our residential ward as well as helping with home
visits and day patients."
Hazel was noting how attractive
the young girl's features were as she continued.
"You have met two of our
nurses... Penny and Tina, before..." She smiled as she continued.
"They told me all about you and described you as being a very capable
young lady." She smiled good humouredly at her description of Hazel.
"...and so I think we understand the situation fairly well already. You
will probably see them today as they are in base rather than on house-calls. I
am sure that after today you will know Susie and Lisa equally as well, and
myself of course. Certainly well enough to feel free to talk."
We are a twenty-four hour
facility in that respect, so for instance, you can telephone at anytime... with
problems or queries.
Hazel smiled at Cynthia, she
could not help remarking. "Am I to take it that you are sisters?"
"Yes... it is hard not to
notice the resemblance isn't it. I presume that Lisa, that is the girl you met
in the outer office, did not bother to tell you that we are all sisters. Not of
the same age I might add... Lisa is the youngest and then I... and then Susie,
who is the oldest by a year."
Timothy could not help looking at
the young secretary, perhaps in the forlorn hope that she would leave the room
before he had to bare his body. Trembling with shame and indignation he allowed
Hazel to slip his school blazer from his shoulders.
He watched dumbly as Hazel hung
the jacket on one of the several coat hangers which extended from a stainless
steel rail behind the door. Below the hangers were a series of shiny steel
shelves and below these, glass fronted cupboards.
"Come along, don't just
stand there... off with your shoes and socks. You are not going to be
deliberately troublesome are you Timothy?"
Timothy suddenly jerked into
action, glumly bending upon one knee, as he began to unlace his shoes. He could
not stop his hands from trembling as he took off his shoes and peeled the socks
from his feet. As he stood up, Hazel immediately took the shoes and socks from
him and placed them upon one of the shelves.
Treating him as if he was a small
child she stood in front of him. "Come along... chin up... that's the way.
Her beautiful face was only inches from his as she undid his tie and then began
to undo his shirt buttons.
She dropped down on one knee and
without preamble undid his belt, brushing his hands aside as he involuntarily
tried to protect his modesty. "Keep your hands by your sides Timothy,,, I
want no false modesty now."
Her words added to his shame as
Timothy felt his trousers being pulled down to his knees. He could not help
looking at the two young girls, acutely aware of their presence as he was
summarily stripped. To his dismay they were both looking at him, the clinical
assistant watching Hazel intently as she lifted his legs and divested him of
his trousers.
Hazel stood upright and looked
Timothy in the eye, holding his attention as she placed the palms of both her
hands side by side against his bared chest. She let her fingers deliberately
caress the sensitive nub of each nipple as she slid her hands outwards,
revealing his chest and shoulders as the shirt eventually slipped down over his
arms. She reached around him, her cheek pressing against his, as she released
him from the garment. She could feel his body tremble at her close contact with
his bared flesh.
She deliberately left him
standing in just his underpants as she leisurely hung up his clothes, carefully
aligning the crease of his trousers before placing them over the hanger rail.
"Hands on your head now
Timothy and stand up straight. You don't want to be thought of as a slouch do
you?"
The next few moments were a
nightmare for Timothy as he moved his hands to his head, aware that Hazel had
moved to stand behind him. He shivered; his body shuddering visibly as she
deliberately placed her cool hands on either side of his waist and turned his
body so that he was facing the desk of the young secretary.
He felt almost faint as she
repositioned his hands so that his palms were placed flat upon his head. He
could not help blushing profusely, his cheeks burning with shame as he caught
the eye of the young secretary as she sat primly at her desk, looking at him as
if the baring of his body was of no consequence to her.
Quite nonchalantly Hazel stroked
her hands delicately under his forearms, letting her fingers caress his flesh
all the way down from underneath his arms to the sides of his body and
eventually, to his waist. She waited for a moment, with her hands placed
teasingly against his slim hips. She made sure that he could feel her fingers
touching the waistband of his underpants, her intimate touch heralding his
forthcoming moment of shame and humiliation.
Timothy could feel her soft breasts
caress his back as her body sensuously slid downwards against his. He waited in
trepidation, holding his breath as she knelt down behind him. He felt her
slowly and deliberately slip her slender fingers beneath the elasticated waist
and with one quick movement, deftly slide his underpants down to his knees.
Timothy felt mortified as he felt
the cool air of the room immediately caress his most private parts. He trembled
in utter shame as Hazel bared him like a prize animal to the gaze of the two
young girls.
Hazel had felt the waistband snag
momentarily against his genitals as she had bared his penis and testicles to
the view of the young girls. She guessed that his penis had already started to
engorge as a result of her deliberately arousing him by sensuously touching his
sensitive young body.
She left the underpants with the
elastic stretched around his knees, knowing how foolish he would feel, suddenly
bared to their view like a young child with his underpants halfway down his
legs.
Timothy could not help looking at
the young secretary to see if she had observed his shaming. To his utter
dismay, he saw that she was examining his genitals without any show of sympathy
for his embarrassment. He turned his head away in absolute anguish, acutely aware
that his penis was beginning to erect. He fought hard against the almost
overwhelming desire to clasp his hands over his genitals.
Try as he might, he could not
help himself from looking in utter anguish toward the nurse who had moved to
the side and was clinically observing his naked form.
"Let's have these off shall
we Timothy." Hazel stood up and moved around him looking down at his bared
genitals. She was delighted to see that his penis although not yet erect, was
already tumescent and twitching as it became engorged. Instead of removing his
pants immediately, she put her hand under his chin and raised his head and
looked into his eyes.
"Now you have been a good
little boy so far, so try not to spoil your copybook. I want you to obey the
nurse and do as you are told quickly and without a fuss. Will you promise to do
that for me Timothy?"
He blushed as he looked at her
beautiful face. The humiliation of being bared to Hazel and the two girls was
almost too much to bear. He trembled and blushed to a bright crimson. He
shuddered visibly as Hazel knelt down in front of him, her hair brushing
against his penis as she slipped the garment down to his ankles and lifted his
feet one by one, completely removing his underpants.
The clinical nurse moved to stand
in front of him, as Hazel placed his underpants on the shelves behind him. She
looked up at him, her pretty face searching his as she reached forward and
cupped her hand beneath his testicles.
Gently she lifted the scrotum,
her fingers carefully rolling the swollen testes within the tightened sac. She
looked at him as if she were daring him to comment, her fingers almost playing
with the very core of his emotions.
After a moment, she gently
removed her hand from his testicles. It had seemed like an eternity to Timothy
as her soft fingers had held him so intimately. Cynthia had been careful not to
touch his penis, preferring to see what sort of erection his errant member was
capable of without any further external stimulation.
Timothy did not see Susie, the
young secretary, press the buzzer on her desk to call for the nurses. He nearly
jumped out of his skin as the double doors slid open silently revealing Tina
and Penny dressed in crisp white tunics.
Tina was pushing a very modern
I.V. stand from which hung a large clear plastic bag and a large reel of
transparent plastic tubing. The bag was bulging and was obviously filled to the
brim. The liquid glistened as Tina wheeled the trolley under the strong
overhead lighting. Behind her Penny carried a tray with a very large single
syringe upon it.
Hazel smiled a greeting to the
two young nurses as they paraded through the room towards the examination
couch.
Before Timothy could react the
clinical assistant had moved forward and put her arm around his waist.
"Come along Timothy, we had better get you prepped."
Without further explanation she
ushered him to the low examination couch. "Come along now, sit up on the
end ... you can take your hands down now... there that's the way."
The next few minutes were a blur
of utter humiliation and embarrassment as the girl made him sit on the very
edge of the end of the couch with his legs hanging down. Without warning she
placed her hand on his chest and made him lie back. Before he could protest she
had taken his arms and placed them so that they were laid out above his head.
He blushed as she took one of his
legs and quickly and expertly raised it high and wide until she was able to
place it in one of the stirrups. She moved around the couch to the other side
and took his other leg. "Relax sweetie, let your leg go slack... there
that's the way." Timothy groaned as she raised his other leg... seemingly
stretching it to an almost impossible position as she placed it in the other
stirrup.
He could not believe how
humiliating his position was as he looked down to see that his bottom was well
raised from the surface of the bed and his legs stretched so widely apart that
his bottom as well as his genitals were rudely exposed for all to see. He felt
even more ashamed as the hiss of pneumatic air raised the bed so that his body
was placed at an angle that was just a little below the girl's shoulder height.
There could not have been a worse
moment for Timothy to look across the room as the door opened and the first
receptionist, Lisa, appeared carrying a silver tray upon which had been placed
a tall glass of orange juice and three modern steel containers. He groaned in
an involuntary expulsion of utter dismay as the girl approached him and stood
by his side. She placed the tray on top of the trolley and touched her fingers
to his burning cheek as she looked at him through her round wire framed
spectacles.
Even if her words been composed
by a psychologist; they could not have been better chosen to inflict the maximum
amount of embarrassment upon the prostrated boy.
"Oh dear Timothy, you are
all bare with your legs spread wide open... I don't think you are going to be
very comfortable drinking your orange juice in that position." She trailed
her fingers down from his cheek and over his chest, cheekily tracing a circle
with her forefinger around his navel.
She leaned forward so that her
face was only inches from his. "Never mind sweetheart you can probably
drink it after the nurse has inserted the nozzle up into your little bottom.
She stood up and addressed Hazel. "Shall I make your cup for you? How
would you like it... perhaps milk and one spoon of sugar?"
Hazel nodded towards the pretty
young girl. "Yes that would be perfect, thank you!"
The girl looked intently at the
boy's bared genitals, casually placing her hand on his hip as she spoke to
Hazel. She was well aware that the boy was looking at her nervously as her
fingers moved dangerously close to the tip of his penis.
"He is very well developed
for such a young boy. I can see that his testicles are really enlarged. Quite
an unusual condition isn't it! Never mind I am sure that the doctor will sort
him out." She took her hand from the boy and picked up the tray, looking
down at him as she prepared to leave.
"Never mind sweetie, I am
sure that we will soon have your little penis milked and your testicles
emptied. So just lie back and relax and let yourself be taken care of."
Timothy almost grunted with
relief as her hand left the sensitive area of his body. He watched her in acute
embarrassment as she went to the other side of the room and placed the tray on
one of the desks.
Hazel watched Cynthia as she
stood between the boys's widely spread legs and gently smoothed her hands over
the inner flesh of his bottom crease. She could see the sphincter muscle recoil
as the petite young nurse grazed her fingertips over the puckered flesh.
"His bottom is a little
tight, nothing unusual about that in a young boy though." She placed her
hands firmly on either cheek and stretched the flesh until the sphincter
opened. Timothy grunted and groaned, almost in fear of what was to come.
"Oooohhhh hooo huh...
hoo"
Hazel watched in fascination at
the efficient way that the slender young girl had handled Timothy. She gazed at
his young body, delighted at the view of him as he lay on the couch, stretched
wide and open for whatever humiliation was to come.
Cynthia Jenkins took the syringe
as Penny held out the tray.
"Look Hazel, I want to show
you this." Cynthia moved towards Hazel and held the syringe up to her
view.
The transparent blue plastic of
the barrel was eight inches long and two inches in diameter. It was fully
filled with a clear gel, leaving the stem and the ring handle of the plunger
fully expanded.
What interested Hazel the most
was the nozzle; which was made up of a slender rigid tube, six inches long. The
tip widened to an unusually large egg shaped sphere. The sphere had indented
sculptured holes all around the perimeter with one large hole at the very tip.
"You can see that when I
depress the plunger...." She pressed the oval handle gently...
"Lubricating gel is not only expelled from the tip but it also oozes out
of the holes at the side... it makes anal lubrication so much easier."
Hazel watched the gel ooze out
from all of the holes with a larger amount seeping from the tip. Not only was
Hazel impressed by the syringe but also by the nonchalant way that the young
clinical assistant described so casually, what would be an embarrassing and humiliating
experience for the young boy.
Cynthia took the syringe over
towards Timothy, beckoning Hazel to observe her actions. Hazel noted that Penny
was leaning over the opposite end of the couch and holding Timothy's hands,
while Tina stood at his side with both the palms of her hands gently resting on
his chest.
Nonchalantly Cynthia cupped her
hand underneath his testicles and lifted them, almost weighing them in the palm
of her hand. Seemingly satisfied she casually flipped his plump penis sideways with
the tips of her fingers and patted it so that it lay on the lower part of his
stomach with the tip pointing upwards towards his navel.
"Take a nice deep breath
sweetie." She said nonchalantly as she placed the syringe between the
widely spread cheeks of his bottom, pressing the nozzle firmly against his
sphincter.
"Ooohhhh... hooo"
Timothy shuddered as the cold syringe touched the incredibly sensitive flesh of
the entrance to his anus.
Hazel was fascinated as Cynthia
depressed the plunger until the outer flesh of his sphincter was well smeared
with grease. Without further warning to the young boy, she pushed the barrel of
the syringe firmly, stretching the opening until the egg shaped nozzle slipped
upwards and disappeared completely into his bottom.
"Ooohhhh... arggghhhh
oooohhhhhh oooooooooooooooohhhhhhhhh."
Timothy groaned as he was quickly
impaled by the device. He gasped again as Cynthia quite casually depressed the
plunger fully. She seemed almost detached as the boy tried to rear up from the
sensation of the cool gel filling his anus.
"There we are... that wasn't
so bad was it." Her movements were so quick and practised that Hazel only
just managed to observe the procedure as Cynthia pulled the empty syringe from
his bottom and took a large phallic shaped enema nozzle from the trolley at the
side of the couch. The shape of the enema nozzle looked almost like a replica
of a torpedo, but had a narrower section just before the base which was
contoured to fit against the exterior of the sphincter. On the back of the
flange was a metal tube, which was stepped in different widths so that a tube
could be pushed on to it.
Hazel watched as Penny suddenly
gripped Timothy's hands tightly and Tina pressed down on his chest. Cynthia,
without warning the boy, centred the slender tip and pushed the device through
the opening of his bottom. Hazel could not believe how widely the sphincter was
stretched as the whole device was thrust upward into his bottom, until the
sphincter found relief by closing over the narrowed section, sucking the flange
tightly against his violated opening.
"Ummmpppphhhhh...
arggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh." Timothy groaned and moaned in anguish
and torment. He tried to rear up but was held gently but firmly by the two
nurses.
"Ooooohhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh... hooo
hooo." He shook his head from side to side as he tried to accommodate the
intense sensation of being penetrated so deeply. The pressure inside him was
all consuming; he could feel his penis throbbing as the nozzle pressed firmly
against his prostate. He turned his head to the side in shame and anguish as he
saw the tip of his penis lift up and began to bounce up and down of its own
volition, slapping against his stomach.
Cynthia did not seem at all
perturbed by the boy's trauma. She merely patted him on the quivering cheeks of
his bottom. "Now Timothy, try not to make a fuss, I am just going to
inject some liquid into you. Be a brave boy and keep still, Tina will rub your
tummy as the water goes inside you."
She turned her head towards
Hazel. "Little boys always seem to erect fully when they have their
bottoms penetrated. Casually she reached forward and held the rigid flesh of
his penis between finger and thumb, drawing the foreskin back until the head
was fully exposed." Yes the flesh is pulsing quite dramatically, for such
a little boy."
Hazel knew that the almost
scathing words from the nurse were for Timothy's benefit, rather than her own.
She looked at his face to see him flushing a bright red, his abject expression,
a picture of shame and humiliation.
As Hazel turned to watch she
noticed that Susie was standing by her side, she was even more surprised as she
felt Susie's petite hand slip under her jacket and slide around her waist,
squeezing her tightly. She could feel the hardened nipples of the girl's small
breasts press against her arm as Susie stood on tiptoe and whispered intimately
into her ear.
"Isn't he a darling boy...
just a sumptuously perfect body... don't you think? I just love to see them squirm
when their little bottoms are penetrated, don't you?"
Hazel could not help smiling as
the girl slid her hand back from under her jacket, impudently smoothing her
hand over Hazel's bottom cheeks as both girls turned their attention back to
Cynthia.
They watched as she attached the
tube to the enema nozzle that was protruding from between the quivering cheeks
of the boy's bottom. The movement of the large nozzle made him groan as Cynthia
nonchalantly pushed the tube firmly over the stepped metal attachment.
"Ooooohhhhh arggghhhh."
He tried to move his body, only to have the naive gyrations of his body stifled
by the two young nurses.
"Relax sweetie, it will all
be over soon." Cynthia said brightly as she turned the tap that was
attached to the centre of the coil of tubing, watching clinically as the liquid
rushed down the transparent plastic piping on it's way into his bottom.
Lisa, who had finished making
coffee approached the examination couch and stood at the opposite side to Tina.
Gently she placed her hand on the boy's cheek and made him look at her as the
water suddenly entered his bottom.
He opened his mouth wide and
groaned as the water gushed into him. "Argggggggggghhhhhhhhhh...
ooohhhhh... hoooooOOOO"
He tried to turn his head but Lisa
held his cheek, watching his anguished expression as inexorably the water
filled his stomach. Nonchalantly she stroked her hand over his tummy, her
fingertips deliberately brushing against the head of his penis as she moved her
hand in a circular motion.
Hazel realised that all three
sisters were relishing the turmoil of the young boy, and yet their outward
appearance was that of clinical detachment.
Cynthia tuned to Hazel and
explained the procedure. "He won't need a rinsing enema as the nozzle churns
the water up with the pressure form the bag being raised so high. I will make
him retain it for about ten minutes, so now would be a good time to get your
coffee. Cynthia completely ignored the boy's moans of anguish as the water
jetted into his insides, making him squirm against the firm hold of Penny and
Tina.
Hazel could not resist moving
between the boy's legs as Cynthia moved away. She leaned forward and made sure
that she had his attention.
"Now Timothy, keep still and
stop making so much fuss, otherwise I shall take you over my knee and smack you
until the cheeks of your little bottom are bright red... and I shall do it in
full view of everyone. Now tell me... are you going to be good and take your
medicine like a brave little boy?"
Hazel could not remember ever
having seen him as embarrassed as he was now. His face was almost purple as he
stammered a reply.
"Oh... pleeeeease misss,
noooo, er... I will be good I promise."
"Well I hope so
Timothy." Hazel stood back and looked at him; his legs stretched wide
apart and his erect penis bobbing up and down as he was held immobile by Tina
and Penny. Lisa nonchalantly circled his tummy, her dainty fingers brushing the
tip of his penis occasionally as if it was of no consequence. Hazel heard her whisper
to the boy as she moved away to get her coffee. "There we are just over
half still to go... and then you can have your orange juice... now won't that
be nice."
Timothy's groans were much louder
than Lisa's voice as the water continued gushing into him.
"Ooohhh ahhhh argghhh
Hoooo... ooooooooooooooooooohhhhhhhhh."
It was over twenty minutes later
that Timothy had been led by Tina and Penny, through the double sliding doors
that partitioned the wet area. He had been unceremoniously sat upon the toilet,
while Penny had reached between his legs and nonchalantly pulled the large
enema nozzle from his bottom. He had almost stood upright with the acute
sensation, but was immediately held down firmly upon the seat by Tina, who knew
exactly what his reaction would be. He had had to sit there shamefaced, looking
up at the two nurses as they watched him expel the large volume of water.
He was made to feel like a young
child as Tina reached between his legs and wiped his bottom with a tissue,
before making him stand, so that she could examine the contents of the bowl.
Timothy could not help looking
around the spotlessly clean room which was very large, containing the very best
of bath and toilet facilities. There were two large square tubs set in the
floor, each extending to two feet high. The white square sculptured porcelain
was obviously designed for the patient to be standing. There were stainless
steel rails overhead with which a patient could steady him or herself. Above
this, high into the ceiling was set a modern hoist which could harness a
patient to alleviate their body weight.
The baths were unique in that the
water was heated or cooled beneath the main floor of the bath. This meant that
patient's baths would always remain at the same temperature and at the same
level of water, no matter how long the patient remained in the bath.
Several flexible chromium plated
hoses were attached to panels at the side of the baths. Each hose had a
different attachment at its extremity. Some of the attachments looked quite
ominous, with bullet shaped heads and long stems with bulbous nozzles. The room
was extremely well lit, making the metal and porcelain apparatus shine
brightly.
There was a rail at the side of
the bath upon which were hung an assortment of paddle shaped sandalwood brushes
and pumice stone surfaced defoliators. The backs of the paddle shaped
implements were unpolished, giving them an organic and natural look.
Timothy shuddered as Tina and
Penny stood at either side of him and led him to the first of the two baths. He
could see that the bath had already been half-filled with water. He could not
believe how humiliated he felt as the girls handled him as if he were a small
child rather than a teenager.
When Hazel had finished her coffee
and picked up her handbag from the desk, she walked through to see that Timothy
had been made to stand upright in one of the square baths. His feet were
immersed in about ten inches of water, his arms stretched above his head as he
held one of the support rails above him.
His face was a picture of utter
humiliation as he stood naked, his tumescent penis hanging down over his plump
scrotum. His feet were placed well apart allowing easy access to his bottom and
genitals. Hazel knew that he would never have positioned himself in such a
revealing stance and presumed rightly, that he had been made to stand in that
position by Penny and Tina.
It was Susie who walked in behind
Hazel and whispered to her. "Just come with me Hazel." The girl led
Hazel through an open side door and quickly closed the door behind them. The
room was a dressing room; again the clinic seemed to have every facility as
Hazel noted the comfortable chairs and wall length mirrored dressing table
which was divided into several stations. Each station had its own sink, makeup
draws and lighted magnifying mirror. The mirror extended so that it could be
used at almost any angle. On the opposite wall were a series of glass fronted
wardrobes containing whole rails of clinical coats, aprons and assorted
uniforms. The rest of the room was completely mirrored from floor to ceiling.
Susie turned to Hazel, her face
bright with an amused expression as she placed her hand upon the lapel of
Hazel's suit jacket. "Slip your jacket off sweetheart... and I will get
you an apron to wear."
"Why do you want me to wear
an apron, do you intend for me to bathe Timothy? I thought that Penny and Tina
would be taking care of him."
Susie looked at Hazel seriously.
The perfection of her features again making Hazel wonder about the three
sisters. She looked closely at the young secretary, again admiring the
absolutely perfect symmetry of her petite face and body. Although the girl was
small and dainty, Hazel noted that she did not wear high heels. Hazel realised
that the girl took pleasure in being small, accenting the fact by wearing flat
soled rope sandals, the soft binding criss-crossing her beautifully lightly
tanned legs, almost to the knee.
It must be utterly humiliating
Hazel thought for such a young girl of diminutive proportions to have complete
charge of a male patient. Hazel stood and waited for the girl to reply to her
question.
Susie stood, with her legs
astride, pondering for a moment as if to reflect on what she was to say next.
At last she spoke, deciding perhaps that she could entrust Hazel with the
information.
"I want to watch you bathe
the boy. It is as simple as that I want to see you wash his penis and
testicles... and spread his buttocks... and pop your finger up into his
delicious little bottom. It is as simple as that... I want to watch you handle
him... intimately."
"But you could bathe him
yourself, if you would like to." Hazel said as she looked at her, studying
her face... seeing the almost mischievous expression in her eyes as she looked
up at her through the large wire framed glasses.
"No it's not the same; I
want to watch you do it." The girl looked at her earnestly. "If you
had good reason to take his bare little bottom over your knee and smack his
beautiful cheeks... I think that I would cum right there and then."
Hazel raised her eyebrows at the
girl's revelation but did not disappoint her. She understood that the girl knew
her own sexual predilection, just as well as hazel knew hers.
She slipped off her jacket, to
have it quickly taken by Susie who was ready with a proper yolk shaped wooden
hanger. Susie looked at her, quite openly examining her firm breasts, which
filled the silk of her blouse. Without warning the young girl placed her hand
intimately over Hazel's right breast, her fingers immediately toying with the
mound of her nipple.
"You have scrumptious
breasts... do you want to keep your bra on? I love to use one of the
wrap-around aprons when I bathe young boys, so that I can be naked beneath. You
can't see through them, but they are so thin that you can feel the boy's skin
against your nipples when you rub against his body... its delicious."
Hazel could not help showing her
surprise at the openness of the young girl. Susie was without doubt completely
and freely open about her sexuality. Hazel was so taken aback that it was
moments before she realised that the girl had released one of the buttons of
her blouse. She felt the young secretary's slender fingers slip inside and
quickly find her nipple beneath the low bra she was wearing.
Hazel looked at her... and bent
her head low, suddenly kissing the young girl on the lips. She let her kiss
linger for a moment before she laughingly chided the young secretary.
"Alright... alright Susie... leave me and let me get changed."
Hazel laughed as she extricated
the girl's hand and began to unbutton her own blouse. She was aware of the
girl's prurient interest as she stripped off her blouse and then her bra. She
handed the garments to the waiting girl as she unbuttoned her skirt and stood
in just her panties, her tanned bared legs needing no stockings or panty-hose.
Susie looked at Hazel's breasts
with good natured envy, admiring the firm plump flesh and the sexy way that the
nipples tilted upwards impudently.
Hazel was at the same time
admiring the body of the young secretary. She realised that her waist narrowed
to an almost impossible slenderness, her stomach flattening to beautifully
shaped hips. As Hazel looked at her she could see that the girl was blatantly
looking down at her panties.
Susie sighed in awe of Hazel's
magnificent body, Her breath drawing in deeply through her exquisite lips as
she continued her examination of Hazel's almost naked body.
Hazel's panties were so sheer and
tapered that the plump shaven mound of her pubis was visible at either side of
the garment. Susie looked at her admiringly.
"You are really beautiful
Hazel... I mean really beautiful." Hazel thought for a moment that Susie
was going to touch her again, but was surprised when the girl turned to the
cupboards and extracted a white cotton tunic.
Even before she had handled the
garment, Hazel could see that the cotton was so fine that you could almost see
through it. As she tried it for size, she realised, rather too late, that she could
actually see the pink of her flesh through the material as it pressed against
her body. The tunic fitted perfectly and Hazel fastened the belt taught around
her waist. She could see from the mirrored wall that it accented her figure to
perfection.
She took the transparent apron
from Susie's proffered hand and slipped it over her head and tied the long cord
twice around her waist.
"Well Susie, do I pass
muster?"
The look on Susie's face told
Hazel all she needed to know. "He will die of shame when he sees you
dressed like that. Imagine... if you were a young boy standing naked, with your
legs spread apart... and you saw this..." She turned Hazel towards the
mirror, so that she could clearly see the beautiful and formidable apparition
she made in the glass. "Just look at that image...knowing that she was
coming to bathe you...imagine the shame! It will be unbearable for him"
Susie pressed her hand to the
juncture of her thighs and shivered, completely oblivious to Hazel's raised
eyebrows at her display of open sexuality.
"Do me one more favour...
Don't come out for a moment. I want to watch his face when he sees you, dressed
like that for the first time; you only need to give me a couple of minutes.
First I think I will just add a little spice of my own."
Hazel watched as the girl undid
the top two buttons of her sheer silk blouse and turned her body in front of
her...first to one side and then to the other. Hazel could see both the firm
contour of each breast in turn, but could also see glimpses of the darkened
erect flesh of her nipples. She reached forward and slipped her hand beneath
the flap, smoothing her palm over the young girl's right breast. She pressed
gently, feeling the firm resilience of the perfectly formed mount, before
exploring the hardened nub of the nipple as she ran her fingers lightly over
it.
Susie looked at her, the
innocence of her expression belying the deep and devious sexuality beneath.
Hazel withdrew her hand as a shiver ran through the young secretary's body,
making her quiver from head to toe.
"He'll die of shame."
She turned and opening the door, passing through it before shutting it firmly
behind her.
His feet still spread widely
apart in the warm water of the bath. He clung with both hands to the bar above
his head as his body trembled and shook in utter embarrassment each time that
the nurses or receptionist entered the room. Seemingly he had been all but
ignored for the last ten minutes, as the young nurses busied themselves with
their work. Cynthia as well as Lisa had walked into the room several times,
carrying instruments or other paraphernalia. Had Timothy known that the
preparation that the nurses were carrying out was entirely for his benefit, he
might have been even more concerned and embarrassed as he was at the present
time.
His penis although not erect had
been cleverly kept engorged by the subtle actions of the young nurses. Tina had
been the first to see that his penis was perhaps wilting under the long period
without attention. She had stood in front of him and admonished him as if it
was the first time that she had noticed that his penis was somewhat engorged.
"Really Timothy, what on
earth is the matter with you young boys. I would have thought that you would
have had far more control over your emotions than this!" Nonchalantly she
had taken hold of his penis, and deftly retracted the foreskin until he was
fully exposed... his face a bright red testimony to the shame he felt.
"I hope we are not going to
have any juvenile nonsense from you today. Have you been playing with your
penis... come along answer me! She had pulled the foreskin forward and then
pushed it back down the shaft, stretching the skin so tightly, that Timothy
felt utterly exposed and humiliated. Her hands continued the action as her
words further inflamed his utter humiliation. She cupped his testicles and
while still holding his penis looked into his eyes.
"You are a naughty little
boy, touching your own penis! What a naughty little boy you are. I have a good
mind to smack this little bottom of yours." With those words she had
reached between his legs and tapped her hand against the cheeks of his bottom.
The handling of his genitals had
had the desired effect... and as Tina let him go, she smiled to herself as she
observed his penis standing rigidly outwards from between his legs. The flesh
throbbed of its own volition as she stood looking into his eyes; she tapped it
several times, chiding and belittling him.
"If Hazel sees you playing
with yourself, she will have no hesitation in taking you across her knees and
spanking your bared bottom until your little cheeks are bright red."
Each girl had in turn made sure
that his embarrassment and sexual stimulation continued unabated. As the girls
entered the room each had acknowledged him as if he were a young child. Their
words and actions cleverly designed to keep him on edge. It seemed a like a
nightmare and he could not help himself shivering visibly as he fully realised
his position. The very thought that the girls could look at him as they wished,
while he had to stand there naked and open to their inspection made his stomach
shiver.
His shame and humiliation had
known no bounds when Lisa had entered and looked straight at his penis and
testicles. "I would have thought your penis would have subsided by now...
what on earth can you be thinking about for it to be so stiff and pointy."
The young receptionist had walked straight up to him and looked at him quite
directly, as she reached forward with her hand. He had looked at her
helplessly, almost pleadingly, only to feel her soft cool fingers envelope his
flesh as she nonchalantly took a firm hold of his penis before weighing it in
the palm of her dainty hand and tapping the underneath. She watched his
embarrassment as she let him go, seeing that his penis had erected fully again.
She smiled at him, almost mischievously before she turned and walked through to
the other room.
It seemed utterly embarrassing to
Timothy that a young girl, who was smaller and certainly did not seem much
older than himself, could handle his naked body as she saw fit.
He stood in shame and silence;
his arms outstretched and his hands gripping the rail above him. Occasionally
he looked down, only to see to his utter dismay that his penis was still
engorged. He was in such a state that he nearly jumped out of his skin when
Susie exited the dressing room and walked towards him.
Susie thrilled as she saw the
young boy standing in utter embarrassment with his arms stretched out above his
head and his legs spread widely apart. She would have loved to have embarrassed
him further by physically touching him; instead she reserved herself the
greater pleasure.
"Right young man, you are
going to be bathed and then taken through to see the doctor. Hazel will be
coming to bathe you, so you know what is in store for you, should you
misbehave. Don't you?"
Timothy looked at the young girl,
his face a bright red manifestation of utter embarrassment. His bottom lip
trembled as he looked at her, acutely aware of his own humiliating nakedness.
"Well Timothy... tell me
what will hazel do to you, should you decide to be a naughty little boy and
misbehave!"
Timothy shivered, his body
quivering visibly as he looked at the girl in utter shame.
"Er she will smack me
miss."
"No Timothy, tell me exactly
what she will do." Susie was delighted with her line of questioning and
the utter embarrassment of the boy as she chided him.
"Oh er... pleeeease misss.
Er... erm... she will take me over her knee and smack... erm my bottom."
The answer thrilled Susie... who
had not quite finished with her embarrassment of the young boy.
"Yes Timothy, she will take
your bared little bottom over her knee... and smack you until your cheeks are
bright red. You know that, don't you Timothy?"
The boy quaked with embarrassment
as the girl looked him straight in the eyes. He felt so humiliated as he looked
back at her. Her authoritative demeanour was enhanced by her demure perfectly
made-up face and petite body which was beautifully dressed in blue silk blouse
and matching skirt. Had he met her in normal circumstances, he would have been
totally embarrassed and made awkward by her loveliness. But now... the contrast
between his abject nakedness and her perfectly groomed appearance, made him
feel so utterly foolish and humiliated that he could hardly bear the shame.
The girl watched his face closely
as she heard the door to the dressing room open. She could see the startled,
almost fearful look upon his face, as he stared across the room at Hazel.
Susie would have loved to have
turned towards Hazel to watch her, but did not want to miss any part of the
thrill observing the young boys trepidation. Susie felt Hazel almost brush past
her as she purposefully approached the naked boy.
Susie was absolutely enthralled
as she watched Hazel look up at him. She noticed his penis suddenly throb
involuntarily. She knew that his acute stimulation was the result of the boy
being in such close proximity to such a beautiful girl. His throbbing penis did
not go unnoticed by Hazel either. Rather than take hold of the errant member,
she casually placed her hand on his hip, ignoring his penis which was bobbing
upward, before dropping back and then repeating the movement.
She could see from his face that
he was utterly embarrassed and confused by his reluctant sexual stimulation.
She patted his hip and looked into his eyes, seeing the look of dread upon his
face as he stood shivering in front of her.
He really is beautiful, she
thought as he stood trembling before her. Hazel could imagine the trauma the
boy would feel if the three young sisters ever had him to themselves. She
seriously wondered whether his young senses could stand such an onslaught. Her
voice was bright and crisp, with a friendly tone to it as she stood looking at
his naked body.
Timothy looked at Hazel, his
feelings were of utter embarrassment at being naked in her presence and the
tight knot of fear in his stomach as he realised that he was to have to stand
helplessly while he was intimately handled by her.
He shivered as he looked into her
freshly made up face and listened to her. "Right I want no nonsense now.
She moved around the bath to stand behind him, deliberately leaving his naked
body facing Susie.
He could hear her hands in the
water behind him... suffering the trauma of not knowing how or where she would
first touch him. He shivered at the first gentle contact of her hands as she
placed them on each side of his torso, just underneath his armpits.
Slowly and sensuously her hands
moved over his back and around the nape of his neck, her fingers, deftly and
skilfully arousing him as she washed his upper body. He felt the coolness of
her apron press against his back, the softness of her breasts, leaving no doubt
to the fact that she was naked beneath her uniform. He looked up to ceiling in
embarrassment as he involuntarily caught the eye of the demure young secretary
standing in front of him. She deliberately looked down at his penis and then up
to his face, a knowing look in her eyes.
The humiliating bath continued,
Hazel casually touching his body as she saw fit, her hands seemingly
everywhere. He sensed that she had deliberately avoided his genitals and
wondered in hope against hope that she might spare him the indignity of having
his genitals washed while the young secretary was watching him. He could not
believe the utter embarrassment he was feeling; it seemed almost inconceivable
that he should have a young girl nonchalantly watch him while he was naked and
being subjected to being bathed like a child. Even more demeaning for him was
that her expression was aloof and judgmental, as if his feelings were of no
consequence.
Shamefully he stood shivering,
suddenly aware of movement and shadows against the semi-opaque glass of the
double doors. He looked to the ceiling breathing out in utter exasperation as
he heard the clear and recognizable voice of the pretty receptionist who had
first greeted them downstairs in the foyer of the business centre. He could see
the shadows sharpen into discernable silhouettes as they approached the double
doors from the other side.
He heard the hiss of the motor as
the doors prepared to open. In utter panic he let go of the rail and clasped
both his hands to his genitals, pulling his throbbing penis to his body as he
hid himself in utter shame.
The doors opened and Lisa
nonchalantly led Claire Jones through into the room. Lisa beckoned to Hazel as
the girls came to a halt next to the square bath where Timothy stood cowering
in utter shame at his nakedness.
Hazel sounded surprised and yet
of course had been hoping that the girl would not be too long in coming up.
"Oh Claire, you brought me
the train information... have you a minute or two? I have a discipline problem
to sort out with young Timothy here. Do you mind waiting a minute or so?"
Claire would have made time,
whether she had it or not, as she looked at the sight before her. The boy's
body was a picture of physical perfection. Even though his face was bright red
and he was crouched down covering his genitals, Claire instantly recognised the
exquisite proportions of his body. Wild horses would not have dragged away from
enjoying the spectacle.
Claire managed to stop herself
rushing her reply. Instead she hid her enthusiasm beneath the superior and
haughty demeanour that served her so well. "Please don't worry Hazel; I
have an hour and a half break for lunch... and today I am without a luncheon
appointment... so I have plenty of time."
Claire certainly did not want
Hazel to hurry in any way. She stood next to Lisa and folded her arms as she
looked admiringly at Timothy, shivering and cowering in utter embarrassment.
Her haughty voice brought further blushes from the boy as she addressed him.
"My, my Timothy, have you been
a naughty little boy already. What on earth could have you been doing?"
Timothy was so embarrassed that
he could not reply. Instead he was made to gasp out loud as suddenly Hazel
smacked him hard on his buttocks. His cheeks were in an excellent position for
Hazel's hand to extract the maximum effect as he crouched low, clasping his
hands to his genitals in shame.
"Ooohhhh er please
miss." He gasped as a second smack landed firmly across the cheeks of his
bottom. "I have warned you many, many times already... and now young man
it is too late. Bend over and grasp the side of the bath... come along... do it
now."
Timothy realised that to be
spanked in front of Claire as well as the young receptionist and secretary
would be mortifying. He pleaded, almost sobbing as another smack landed on his
buttocks.
"Smacccccccccckkkk."
"Oh pleeeeeeeeease mis... er
misss, I promise please don't miss, please not.. oh please... not in front of
everyone, oh please miss no!"
Hazel moved to the front and took
his wrists gently in-between the finger and thumb of each hand. She exerted no
pressure, merely absolute authority as the boy looked at her, his face wreathed
in an expression of anguish and guilt.
In absolute silent and utterly
consuming embarrassment, he let himself be uncovered, biting his lip as he
looked down at his shaming erection. Somehow the thought of Claire seeing him
naked, a girl that he had met in quite normal circumstances, seemed to heighten
his feeling of absolute and total humiliation.
Reluctantly and with an
unremitting feeling of absolute dread, Timothy let Hazel bend him over so that
his hands were resting on the side of the bath. The dreadful realisation at
being bent over while the girls watched him made him feel faint. He looked at
his hands on the white porcelain. In his peripheral vision he could see that
the girls had moved forward to witness his chastisement. He was also acutely
aware that Hazel had moved to stand behind him. He shivered in one huge
emotional manifestation of dread as he waited in utter and abject
embarrassment.
Hazel, who was outwardly ignoring
his obvious emotional distress, took one of the paddle shaped brushes from the
rack and spoke to him, not in anger, but in a casual, almost conversational
tone.
"In retribution for your
behaviour Timothy, you are going to be given twelve strokes with the back of
one of these brushes. You will remain in your `bent-over' position until I have
finished, any failure to obey me, will result in my taking your bare bottom
over my knee and spanking you like a child... and I shall do it in full view of
everyone here. Do you understand me Timothy?
The nonchalance with which Hazel
had instructed and castigated the boy made Timothy feel all the more
embarrassed.
"Oh ... please.. miss
noooo... oh no please not that miss... oh please don't."
His pleading was cut short by the
first stroke of the soft sandalwood upon his bottom. The pain was not anywhere
as intense as the humiliation he felt, as Hazel proceeded to spank his naked
buttocks with the back of the brush. She delivered three strokes before tapping
the wooden paddle against the inside of his legs.
She could see that the girls were
all absolutely enthralled as she deliberately made him shuffle his legs until
they were spread to the extremities of the square bath.
"Keep still Timothy and take
your medicine. You are a very naughty little boy and I am going to spank your
bottom soundly."
"Oh pleeease... er
nooooooooo not... oh not in front of everyone... oh please don't please..."
"Smaccccccccccccclkkkkkk.
Samaaaaaaaaaaaccckkkk. Smacccccccckkkkkkk."
In utter shame, Timothy felt the
blood rush to his head as he looked down at his hands gripping the sides of the
bath. He felt the sting of the paddle heat up his bottom... the feel of the
sandalwood brush upon his buttocks seemed to fuel his shame, knowing that the
girls were watching him as he was soundly spanked like a young child. To his
utter shame, he saw the delicate straps of Claire's shoes move into his view
and then her bare knees as she bent down. He shivered in humiliation as she
placed one hand upon his shoulder and moved her head close to his. He felt her
other hand softly caress his cheek.
Her voice was soft but aloof as
she spoke to him. "Poor Timothy has been a naughty little boy hasn't he!
Now he has to have his naughty little bottom spanked... well I am sure that you
only have yourself to blame. You are very lucky to have Hazel to show you the
error of your ways."
Her hand stroked his cheek as the
paddle descended firmly against the cheeks of his bottom.
"Smaccccccccccccclkkkkkk.
Samaaaaaaaaaaaccckkkk. Smacccccccckkkkkkk."
Timothy felt tears of shame fill
his eyes as Claire spoke to him again. He had never envisaged the absolute
degradation that he felt at this moment. On Claire's part, she had never known
such an absolute and consuming sexual thrill as she touched and chided him,
while his bared bottom was being spanked.
"Are you going to be a good
little boy when Hazel has finished smacking your bottom... mmmm, are you?"
Timothy's shame knew no bounds as
Claire spoke softly and gently to him, one hand gently stroking his cheek and
the other delicately tracing cool fingers over his shoulders.
Hazel was in no doubt as to the
rare treat that Claire was enjoying at the boy's expense. Rather than hurry,
she leisurely slipped her free hand between his buttocks and pulled the flesh
apart as if it would provide extra flesh to punish. She could see that Claire
had a perfect view of his penis and testicles and was constantly looking up
between his widely spread legs as she knelt beside the boy.
The back of the wooden brush
continued to smack against the cheeks of his bottom. Time and time again the
wooden paddle spanked his flesh until a full dozen strokes had been delivered
to his quivering buttocks.
"Pleeease miss... nooo
please I am soo sorry please miss no more, not in front of everyone... oh
please...."
He felt Claire pat his burning
cheek and watched as she stood up. He could see her beautiful ankles and calves
as she remained standing close to the bath.
Hazel knew that this had been
more a lesson in shame than in physical pain. Even so, she saw that the cheeks
of his bottom were quite red as she instructed him.
"Right young man, keep your
legs exactly where they are and stand up and hold the rail above your
head."
"Smackkkkk." The brush
slapped smartly against his bottom as she punctuated her instructions.
It was in complete silence and
utter humility that Timothy stood upright. He could not help looking at the
girls as they stood watching him. He felt his cheeks burn bright red as he saw
them all observe his shame with a detached air as he stretched upwards and took
hold of the bar.
"What a naughty, naughty boy
you are!" Hazel chided him as she watched him grip the bar and look up to
the ceiling in mortifying shame. He dare not look at the girls now that his
penis and testicles were shamefully bared to their view.
"Will you obey me now
Timothy?" Hazel asked him quietly, her voice losing some of the stern
edge.
The boy was almost sobbing with
shame as he answered her. "Oh yes miss, I'm so sorry miss. I promise I
will."
"Well in that case we will
hear no more about it once you have apologised to Claire and Susie and
Lisa."
Hazel waited for a moment and
then slapped him lightly across his bottom with the palm of her hand.
She watched as the boy lowered
his head to look at the three girls. His face was absolutely suffused in red as
he stammered his apology.
"I am so sorry... please...
I am very sorry."
Hazel seemed satisfied with his
humility. She could see that Susie was enjoying herself as she looked at the
demure girl, knowing that her innocently indifferent expression revealed none
of her true feelings.
She spoke to Claire. "I am sorry
for that rather embarrassing interlude. Timothy can be a very good boy really.
I will just finish off his bath if you are sure you can spare the time to
wait."
Claire looked in absolute
admiration at Hazel as she bent down to soap her hands. "Now where were we
Timothy? Have I done your little bottom yet?"
Timothy could hardly bring
himself to answer as Hazel prompted him. "Has your little smack bottom,
made you forgetful Timothy."
The boy blushed as he answered
her, shivering in embarrassment as he answered truthfully.
"Er... no miss... er no you
er haven't.
Hazel turned to Claire again as
she raised her soaped hands towards the boy's reddened buttocks.
"Little boys never seem to
wash themselves properly." Without warning she slipped her hand in-between
the cheeks of his bottom, feeling his body shiver with the sudden intimate
contact. Without preamble she rubbed her fingers against his sphincter seeing
him shiver each time her fingers made contact with the sensitive orifice. Hazel
knew that the lubrication of the soap and the widely spread stance of his legs,
would make the penetration of his bottom an easy task.
She could see that Claire was
watching her actions intently, occasionally glancing up to the boy's face to
see his reaction.
"I would imagine that a boy
is far easier to keep clean, if his genitals are shaved bare." Claire
spoke with her aloof matter of fact tone. She noted that the boy flicked his
eyes towards her and then away in shame as she examined his naked body.
Hazel smiled as she continued
soaping between the cheeks of his bottom. "Oh yes, it is far easier to
keep them clean. Of course we have shaved between the cheeks of his bottom too.
The doctor always insists on bare little boys... they are far easier to handle."
Hazel was delighted with the
interplay between herself and the young receptionist. She was determined to
make sure that Claire extracted the maximum amusement from her visit.
She did not hurry, but continued
slipping her fingers backwards and forwards between the cheeks of his bottom.
Her fingers exerting a pressure each time they slid over his sensitive
sphincter. She waited, looking around his body at the girls who had never taken
their eyes off the young boy.
With a deft and expert movement,
Hazel suddenly slipped her forefinger firmly up into his bottom.
"Argggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
The boy groaned, throwing his
head back and standing up on his tiptoes as Hazel penetrated him fully. She
looked at Claire with a faint smile, her eyes signalling to her as she curled
her forefinger inside the boy, scoring her fingertip over his sensitive
prostate.
"I am afraid Claire, that
little Timothy makes a lot of fuss when I have to penetrate his bottom. You
really will have to excuse his silly moans."
His groan and the anguished
stance upon the tips of his toes, signalled to all the watching girls, that his
bottom had been firmly and deeply impaled by her finger. Claire could not help
herself as she placed her hand on his shoulder and looked into his anguished
face. "Try and be a good boy, it would be a shame if you had to be smacked
again."
Hazel could see from the girls'
faces that the boy had erected fully, the inevitable result of such an
overwhelming sensation.
Casually Hazel placed her other
hand on his hip and then slowly and inexorably slid her fingers around to the
juncture of his thighs, grasping the base of his penis. She could not believe
how firmly the flesh had erected; the shaft pulsed and throbbed as if it would
explode between her fingers.
"Oh dear," Hazel
addressed the girls, "I am afraid little boys seem to have no control over
their penises. This young man obviously needs to be taken firmly in hand."
Timothy groaned in utter shame
and anguish as he stood helplessly as Hazel firmly held his penis up to the
view of the girls. They all watched in rapt attention as Hazel handled the boy
with a dexterous familiarity, her absolute authority and beauty, robbing the
boy of any semblance of self esteem.
Lisa moved to stand behind Susie.
Out of view, she slipped her hand under the hem of Susie's skirt and lifted it,
before sliding her fingers between the cheeks of her bottom. She was not
surprised that Susie was naked beneath the dress apart from a slender leather
strap. Sensuously she slipped her fingers further forward until she was able to
part the plump lips of her labia, feeling the smooth shape of one of the two
differently sized ivory eggs within. She moved her fingers gently over the
deliciously smooth mound of her sex for a moment before withdrawing her hand,
knowing instantly that Susie had already climaxed. She gently stroked her bared
bottom before letting down the hem of her dress.
Lisa was not surprised at Susie,
she had seen it before, where Susie had used the eggs, standing demurely and
appearing quite nonchalant and disinterested as she had climaxed without
betraying any emotion other than a far-away expression in her eyes. It was an
unusual gift and Lisa often wondered just how often her sister had used it.
Hazel knew that if she were to
stimulate the boy's prostate anymore, that he would ejaculate. Delicately she
extricated her fingers from his bottom and moved to stand at his side.
"I am just going to wash his
genitals Claire and then we can have a coffee together if you would like."
Claire watched in admiration and envy as Hazel took a firm hold of the boy's
penis and without preamble slipped the foreskin backwards, drawing the skin
tight as she held it at the base. With her other hand she soaped over the
sensitive rim of the glans, causing the boy to throw his head back and shiver
as she extracted an immediate and violent sexual response.
Claire could not resist reaching
forward and placing her hand against his chest, her hand cupping over his left
nipple as she looked up at his face. She caught his eye and was rewarded with
an immediate furious flood of colour to his cheeks.
"I am having to be
particularly careful with his penis Claire, as he has not had any semen
extracted today. The doctor wants to see the exact amount he is producing when
she takes a sample from him. Of course after that we will be milking him
several more times... and of course most thoroughly, before we return
home."
She handled him as much as she
dare, knowing that on several occasions he was almost at the point of
ejaculating. With care and consideration, she washed his testicles, lifting and
caressing the swollen orbs as they moved inside the tightened sac.
Timothy stood helplessly and
ashamed as Hazel exposed every inch of his most private parts to the view of
the girls. Their outward expressions were almost nonchalant and disinterested
as they looked on at Hazel's expert manipulation of the young boy's genitals.
Finally Hazel bent down on one
knee and took the torpedo shaped nozzle in her hand. She pressed the button
pointing the tip down into the water to see the effect of the device. A strong
gush of water emerged, but rather than in a steady stream, it pulsed with
staccato jets of water. She released the button and stood upright. Deftly she
pushed the device firmly between the cheeks of his bottom and immediately
pressed the trigger, allowing the boy no time to prepare himself for the
intense sensation as the water jetted mercilessly against his sphincter.
"Ooooohhhh argggghhh
hooo." He cried, standing on tiptoe at the sudden sensation.
"Do keep still,
Timothy." Hazel's voice was calm and casually, contrasting to the strong
jets of water that seemed to stimulate the whole of his body.
She moved to his side, keeping
his naked body in full view of Claire and the girls as she nonchalantly took
hold of his penis and withdrew his foreskin before aiming the nozzle at the his
erect member. She watched him quiver with anguish as she pressed the button and
played the gushing jets of water over his penis, holding him firmly as he tried
to evade the acute sensation.
She held the nozzle further back
as she applied it again, this time to his testicles, coolly observing his
anguished expression as she casually rinsed his genitals.
She switched off the water and
replaced the water jet in its holder. Taking a towel from the rack where the
paddle shaped brushes were hung, she held it as she spoke to Claire. "Now
he is free of soap, you can feel how swollen his testicles are for such a young
boy." Her voice was so casual, that for a moment Timothy did not realise
the import of what she had said... and then suddenly he groaned inwardly in
utter embarrassment.
He shivered as Hazel dried his
swollen scrotum, he felt utterly helpless and anguished at the injustice of
Hazel offering his body for inspection as if he had no feelings.
He could not help but look at
Claire who casually reached forward and cupped her hand beneath his scrotum.
Gently she lifted her hand, closing her fingers gently and sensuously around
his testicles.
The intimate action made Timothy
stand on tiptoe, his knees moving outwards as she took a firmer grip.
"Oooohhhhhhhhhh." He
exclaimed unable to control his acute embarrassment as the girl held his
genitals, feeling the soft orbs in her hand.
Hazel deliberately added to the
boy's humiliation as she casually remarked to Claire.
"If you hold his penis out
of the way you can draw his testicles forward. It will allow you to see just
how tightly the skin is stretched."
Claire looked up at the boy's
blushing face, delighting in his look of pure humiliation, as she took hold of
his penis. She deliberately slipped the foreskin back as she held it up against
his stomach and drew his testicles forward.
His whole body quivered at her
touch, prompting her to look into his face.
"Now Timothy, I don't want
to cause Hazel to have to smack your pretty little bottom again, so try and
keep still and let me have a good look at you."
He blushed, his face again
colouring to a bright crimson and his bottom lip trembling as she turned her
attention back to his testicles, kneading them as she bent her head to look
closely.
Hazel noticed that Claire's
fingers were gently toying with the tip of his penis, her bright red thumb
nail, gently scoring over the very tip of his throbbing member.
Claire felt his penis suddenly
throb violently, she looked at his face and seeing his utter distress decided
that the boy was very close to ejaculating. She quickly took her hand away from
the head of his penis and gently lowered his testicles.
"There you have been a good
boy." She placed her hand on his cheek, thrilling as she saw his plight at
her intimate handling of his penis and testicles.
Timothy stood shame faced and
blushing profusely as Claire finally let him go. He watched as she and Hazel
moved away to examine several sheets of paper that Claire and retrieved from
the pocket of her notecase.
All four of the girls had receded
to the far side of the room leaving Timothy standing naked and ashamed, his
legs stretched wide apart with his hands gripping the support bar above his
head. He was acutely aware of his erect penis as it bobbed up and down, the
errant member standing straight out from in-between his legs.
Suddenly the girls disappeared
into the dressing room and he stood alone. When they emerged, Timothy was
puzzled for a moment as he saw Claire, who had taken off her suit jacket
standing looking at him while she donned a transparent apron, tying the cord
around her slender waist.
Suddenly he shivered in horror as
both she and Hazel approached him. "As Cynthia and the nurses are going to
be busy in the doctor's office, Claire has kindly consented to dry and powder
you while I pop in to see the doctor. Please step out of the bath and follow
her into the other room. Oh... and Timothy, I want you to be on your best
behaviour. I am giving Claire my full permission to spank your bare bottom
thoroughly, should she have any trouble with you. Do you understand me?"
Immediately all the girls turned
their backs to him and walked towards the double doors. As they approached, the
door hissed once and slid silently open, before shutting again as they walked
through.
Timothy's stomach churned in
utter dread as he stepped form the bath. There was an absolute dread in being
left alone but knowing that he had to walk naked into a room where the young
girls would be.
His legs felt weak and his mind
was in turmoil as he realised that his penis was bobbing up and down in front
of him as he walked. He fought with all his might, the acute desire to cover
himself with his hands, steeling himself as he walked shakily towards the
double doors.
As the doors slid open they
revealed to his horror, Claire sat upon a modern straight backed chair in the
middle of the room; several towels upon her knees and a container of Talcum
powder placed on the floor beside her.
To add to his feeling of
humiliation, Lisa had seated herself behind Cynthia's desk and Susie was seated
behind her own. Both girls had a perfect view of Claire as she sat waiting for
him.
Deliberately Claire did not
instruct him as he walked through the doors. She could see that he had kept his
hands to his sides, his face was blushing profusely as he stood several feet
away from her, looking foolish and awkward.
She looked at him, her expression
haughty and aloof as she spoke. "Come along child, I can't dry you while
you are standing over there."
Her words sent a further rush of
blood to his face as he looked at her, his face wreathed in shame.
"Come along NOW."
Her sharp rebuke seemed to
galvanise him into action. He shuffled forward and stood before her. She looked
up at his face and casually placed each hand on his hips and drew him forward
until his knees were touching hers.
His shame was paramount as she
addressed him. Her tone seemingly completely without feeling for his delicate
emotions. He could feel the blood rush to his face and felt his lips begin to
quiver. Had he known when he had first entered the reception downstairs, that this
beautiful and aloof girl would be sitting before him, waiting to dry and talcum
powder his naked body, he would have fled with no thought for the consequences.
"Stand with your legs wide
apart and place your hands upon your head. Hazel has already told me of your
fondness for touching your penis. It is a dirty little habit... and one which
should be thrashed out of young boys."
Timothy almost fainted with the
injustice and shame of her remark. He stood dumbly, gradually lifting his arms
and placing his hands upon his head. With his ears ringing with embarrassment
and his stomach churning in dread he shuffled his feet apart.
"I want them far wider apart
than that Timothy... come along now!"
He shuffled his feet again until
they were stretched as wide apart as he could manage without falling over.
Claire looked him in the eye as she took the towel in her hand. "Now keep
still." With that remark she proceeded to dry his shoulders and his chest
and arms. She leaned forward and let her cheek rest against his waist as she
dried his legs. Looking up at his face she slipped her hand between his legs
and carefully cupped her hand around his testicles. She felt him shiver in
shame as she drew his scrotum forward and, taking the corner of the towel
patted the tender flesh until it was dry.
She could feel the boy tremble as
he steeled himself for what inevitably must come next. She nonchalantly reached
forward and grasped the erect shaft of his penis, immediately drawing the
foreskin back. He jerked his hips violently as she rubbed, rather than patted
the sensitive flesh beneath.
She could hear his troubled
breathing as she nonchalantly handled him with a deft familiarity, deliberately
sparing him no embarrassment. His body quivered and shook as she continued...
passing the towel between his legs and rubbing vigorously, causing his erect
penis to wobble to and fro.
"Right stand up straight and
come around to the side. You can take your hands down now, but I want you to
promise not to touch your little penis."
Claire was well aware that his
penis was anything but little, in fact, not only was larger than that of a very
much older boy, it was as beautiful as the rest of his body. The straightness
of the flesh was a testimony to the fact that the boy had obviously not
indulged in self-abuse.
She waited until he had come
around to her side. Deliciously, she placed her hand around him allowing her
fingers to play with the cheeks of his bottom. She looked up to see Susie
approach her. She was holding a metal kidney shaped dish and as she lowered it,
Claire could see a transparent blue plastic syringe with a large egg shaped
nozzle.
"Oh Claire, I forgot to tell
Hazel, he is not to have Talcum powder inside his bottom cheeks. The doctor
would like his anus lubricated with gel, so that she can examine him
internally."
Timothy drew in his breath and
groaned at her words. He looked down at the syringe, his stomach churning at
the thought of the egg shaped nozzle and the excruciating embarrassment of the
procedure. He looked around the room in despair, only to see Lisa the young
receptionist sitting primly at her desk watching him with casual disdain. He
blushed in utter confusion as Claire's fingers moved familiarly over his
buttocks
"Oh I see, well you had better
show me how to use it." Claire was careful not to show her delight as she
smacked the boy lightly on his bottom.
"Come along Timothy, over my
knees and place your hands flat on the floor once I have got you settled. Now
don't stand there looking glum, or I will be doing what Hazel does when she
takes your bare little bottom over her knees."
The boy was quaking in fear and
embarrassment as Susie delightedly placed the tray by her side and pushed the
boy's shoulders forward. Claire grasped him around the waist and nonchalantly
placed her other hand beneath his testicles, pulling both the scrotum and his
penis forward as the both girls forced him across her knees.
Timothy was in the throes of
absolute shame and embarrassment as Claire placed his hands on the floor. The
plastic apron felt cool and smooth against his skin, making him acutely aware
of every movement of his body as he lay face down over her knees.
Timothy was absolutely shivering
in shame as Claire allowed herself the delicious action of smacking her hand
lightly across the clenched cheeks of his bottom.
"Come along, relax your
cheeks. I want to see them go slack or I shall give you a sound spanking right
where you are."
Timothy groaned... tears forming
in his eyes as he reluctantly forced himself to relax his buttocks. He could
not help flinching as Susie leaned over and placed her hands on each cheek,
slipping her fingertips inside.
"If you take the syringe
Claire, I will stretch his bottom, so that he can't evade you."
Claire could not believe the
absolute thrill she felt as she ran her fingers over the large egg shaped
nozzle, knowing that the boy would squirm deliciously upon her knees as she
inserted it into him.
Timothy looked at the floor,
cocooned in shame as he felt his bottom being stretched wide. He could feel the
cool air invade the cleft of his buttocks and his sphincter, underlining the
fact that his bottom was open and exposed to the view of the young girls. The
indignity of his position made him shiver in utter anguish. The very thought
that he was laid over the receptionist's knees, having his bottom examined and
remarked upon with no thought to his modesty, brought a feeling of dread to his
stomach.
Claire could feel the incredible
hardness of his penis as he pushed his hips forward at the first contact of the
syringe to his sphincter.
Lisa whispered almost reverently
as she held his buttocks wide. "Squeeze gently until his sphincter is well
lubricated. You may want to just rub it around with your finger now that he is
nice and clean inside and out. He's had a very thorough enema before you came
up."
Susie's words shamed the boy and
excited Claire at the same time. Without preamble she pushed the nozzle hard
against his sphincter and squeezed until a generous amount of clear gel nestled
in the deep well of his bottom.
Without further instruction,
Claire held the syringe in her left hand while she slipped her fingers between
the widely spread cheeks of his bottom. She squeezed her legs together in
ecstasy as she felt the boy wriggle and squirm against her knees. Firmly she
pressed her fingers to the quivering entrance of his bottom... and with
absolute abandon she allowed her fingers to rub over the sphincter, feeling the
muscle recoil with each firm movement.
Steeling herself for the boy's
ultimate degradation, she replaced the nozzle gently against his bottom. She
was delighted as Susie put her mind at rest.
"You will have to push
firmly Claire, he will probably squirm a bit... boys always seem to make a fuss
when their bottoms are penetrated, but it does them no harm. I will move my
hands so that you can smack his bottom if he tries to evade the nozzle."
Timothy blushed furiously at the
shaming words. His equilibrium totally destroyed as he faced the floor, his
bottom stretched wide... awaiting with dread the penetration of the syringe.
Claire savoured the moment,
prolonging it with a further chastisement to the beautiful young boy lying
across her knees.
"Push you bottom up and
relax for me, there's a good little boy."
She held the syringe away from
the opening and teased his sphincter with her fingers, knowing that the boy
would find it impossible to do as she asked. She pressed her fingers against
the sphincter once more, feeling him squirm, before she re-presented the nozzle
of the syringe to the opening of his bottom.
"Now take a deep breath...
let me hear you now... a nice deep breath," She listened as the boy gulped
air and pressed the nozzle firmly against the sphincter. In absolute silence she
insinuated the tip of the nozzle against the opening of his sphincter, making
sure that it was perfectly centred. Without further warning she pushed the
nozzle swiftly and firmly up into his quivering bottom.
"Ummmmmmmmppppphhhhhhhhh...
hooooooooo... arghhhhhhh."
The boy's buttocks quivered and
quaked as the egg slipped through the opening. Claire was surprised at how
widely the flesh had had to stretch to accommodate the widest part of the
sphere. She felt his hardened penis press against her thighs and his body
shiver in a series of spasms as he was rudely impaled.
"Hooooo...ooooohhhhh oh
arggghhh."
"What a fuss at having a
nozzle in your bottom. Boys really do make a lot of fuss over nothing."
Her words prefaced his next indignity as with relish Claire nonchalantly
depressed the plunger in a slow and steady movement. She felt a delicious
thrill between her legs, watching him thrash his head from side to side, as his
hands left the floor and he arched his back. His body went rigid in a tormented
protest to the huge gush of ice-cold gel that penetrated his anal passage.
Claire could feel his penis throb
mightily, in answer she let her thighs relax, capturing his rigid member in the
folds of the plastic apron. She relished every second of the boy's torment,
waiting quite patiently until he had settled back down, with his hands once
more on the floor.
"What a fuss you young
children make. I suppose you expect me to be lenient with just because Hazel is
not here, however I think that you will find I can be just as uncompromising
when it comes to obedience. Now just relax this time, while I slip the nozzle
out of your bottom."
She felt the boy shudder as she
nonchalantly pulled the nozzle until his sphincter stretched wide over the
largest part of the sphere. "Now keep still." She chided as she
suddenly pulled the nozzle free, hearing him gasp at the sensation.
Susie released her hands from the
cheeks of his bottom, her eyes shining with excitement as she spoke to Claire.
"I would just pop a finger
into his bottom to check that the lubricant is where it is supposed to be. I
will take the talcum powder over to the examination couch; it will be easier
for you to powder him if he is lying down with his legs stretched wide
apart."
Claire could hardly contain her
excitement as the boy shuddered at Susie's pronouncement. His buttocks quivered
against Claire's slender hand as she slipped her forefinger up against his
sphincter. "Open up... there that's the way." She did not tease or
prepare the sphincter, merely slipping her finger up into his bottom with a
firm and steady pressure.
"Ummmppphhhhh." The boy
groaned as Claire relished the rare thrill of impaling the boy. She roamed
around until she was able to smooth her fingertip over his prostate. She
immediately knew from the throbbing of his penis and his reluctant gasps, that
he was helpless to prevent her arousing him.
She was careful not to cause the
boy too much distress, as Hazel had warned her against the prospect of the boy
ejaculating without warning. Instead she withdrew her finger slightly and
inserted the tip of her middle finger through the sensitive ring of his
sphincter, suddenly pushing firmly until her two fingers were firmly inside his
bottom.
"Arrggggggggghhhhhhh...
hooooooooOOO." He cried out loudly as she curled her fingers and stretched
his flesh. She delighted in the sensation, moving her fingers at will as she
savoured the squirming of his body over her knees. She was surprised at just
how thrilled and sexually fulfilled she felt at the young boy's torment. She
impudently thrust hard with both fingers, leaving them straight so that they
rigidly impaled his bottom for almost a minute. She shivered in delight at his
gasps of protest, feeling a series of thrills course through her body. She
allowed herself the luxury of squeezing her shapely legs together, trapping his
rigid penis tightly, before slipping her fingers from his bottom.
Without warning she raised her
hand and gave the boy three hard slaps upon his buttocks. The thrill of it,
sent another little shiver through her body. She could not resist the
temptation to continue for at least a little while longer. She spoke to him as
a school mistress would speak to an errant schoolboy.
"I am going to give you six
more smacks, just so that you understand that when I tell you to do something I
want you to do it without fuss."
Claire proceeded to spank the boy
six more times. Each smack sent a delicious thrill through her body. The
contact with her hand against his buttocks combined with the throbbing of his
penis between her thighs delighted her. She savoured every moment as he
squirmed and wriggled in embarrassment and humiliation.
"I know it can be very
embarrassing for little boys to have their young bottoms smacked, but I think
you know that I will not hesitate to spank you a lot harder than this if you
don't do as you are told. Right let's have you up off my knees and lying down
upon the examination couch."
Timothy was blushing profusely as
he was helped to stand upright. His face reddened even more as he caught sight
of Lisa looking at up at him from her paperwork as he passed in front of her
desk. Her eyes nonchalantly looked down at his erect penis and back up at his
face. Her expression was almost disdainful of the erect state of his penis, as
he was led to the examination couch like a lamb to slaughter.
It was Susie that positioned him,
his body being laid back and his legs being hoisted up into the stirrups until
he was stretched wide and open. His bottom was completely lifted from the
surface of the couch and his legs stretched so wide that his genitals were
rudely displayed to view of the young girls.
He turned his head to the side in
absolute shame and complete humiliation. He was acutely aware of his penis throbbing
and bouncing up and down on his stomach as both girls stood back and examined
his naked body.
"Oh dear Claire, I am afraid
his penis has leaked. Just look at that... it was a good job you were wearing
an apron. Little boys seem to have no control at all over their bodily
functions. I will get you some tissue and you can wipe him. Shame on you
Timothy," she looked at the boys burning face... "You really need to
have more control over yourself!"
The girls left him for a moment
as he lay in absolute torment, squeezing his eyes shut to try and distance
himself from the utter and total embarrassment that had pervaded every cell of
his brain. Had he heard the whispered conversation between Susie and Lisa he
would have been in even more distress.
He felt gentle fingers lift up
his penis and then the incredible sensation of his foreskin being stretched
back so tightly that his eyes flew wide open. He saw Claire casually take a
tissue to the tip of his penis and wipe away a teardrop of clear sticky liquid.
He shuddered and groaned as the tissue grazed over the sensitive opening of his
penis.
Susie handed Claire a second
tissue, this time the tissue felt cold and wet against his timid flesh. He
tried to squirm away from the sensation as she deftly wiped all around the
sensitive head of his penis, completely ignoring his anguished movements as she
cleaned his erect member.
He endured the next moments in
shame and turmoil as Claire sprinkled talcum powder over his penis and
testicles. His arousal caused him to groan in anguish as her slender fingers
sensuously moved over his flesh. Each touch caused him absolute distress and
shame as she smoothed both hands over the inner creases of the juncture of his
thighs. The backs of her hands deliberately brushed against his scrotum as she
distributed the soft powder. He almost arched his back completely off the bed
as she lifted his scrotum and applied talcum powder underneath, scoring her
fingers expertly over the perineum. Claire made sure that each touch of her hands
aroused the young boy. She was absolutely absorbed with the delight of having
his young body completely at her mercy.
His groans of anguish merely
encouraged her to prolong his humiliation as she played and toyed with his
genitals exactly as she wished. Standing back and savouring the sight before
her. His naked body stretched wide, his penis and testicles swollen and bared
for her own exclusive pleasure.
It was Lisa that broke her
reverie. Claire had not realised that she had moved away from her desk. She had
moved silently and unobtrusively to stand by Claire's side. She extended her
slender hands forward, holding a tray containing another syringe full of gel.
This time the syringe was wrapped in a plastic seal.
"It would seem a shame not
to make sure that his anus is properly lubricated. As you can see, his buttocks
are stretched wide and open... he will be unable to resist the syringe. I
thought that perhaps it would ensure that he is far more comfortable when the
doctor penetrates him. After all she may want to examine him with instruments
as well as her fingers... so I thought it would be a good idea if you gave his
bottom a further anal lubrication. You just have to break the seal... and the
syringe is ready for use."
To say Claire was delighted would
have been an understatement. She looked at Susie, who quickly nodded her
confirmation. "Yes I am sure little Timothy will be far more comfortable
during his examination with his little bottom thoroughly lubricated."
Timothy looked at the girls,
blushing in shame at their aloof expressions as they watched his blushing face
before deliberately looking downwards between his widely splayed legs to his
bared genitals.
"Oh pleeeeease er miss....
Not the syringe again... oh no miss it er ...."
It was Claire who answered his
protestations. Taking the syringe from the tray she moved to his side and broke
the seal, watching his face as her articulate fingers removed the wrapping. She
watched his face as he saw the large nozzle at the end of the stem. Surely the
nozzle was far too big to have it inserted in his bottom. He paled as she spoke
to him.
"Now I want no fuss or
nonsense... it will be far better for you to have a further lubrication... I
have promised Hazel that I will prepare you for your examination... and I
intend that you are indeed well prepared." Claire looked at the syringe as
she handed the wrapping to Lisa. She noted that the egg shaped tip was far
larger than the previous one. She looked at Lisa and then back to the head of the
nozzle.
"Oh I have deliberately
given you a number eight instead of a number six. It is far better now that he
is nicely stretched for insertion... you should have no trouble at all. Susie
will hold his penis and testicles out of the way for you."
Lisa nonchalantly moved to the
boy's side and looked down at him. She bent her pretty face low over his and
held his cheek until she was sure that she had his full attention. His eyes
tried to evade hers, but she moved his head, smoothing her hand over his cheek
as she moved her head even closer to his and looked at him seriously.
"Right sweetheart, just keep
looking at me and take a deep breath when I tell you to. Claire is just going
to slip her finger into your bottom and open you up a bit and then she is going
to give you a nice big squirt of lubricating gel, so that you won't have any
difficulty when the doctor sees to you."
Susie moved to the other side of
the bed opposite her sister and casually cupped her slender fingers around his
testicles, gently lifting the swollen orbs. With her other hand she slipped the
foreskin of his penis down the rigid shaft and exposed him fully as she held
his erect member completely upright.
Claire drew in her breath as she
moved between his legs. She laid the syringe on the end of the couch underneath
his raised bottom and slipped her fingers between his widely parted cheeks.
"Keep still sweetheart and I
will be very gentle with you." She murmured, touching the timid flesh of
his sphincter with the very tip of her finger. She could see his whole body
shiver as casually, she smoothed her finger over the flesh, greasing it as she
watched the sphincter recoil at each firm touch. She teased the opening,
hearing him gasp, as suddenly she thrust firmly, thrilling with delight as her
finger slid easily up into his bottom.
"Ooooohhhh." The boy
groaned as she swirled her finger around inside him. She shivered at the
exquisite and absolute thrill of having such a beautiful young boy entirely at
her mercy. The sexual tingling coursed through her body like a flame. She
became bolder, thrusting her finger firmly up to the hilt as she watched his
reaction.
She smiled at Lisa as she saw her
nonchalantly place her hand upon his heaving chest, her fingers mischievously
playing over his nipple as she comforted him.
Lisa was in heaven as she
observed the boy's trepidation. She looked deep into his eyes, whispering to
him, her voice soft and soothing. "There sweetheart, don't fret now, we
will take good care of you." She glanced at Claire, seeing her thrust
firmly before extracting her finger from his bottom with a plop.
"There now, Claire is ready
to lubricate you... so take a deep breath when I tell you to."
Lisa watched as Claire offered
the huge nozzle up to the boy's sphincter and expertly allowed the syringe to
expel a little of the gel around the puckered flesh.
"Right a deep breath
now."
Lisa looked almost lovingly into
his eyes, seeing his gratefulness at her tender words and caring expression.
She watched the boy take in a deep lungful of air and suddenly arch his back
from the bed as Claire expertly slid the huge nozzle up into his bottom. It was
an exquisite moment for Claire, her movements slow and steady, guiding the
syringe through the sensitive ring of his sphincter, and watching delightedly
as the muscle was stretched almost impossibly wide over the extreme
circumference of the nozzle.
"Arggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....
Hooooo hoo hoo hoo." He groaned as Lisa looked deep into his eyes, before
moving her head down to his and kissing him fully on the lips. She held him
firmly as she robbed him of his breath at the exact moment that Claire saw the
nozzle disappear up into his bottom.
Lisa held his lips captive for a
good twenty seconds; his back arched and his body rigid with sensation.
Suddenly she let him go, watching in rapture as he desperately gasped for air.
"Ooohhhhhhhh.....
hoooooo." He gasped in utter torment as Claire nonchalantly pushed the
plunger hard. Seeing the sinews of his thighs harden as she expelled the entire
contents of the syringe up into his quivering bottom.
"There we are." She
said brightly. "That was no trouble at all was it Timothy?"
"Oooooohhhhh
hhhhhhooooooooooo arggghhh."
The boy gasped and groaned as
Lisa lowered her head and kissed him again, her soft lips closing over his and
her gentle hands caressing his chest as he heaved in anguish.
Timothy could do nothing but
moan. He could not believe the acuteness of the sensations he felt within his
bottom and his penis. It seemed as if the two were joined in one prolonged stab
of sexual torment.
He tried to contain his emotions
as he looked up into the beautiful face of the young girl. Her expression
showed love and tenderness, an exact contrast to the casual way that the
syringe had penetrated his bottom. He expelled his breath in anguish as he felt
another huge pressure within his bottom. He tried to lift his hips in an effort
to escape the torment as Claire casually pulled the syringe out of his anus.
Arrrgggghhh... ooohhhhh
hooooOOOOHH."
He groaned and gasped in utter
anguish as his sphincter was stretched wide over the nozzle. He could not
believe the intensity of the sensation, nothing he had ever experienced
compared to this. He gasped and blushed in shame as Claire casually held the syringe
upwards so that he could see the glistening nozzle. Her words caused him to
tremble with humiliation as she chided him.
"What a fuss you are making
Timothy. Would you like me to take you over my knees and smack your silly
little bare bottom for making so much fuss? Is that what you would like
mmm?"
Claire put the syringe down on
the trolley and looked down at the boy. Lisa and Susie moved away knowing that
Claire wanted the boy's full attention. "Well Timothy you are really quite
a sweet boy, it is a pity you have to make so much fuss. I have to go back now
so would you like me to give you a little kiss, even though you don't really
deserve it."
Timothy looked up at her
beautiful face. He could not help blushing as she looked at him. Her
authoritative manner and beautiful good looks had his senses reeling. He opened
his mouth to speak, but before he could mumble his words Claire had leaned over
him and placed her lips gently against his. Timothy looked at her as he felt
her cool lips touch his own which were burning with his embarrassment. He felt
her hand touch his stomach as her lips pressed against his.
He could not control his
emotions, his body betraying him in reluctant rapture as she parted his lips
with her tongue. He shivered as she placed her hand upon his chest, slowly
sliding her flattened palm over his sensitive skin towards his pubis.
Claire suddenly thrust her tongue
deep into his mouth as her delicate fingers grasped his penis firmly. She could
feel the boy's chest heave as she kissed him deeply, her fingers sliding his
foreskin down over the shaft of his penis, exposing him fully.
His heart thumped within his
chest as Claire expertly slipped the foreskin up and down the shaft of his
penis until she felt it throb violently beneath her fingers. She held his skin
tightly for a moment, thrusting her tongue even more deeply into his mouth. She
felt his body respond in an anguished heaving of his chest as she held him
captive.
Suddenly she let him go and stood
upright, waiting for him to look at her before she casually moved to stand
between his legs. She could see the utter embarrassment in the boy's face as
she held his attention. She could not resist the temptation to play with his
body as she looked at him being held helpless by the stirrups, his legs
stretched wide in a reluctant invitation to violation. Thrilling with delight
she looked at him, her haughty demeanour betraying nothing of her feelings as
she held his attention. Compelling him to watch, she deliberately cupped her
hand under his testicles and lifted them upwards and outwards, before taking a
firm grip of his penis. She noted with delight his utter embarrassment as she
looked at his face. "Now promise me you will be a good boy when you are
having your examination, will you promise me that Timothy?"
The boy looked aghast as Claire
held his genitals firmly in her hands. For a moment he could not speak and then
he managed to mumble his affirmation.
"Oh please miss... er I
promise."
Claire smiled at him... and
suddenly turned away. She did not look back at him as she left the room.
It was twenty minutes later that
Timothy was helped out of the stirrups and allowed to stand with his arms by
his sides. Cynthia and Hazel had reappeared; Cynthia was carrying a neatly
folded paper hospital gown. On top of the gown was a pair of paper modesty
pants and paper over-shoes, both which had elasticised openings.
The young boy was made to stand
naked in front of all of the girls as Cynthia made him raise his feet one by
one so he could step into the pants. She did not allow him to pull them up
himself, instead she slid the garment up over his thighs and then nonchalantly
grasped his now flaccid penis and stuffed it inside the pants before pulling
the paper material up over his hips. His gown was slipped up over his arms and
pulled over his shoulders, Cynthia merely tying the top string leaving his back
fully exposed. She had deliberately chosen a gown that was too short and as she
stepped back and looked at him, she had to stifle a grin. The hem of the paper
gown only descended as far as the juncture of his thighs. The ruffled
elasticised opening of the pants around each thigh was clearly visible. She
bent down again and lifted his feet one by one as she made him step into the
shapeless paper shoes.
Cynthia led the way with Hazel
following holding Timothy's arm in a firm grip. They entered the first of the
reception areas where another pretty young woman had taken Lisa's place at the
reception desk.
Timothy averted his eyes as she
looked him up and down. He could not help his face colouring up in a bright
blush of redness as he was marched through the room. Once out into the greeting
area he was led through the first door which was signed consulting rooms.
Normally anyone entering the corridor to the consulting rooms would be fully
dressed in street clothes. The paper gown and pants that Timothy was wearing
rustled and crinkled as he walked. He was well aware that the sound would alert
anyone to his presence.
Timothy blushed as he entered the
long wide corridor. He could see two young girls, casually chatting at a coffee
machine which was recessed into the wall. They were both dressed in the blouses
and skirts which were standard office dress for the building. He blushed
profusely as they looked up from their conversation and smiled at him as he was
led past. He blushed deeply as one of the girls looked down at his bared legs
and paper pants.
The left hand side of the
corridor was made up of a series of tall doorways, each door signed in script
with the individual name of the doctor who was partnered in the practice.
Rather than a Christian name, the partner's names were written with initials
and surname only. This had been done deliberately to hide the fact that the
entire staff of the medical practice was in fact female. To the sides of each
door were chairs and tables, typical of any waiting area.
To his right the walls were made
up of floor to ceiling glass partitions. The first of these had lowered
Venetian blinds, which were closed hiding the rooms beyond. Timothy felt
utterly foolish as he was led past the two girls. He could see that their
original smile of greeting had turned to one of amusement and prurient
interest.
As Cynthia led them along the
corridor, he realised that the next set of blinds were open, revealing a large
open-plan office full of secretaries and office personnel. As they walked by,
he watched the young girls at work and for a few moments seemed not to realise
that they could see him as clearly as he could see them. The horrible
realization came to him as one of the young secretaries looked up and snickered
as she saw him dressed in his hospital gown with his back bared and just the
slim paper pants covering his bottom. Worse was to come as the young girl
turned to her friends and pointed towards Timothy. Soon his near naked body had
the attention of the entire office. Some of the girls stood up from their desks
to get a better view of the young boy as he was paraded past the glass
partitions. His face was blushing profusely as they neared a door that read.
`Dr. L. Ashcroft.'
5
Celia Clarke, who was the school
nurse... and Dr. Lucy Ashcroft had been ensconced in conversation with Vicki
Grant and Jenny Althorpe, for quite some time. Their conversation had ranged
over the many treatments that the boy was to receive. Occasionally Hazel had
joined the conversation, explaining to her aunt the routine that they had
adopted in her absence. Jenny had been very interested to learn of Susan and
Gail's involvement with the boy. She clearly remembered Gail's mother and was
quietly delighted that a girl, from such a `well thought of' family, should
have an interest in her son's welfare.
Celia Clarke was an extremely
pretty twenty-five year old. Her slender figure and articulate bone structure
emphasized her cool and clinical appearance. Even though she always wore her
clinicians coat and wore little make-up in order to hide her beauty, her neat
and rather understated appearance allied to her extreme prettiness, made the
older boys at the school rather intimidated when they had to visit the young
school nurse. Dr. Ashcroft had immediately recognized the ambition of the young
woman and had seen an opportunity to use her.
Lucy had liked the look of the
nurse when they had first met - and had soon realized that her quiet but
ambitious nature would overcome any hesitation in her providing the kind of
supervision the boy would need at school. She also saw knew that the nurse was
well thought-of by the educational health authorities and as such was left
alone to run her department as she saw fit. The department comprised of herself
as nurse and matron to the pupils, along with two other nursing staff which
were under her supervision, Wilma Bray and Jennifer Clayton. She also had the
services of two very young trainee nurses, who had been seconded to the school
for their first year of training.
Celia had taken up her position
in the private school that Timothy, Susan and Gail attended, only six months
ago. The head mistress and fellow teachers had quickly found her to be quietly
efficient and very competent.
Dr. Ashcroft had hinted several
times to Celia, that the post of schools supervising nurse (a post which
encompassed eight schools throughout the county) could be hers in three years
time. Celia was bright and understood that the way forward for her career,
would be assured with the help of Lucy Ashcroft. She admired and respected the
young doctor and saw in her, a route to a furthering her own career. She had
not seen Timothy during her time at the school and had missed him during the
boys' day of examinations. She was rather looking forward to seeing what he
looked like.
There were two important factors
that had convinced Lucy Ashcroft of Celia Clarke's suitability to take care of
the boy's regime while at school. The first of these was Celia's stunning good
looks. If she had not had become a nurse, Lucy thought that she would have made
a perfect fashion model. Celia was not at all voluptuous; her body was slender
with long legs and small petite breasts. Her face was beautifully shaped; the
bone structure of high cheekbones and firm jaw line gave her an intelligent and
somewhat forbidding appearance, in that she did not look as if she would suffer
fools gladly.
The second reason was that Lucy
had observed her on several occasions examining both boys and girls when she
was on her regular visits to the school. She had immediately recognized Celia's
penchant for sexual pleasure at her patient's expense. Her handling of both
boys and girls had appeared efficient and professional and yet Lucy had noticed
that the positions that she had made them adopt had been far more exaggerated
than was absolutely necessary. Lucy rightly assumed that her methods of
examination had much to do with pleasuring her own appetites.
Her handling of their genitalia
had made the young patients become aroused and Lucy had been rather surprised
when Celia had nonchalantly made one young boy ejaculate, certainly with no
hesitance to the fact that she was being observed by Dr. Ashcroft; merely
tutting at the young boy as if it was entirely his own fault. Lucy had been
very impressed with the girl's confidence and authoritarian approach. She had
smiled to herself as she thought of her own predilections musing that, it takes
one to know one.
Lucy Ashcroft had had little
trouble in convincing Jenny Althorpe, that her son Timothy should undergo the
range of treatments that she had put forward. There had been no hesitation in
Jenny agreeing to the collection of her son's sperm for the sole use of the
clinic. Jenny was delighted to learn that she would receive the treatment for
her son at the shared expense of both the clinic and the local health
authority.
"So we are agreed."
Lucy spoke clearly to Jenny Althorpe, "that Timothy will be admitted on to
our residential ward for his examinations and treatments this week. We should
be able to release him by Friday. He will certainly be over halfway through his
depilatory procedure by then and of course it will be far easier for his treatment
if Timothy is permanently denuded of pubic hair."
She continued. "Hazel has
managed the boy very well it seems and of course you have Vicki here, as well
as the services of my visiting nurses. I think we will have no trouble in
getting Timothy sorted out. Even if it is a long term approach it will be far
better now that we know of his problem and are able to help him without him
being allowed to resort to masturbation. I think it would be better if he did
not consort with other boys in the holidays, it can sometimes lead to unsavoury
activities. It will be better for him to have the company of Susan and Gail.
Both of these girls seem to have an understanding of his psyche and his rather
unusual physical condition."
Jenny had nodded sagely. She was
rather relieved that the issue was being managed so well and that Timothy was
not going to be a problem. She was most impressed with Lucy Ashcroft and
thought that perhaps she had been rather lucky in it being her, rather than
another doctor, that had identified the problem so quickly.
Cynthia stood in front of the
door marked `Dr. Lucy Ashcroft" She knocked and waited until the door was
opened. Timothy was utterly embarrassed by his long walk down the corridor. Now
as he stood with Hazel holding him by the arm, he was aware that the whole of
the rear of his body was exposed to the view of the offices opposite... as well
as to anyone that might walk down the corridor. He waited, blushing profusely
as a rather matronly woman of about forty years of age held open the door for
them to enter.
He was led into a small
vestibule; standing with Hazel, he waited while the woman walked with Cynthia
to a door at the other side of the vestibule and knocked. Moments later he was
led through. He suddenly began to shiver as he saw his mother with three other
women seated in a semi circle. He looked at them in disbelief as he was
positioned in the middle of the room. Hazel stood behind him and positioned his
arms by his side before firmly taking hold of his upper-arm again.
He blushed profusely; a deep and
burning blush suffused his cheeks, as his mother stood up and quickly kissed
him on the cheek.
"Hello Timothy, did you miss
me? I understand that Hazel has been looking after you very well. Dr. Ashcroft
has been explaining your problem to me. Weren't you a naughty boy for not
telling me about your testicles swelling like that? It might have saved you
from having so much discomfort. Never mind, the doctor has assured me that you
will be fine with regular treatment."
Timothy could only blush in utter
confusion as his mother sat down. Her casual mentioning of his testicles
embarrassed him greatly; he had always kept his body private from his mother
and had made sure that she never saw him undressed.
He noticed that the two nurses
Penny and Tina had entered the room from a door to the left of where he was
standing. Through the open doorway, he saw to his utter dismay, the ominous
shape of a modern gynaecological chair. The stirrups had already been extended
to a high and wide stance. He shivered again as Penny closed the door behind
her and went to stand with Tina behind the seated women.
The room was large for a
consulting room. Dr. Ashcroft was seated next to his mother. Celia Clarke was
seated to her right and Vicki Grant sat on the other side of Dr. Ashcroft.
Behind them was a long conference table which held several piles of paperwork.
To Timothy's left was single padded stool and next to that was an instrument
trolley, with a white cloth covering its surface.
To his left were several other
instrument trolleys. Some held a variety of ominous looking syringes and
medical instruments while others were empty as Cynthia had already begun
placing the instruments in order on the nearest trolley. He had immediately
recognised Celia Clarke as his school nurse. He blushed again as she suddenly
caught his eye. Her expression betrayed no emotion as she looked at him calmly.
He looked away, returning his
attention reluctantly back to his mother. He stood in abject dismay, acutely
aware of the brevity of his covering as his mother looked back at him, her
comforting smile providing no comfort whatsoever to assuage his acute
embarrassment. He shivered as Dr. Lucy Ashcroft spoke to his mother.
"I want to show you
Timothy's genitals. He has not had any semen extracted today, so you will be
able to understand the months of difficulty he must have been having by not
telling anyone about his problem."
Timothy was shivering in absolute
humiliation as his mother looked at him intently, her eyes travelling down to
the brief pants that were visible below the short paper gown he was wearing.
He felt Hazel grip his arm more
tightly as Dr. Ashcroft addressed her. "Hazel be a dear and take his gown
and pants off for me, would you?"
Timothy groaned loudly as Hazel
stood behind him and began to untie the string of his gown. He was shivering as
the gown was slipped from his shoulders and laid on one of the unused
instrument trolleys. He felt Hazels cool hands touch his body, high up on
either side of his waist. As she slid her hands down his torso towards the
waist of his paper pants he groaned and suddenly grasped the waist of the pants
in both hands. In anguish he stood defiantly holding the paper pants up, his
knuckles white as he gripped tightly.
Jenny watched mesmerised as Hazel
merely sighed and apologised to the seated women. "I am sorry, he is
probably just a little overwrought."
Timothy was absolutely shocked
and flabbergasted by the cool efficiency in which Hazel took hold of him and
sat down on the stool, before quickly bending him face down over her knees. The
sudden upending of his body made him throw his hands forward, only to try and
reach back again as she summilarily stripped his paper pants down to his knees
in one deft movement.
"Oh please no... oh
no...no...no..." Timothy wailed in anguish as Hazel placed her hand gently
and sensuously over the cheeks of his bottom.
"Please no... please
Hazel... er miss... not in front of..."
"Slaaaaaaapppppppp."
Hazel raised her hand and brought it down over his buttocks. Time and time and
time again her hand rose and smacked smartly down on the boy's upturned bottom
cheeks.
"Please... no...oh no, no,
no!"
His pleas were to no avail as
Hazel soundly and thoroughly spanked his bottom. Over thirty sharp slaps had
been administered to his burning buttocks before she stopped.
"Ohh oooohhhhhh... please
noooo more." The boy wailed in abject anguish and shame as Hazel placed
her hand flat against the burning and quivering cheeks of his bottom.
It was his mother's soft voice
that pierced the torment of his mind. "Now Timothy, please don't let me
down and be a naughty boy. It is the absolute silliness of hiding your genitals
from me that has made you ill. Now promise me that you will be a good boy...
please Timothy."
The boy was in utter turmoil as
his mother spoke to him. He had hoped that she would have admonished Hazel for
spanking him... instead she seemed unconcerned with the fact that he had been
thoroughly spanked by his young cousin.
"Now are you going to
promise me that you will do as you are told... and behave?"
Timothy could not believe his
shame as he answered his mother. "Oh yes... Mummy... I promise I will be
good."
Jenny leaned back in her chair
and looked at Hazel quickly before turning back to look at her son's reddened
face as it hung towards the floor.
"Well in that case Timothy I
will take your word for it. I am rather surprised with you... you have been a
very good little boy at home. Now lay still until Hazel has finished your spanking
and then I want you to behave properly or I shall ask her to give you another
one with my hairbrush until you DO behave. Do you understand me Timothy?
"Oh please no more... ooooh
nooooo." He could not believe that his mother had considered his spanking
to be unfinished. His pleas again fell on deaf ears as Hazel raised her hand -
and to her surprise continued the spanking, which she also thought she had
already finished.
Timothy was beside himself with
utter shame as he lay naked but for the paper pants around his knees and the
paper covers on his feet. His face was bright red with the ignominy of his
bared bottom being soundly spanked in front of his mother.
Hazel continued as the boy
wriggled and sobbed on her knees. She gave him another thirty smacks, seeing
that his bottom was absolutely bright red as at last she came to a halt. She
could feel his body shivering as she placed her stinging hand gently over the
burning cheeks of his bottom. She could not help feeling a thrill as she lifted
the naked boy upright and deftly slipped the pants down to his ankles. She
noted that he was clutching his hands to his groin as she knelt in front of him
and slipped the garment from each of his feet taking the paper over-shoes with
them.
Looking up at him, her face stern
and unforgiving she took his wrists in each hand. She stood up slowly and
raised his hands and placed them on top of his head. She placed her left hand
under his chin and raised his tearstained face so that he could not avoid her
gaze.
"One more act of
disobedience and I shall use your mother's hairbrush to spank your bare
bottom... DO YOU UNDERSTAND ME?"
Timothy sobbed in shame and
anguish as he looked into her beautiful face. "Oh yes miss, sob... please
miss I am sooooo sorry."
Hazel looked at him and stoked
the tears from his cheeks her voice softened to a tender and caring timbre.
"Right... we will continue. Now just be a good boy sweetie... there now...
let's dry those tears..."
She wiped away his tears with her
gentle fingers playing against his burning cheeks and then quickly stood back
as both Penny and Tina moved to each side of the naked boy. Together the nurses
took his wrists and placed his arms outward, holding his forearms across their
bodies.
Jenny looked closely at her son's
naked body for probably the first time for several years. She could see how
perfectly proportioned his physique was - and was further intrigued to see that
his penis although flaccid was very well developed. Even after talking to Dr.
Ashcroft, she could not believe how large and bulbous his scrotum looked, the
bag tight and bulging beneath the shaft of his penis.
Lucy Ashcroft had seemingly
ignored the boy's chastisement as she stood in front of him and beckoned Jenny
Althorpe to stand with her. Timothy jolted as if he had been stung as he
suddenly felt the cool and delicate touch against his timid flesh.
The doctor's long slender fingers
gently lifted his flaccid penis and held it out for Jenny to observe.
"Now you will see that his
foreskin is still rather tight as I slip it back over the corona. It shows that
he has probably not indulged in masturbation. If you place your fingers at
either side of the shaft and slide the skin up over the head and then withdraw
it again, you will be able to feel the tightness. I will just make his penis
erect and then you can have a feel... and judge for yourself." She turned
to Cynthia... "Would you spread his legs wider please and then attend to
his bottom. I want him fully erect!"
Both Tina and Penny had tightened
their grip upon his arms as the doctor had begun to manipulate the flesh of his
penis. They had felt his body tense and held him firmly so that he could not
escape the touch of her fingers.
Jenny looked towards Cynthia. She
saw the girl nonchalantly coat the first two fingers of her right hand with a
glistening gel and then move to stand behind Timothy. Had Timothy been able to
observe this action he might have been even more anguished than he was already.
He gasped in shame and
embarrassment as the doctor held his penis outwards for his mother's
inspection, shuddering visibly as he felt Cynthia simultaneously slip her hand
between his thighs from the rear. The young nurse's voice was cool and
nonchalant as she spoke to him. "Stand with your legs nice and wide...
come along now."
She tapped the inside of his
thighs as he shuffled his knees apart until he was standing spread-legged. He
shivered as he felt her gentle hands part his buttocks and her slender fingers
slip inside. He shivered and shuddered as suddenly her finger pressed firmly
against his sphincter.
"Take a deep breath
now." Before he could comply with her instruction, she had slipped her
finger expertly through the tightened ring of muscle and up into his bottom.
"Ooooohhhhh... oh...oh..
ugghhhh." She allowed him no time to contemplate her action as she quickly
located his prostate gland, scoring her finger firmly over the intimate and
sensitive mound.
At the same time as Cynthia had
penetrated his bottom, Lucy Ashcroft had stretched the foreskin tight as she
pressed against the base of his penis. In a sensual motion she began to slip
the skin up and down the shaft, her gentle fingers deliberately brushing over
the sensitive rim of the glans.
"Ooooohh
arrrggggghhhh." Timothy shivered in turmoil as his senses were quickly
alerted to the inescapable touch of their fingers upon his body. His body
suddenly tensed and he raised himself onto the tips of his toes as Cynthia
deftly slipped a second finger up into his bottom, stretching his anus widely.
"There we are." The
young nurse's voice was cool and casual as he felt his penis begin to throb at
the relentless manipulation of his flesh by the nurse and the young doctor.
Jenny Althorpe could not help
looking up at his face in surprise as his penis erected fully, the throbbing
flesh engorging to a size that she thought was almost impossible for a boy of
Timothy's age. Suddenly their fingers stilled. Although Cynthia was still
penetrating his bottom she had slipped one of her fingers out of his anus and
had stilled the motion of the other. She watched as Dr. Ashcroft let the boy
calm himself for a moment, her palm placed gently beneath the engorged flesh.
Jenny could not believe how large
Timothy's penis was as she looked at her son. His body was almost rigid with
sensation, his head held back and his body tensed as he stood spread-legged and
naked before her.
Dr. Ashcroft waited until the boy
stopped tensing his body. Then she spoke to him, delighting in his
embarrassment as he looked at her. "Now keep absolutely still, while your
mother examines your penis and testicles.
Timothy bit his lip in shame as
the doctor let his penis go and moved back. She took her own chair from behind
her and deliberately placed it in front of him for his mother to sit on. She took
a tissue from one of the trolleys; quickly giving it to Mrs. Althorpe, she
watched as Jenny cleansed her hands with the medicated wipe.
Timothy could not help looking at
his mother, trembling in shame as she sat down on the chair in front of him. He
drew in his breath in one mighty gulp as he steeled himself for what must
surely come next.
His body trembled and shook as
Jenny Althorpe reached forward.
Celia Clarke watched as Cynthia
extracted her fingers from the boy's bottom and Jenny Althorpe took a delicate
hold of her son's penis. She felt a thrill run through her body, catching her
by surprise as she watched the boy shiver from head to foot at the touch of his
mother's fingers upon his timid flesh.
She noticed that Jenny Althorpe,
although handling her son quite intimately, did not seem to be deriving any
sexual pleasure from the encounter. Far more interesting to Celia, was the
boy's absolute timidness and acquiescence, especially after his sound spanking.
She watched as he was made to
bend over the stool and his mother was supplied with a rubber glove. She could
not help standing up from her seat to get an unobstructed view as the nurses
held the boy firmly while Lucy Ashcroft guided Jenny Althorpe's hand so that
she could easily penetrate her son's bottom, instructing her as to where to
feel for his prostate.
Celia knew that she sooner or
later she would have the boy at her mercy to examine and extract his semen as
and when she pleased. However her own impatience surprised her... she knew that
she just could not wait to get her hands on this perfect specimen of a boy.
She watched avidly as the
blushing young boy was returned to a standing position and made to face the
semi-circle of chairs. It puzzled Celia when Dr. Ashcroft moved her own chair
back in line with the rest and seated herself between Vicki Grant and Jenny
Althorpe. Suddenly Celia felt a thrill run through her body as the young doctor
spoke directly to her.
"Nurse Clarke, as you will
be looking after Timothy's medical welfare while he is at school, I wonder if
you would extract his semen, so that Mrs. Althorpe can get an idea of the
amount he is producing. Cynthia will stimulate his prostate and I am sure that
Mrs. Grant will collect the sample for you, so that you don't have to hold the
container."
Celia could not believe her ears.
`So', she thought, `the boy is to be made to stand in front of his mother while
he is forced to ejaculate'. She could not help looking up at him; his eyes were
shut tight, his face an absolute picture of distress. His cheeks were almost
purple with embarrassment and his bottom lip trembled so much that it almost
looked comical. Celia continued her inspection of his naked form, noting that
his chest was heaving irregularly above his slim waist. She let her eyes travel
down to his genitals, smiling to herself as she saw that his penis had become
almost flaccid as it hung down over his bulging testicles.
She did not get up immediately,
instead she acknowledged Dr. Ashcroft before turning her head back to the boy.
She knew that sooner or later he would open his eyes to look at her. She smiled
professionally, her beautiful features and perfect teeth masking the elation
she felt as Timothy reluctantly looked at her, his face suddenly blushing to a
profuse and angry flush of redness. The deep patches of crimson enveloped his
anguished countenance and relayed to everyone his utter embarrassment and
humiliation.
Celia held his gaze as she got up
from her chair and moved towards him. His eyes suddenly turning towards his
mother in utter shame as she approached his trembling form.
Tina and Penny held him firmly as
Celia saw Cynthia begin to re-coat her fingers with a liberal amount of
lubricating gel.
The boy suddenly shivered as
again Cynthia sat down behind him and nonchalantly slipped her fingers between
the cheeks of his bottom. He bit his lip as the beautiful young school nurse
placed her hand between his legs and casually cupped his bulging scrotum. Celia
was careful to position her body slightly to the side so that his mother had an
unobstructed view of his young body. She gently pulled his scrotum forward and
nonchalantly took hold of the tip of his penis. Timothy shivered uncontrollably
as he felt the school nurse's cool fingers envelop his scrotum and then the tip
of his penis being held firmly and lifted up and away from between his legs.
Timothy blushed once more as the
nurse looked at him knowingly as she slipped his foreskin back along the shaft
of his penis, the coolness of her hands accented every nuance of her touch. His
utter distress delighted Celia, she had been surprised that Dr. Ashcroft had
given her the task of extracting the boy's semen; but she was determined to
take full advantage of the situation. She looked over his shoulder at the young
nurse who was sat patiently with her hands already lubricated.
Celia looked at Timothy's face,
noting the trembling lips and anguished expression on his face as she spoke to
him. Her voice was deliberately nonchalant, as if her treatment of the boy was
nothing more than her regular routine.
Celia was surprised at the
calmness of her own voice as she looked at the almost mischievous expression on
the nurse's face.
"Now just bend forward
slightly Timothy... there that's the way... a little more now... so that the
nurse can part your buttocks and slip her finger up into your little
bottom."
Her words had the desired effect
upon the trembling young boy. His distress suddenly accelerated by the
humiliating feeling of having the cheeks of his bottom parted, swiftly followed
by a firm pressure against his sphincter.
"Oooohhh arggghh." He
moaned as his bottom was expertly penetrated and a slender finger was pushed
firmly up through his sphincter. He had no time to recover as he suddenly felt
a second finger stretch his sphincter wide and slide up into his young bottom.
"Oh... oh..." His
protestation was cut short as Celia nonchalantly took a firmer hold of his
penis and stretched the foreskin tight as her cool fingers pulled the skin back
down the shaft. She nodded to Cynthia as she curled the fingers of her left
hand tightly around his scrotum and slipped the fingers of her right hand
sensuously over the exposed head of his penis. Celia ignored the jerking of his
hips as she realised that Cynthia's fingers had quickly and expertly located
the boy's prostate gland. Cynthia was aware that there would now be no
constraint to the amount of stimulation she could apply inside the young boy's
bottom.
Celia was far more skilled in
stimulating the genitals of young boy's than anyone could have imagined. There
had been only a few boys at the school that had interested her. She had been
careful to make sure that their arousal during her examination of them had
seemed entirely their own fault.
She had chided them and made them
feel so ashamed and humiliated, that she was quite sure that they would keep
their embarrassing and guilty secret entirely to themselves.
It had completely surprised her
when she had first started nursing, that she seemed to know exactly where and how
to touch a young male to elicit the maximum sexual response. It had also come
as an overwhelming realisation that she was entirely sexually fulfilled when
subjecting young males to sexual stimulation. The thrill of having complete
control over their naked bodies and being able to subject them to the most
embarrassing and humiliating positions, delighted her more than she could ever
have contemplated. Her clever use of words of authority to completely and
utterly shame her young male patients, thrilled her just as completely as they
humiliated the unfortunate subject.
"Do try and keep still
Timothy, what must your mother think of you, squirming about like a naughty
child?"
Timothy's shame was so
overwhelming that he trembled and shook. The slender fingers of the school
nurse allowed him no respite from the expert sexual stimulation to his
genitals. He could feel his penis throb uncontrollably, knowing that his
shameful arousal was in full view of his mother.
The nurse continued to skilfully
arouse his tender flesh. Her deft touch and expert knowledge of the most
sensitive areas of his body allowed her to completely control his emotions.
Occasionally she would glance over his shoulder at the young nurse who was
seated behind him and casually instruct her to further inflame his timid and
reluctant sexual arousal.
"If you would curl your
finger upwards for a moment..." a little firmer if you would dear... ah...
yes that seems to be doing the trick... and now if you prod the gland... ah yes
that's the way!"
Her voice was always calm and
measured... and yet her fingers busied themselves over the boy's penis and
scrotum, allowing him no respite from her relentless and expert stimulation of
his young flesh. Her slender hands seemed to seek out every nuance of emotion
from her ministrations, inexorably forcing his tender young flesh to
reluctantly respond.
The shame that Timothy felt was
beyond anything he could have imagined. Even within his experiences of the last
week, nothing had prepared him for this.
To be made to ejaculate! Not just
in response to the ministrations of one of the prettiest girls he had ever
seen... but in full view of his mother. He could not have articulated his
feelings, but hidden deep down within him was the knowledge that not only would
his mother witness the emission of semen from his penis, but that she would
observe his deepest sexual emotion. He shivered, his body trembling violently
from head to toe, as the horror of his situation enveloped and saturated his
thoughts.
Celia deftly and expertly
manipulated the swollen flesh of his penis. Without one thought to his modesty
she scored her fingernail across the opening of the urethra, feeling his body
shiver uncontrollable as she stretched the foreskin back tightly so the opening
was further exposed. Her words shamed him as she addressed his mother, her
smile bright and her voice matter of fact.
"You can see how easily he
can be aroused, little boys have no control over their emotions. He will
ejaculate quite soon..." Celia looked at the boy's mother as she leaned
forward and gazed intently at his penis.
"Ah I see Mrs. Grant is
ready with the specimen jar..."
Vicki smiled at the pretty young
school nurse as she stood at the other side of the boy so that Jenny Althorpe
would have an unobstructed view of the manipulation to the boy's genitalia.
Cynthia was thrusting firmly, her
fingers deep inside the young boy's bottom. She could feel the sphincter
suddenly tighten as she stabbed at the sensitive mound of his prostate gland.
She slapped his bottom cheeks with her free hand as his sphincter suddenly
constricted in a reluctant spasm. The slap alerted Mrs. Grant who held the
container against the tip of his penis. Celia seemingly ignored the boy's
distress as she quickened her fingers over his penis and at the same time
squeezed his scrotum firmly.
Jenny Althorpe could not help
looking up at her young son's face, seeing his contorted expression as the
first jet of semen erupted from the tip of his penis. His cry of orgasmic
distress filled the room as he ejaculated.
"Arrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhh...
ooooooooooooooooOOOOHHH." He could not contain his emotion, or the
trembling of his limbs, as he was deftly and expertly milked to a thorough
ejaculation by the two young nurses.
His sexual torment seemed to go
on forever as the pretty young nurses, seemingly oblivious to his distress,
manipulated his flesh with consummate skill. Every nuance of sexual stimulation
was applied to his thrusting penis and bulging testicles, his bottom penetrated
deeply and effectively as he ejaculated helplessly and shamefully into the
specimen jar.
Mrs. Grant could not help
addressing the boy, deliberately adding to his shame as she spoke softly as if
he were a young child. "There, what a good boy you are... let me have a
nice big sample now... there that's the way..."
Two fingers deliberately jabbed
deep into his bottom, forcing his hips forward as a series of slaps were
applied to his buttocks. His ejaculation seemed endless, even as he thought
that he could ejaculate no more, fingers would firmly prod deep inside his
bottom and his testicles would be squeezed, forcing his penis to produce
further tormented emissions of semen.
They held him in the throes of
anguish and ecstasy, allowing his shivering body no respite.
"Argggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
He wailed as his anguish prompted him to cry out in distress. He could see his
mother through the tears that had welled up in his eyes. Her expression
appeared cool and clinical as to his absolute shame, another jet of semen was
cruelly extracted from him.
He shivered as a further three
loud slaps were applied to the quivering cheeks of his bottom and he was
forced, shivering and trembling, to a last tormented emission of semen. The
cool hands of the nurse squeezed his scrotum hard as the fingers of her other
hand milked the entire length of his penis, drawing out the remaining few
globules of semen.
Celia's voice was calm and
nonchalant as she addressed the boy's mother. "As you can see the slaps to
his bottom draw the blood to the required area, allowing one to extract the
maximum semen at any one session. You will be able to milk him quite
effectively with the help of one, or ideally two nurses."
Timothy nearly fainted away as he
heard the nurse's words. Surely his mother would not be extracting his semen.
The very thought sent shivers through his spine. His face blushed so profusely
that his cheeks were blotched in shades of deep purple, such was the depth of
his shame.
It was Dr. Ashcroft who spoke as
Cynthia withdrew her fingers from Timothy's bottom and the young school nurse
nonchalantly allowed his swollen penis to hang down between his widely spread
legs. She took the specimen jar from Mrs. Grant and held it towards Mrs.
Althorpe.
"You can see just how much
semen he is producing. It is most unusual in a boy of his age.
Timothy's mouth was agape with
silent indignation as he observed his mother examining the test tube. He
shivered as the nurses placed his arms to his sides. One of the nurses bent
forward and deftly slapped a steaming hot towel to his genitals. She did not
seem the least concerned at his protestations as she roughly wiped the towel
around his genitals. He gasped as she took his penis in her hand and retracted
the foreskin before applying the rough towelling to the tender flesh beneath
the glans.
*
Further indignities had been
heaped upon Timothy during that afternoon. To his utter shame, his mother had
witnessed the second extraction of semen which had been carried out with him
laid out on the examination couch. His legs had been fastened into the leather
clad chromium hoops of the stirrups. His bottom had been thoroughly penetrated
by Doctor Ashcroft, while Cynthia had expertly manipulated the sensitive flesh
of his young penis. He had turned his head into the pillow in utter shame as he
was forced to a second humiliating and shameful ejaculation. Each time he
thought of the events of the afternoon, he blushed, even though he was now
alone in the small single bed dormitory ward of the medical centre.
He had been laid upon the bed by
the two nurses who in turn had been supervised by the petite medical assistant.
His naked body had been covered by a single sheet and two blankets. They had
positioned his hands so that his head was resting on his palms. The sheet and
blanket had been pulled up under his arms and tucked in under the mattress. He
had not been able to avoid shedding a tear of self pity as Cynthia had leaned
over him and kissed him tenderly on his burning cheek. "There now, just
try and get some rest... someone will be in later to bring you your
supper."
Timothy must have dozed off
almost immediately after his supper; the traumas of the day had caused him
physical as well as emotional fatigue. Now as he opened his eyes sleepily, he
saw that the room was in semi-darkness apart from a ceiling light that bathed
the bed in a gentle light. He turned his head to the side, noting that his tray
had been removed. He could hardly recall eating his supper but remembered that
the nurse who had brought it into the small private ward had been a jolly girl.
Although she was extremely pretty, like all the staff at the clinic, she had
joked with him and put him at his ease. Perhaps it was also the fact that she
had not been involved with his treatment and that his body was fully covered
that had lifted his spirits.
He looked around the ward, noting
for the first time the various instrument trolleys covered with surgical
sheets. The trolleys had been pushed against the far wall leaving space around
his bed. The bed itself was a very modern piece of apparatus, with electric
motors for adjusting, height, back and head rest and side rails. He did not see
the stirrups which were incorporated into the side of the bed and were tucked
away out of sight. He looked across at the huge chromium plated machine which
stood against the wall. It reached from floor to ceiling, looking very complex
with its many dials and knobs. Several tubes hung down from the machine in
loops, the ends of these passing back into the machine through hatches and deep
apertures. He could detect a slight hum coming from the apparatus but had no
idea what its purpose was, supposing wrongly that it was some kind of
resuscitator.
Timothy turned his head towards
the door as he heard the handle turn and saw a beam of light appear as it
opened quietly. He could see a silhouetted figure approach the bed and suddenly
recognized the nurse that had brought his supper earlier that evening. She was
carrying a tray with a cup and saucer placed upon it.
"Hello Sunshine... I didn't
know whether you would still be asleep. I suppose you must have had a busy day.
I brought you a cup of sweet tea in case you were awake. I always like to drink
tea when I wake up... just let me put the tray down and then I will raise the
back rest so you can sit up a bit."
Timothy watched her, noting her
trim figure and pretty face as she placed the tray on the bedside cabinet and
fiddled with the control panel of the bed which was on a short lead which
extended from the bed head. A whirring sound accompanied the raising of the bed
head and Timothy felt his upper body being raised to a semi-sitting position.
He continued watching the young nurse as she fetched a chair from the far side
of the room and brought it to his bedside. She handed him his tea before
sitting down facing him as he brought the cup to his lips.
The sweetened tea was hot and he
sipped it gently. Timothy was able to observe the nurse as he sipped his tea.
Her face was unusually pretty. She was one of those girls in a million who were
blessed with perfect skin and bone structure. She had no need of face make-up;
her skin was an impossibly clear and smooth complexion. Her lips were a natural
pale pink with a dimple at each corner of her mouth accenting the perfect
symmetry of their shape. Her eyes, which were of an almost translucent green,
seemed to dance with light as she looked at him. She bore an air of innocence
and purity that put the boy instantly at ease. Timothy could not help returning
her genuine smile as she leaned her elbow against the bed.
Her uniform was a fitted tunic
made of fine white cotton. Her breasts were full and firm beneath the smooth
cloth, the nipples occasionally outlining themselves against the fine gleaming
white material as she leaned forward. A dark blue belt was fastened tightly
around her tunic amplifying the impossible narrowness of her waist. She glanced
down at her knees as she saw the boy's eyes wander to the hem of her skirt,
which had risen to mid-thigh as she sat beside the bed.
"I didn't introduce myself;
my name is Helen... that is I suppose I should say... Staff Nurse
Dowling." She placed her finger and thumb against the badge that she wore
above her left breast and turned it towards him so that he could read it.
"You can call me Helen, or
Nurse Dowling or just Nurse if you would prefer. Are you comfortable... would
you like me to remake your bed?"
Timothy shook his head hastily.
"Oh no miss... I mean nurse... I am very comfortable thank you.
The nurse smiled widely, her lips
revealing perfectly even white teeth as she looked at him. "Well you
certainly are polite. Look I have got half an hour or so, I can stay and talk
if you would like me to. It must be pretty boring just laid in bed."
"Oh yes... I mean if you
would." Timothy almost stammered his reply as the nurse made a funny face
and smiled at him with an even wider smile.
"Well you can start by
telling me about yourself... I bet you like sport!"
It was Timothy's turn to smile as
he shrugged his shoulders and nodded. "I do I like ball sports, but my
favourite sport is athletics.
The nurse smiled at him and
laughed gently. "I knew you were going to be good company... so we don't
have to talk entirely about football!"
Timothy laughed, suddenly feeling
completely at ease as the nurse gently prompted him about his interest in
athletics.
"So tell me, at which event
do you think you are best... and then you can tell me all about your
triumphs... I bet you like winning... am I right?"
Timothy had warmed completely to
the young nurse. Immediately he began to tell her about his best events,
becoming completely absorbed in the subject as she skilfully prompted him with
questions that had him talking incessantly. Soon he had forgotten his traumatic
day; instead he conversed earnestly with the young nurse, sometimes completely
surprised by her knowledge of athletics. He did not notice her casually look at
the watch which hung upside down from a neat ribbon above the badge on her tunic.
She listened to him intently as she noted that almost an hour had passed since
she first came into the room.
She had noticed his progress from
initial apprehension to an easy and forthright manner as she conversed with
him. She had made sure that she did not talk down to him or appear
condescending. As his confidence grew she had been able to observe him without
his noticing her interest.
The sheet and blankets were still
wrapped around him tightly and the athleticism of his form was clearly
outlined. She had noted the neatness and perfect arrangement of his facial
features and had also realised that he was quite bright and occasionally quick
witted, especially when he had made a joke at his own expense while discussing
a race he had lost far too easily. She knew that her looks and demeanour had
helped the boy to become almost natural and at ease in her presence.
Suddenly the room became bathed
in bright light as door opened. Cynthia and Susie Jenkins entered the now
brightly lit ward. They were both dressed in smart white cotton medical tunics
which were cut to just above the knee. Helen Dowling did not need a second
glass to know that they were wearing very little beneath the fine cotton of
their tunics. Their lightly tanned legs were bare and both girls wore petite
sandals which consisted merely of a sole for the foot with criss-crossed ties
that ended in a bow at mid-calf. Helen guessed that they had studied their
appearance carefully before entering the small ward. Helen looked at Timothy
and saw the merest blush on his young cheeks as he eyed the two girls warily.
It was Cynthia who spoke first as
both girls came to a halt at the opposite side of the bed to Helen.
"Ah Nurse Dowling I am
pleased you are still here, would you please put Timothy in the stirrups. I
would like his legs spread as wide as possible please. After that I would be
grateful if you would lubricate his bottom... there is a suitable syringe in
the refrigerated drawer of the bedside cabinet. I need a thorough lubrication
of his sphincter and anus as we will be using the irrigator... the nozzle is
rather wider than we normally use on little boys."
Timothy looked at the Nurse
Dowling in horror. His embarrassment could not have acute than it was at this
moment. The young nurse did not seem at all perturbed by what she had been
asked to do. Her expression was cool and appraising as she looked into his
face. It was suddenly all too much for Timothy, his face began to redden with a
deep and burning blush. He turned his head to the pillow, conscious of her
movements as she stood up. In utter shame he tried to force his face further
into the pillow as he felt her lower the head rest and then bend over him as
she released catches at either side of the headrest, allowing it to lay flat,
extending the top of the bed by a further two feet. He shivered as she lowered
the covers down to his waist and took his wrists. He could not help himself as
he quickly glanced at her face as she raised his arms and laid them out above
his head. "Now just keep your hands where I have placed them
Timothy." Both Susie and Cynthia Jenkins watched with amusement at the
agonising embarrassment of the young boy
"Look at me," Nurse
Dowling said softly as she placed her hand under his chin and turned his head
towards her. "There that's better I can see you when I talk to you
now." Nonchalantly she took the covers and without a moments hesitation
stripped them down to the foot of the bed, revealing his naked body to the
strong overhead lights.
Timothy groaned as he felt the
cool air accented his embarrassing nakedness. He watched as the nurse brought
up the stirrup from the side of the bed. Hearing it click into place before
watching her move to the other side and elevating the other stirrup. He closed
his eyes in shame as he felt her cool hands slip beneath his calf muscle.
Gently she raised his left leg until it was placed in the soft leather of the
stirrup. He felt absolutely naked and humiliated as she returned to the other
side off the bed and gently raised his other leg until she could place it into
the stirrup. He looked away in shame only to see the other two nurses looking
down at his naked body. He blushed again, his face going from bright red to a
deep purple hue as the two young nurses openly admired his naked body.
"Don't be alarmed if you
hear a whirring sound Timothy. I am just going to adjust each stirrup, so that
your legs are nice and wide, then I will be able to get at your little
bottom."
He gasped as she took hold of the
wired control unit and pressed several switches. The nurse's lips were pursed
in concentration as she watched the stirrups widening until his legs were
stretched widely apart. He could feel his penis and testicles hang down from
between his legs as she continued to widen and raise the stirrups, raising his
bottom completely up from the surface of the bed.
"O'ooooh," Timothy
groaned as he felt his legs stretched even further apart. Nurse Dowling did not
seem at all concerned with his embarrassment or his discomfort as she let go of
the control unit and took a wedge shaped pillow from beneath the bed and placed
it under his buttocks.
"There now, does that feel
alright, the wedge should support your back... your legs are not straining are
they?"
Timothy could only murmur and
incoherent reply as the nurse bent over the bedside cabinet which contained a
cooled section. She stood up watching his face as she held out a large blue
plastic syringe.
"Now I am just going to
lubricate your bottom, so try not to fidget." Timothy watched in absolute
horror as the nurse moved to the side of the room and wheeled an instrument
trolley to the side of the bed. She laid the syringe down and proceeded to don
surgical gloves. She could see the boy watching her warily as she snapped the
wrists of the gloves as she smoothed them over her hands.
It was if Timothy was in a trance
he could not seem to take his eyes off the nurse as he watched her take the
syringe out of the wrapper. He knew without doubt that the syringe was even
larger than the one he had experienced earlier in the day. The egg-shaped end
looked as if it would be impossible to fit into his bottom and yet he knew that
this was what was going to happen.
"Now the trick is to relax
and let me do all the work, do you think you can do that for me sweetie? Now I
am just going to detach the end of the bed and then you can show me what a
brave boy you are going to be."
He looked across at the other
nurses as if asking them for help. Instead he saw amusement on their faces as
Nurse Dowling moved down to the end of the bed and slid open the catches. She
pulled the end section and wheeled it out of the way satisfied that Timothy's
raised buttocks were now overhanging the end of the bed. She moved away as
Timothy watched her movements in absolute horror. She retuned to the trolley
and once more picked up the oversized syringe. It was a mixture of morbid
curiosity and fear that compelled Timothy to watch as she depressed the plunger
until beads of clear jell emerged from the multiple holes of the egg-shaped nozzle.
He could not help the shudder of
trepidation that coursed through his body as she moved to stand between his
widely spread legs.
"Right sweetheart, I will
just loosen you up with my fingers... so just relax and you will be fine."
He still could not help watching her as she depressed the plunger, allowing
clear jell to run over her fingers. To His dismay she smeared the lubricant
over the entire length of the two forefingers of her right hand.
Helen Dowling looked at the boy's
naked body, her clinical gaze admiring and noting every inch of him. She was
absolutely delighted at having such a beautiful boy entirely at her mercy. She
laid the syringe down on the end of the bed and looked him straight in the eye
before turning her attention to his genitals. She noted that his penis was
plump but showed no sign of an erection. His swollen testicles were tight in
their sac, the young skin bulging with the swollen orbs. His penis lay over his
testicles the tip pointing downwards between his widely spread legs.
She made sure that she had his
full attention before she reached forward and delicately took hold of the tip
of his penis between her finger and thumb. She watched his face noting the
sheer embarrassment and torment in his expression as she made her first
intimate contact. She saw him flinch, his abject dismay causing him to groan as
she gently lifted his penis away from his testicles and laid it gently upon his
stomach so that the tip was pointing upwards towards his head. She looked at
him, her beautifully angelic face showing mock surprise as he shivered before
her in utter embarrassment.
Nonchalantly she lifted his
testicles with her left hand and placed her lubricated fingers between the
trembling cheeks of his bottom. Her excitement knew no bounds as she touched
his flesh.
"Oooohhh.... Arrggghh...
nurse." He moaned involuntarily as her felt the first touch of her fingers
and the cold gel of the lubricant. She did not heed him as she began to probe
the sensitive flesh of his sphincter. "Ooops there we are..." He
suddenly felt a finger tip slip through his sphincter. This was quickly
followed by an intense pressure as a second finger was expertly introduced
through the sensitive ring of his sphincter.
Timothy was in utter torment as
he felt his sphincter being explored and probed by the young nurse. Her sweet
and innocent face belied the utter humiliation that she was subjecting him to.
Just ten minutes before, she had made him feel grown up and at ease. Had he
suspected that she would be subjecting him to such humiliating treatment, he
would have died with shame. As he looked at her through his mist of shame, it
seemed almost incredible to Timothy that such an innocent looking girl had
nonchalantly touched his penis and testicles and then proceeded to probe his
bottom with such an apparently carefree attitude. He felt a tear of shame run
down his cheek as her fingers probed deeper into his bottom.
"Arggghhhh." He groaned
and lifted his bottom from the wedge shaped support as her fingers suddenly
located his prostate. He moaned in shame as suddenly he felt his penis engorge
as her finger tips roamed over the very core of his sexual organs.
"Oooohhhhhhhhhh... er misss." He hissed as expertly she expertly sank
the entire length of her two fingers up into his bottom. She began thrusting
and scissoring her fingers, the tips roaming freely over the sensitive surface
of his prostate gland. He turned his head into the pillow as his penis began to
engorge. He could feel the telltale signs of his penis erecting, the tip
suddenly raising from his tummy and pulsing with involuntary spasms.
His embarrassment was complete as
she spoke to him. "Oh Timothy, look your penis is getting stiff. I suppose
little boys just have no control over their emotions. Oh look it's bouncing up
and down on your tummy." She shook her head as if bewildered. "Oh
dear Timothy, I thought you would have had more control over yourself than
this!"
It was Cynthia that replied to
the nurse as she casually placed her hand gently on the inside of Timothy's
thigh. The gesture was not unplanned as she knew that it would accent his
nakedness and further emphasise his vulnerability. "I know nurse; young
boys really do not have any self-control. That is why Timothy is not allowed to
touch his own penis. I am sure that given the chance he would turn to self
abuse... which of course would ruin the doctor's progress. We will be keeping
him firmly in check while he is here at the clinic."
Timothy groaned in shame not just
at the embarrassment of the damming and shameful words, but also as Cynthia
casually took hold of his penis and slipped the foreskin down the shaft. Her
fingers casually encircled the base of the shaft exposing the head of the penis
fully as she bent forward, her face only inches from the tip of his penis.
Nurse Dowling cleverly
manipulated her fingers inside the boy's bottom. She could see that the penis
throbbed in direct response to the thrust of her fingers against his prostate
gland. Her utter delight in handling the boy was carefully hidden behind her
innocent look of concentration as she diligently probed and thrust her fingers
between his bottom cheeks.
Cynthia quickly glanced at her
sister as she moved to stand in front of the irrigation machine. She watched as
Susie began to set up the machine for operation. She smiled at her before
turning her face back towards Nurse Dowling.
"If you look at the penis
head you will see that it is quite engorged. The doctor will be coming in after
he has had his colonic irrigation. She will take two samples of semen from
him... the second one after a twenty minute interval. The sample will be
analysed for sperm count and then frozen for the IVF service. If you lift his
scrotum, you will notice that his testicles are very swollen, the doctor is hoping
to reduce any discomfort he may have... as I believe that when the boy was
first examined his scrotum could hardly accommodate the testes without severe
discomfort."
Nurse Downing nodded as she
gently lifted up the swollen scrotal sac from between his legs. She ignored the
boy's gasp of embarrassment as she carefully examined his testicles. She thrust
her fingers fully up into the young boy as she gently let her hand explore the
fullness of his scrotum, casually weighing them before she let them rest down
between his widely parted legs.
"I think you will find that
his bottom will accommodate the nozzle now." She whispered to Cynthia
before turning her attention back to Timothy. "Now just relax and keep
your bottom still." No sooner had she uttered the words than she slipped
her fingers quickly from his bottom and without further warning pushed the
nozzle of the syringe firmly through the opening of his sphincter. She watched
the ring of muscle stretch wide as the nozzle slid lazily up through the opening.
"Argggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhh."
Timothy groaned mightily as she pushed upwards with the syringe. The size of
the nozzle seemed to seemed to stretch his bottom wider than he had ever
thought possible. Suddenly, with a final acceleration, the bulbous tip slipped
inside.
"Argggghhhh...
oooooooOOOOHHHH." He groaned as tried to move his bottom to rid himself of
the impalement. His movement was to no avail, impeded as it was by the angle of
his legs lying inside the stirrup cups. Nonchalantly the nurse pressed the
plunger home with a rapid movement of her hand, shooting a large volume of gel
up into his bottom. Although she knew exactly the effect this would have upon
the boy, her facial expression showed no apparent concern for his feelings.
Cynthia held his penis firmly as all of the gel was expelled in a rapid jet up
into his bottom.
"OoooooohhhhhhhhhHHHHHHHHHH." The
involuntarily gasp of anguish was ripped from the boy's lips as suddenly his
bottom was filled with cold lubricating gel. It seemed to invade his very
being; totally enveloping his prostate gland to such an extent that it felt as
if it had reached inside to the very tip of his penis. The feeling it produced
in his genitals was utterly devastating. His penis felt as if it would explode,
such was the excruciating sensation he felt as the sudden surge of cold gel
rushed inside him.
"Ooooohhhh...oh pleeeeease
nurse... oh...oh. Cynthia quickly took her hand away from his penis, suddenly
frightened that he might ejaculate right there and then. She looked at the boy,
intrigued at the sight of his naked body as he thrashed his head from left to
right in utter torment.
Quickly she crossed over to the
sink and held a soft cloth under the cold tap. Returning to the bedside she
thrust the wet cloth firmly over his penis and testicles. She delighted in his
gasp as the cold cloth enveloped his inflamed penis and testicles.
Both Cynthia and the nurse
exchanged glances as they watched the boy's anguish gradually subside. Nurse
Dowling nodded to Cynthia as she watched her lift the cloth from his genitals,
exposing his now flaccid penis to their interested gaze.
Without any warning to the young
boy, Nurse Dowling quickly pulled the nozzle from his bottom. His whole body
immediately stiffened as if he had been electrocuted. His young bottom raised
from the bed in anguished response as the bulbous tip once more stretched his
sphincter wide. Nurse Dowling looked him in the eye as she spoke. "Now
young man, I want you to keep your bottom still while Miss Jenkins inserts the
irrigator. I am just going to check that you are well lubricated. She slipped
both fingers between the cheeks of his bottom. Even though he had tried to
clench his buttocks, she found that her fingers slipped easily up into the
opening of the sphincter. She could see that the boy's cheeks had flushed to an
even deeper shade of red as she swirled her fingers around inside. Casually she
withdrew her hand and discarded the rubber gloves she had been wearing. As if
it was of no consequence, she flipped the very tip of his penis so that it
rolled against his stomach as she spoke to him. Her voice was stern and her
expression cool and clinical. "I hope that you are going to be a little
more obedient when Miss Jenkins inserts the irrigator into your bottom."
She looked intently at his
blushing countenance, waiting to catch his eye. She knew that he would not be
able to avoid looking at her if she waited long enough for him to answer.
"Well Timothy...?"
In a haze of embarrassment and
humiliation he looked at the angelic face of the young nurse, his cheeks
reddening to a deep shade of crimson as he addressed her. "Oh er... please
nurse... I will try really er nurse." He blushed further as his eyes
dropped to look at his own naked body splayed out obscenely to the view of the
young nurses. He saw his penis move against his raised pubis as the nurse
casually lifted his testicles in the palm of her hand. He knew that she was
waiting for him to look at her before she spoke to him. As if he had no will of
his own, he raised his eyes towards the beautifully innocent face of the young
nurse.
"Now just try and be brave
while Miss Jenkins inserts the irrigator." The nurse patted his stomach as
she lifted his testicles upwards until the skin was pulled tight. Susie Jenkins
moved to stand in-between his legs; immediately, Timothy tried to clench his
buttocks as he saw the size of the irrigator nozzle for the first time. He
could not believe the size of the device that the young girl intended to force
into his bottom. The chromium adapter had two clear plastic tubes trailing from
it. One was twice the diameter of the other. Above the adapter, a pink phallic
shaped plastic nozzle glistened with lubricating gel. The nozzle had a variety
of holes bored into the shaft of the plastic as well as three irregular large
holes at the end. Below the stem a bulbous flange protruded and then narrowed
to a slimmer circumference, leaving a slender length which joined the metal
adapter holding the pipes. There was a thumbwheel on the metal flange which
allowed an inner tube to be projected upwards through the largest of the holes
in the tip of the nozzle.
Timothy gasped as Susie Jenkins
spoke to him. Her voice was light and unconcerned as she held up the huge
nozzle. "The secret is to relax your bottom completely. It may seem rather
invasive at first but you will soon get used to it." She gave him a
professional smile as she bent her head and placed the nozzle between the
cheeks of his bottom.
Ominously Nurse Dowling and
Cynthia Jenkins placed the flat of their palms upon his chest, effectively
holding his body still as Susie nonchalantly slipped two of her fingers
straight up into his bottom and swirled them around to re-lubricate his
sphincter. "Just relax, there... now breathe in... come along now... a
nice deep breath." Anxiously Timothy took a gulp of air, his body
trembling as he felt her slip her fingers from his bottom and replace them with
what seemed like an impossibly large ice cold plastic nozzle.
"Come along... nice deep
breaths now." Timothy tried to obey but gasped loudly, expelling his
breath as Susie nonchalantly forced his sphincter wide as she penetrated him
with the irrigator nozzle.
"Arrgggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh....oooooooooooOOOOOOOOOOHH.
Mmmmppphhh" The cry of anguish was cut short as Timothy drew breath in
short anguished gasps. He felt as if he was being split in two as the nozzle
was deftly inserted up into his bottom. His whole body became rigid as Susie
casually slid the device further up into him, stretching his sphincter wide as
the flange suddenly disappeared as if being sucked into his bottom. The device
seemed to invade his entire being as Susie wiggled the adapter to make sure
that it was being held firm.
Nurse Dowling looked down at the
stricken boy. She felt a sexual thrill run through her body as she saw him
being impaled by the huge nozzle of the colonic irrigator. She stroked her hand
over his heaving chest as she held his testicles firmly in her other hand. She
could not have imagined how excited she felt at having such a good looking boy
completely in her control. She saw his eyes look anxiously at Susie as she
addressed him once more. "Now... there is no need to make a fuss when I
switch on the irrigator. It will feel strange at first, but you will soon get
used to it." Timothy could only look at her in anguish as she turned and
walked towards the controls of the irrigator. Timothy eyes followed her as she
stood before the machine and pressed a single green button. He could see the
two pipes that led from the machine begin to pulse as water seemed rush down
the pipes. At the same time he felt a sucking motion in his bottom. Suddenly
his body stiffened and he tried to raise his chest from the bed. The sensation
he felt was incredible, as if he was being milked from the inside. His penis
seemed to tingle through its entire length, at the same time, it seemed as if,
a thousand fingers were caressing him inside his bottom.
"Arggggggggggghhhh...
ooohhh...ohhh.oooohhh." He could not contain his emotions as jets of water
invaded his bottom and colon; his penis began to throb in an anguished ecstasy
as the water began to do its work. The suction tube seemed to softly claw at
the base of his penis as if it was a milking machine. The whole experience was
both anguished and sensual, an experience like nothing he had ever felt before.
He looked down at himself, utterly embarrassed as he saw his penis beginning to
erect.
His embarrassment came to the
fore as he looked at the nurses; their expressions were cool and clinical as
they observed his involuntary gyrations were being strictly limited by the
stirrups; seemingly unconcerned that the machine was invading the very core of
his being. Utterly humiliated he looked at each nurse in turn, only to see that
none of them seemed to have any concern for his anguish.
Nurse Dowling looked at him as
she let go of his testicles and lifted her hand from his chest. "Right
Timothy, Miss Jenkins is going to leave the machine on low for a while and then
she will finish off the last twenty minutes on medium. Try and keep still...
and be a good boy." She looked down at his genitals knowing that the boy's
eyes would follow hers. His penis had started to throb and seemed to be
bouncing against his stomach of its own volition. She tutted as if his erection
was entirely his fault as she moved away to talk with Susie and Cynthia Jenkins
in the corner of the room, well out of his earshot.
The girls were well aware of what
the boy must be feeling as the irrigator had been set on `pulse'. High pressure
jets of warm and cold water were pulsed from each hole of the nozzle. The
sensations the machine produced were also aided by the strong sucking motion of
the collection tube. The suction was timed in two second intervals, taking two
seconds to complete. The suction was so strong as to move the nozzle up and
down over the prostate gland as it collected any waste matter loosened by the
jets of water.
Timothy could not contain his
anguish as he gasped and groaned at the sensations within his bottom. He could
not help twitching and jerking as the nozzle scored over his prostate gland.
His shame was paramount as his fully erect penis stood up from between his
widely spread legs. Timothy could not help look down at himself, or control his
penis as it throbbed and pulsed of its own volition, signalling his shameful
arousal. The nurses looked at him from time to time as they went about their
work. Their expressions exacerbating his shame as they observed his throbbing
erection with cool clinical appraisal. They wheeled trolleys over to the side
of the bed which had been filled with a variety of medical instruments and
other paraphernalia such as surgical gloves, lubricating gels, etc.
Timothy suddenly became very
apprehensive as Suzie Jenkins and Nurse Dowling approached him. They stood by
his waist at either side of the bed and watched as Cynthia stood between his
legs. Nonchalantly they watched her as she reached between his bottom cheeks
and turned the thumbwheel of the nozzle fully forward. Immediately Timothy felt
the water begin to pulse further up into his bottom.
Ominously both Suzie Jenkins and
Nurse Dowling placed their hands flat upon his chest hand held his body firmly
as Cynthia walked over to the controls of the irrigator.
"Arggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhh....
ooooooOOOHHHH... ooohh... ooohh" Timothy cried out in utter anguish, his
cries interceded by gasps of drawn in breath. Pulses of water seemed to invade
every nerve of his body. The sinews in his legs stiffened and he lifted his
bottom off the bed in utter abandonment as an intense and almost unbearable
pulsing invaded his very being.
"Oooooohhhh ...
pleeeeeeeeeeease... er nooooooooooo." He could not contain his abject
dismay as the nurses observed his distress with cool expressions. Their
beautiful faces looking down on him as shivered and shook in torment. He felt
as if the inside of his penis was being penetrated by a most agonisingly
exquisite sexual torment. He looked up at he nurses in shame as nurse Dowling
turned her head to look at his throbbing penis. Reluctantly Timothy followed
her gaze to see that several beads of clear liquid had emerged from the tip of
his penis.
Cynthia had moved to stand in
between his legs as she watched the anguished shivering figure of the young
boy. With a detached air she spoke to Nurse Dowling as if the boy's gyrations
were of no consequence. "Hold him still for two more minutes would you
nurse and then I think that will be enough."
Timothy was gasping for breath
and groaning in anguish as the nurses held him for what seemed like an
eternity. He was near to fainting, his eyes tightly shut and his mouth gaping
open when suddenly all sensations ceased.
His shame was paramount as the
girls, seemingly indifferent to his agonising experience, lifted their hands
from his chest. It was Nurse Dowling who leaned right over him, placing her
weight against his body, her soft breasts pressed against him, as Suzie Jenkins
placed her hands at either side of his temples and held his head firmly.
Immediately Timothy felt an acute
sensation in his bottom. It felt as if his sphincter was being stretched to a
new extreme as Cynthia casually pulled the nozzle from his bottom in one
practised movement.
Timothy tried to rear up as the
Nurse looked into his eyes. Her beautifully innocent expression made him feel
utterly foolish and gauche as he tried to lift his body from the bed. The
sensation in his bottom robbed him of any semblance of self control as he
struggled with the sensation of having his sphincter stretched so wide.
The next few minutes were utterly
shaming to the young boy as the girls wiped his body with soft moist tissues.
His final humiliation came when Nurse Dowling casually took a firm hold of his
penis and pulled the foreskin back tightly. She seemed utterly indifferent to
his embarrassment and shame as she carefully wiped the tip. Deftly she took
more tissues and, casually lifting his testicles upwards from between his legs,
wiped his bottom as if he was a young child.
Lucy Ashcroft looked in the mirror.
Her naked body looked lithe and tanned as she turned to a three quarter angle
admiring the apparition that greeted her in the full length mirror. She placed
her slender fingers against the flat of her stomach and moved them upwards
sensuously to cup her small firm breasts. Her nipples were hard and sensitive
as she let her fingers delicately tweak the hard nubs of flesh. She had bathed
and was now ready to dress herself in her small but luxuriously appointed
private quarters of the clinic.
Her hair was brushed to a shine
and tied in a neat bun at the back of her head. Her makeup had been perfectly
applied accenting her pretty mouth. The glasses she wore were of a slender
wire-frame design and suited her neatly featured face perfectly. She smoothed
her hands down her body, impishly lingering over the smooth prominence of her
pubic mound, which was completely bereft of hair.
She had already decided what she
would wear. She looked at the white cotton medical dress that was hanging at
the back of the door. Although the Sea Island cotton was so fine as to be
almost transparent, she knew that only her own staff would be at the clinic at
this late hour.
She reached on to her dresser top
and picked up the sheer white cotton thong that she had chosen. Luxuriously she
stepped into the flimsy garment, again moving her hand over her pubis as she
fitted the thong between her thighs. Her buttocks felt smooth and firm as she
slipped the single strand between the cheeks of her bottom, pulling the waist
upwards so the slender thread ran upwards from between her legs to form an
elongated `V'.
She squeezed her thighs together
in a delicious shiver of delight in anticipation of the coming events, before
carefully donning her white dress. She buttoned it carefully down the front,
allowing several of the buttons, above her breasts and below her thighs, to
remain unfastened. She tied the waistband in a casual knot and re-examined her
appearance before stepping into her greatest indulgence... the slender, almost
strapless high-heeled Gucci shoes.
She checked her appearance
carefully. She could see the firmness of her breasts punctuated by the sharp
point of each of her nipples as they pressed impudently against the sheer
cotton material. The breast pockets failed to conceal the erectile flesh even
though the material was doubled. She was sure that she could see the merest
hint of skin colour through the cotton. Certainly she thought, she would not be
observed closely as she walked through the subdued lighting of the corridors that
led to the colonic irrigation rooms.
She casually slung her
stethoscope around her neck and picked up several items from her desk which she
slipped into the breast pockets of her tunic. Without further examination of
her appearance, she exited the room.
Timothy was blushing from head to
foot as he was surrounded by the young nurse and medical assistants. He could
not believe how embarrassed he felt at being made to lie naked, his legs spread
out almost obscenely within the confines of the stirrups. Their expressions
were completely non-committal as they looked over his body. Casually Nurse
Dowling had let her hand rest upon the inside of his thigh. The simple gesture
had accented his nakedness and complete accessibility to his body. He turned
his head to the side only to see the young medical assistant bend low and look
at him closely through her slender framed spectacles.
His torment seemed to have to
come to an end, at least for the time being. The nurse and two medical
assistants moved away from him, using the part of the room above the bed-head.
He could hear their occasional whispers but could not discern what they were
saying. It must have been at least ten minutes before they came back to stand
around the bed. Nurse Dowling stood by his left side and Susie Jenkins stood by
his right with Cynthia positioned just to her left. No words were spoken to him
as they looked down at his naked body. His penis was now flaccid and lay down
between his thighs, supported by his bulging scrotum. He closed his eyes hoping
against hope that this would lessen his extreme embarrassment at being naked
before such pretty girls.
Suddenly he heard a sound at the
door, instinctively opening his eyes and looking towards it, perhaps in the
fear that someone was walking into the wrong room and would see him naked.
His embarrassment was almost
palpable as the door opened and Doctor Lucy Ashcroft walked through the
brightly lit opening. He shivered as without preamble she moved towards him.
Susie and Cynthia moved back from the bed as the doctor approached him.
"Hello Timothy, How are you
feeling?" She stood by his shoulder and looked down at him with a
professional smile. "I hope you are feeling much better than when I first
saw you!"
Timothy blushed as the doctor
looked into his eyes. He felt utterly humiliated embarrassed by her beauty.
Nervously he managed to stammer a reply through trembling lips.
"er... Y'yes er miss... er
doctor... th' thank you."
Lucy was enthralled by the beauty
of his body and his complete acquiescence as she smiled at him once more.
"Well I am just going to
give you a little examination, so lie nice and still for me." She could
see the boy visibly tremble at her words, his anxious expression sending a
thrill through her body. She knew that he would be apprehensive, especially
after his treatment with the colonic irrigator. She also knew that nurse
Dowling and her assistants, Cynthia and Susan, would not have spared his
blushes.
Gently she placed each hand at
each side of his neck, feeling for any sign of swollen glands. Of course she
was very well aware that the boy was in perfect health. Her touch was gentle
and yet had an authority to it that made the boy gasp at the first touch of her
cool hands.
Hardly able to control the shiver
of pleasure that ran through her body, she leaned over him whispered gently.
"Open your mouth nice and wide for me would you Timothy." She watched
his eyes widen as he opened his mouth. Casually she took a flat wooden
depressor from her breast pocket and laid it over his tongue.
She could not resist the urge to
bend down even closer to him, letting the tips of her breasts press against his
chest as she probed his mouth with her finger. She had deliberately not donned
gloves, knowing that it would make her touch far more intimate. There seemed to
be an almost sensuous pleasure in the probing of his mouth. She could feel his
body tremble beneath her as she explored his teeth and gums. Perhaps he is
trembling, she thought, because he wonders what other of his orifices I am going
to explore.
"There your mouth seems
perfectly healthy; you obviously look after your teeth. So many young children
today do not practice good dental care." He blushed as she likened him to
a young child, his body shivering as she stood up and placed her palm flat upon
his chest. He had never felt as naked or vulnerable as she smoothed her hand
over his nipple.
"Right I am going to
palpitate your stomach, so lay still please Timothy." She watched him
blush once more as she laid her other hand over the sensitive flesh of his
stomach, her fingers resting just under his ribs.
Timothy suddenly blushed deeply
as he felt his penis throb. It was just a single pulse, but he knew that unless
he could control himself that his penis would become erect. He felt utterly
ashamed as he thought of how embarrassing it would be, during a perfectly
normal medical examination to become erect. He did not realise that every touch
of her hands upon him had been designed to illicit just such a response. Her
hands felt cool and smooth upon his flesh as she looked down at his body. He
blushed again, knowing that his penis and testicles were openly displayed to
her view.
Gently she began to press her
fingers gently into his stomach, her hands moving smoothly and sensuously over his
flesh as she worked her way lower and lower towards his pubis.
He gasped quietly once or twice
as she pressed harder in certain areas, although predominately her touch was
soft and gentle.
Suddenly he felt a second throb
course through his penis. Worse still he felt it move slightly as it lay over
his swollen scrotum. He wished that the doctor would soon finish this part of
the examination. He drew in his breath sharply as his penis throbbed again.
Although he dare not look down at himself, he felt sure that the flesh had
moved. Casually the doctor moved her fingers even lower, her fingertips just
above the juncture of his groin as she pressed gently. She turned her head
towards him and addressed him. "Now Timothy can you feel any pain when I
press here?... or here... how about here?"
Timothy shook his head in
answer... his senses becoming inflamed as he felt his penis engorge and move
against his scrotum. It seemed to him that the movement of his penis had become
more exaggerated as the doctor looked at him as she moved her hands gently to
the other side of his stomach. "Now tell me Timothy... any pain here... or
here or perhaps here?" Timothy only managed to shake his head wildly from
side to side. His cheeks suddenly suffused in red as he felt his penis lift up
from his scrotum and begin to throb.
Lucy Ashcroft watched his penis
erect before her eyes, she knew that the boy dare not look down at himself,
instead he stared up at the ceiling as she gently kneaded his flesh. She moved
her hands even lower, her fingertips now brushing over what would have been is
pubic hair. She could feel the beginning of soft new hair forming as she
stroked her fingers gently over his pubic bone. She leaned her body towards his
head; so that he was unaware of whether she had seen his penis begin to erect.
"What about here Timothy...
can you feel any discomfort?" Timothy just shook his head from side to
side, his embarrassment almost beyond his comprehension as he felt his penis
throb incessantly.
Lucy Ashcroft did not let him off
the hook; instead she spoke to him in a soft and gentle tone. "Answer me
Timothy, it is important... do you feel any pain here?"
Timothy was almost blind with
embarrassment as he looked at her through a mist of shame and humiliation. His
lips were trembling and his chest heaving as he stammered his answer.
"Er... ah... er no...
nooo... doctor."
Lucy hid her feeling of delight
as she took her hands away and placed the ends of the stethoscope in her ears.
Gently she placed cool fingers against his right nipple as she touched his
chest with the ice-cold instrument. Her touch, she knew would keep erect as
long as she wanted. She also knew that the boy would be far more embarrassed if
he became fully erect while she was performing what would normally be an
asexual and standard part of any medical exam.
She bent low, her voice soft and
insistent as she moved the scope over his heaving chest. "Now take a deep
breath and hold it until I tell you to expel... off we go then... a nice deep
breath now."
Her hand moved sensuously over
his other nipple, not overtly but as if she was supporting herself as she moved
the scope over his chest. She marvelled at the smoothness of his skin as she
deliberately aroused his trembling flesh. Suddenly she stood upright and patted
his cheek, taking the cold end of the scope away from his chest.
I a moment to savour she looked
down at his face and then knowing that he would not be able to help himself
from following her gaze looked down between his widely parted thighs. To her
delight his penis was pointing up towards his chest. It throbbed so violently
that it had begun to bounce against his stomach.
She relished the slow turning of
her head as she looked at him. Her face betrayed not one glimmer of the triumph
she felt as the boy blushed mightily, his cheeks colouring to a deep crimson as
he looked at her in utter and abject shame.
"Right Timothy, I am going
to examine your penis and testicles and inside your bottom. I hope you are not
going to fidget or make a fuss while I complete your medical. Hazel has told me
that this afternoon was not the first time that she has had to smack your
little bottom. She tells me that that she has had to take you across her knees
on more than one occasion for being naughty and disobedient. I am sure you
wouldn't want to act childishly in front of our pretty young ladies here. Your
mother has given me strict instruction that you are to be summarily spanked by
myself or any of the nurses if you misbehave. I am sure all of us would be terribly
embarrassed to have to take you over our knees and smack your bare bottom. So
will you promise me you that will be a good boy while I examine you, won't
you...mmmm?
To say that Timothy felt
embarrassed and utterly shamed at the doctor's words would be an understatement
of the highest order. In fact Timothy wished that a hole would suddenly appear
and swallow him up. He did not know where to look or what to say. His face had
suffused into such a deep blush that his cheeks were a vivid and deep crimson colour.
His lips trembled and tears had formed in his eyes as the doctor spoke to him
once more, this time addressing the nurses.
"I am sure he is just
embarrassed that he cannot control his penis. Little boys seem unable to
control their emotions. Would you lubricate the speculum for me and get me a
chair."
The doctor gave Timothy a last
look before moving away from his side and walking around the stirrups to stand
between his widely spread legs.
He watched her in trepidation,
his young naked body shivering in anticipation of what she might do to him.
Without a word, she held out her hand and was handed a shiny chromium plated
speculum which was covered in a lubricating gel. Timothy looked at her in
horror as Cynthia slid a chair around the bed so that the doctor could sit
down. He could not help the utter feeling of shame that enveloped his body, his
cheeks manifesting his humiliation in another vivid blush of deep crimson. He
was unable to do anything but watch as the pretty young doctor seated herself and
peered intently between his widely spread bottom. Slowly she looked upwards,
her eyes focussing on his erect penis which throbbed incessantly as it stood
upwards from between his thighs.
For the first time she spoke.
"Right young man, I am just going to slip this speculum up into your
bottom for a quick look before I examine your penis and testicles."
Timothy blushed again as Nurse Dowling took a gob of gel from one of the jars
on the trolley and casually leaned over to smear the lubrication over the deep
crease of his bottom. Her fingers deliberately prodded his sphincter, making
him gasp.
"Ooooohhh... hahhhh."
He groaned as suddenly her fingers were replaced by the feel of the ice cold
instrument pressing against his sphincter.
"Breath in please Timothy."
The doctor's instructions were immediately followed by the icy feel of the
speculum being pressed against his anus. He gasped again as suddenly the
sphincter gave way to allow the cold metal slide up into his bottom.
"Oooohhhh....
Hoooohhh." His protestations were ignored. He gasped and then cried out.
The dreaded sudden apprehension of what the instrument was designed to do.
Moaning incessantly, he shivered as the doctor squeezed the handle of the
speculum widening the jaws to their full extent.
"Arggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...hooo....hooo...
hooo."
His distress was unheeded as the
doctor locked the jaws and took the small torch that had been handed to her by
Cynthia. "Keep him still please while I examine him would you please nurse."
Susie leaned across him, her
small breasts pressing firmly down on his chest as she looked into his eyes.
Her delicately featured face only inches from his. Timothy was utterly
embarrassed as the young girl placed her hand on his cheek. He could not believe
that this young girl could have such mastery over him. It had seemed to him,
even when he first saw her, that she was little older than himself. Suddenly
the speculum expanded, stretching his sphincter even wider. He responded with a
sudden tensing of his muscles and an anguished moan as the doctor casually
locked the new diameter in place.
"Hummmppph... ooooohhhhhh...
hoooo."
Susie immediately pressed down on
his young body, it was as if she had anticipated the further stretching of his
sphincter.
"Now be a good little boy
and keep your bottom still for the doctor." Susie's words belittled him
even further as he felt the doctor's hand on the inside of his thigh as she
leaned forward to examine his bottom.
It was moments later that he felt
the speculum being depressed and the cold metal being slid gently from his
bottom. There was silence in the room for a moment as Susie stood upright and
doctor quietly appraised his body. He looked down, just in time to see her
un-gloved hand extend forward to his upright penis. It was if he was in a
trance as he watched and felt her delicate fingers wrap themselves around his
erect member.
He blushed and moaned as her
fingers slid the foreskin down the shaft of his penis stretching the skin tight
as her hand moved to the very base of his erect organ. He could not help
looking quickly at her beautiful face as she proceeded to move the skin of his
penis up and down the shaft in a slow almost sensual movement.
He felt the doctor carefully cup
his testicles, rolling the swollen orbs in her fingers as she felt for any
abnormalities within the scrotum. Satisfied she lowered her hand and nodded to
Nurse Dowling who leaned forward and gently hefted his testicles in her own
hand, her fingernails scoring the underside of his scrotum as she deliberately
rolled the testes sensuously in her fingers.
Without warning he suddenly felt
a pressure against his sphincter. Before he could protest two slender fingers
were slipped up into his bottom.
"Oooohhhhh... hahhhh...
arggghhhh." He moaned as the doctor quickly slid her fingers right up into
him, her delicate fingertips quickly finding his prostate gland.
"Ohh oh oh oh oooooohhhhh.
The feel of their hands upon his body was too much for Timothy. He moaned and
shivered as expert fingers quickly plundered his sexual responses. He felt the
doctor alternate her clever elicitation of his senses; her fingers smoothing
and then jabbing and prodding his prostate, her other hand inexorably coaxing a
deep throbbing from his penis.
"Now try and relax, I am
just going to take a semen sample from you. You have had this done to you
before so it should be nothing new." Her words belittled his
protestations, making light of the extreme sexual trauma he was feeling. He
could not help his body jerking or the deep shivers that ran through his body.
It seemed that every nerve ending was being stimulated to the extreme.
Ooohhh... pleeeeeeeeeaaaaaase...
nooooooooooo." His cries of anguish were unheeded as if they were
oblivious of his anguish. Incessantly the doctor explored and aroused him to a
fever pitch. Her long slender fingers, pushing deep within his bottom, were in
perfect synchronization with her clever manipulation of his penis. Lucy
Ashcroft knew exactly how to bring the boy's reluctant sexual arousal to a
fever pitch. She watched in delight as her fingers delved deliciously into his
tender anus, thrilling as every touch sent a tremor through his young body. She
was so delighted with her arousal of him, that she felt a sudden desire to lean
forward and bite the smooth unblemished flesh of his quivering bottom cheeks.
Certainly she knew that she was going to spank him at the first opportunity.
Ever since she had seen him at the school clinic with stripes across his
perfect buttocks, she had had the deep desire to smack his bared bottom.
Her control of his sexual
emotions was absolute; her fingers reached far inside him as her left hand
deftly smoothed and stretched his foreskin, eliciting his deepest sexual
emotion. Occasionally Lucy would look up at his blushing face, watching as he
thrashed his head from side to side in sexual anguish, his chest heaving with
the utter intensity of his reluctant arousal.
She looked up at Susie and spoke
to her, her voice quite measured and matter of fact as she continued
stimulating the boy's prostate with increased vigour. "Susie will you
please have the test-tube ready as this should not take long at all... and
Cynthia, if you would...." The rest of the sentence was left unsaid as
Cynthia looked at the doctor with amusement in her eyes.
Timothy could feel the blood
rushing to his head as to his utter humiliation, his sexual feelings were
expertly plundered and exploited by the skilled hands of the doctor and nurses.
He was vaguely aware of Cynthia
walking to the head of the bed and then leaning over him, her beautiful face
suddenly peering down on him as she extended her arms forward and placed the
flat of her small hands over each of his nipples. He shivered once more as she
suddenly took hold of the two points of flesh and scraped her finger nails
across the puckered skin. Skilfully she coaxed his nipples to harden and erect.
She alternated her caresses between titillating the hardened nubs and drawing
circles by trailing her fingers around his breast.
Nurse Dowling lifted his
testicles higher, making sure not to interfere with the doctors busy fingers.
She watched avidly as Lucy Ashcroft skilfully used her fingers within his
bottom and upon his penis. The nurse gently encased the soft balls of flesh,
kneading them sensually as the boy moaned and shivered in pure sexual torment.
Instinctively she laid the flat of the palm of her left hand upon his lower
stomach, knowing that this would further illustrate to the boy, his absolute
nakedness and vulnerability.
She had assisted Doctor Ashcroft
several times in extracting semen from young boys... and young men. But this
was the first time that she had had complete mastery over such a beautiful boy,
his perfectly proportioned body delighting her eyes each time she looked at
him. Such was the perfection of his physique and beauty of his young face that
it seemed to invite sexual torment. His heaving chest and blushing face
thrilled her; she felt him shiver at the cool touch of her hand as she placed
it impudently on the quivering flesh of his lower tummy.
She pressed her pubis against the
bed as she bent to her task, delighting in the sexual intimacy of the
proceedings It seemed to her as if she was holding the very core of his being
in her hand as she squeezed the soft orbs, watching him shiver in a reluctant
spasm of pure sexual arousal.
Doctor Lucy Ashcroft did not have
to further instruct Susie; just a quick glance confirmed her role, as the girl
studiously moved the test-tube into position. The neck of the glass tube was
flared, being specifically designed so that it would fit over the head of a
penis.
The next moments were beautifully
co-ordinated between the young doctor and her nurses. Anticipating his first
convulsive emission the test tube was thrust over the head of his penis. As his
body arched in utter abandonment, Lucy deliberately thrust her straightened
fingers upwards into his bottom, prodding the quivering prostate before scoring
her fingernails over the sensitive gland. She could feel the prostate contract
and expand violently as spurts of semen hit the glass sheath.
Susie clamped the test-tube
firmly over the head of his penis and proceeded to move it up and down in a
series of rapid strokes. The smooth glass almost sucked the tender flesh of the
unprotected head of his penis as Susie diligently and expertly milked him. The
doctor's fingers stretched the foreskin back as far as it would go; allowing
none of the foreskin to protect the exposed head of his penis from Susie's
merciless milking. The boy's cries of anguish filled the room as his body was
suspended for an agonizing moment of time, locked rigid in a convulsive
seizure.
"Arggggggggggghhhhh...
ooooohhhhh... eerrrr.. hooo hooo." His tearful cry was cut short by
further torment as he felt his testicles being squeezed firmly and his nipples
pinched hard.
"Noooo... oooohhh
pleeeeeease nooooooooooooo." A further jab of the doctor's two slender
fingers silenced him once more as he was forced to draw in breath. The three
nurses and the doctor held him in violent orgasm for what seemed like an
eternity... as if he were locked forever in the exquisite throes of sexual
torment.
"Doctor Lucy Ashcroft spoke
to him... completely aware of his anguish as she continued to plunder his
bottom with her slender fingers. Her voice was cool and well modulated showing
no tremor or quaver as her fingers worked busily inside his young bottom.
"Now I want a nice big
sample, so come along young man...let's have no nonsense now."
Her words further inflamed the
young boy's sense of utter humiliation as his legs tensed within the stirrups,
his young body completely unable to cope with the acute sexual trauma that the
young doctor and nurses were inflicting upon him. His very nerve-ends seemed to
be inflamed as he spurted jet after jet of semen into the test tube.
Lucy watched as the thick tube
continued to fill, the semen spilling into the glass in near-white globules.
She bent his penis slowly down towards his tummy as she held his foreskin tight
against the base of the shaft. Suzie followed her action with the test-tube,
ensuring that none of his emission could escape from the glass.
His chest heaved and shuddered as
the girls prolonged his anguished orgasm. Their actions were cool and
calculated, designed to rob him of any vestige of self-control. He felt near to
fainting as Cynthia looked down at him, lowering her head until her pretty face
was mere inches from his own. Her words adding fuel to his flames of utter
humiliation as she looked at him through her thin wire spectacles. "My...
what a fuss you're making at having your little penis milked. Try and be a very
good boy while the doctor takes your sample... it will all be over soon....
Just a few more drops now... there's a good boy."
She looked forward, hiding her surprise
at the huge volume of semen that had collected in the glass vial. She lowered
her head, her lips touching his cheek as she whispered softly to him.
"There we are just a little
longer and it will be all over." Her words, combined with the sensuous
thrusts of the doctor's fingers, spurred him to a further violent ejaculation.
His torment seemed unending as they drained him of his fluids, their fingers
seemingly everywhere upon his body, his last emission seemingly wrenched from
his body.
Argggggggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
He cried out in utter and anguished torment as he was probed and milked to an
ultimate ejaculation. His vision blurred and a darkness seemed to descend upon
him as every sinew of his body stiffened.
Suddenly he became aware that it
was over! Instead of the prolonged sexual torture, their hands caressing him,
smoothing over his skin... fingers softly and slowly being extracted from his
bottom... soft hands lifting his penis and the glass being carefully taken
away. Tender hands laying his testicles down against his groin; his body was
being soothed and cosseted by the gentlest of touches as the nurses tended to
him.
His vision cleared as the doctor
stood up and came to stand by his side. She stroked her delicate fingertips
against his burning cheek as she spoke softly to him. "There now little
Timothy, just lay back and close your eyes and rest for a while. The nurses
will release you from the stirrups... and I will be back to see you
later."
Gentle hands supported his left
leg as it was released from the stirrups. He felt the pad being removed from
under the small of his back before the nurses released the other leg. He had
not heard or felt the bottom part of the bed being re-attached but felt the soft
cold leather of its surface as his legs were laid close together. He had
blushed when Nurse Dowling casually lifted his testicles so they were not
trapped between his thighs.
He drifted into a light slumber
as the nurses left him, lowering the lights as Cynthia covered his body with a
single crisp cool sheet.
The strong lights of the
laboratory illuminated the report that Dr. Lucy Ashcroft was holding up. She
had read it twice in her office and yet still could not believe the results.
She had hurried down the corridor to ascertain from the pretty young assistant
to ascertain first hand if the results had been thoroughly checked.
She now looked at the report
again, almost disbelieving the bold print of the result. She turned to the
assistant and spoke. "If this is as you say... and before you give me
another one of those looks I do believe you when you say that have checked the
results from three separate tests and two quite separate samples, the two from
this afternoon and the one I gave you half an hour ago. But it still seems
unbelievable... that young man... I don't know how it is possible. He must have
the highest sperm count of all time. According to this report..." she
smiled at the young girl before continuing. "I could impregnate half the
population of Europe with a single sample of semen."
The assistant looked at the young
doctor and smiled, somewhat mischievously. "I have never seen that amount
of semen... and I did not believe that they were both single samples this
afternoon... that was until you told me that it was... and then the one you
gave me this evening. I have never seen such an emission... did you give him
some magazines or something to stimulate him to such a large sample?"
Lucy Ashcroft smiled. "Oh
no... he is far too young to be allowed to masturbate... neither I nor his
mother wish him to become... er self indulgent. No... I took the sample... that
is... along with Cynthia and Susie as well as Nurse Dowling."
Andrea smiled at the doctor. She
had guessed that Lucy had taken a sample rather than sending the boy off into a
room with a few girlie magazines. She had just wanted the fact confirmed. She
had not seen the boy yet, but she had heard rumours from the other girls who
worked at the clinic... that he was startlingly good looking with a perfect
physique."
They both laughed as the doctor
went over the report once more. All the counts of the three tests varied, but
only by single figures, the discrepancies were to be expected, but the
variations in potency from sample to sample were minute.
Lucy Ashcroft was sure of one
thing... the boy's sperm count was quite outstanding.
To be queen of a small European
principality holds many responsibilities. Gertrude handled her Royal duties
with ease. She had discovered very soon after she had married the prince that
she possessed consummate organizational abilities. She found that she could
handle the day to day running of the small principality so easily, that she had
founded new charitable and beneficial institutions to the absolute delight of
her subjects.
Her social world was such that
the eyes of the world often turned towards the principality to gaze and report
on the glittering celebrity occasions that she instigated. The huge financial
benefits that these occasions accrued, was used in their entirety to fund even
larger social programs for her subjects. New hospitals, new schools had soon
abounded within the small country because of her organizational and social
skills. Although she was a popular queen, much loved and revered by her people,
she had one problem that seemed insurmountable.
The principality was jealously
viewed by its neighbouring country. The charter that the principality owed its
existence to, could not be changed or revoked while ever the royal lineage
continued, whether by a son or a daughter. Gertrude had been married over four
years and was still very much in love with her husband. They had made love
almost every night since their marriage and yet she still had not conceived.
During the last year, she had
visited London several times. Taking the families private jet she had slipped
in and out of the capital city without being noticed. Her visits to the clinic
of Helga Berger had confirmed to her, that she was perfectly capable of having
children. She had been urged by Helga to obtain a sample of her husband's sperm
so that it could be examined.
Because of the technicalities of
the scheme, Helga became a house guest at the palace, being given large
quarters within the beautiful ancient building. Her rooms overlooked the
beautiful bay where yachts belonging to the rich and famous resided in tranquil
splendour. Although ostensibly Helga's visit was as a firm friend of the young
queen, Helga had been able to house the equipment she needed to carry out the
most comprehensive of tests upon the sperm samples that Gertrude had cunningly
provided for her. Gertrude would often come to her rooms in the early hours of
the morning with warm fresh semen to be examined immediately. During the time
of their clandestine night-time activities both Gertrude and Helga and become
very good friends. Because of the nature of Gertrude's problem their
conversation had often covered every intimacy of her relationship with her
husband, the young prince.
After several weeks, the
disappointing outcome was that even with exhaustive treatment, the prince would
never be able to sire children. His sperm was completely impotent and lifeless.
It was many months later as
Gertrude gazed at her computer screen and then back at the small ornately
framed picture of her husband as a young boy. The resemblance was uncanny. The
picture of the boy on the screen and the young prince in the picture were so
alike that they could have been twins; certainly they would have been taken for
brothers.
Gertrude had decided quickly; her
decisiveness, which had always been a boon in her business dealings, once again
steering her towards a course of action that seemed right.
One day later she was seated
opposite Doctor Helga Berger in her sumptuous office within the prestigious
business centre. She had slipped into Heathrow and driven herself from the
airport straight to the clinic.
Helga was a woman of around
thirty-five years of age. She was classically beautiful, her high cheek bones
and small mouth were framed by a beautifully shaped jaw line. Her eyes were of
a blue-green hue, bright and intelligent as she looked across at her friend.
In contrast, Gertrude's beauty
was legendary; a testimony to the good taste of her husband and the clean good
looks of her mid-west parentage. Her beautiful ash-blonde hair now spilled down
over her shoulders, where earlier she had covered it and most of her face with
a headscarf to hide her identity. In fact she had thought that she had appeared
almost frumpy as she had driven from the airport.
"Anna the laboratory
technician tells me that you are certainly ovulating, which is very good news.
I propose..." she smiled rather mischievously... "that rather than
immediate IVF that you are impregnated by almost normal implantation... er
several times a day for the next three days. If that fails... which I very much
doubt, having seen the sperm count, we will impregnate you by in-vitro"
Helga noted the complete surprise
in Gertrude's face and laughed. "Yes... our exceptionally handsome young
donor is here at the clinic. In fact if I get you a white coat and you do
something severe with that lovely hair of yours, you may assist me while I
carry out an examination on him. Doctor Ashcroft has told me that he is perfect
in every aspect. Bright and intelligent at school... and physically perfect...
a perfect match for you and your husband if I may say so."
Helga saw the thoughtfulness
cross Gertrude's face and immediately answered her unasked question. "Yes
it may be an emotional moment to see your son as he will be as a teenager. Of
course it could equally be a girl... whom of course would still carry your
line. Of course he or she will have some of you as well, but I think that the
boy is so like your husband for the similarity to be almost uncanny."
Helga smiled once more, her
perfect white teeth sparkling as she shifted her position in her chair.
"The most important thing I think for you is that you will have to all
intents and purposes have conceived quite normally and naturally. Your son or
daughter will be your son or daughter and their physical traits so much alike
to your husband as to share many of his features and physical characteristics
as he or she grows." ... she smiled again... "Oh one other thing...
during the procedure you will be sexually aroused by myself and my nurses
before you are impregnated."
Gertrude looked shocked... you
mean your nurses are going to... erm." Helga smiled. "Yes... they are
going to make you orgasm sweet girl... and quite dramatically if I know
them."
Gertrude could not help the blush
that crept over her face. She could not remember the last time she had blushed
so profusely... at last she smiled. "Well I suppose, however embarrassing
it may be... it is necessary?"
"Oh yes... it certainly will
help... after orgasm you are at your most receptive... the sperm will be
propelled upwards very vigorously... unless I am very much mistaken, you my
girl... are going to be a pregnant lady.
---------------------------------------------------------------------------
-------------------------------------
Lucy Ashcroft entered the room.
She was amused rather than surprised at the sight that greeted her. The boy was
kneeling on the bed, his knees spread wide and his chest pressed against the
cool leather. His hands were beneath his head with his fore-arms pressed flat
against the leather. His back was arched with his bottom open and accessible.
His testicles hung down, whereas his penis jutted forward, erect and throbbing
with sensation.
Cynthia casually reached
underneath him and slipped his foreskin back and forth a few times, her slender
fingers pinching the throbbing tip before letting go. Timothy was moaned as she
casually kept his throbbing member erect. His bottom cheeks were spread wide
and Lucy could see the glistening gel seeping from his sphincter as she
approached him. The bottom part of the bed had been removed again and Timothy's
feet hung over the end, allowing close and intimate access to his bottom by
standing close to the end of the leather covered surgical bed.
Lucy saw him try and turn his
head as she approached him from the rear. She looked at Cynthia and Susie and
then across at Nurse Dowling who was wheeling a trolley full of instrument
towards the end of the bed.
"I see you have him well
prepared. I am going to take another semen sample from him. It will be a
through extraction so Cynthia, I would like you to manipulate his penis and
Susie if you would use the same procedure as last time to contain his
semen." Lucy moved around the bed to stand by his head. She bent her knees
so that her face was looking straight into his.
"Now young man, I want a
nice big sample from you... and as you have already given one I am going to
have to be a little more vigorous with you this time. Now try not complain too
much, you must remember that this is all for your own good." She extended
her hand and let her delicate fingers trail softly over his burning cheek. She
could see that hips lips were already trembling in shame as she looked into his
eyes. "Now be a good boy and it will all be over before you know it."
Lucy turned to Nurse Dowling,
smiling conspiratorially as she moved to stand behind the boy's widely spread
buttocks. "Now nurse please tell me if he has been a good boy, I hope you
have had no nonsense from him while you have been preparing him."
Nurse Dowling knew exactly the
answer that the doctor wanted. She thought for a moment and then replied,
looking away from Cynthia who was grinning at her. "Well doctor, he did
protest rather a lot when we had to wash him and re-lubricate his bottom. He
made an awful fuss when Cynthia used the number eight nozzle. I would have
thought that he would have got used to that sort of thing by now and
co-operated more, but I suppose little boys are just prone to making a fuss."
Susie spoke before Lucy could
utter a reply. "He was being very tardy when I tried to get him in
position. He took an awfully long time before I could get his knees spread
apart properly. He protested when we made him urinate in the specimen jar, even
though we told him how important it was for checking his health. Oh and you
wouldn't believe the fuss he made when I washed him beneath his prepuce. It is
not as though he has not had the skin pulled back before... he really should
have known better than to protest so."
Lucy could hardly stop herself
from laughing out loud as she leaned gracefully to the side so that she could
see the boys face from behind the raised cheeks of his bottom. "Well
Timothy what have you got to say for yourself. Did you make a fuss while the
nurses were getting you ready?"
Timothy could only blush in
shame. His guilt also fuelled by the embarrassing positions and procedures that
the nurses had made him endure. He could still feel his bottom being stretched
mercilessly wide as the huge nozzle had been inserted up into him. He had cried
out in shock as the plunger had been pressed with vigour, shooting a huge
amount of ice-cold gel up into his bottom. He had protested again when the
nozzle had been removed and Susie had casually slipped her fingers up through
his sphincter and deep into his bottom, massaging his prostate so effectively
that he had been close to ejaculation.
"I... I'mm ... er s..sorry
er misss... er doctor... er I c'couldn't help myself."
"Well you are in a very good
position for a smack bottom... and you know full well your mother's
instructions. A good smack bottom will also help the blood towards your nether
regions... so I am going to give your bottom a sound spanking."
"Oh noooo... er please
doctor... oh please no... please not in front of everyone."
"Well you only have yourself
to blame. You misbehaved in front of the nurses and so you must admit that it
is quite fitting that you should be punished in their presence." Lucy's
voice held no anger, her tone was quite matter-of-fact, as if she were a school
mistress that had resigned herself to the fact that the boy's behaviour
required punishment.
"Oh pleeeease miss, oh
please don't smack me in front of everyone. I promise.. er I will behave. Oh
miss I couldn't bear it."
"I am afraid Timothy you are
going to be smacked... and soundly. I will not tolerate tardiness and defiance
in front of my nurses. Cynthia and Susie, will you please make sure that he
doesn't move... and Nurse Dowling... er.. will you make sure that he keeps his
bottom up."
Timothy could not believe what
was happening as Susie leaned over his shoulders and slipped her hand around
his waist.
He blushed profusely as Cynthia
drew up a chair and sat beside his head, taking hold of his burning cheeks in
her soft hands as she looked into his eyes.
Worse was to come as Nurse
Dowling reached beneath him with both hands, gently encasing his testicles in
one hand while retracting the foreskin of his penis with the other. Almost
nonchalantly, she took a firm grip of the shaft of his penis and stretched the
foreskin back tightly, making the boy desperately try to raise his bottom
higher to evade her touch.
Lucy's voice was measured but
firm as she spoke quietly to him. "Now keep still Timothy and take your
punishment. Come along now get that bottom up." Lucy knew that his bottom
was already entirely accessible, but she enjoyed prolonging the moment of his
imminent chastisement.
As she raised her hand she felt a
sudden thrill deep within her. She brought her hand down, hearing a satisfying
smack as her hand slapped loudly against the timid flesh of his upturned
bottom.
"Smaaaccckkkkk" The
flesh of his bottom seemed to jump beneath her hand as she gave him a second
smack.
Lucy gave in to her feelings as
she proceeded to give the boy a sound spanking. Time after time she raised her
hand, each time aiming for the unprotected flesh of his young bottom. The girls
held him firmly as Nurse Dowling suddenly let go of his testicles and used both
hands on his penis, her palm swishing over the very tip of his erect member. It
seemed to Timothy that her hand was invading the entire depth of his urethra
causing him to buck and try and raise his bottom even further. Lucy admonished
him as she continued to smack his quivering buttocks, her hand finding fresh
areas to redden.
"What a naughty boy you are.
I would have thought you would be ashamed of behaving like a young child... a
big boy like you."
Her delight knew no bounds as the
flesh quivered and shook with each smack. Timothy groaned and moaned in
absolute shame, only to see Cynthia place her face close to his. Her words made
him shudder in utter humiliation as she spoke, her lips only inches from his.
"Poor Timothy... aren't you
absolutely ashamed of yourself having to have your little bottom smacked for
being such a naughty boy." Her voice was low and confiding. He could not
stop himself from flushing a deep shade of crimson as she looked into his eyes
steadily while his bottom was being soundly smacked. Does it hurt terribly
...well you only have yourself to blame... fancy a big boy like you getting a
spanking at your age. What would your girlfriends at school think if they could
see you now, with your bottom up in the air, having to be held down while you
are being given a through smack-bottom?" Timothy almost quaked in
embarrassment. His bottom was smarting from the smacks being rained down upon
it, but his greater anguish came from his utter embarrassment and humiliation.
Cynthia stroked his cheek gently,
her face close to his as she made him look into her eyes. "I think you
must feel a very foolish little boy Timothy... what a poor baby you are having
your bottom spanked... I bet it must be very red by now." Her hand stroked
his cheek softly as he moaned and cried at his spanking. Although the smacks
were not particularly hard, the utter indignity and humiliation of the
situation shook him to the core.
Invariably the incessant smacking
of his bottom began to hurt, he began to plead as his bottom started to burn. He
cried out, utterly ashamed of pleading for mercy.
"Oh pleeeeeease miss... er
pleeeeeease er.. noo more." Lucy delighted in the first response to her
measured spanking. She had known that sooner or later that the pain would take
over from his humiliation. Looking between his widely spread thighs, she could
see that Nurse Dowling was using both hands upon his penis. She placed her left
hand on his hip and slid her fingers around until she could encase his
testicles in her cool fingers. She grasped them firmly as she continued to
smack his bottom.
"Ooooohhh pleeease... noooo
more oh pleeeeeeeeeeeeeease miss. Oh please... please stop now." His
sentence finished with a sob as she began to smack the bottom part of his
bottom cheeks. Delightedly she smacked him methodically and skilfully as the
girls held him still.
Because his pain from her
spanking was accumulative, her voice was quite steady and measured as she
addressed him. "Now don't be a baby... you have been a naughty boy and you
must take your punishment."
He groaned and sobbed as Cynthia
peered at him through her slender wire-framed spectacles. "Be a brave
little boy and take your punishment. It is for your own good... no-one wants
you to grow up and be a bad boy. So push your bottom up for the doctor so that
she can spank you properly."
Cynthia's words added fuel to his
utter humiliation. He could not stop crying out from the pain of his
spanking... and yet felt foolish and humiliated at his actions. He began to sob
as Lucy proceeded with her punishment of him. His cheeks were quite red as she
started from the top of his bottom cheeks again and began to work her way down
the quivering flesh.
She squeezed her legs together
involuntarily as a rush of sexual excitement seemed to invade her body. She had
not foreseen it... it just suddenly happened. She immediately knew that her
desire to spank such a beautiful young boy had been more than a mere whim.
Cynthia's words continued to
crush and dissipate his ego. His humiliation knew no bounds as she spoke to
him. "There... poor baby... you are getting a proper smack bottom now. Is
it hurting you sweetie... it must be very red by now. Try and be brave and keep
your bottom up..." She watched as Nurse Dowling did something beneath
him... suddenly his hips bucked as he tried to evade her fingers. Cynthia
continued, "that's better... you must be a brave little boy and take your
punishment properly."
Timothy was almost beside himself
with pain and humiliation as the doctor suddenly stopped. Her words were clear
and firm as she addressed him. "Well Timothy my boy... are you going to
behave properly or shall I have to fetch my hair-brush to your little
bottom?"
His pleading was music to her
ears as he sobbed amidst his timid answer. "Oh... noooo oh please no miss.
I promise miss... please no more." Lucy released his testicles and moved
around the bed.
"Right young man... I don't
want to hear one more complaint while I carry out your semen extraction... do
you understand me?" Timothy sobbed and tried to nod his head.
"Oh yessss ...miss I
promise."
It was in absolute silence that
the doctor greased her forefinger and middle finger. She resisted the impulse
to plunge them deep into his bottom as Nurse Dowling leaned over him and gently
held the cheeks of his bottom wide. The nurse could not have explained why she
did it, as the cheeks of his bottom were already widely spread. She just
delighted in laying her cool fingers against his burning flesh... perhaps also
delighting in his humiliation as she stretched his bottom wide apart.
Timothy grunted in anguish as the
doctor slid her fingers up through his sphincter, watching as her knuckles
stretched the timid opening wide, penetrating him fully.
"Oooommmppphhhh."
Timothy groaned as suddenly Susie reached beneath him and grasped his testicles
firmly. The nurses ignored his torment as Cynthia stroked his cheek and
whispered to him. "Now promise to be a good little boy while the doctor
stimulates your little bottom and mils your penis."
He shivered as Cynthia stood
upright and took a specimen tube from the trolley behind her. Within his full
view she held it up and spoke to him once more.
"Now we want a nice big
sample now... so let's have no nonsense while the doctor milks you."
Timothy could feel his cheeks
burning at both ends of his body as Cynthia looked at him, her pretty face
giving him a smile of sympathy as she moved to stand by his waist.
"The doctor wasted no time
in stimulating the young boy. Her cool fingers sliding over his throbbing penis
as her other hand moved forward, pushing upwards until she was able to probe
his prostate gland. Her touch was experienced and deft as she used her skill to
elicit a deep sexual response from him.
Her fingers pressed deep inside
his bottom as her other hand coaxed his penis into a hardened throbbing column
of flesh. He could not help crying out in pure sexual torment as Susie, almost
callously grasped his scrotum and squeezed the captive testicles within the
scrotal sac.
"Arggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
He cried out, his torment unheeded as Cynthia bent low with the test tube
poised beneath him, waiting for the tell-tale signs of his impending
ejaculation.
Lucy moved her fingers in and out
of his sphincter, the knuckles stretching the opening to his bottom and aiding
his sexual arousal. Susie watched as the boy began to buck and shake. Suddenly
the boy stiffened, he cried out in utter sexual distress as he began to
ejaculate.
Simultaneously, Cynthia thrust
the glass over the sensitive head of his penis, while Lucy stretched the
foreskin back as tightly as she could. Her other hand prodded his prostate in a
serious of firm jabs as Susie squeezed his testicles and with her free hand
smacked the upturned cheeks of his bottom. Her smacks accompanied each tormented
emission of semen as the boy ejaculated into the glass. His penis mercilessly
exposed to the rapid movements of the specimen tube over the unprotected head
of his penis.
"Arrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrrggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
oohhhh pleeease... oh please noooooooooooooooo." As if without feeling for
his plight, the girls held him in the throes of sexual ecstasy. His body
shivered and shook as in utter abandonment; they milked him deftly and
clinically. His young body shook in spasms as they drained him of every vestige
of semen.
His chest heaved and his
breathing became ragged as they prolonged his orgasm. Suddenly he tensed his
entire body as Lucy slipped a third finger straight up into his bottom. Her
action was accompanied by a loud slap as Susie smacked his upturned bottom
cheeks. Cynthia casually nodded to Lucy who squeezed the base of his penis and
drew her fingers downwards. Cynthia lowered the glass vial and then raised the
rim to catch the last globule of semen. Suddenly the boy seemed to lose all
control, his body becoming heavy and uncoordinated as he collapsed into a near
faint.
Quickly they lowered him flat
onto his tummy, his exhausted body slapping the leather as he lay with his legs
stretching over the end of the bed. Cynthia looked at him, knowing that he had
fainted... she quickly checked his breathing before handing the glass tube to
the doctor.
In contrast to their previous
actions, they smoothed and caressed and tended his body. As he awoke he felt
his body being washed with cooling water. Gently Cynthia bathed him as Susie
began to apply a cooling gel to his tender bottom cheeks. It was nurse Dowling
who bent her head to his and whispered to him. Poor baby... you have had a time
haven't you. Never mind... I am going to run you a nice warm bath and bathe
you... don't worry sweetheart... I will take very good care of you.
Helen Dowling meant every word,
although having his body at her mercy had aroused her, she knew that he was in
need of some loving care and attention. What might come after that... she had
yet to decide. She was delighted that he was being left in her care, her shift
did not finish until six in the morning and Timothy was her only patient.
It was over forty minutes later
that Nurse Dowling had decided that the boy was fit enough to walk with her to
the bath room. After the doctor and both Cynthia and Susan had left, she had
covered him with a sheet as he lay face down upon the bed.
She was aware that he had drifted
into sleep, leaving her time to prepare the bathroom as she wanted it. She had
checked him several times during her preparations. The last time she had
checked him she could see that he was waking.
Rather than embarrass the boy
immediately, she had procured a dressing gown which she put on the chair beside
the bed. The bathroom door was situated at the end of the room and it was from
there that she called gently to him.
"Timothy, there is a
dressing gown on the chair... if you would like to put it on and then walk
through to here. I am in the bathroom... take your time there is no hurry.
Helen reached behind the door of
the bathroom and took a clear plastic apron from the hook. She was delighted to
see Timothy sheepishly walk through the door. His boyish good looks delighted
her as she looked into his already blushing face. He looked at her anxiously,
eyeing the bath that was half filled with warm water. The bath, rather than
being plumbed in against the wall was free standing allowing access to all
sides. Above it were safety rails descending from the ceiling which enabled
patients to stand up in the bath without falling.
She saw his apprehension and
smiled at him good naturedly. "Now I know that you are no-longer a little
boy... and I am sure that you are quite capable of bathing yourself. I am not
supposed to leave you while you are in the bathroom, but I am sure I can trust
you to get in the bath without me having to help you.
So if you get yourself into the
bath, there is some soap on the side to start washing yourself with. I promise
I won't peek until you are in."
She pulled a face as she said the
last sentence, putting the boy more at ease. She left the bathroom and crossed
to the instrument trolley, taking several items from it before retuning to the
bathroom. She knew that the boy would have got into the water as quickly as
possible. As she approached the door she could hear him already splashing in
the water.
"Are you in yet...
Timothy?" She called with some humour in her voice. Timothy could not help
laughing as he heard her words. "Oh er ... yes er nurse, I have started
washing thank you.
"Well I'm coming through...
so be warned." The laughter in her voice belied Timothy's apprehension. He
looked down at the bathwater once more to make sure that the now soapy water
covered his body.
Nurse Dowling walked into the
room; again she admired his upper body as he sat in the bath soaping his arms
and around his shoulders. She sat on the edge of the tub, just behind his as
she held out her hand for the soap. "If you give me the soap I will do your
back for you... don't be shy, I'll try not to look." Timothy blushed
mildly... but her good natured banter had put him far more at ease. He handed
her the soap and felt her soft hands immediately upon his shoulders.
He had not bargained for the
gentle way that she touched him, soaping around his back, before slipping her
hands beneath his arms and gently washing his armpits. Her gentle, almost
delicate touch played havoc with his senses. Her light perfume and close
proximity to him, seemed to lull him as she slipped her hands completely under
his arms and began to soap his chest.
He could feel her bare forearms
slip and slide underneath his arms as she carefully and lovingly washed him.
"My you will be a nice clean
boy won't you? Now just lay with your head back against the end of the tub
while I wash your hair." She laid the soap down and picked up a jug of
water from beside the bath. He laid with his head back as she cupped her hand
and held it against his forehead. "Now squeeze your eyes shut while I wet
your hair. She instructed as she began to pour the warm water over his head.
"Now keep them shut tight
now... I don't want to get soap in your eyes." The gentleness of her voice
seemed to lull him even further as he lay with his head back and his eyes
squeezed tightly shut.
She began to lather his hair with
a mild shampoo, her delicate fingers moving over his ears and the nape of his
neck. She lifted his head slightly as her fingers washed and caressed his head.
She smoothed around his cheeks and down under his chin, her fingers stroking
and soothing his flesh as she washed him.
"Now just let me rinse your
hair." She whispered as she picked up the jug and carefully washed the
soap from him. She ran her fingers through his hair several times until she was
sure that his hair was squeaky clean of soap. She leaned forward so that her
lips were close to his ear as she whispered. "No you just lie back and
soak for a while... I'll be here to keep and eye on you." She noticed to
her delight that he relaxed his eyes but had not opened them as he lay with his
head resting on the end of the tub.
She relished the opportunity to
admire him without being observed. His features were truly perfect she thought,
as she gazed at him. She sat for several minutes examining the contours of his
face and upper body, letting him repose comfortably in the soapy warm water.
Timothy was almost asleep as she
spoke to him. She seated herself on the side of the bath again, but this time
with her body facing him. She patted his cheek gently until he opened his eyes.
He did not seem at all anxious as she spoke to him. "Right do you think
you can lift your legs one at a time so that I can wash your feet?" She
made another funny face as she moved further down the bath towards the taps.
"I am sure you can do it modestly if you try." Timothy blushed but at
the same time placed his hands beneath the water, obviously covering his
genitals as he carefully raised one leg out of the water.
"That's fine" She said
as she held his ankle with one soapy hand, before she began to lather his calf
with the other. She knew that it would have been difficult for him to hold his
leg up while she washed it. Her hand soaped over his feet, her slender fingers
slipping in and out almost sensuously between his toes. Moments later she asked
for the other leg, again soaping in between his toes before letting him put his
leg back under the water.
She had worked out exactly how to
handle the next part as she stood up and looked at him. "Sometimes Timothy
being in hospital can be a bit embarrassing for patients, so let's make a
compromise for the next bit. I have to erm... wash your middle. So if I turn my
back will you be very good and stand up with your back to me. You can tell me
when you are ready and then I will turn around. You must hold on to the safety
rail with both hands. You are such a tall young man that it should not be much
of a stretch for you."
Timothy flushed, the colour
flooding his cheeks in an instant. He looked at the nurse, who made another funny
face, trying to put him at his ease as she spoke. "I know... I know, but
it is the only solution I can think of. I have to do it whether I like it or
not, so will you help me out, mmm Timothy?" Timothy looked worried, his
face blushing again, but he nodded to her. Her good humour had seemed to
deflate some of his embarrassment as she gave him another funny face, before
turning her back on him. "Oh and do me a favour Timothy, tell me as soon
as you have both hands on the safety rail... I forgot, I am not supposed to let
you stand up without watching you."
Her request seemed to cover some
of the embarrassment as Timothy got up from the bath. He looked down at himself
and breathed a sigh of relief when he saw that his penis was flaccid. He
reached up just above his head and took a firm hold of the bar with both hands.
He squeezed his legs tight together before he turned his head to the right and
spoke to the young nurse.
"Er... er... I'm er ready
nurse."
Helen Dowling turned around and
looked at the boy's naked body for the first time on her own. She knew that he
would not have spread his legs on his own volition, but took the opportunity to
examine him as he was. His body she felt sure was the most perfect of any human
she had ever seen, narrow hips, perfectly contoured and firm bottom, reasonably
broad shoulders without bulk and of course a perfectly slender waist. She moved
behind him, feeling him flinch as she laid her hand gently on his hip.
"Thanks Timothy... you are a
friend... now just spread your legs for me." She could not see him blush
as he reluctantly began to shuffle his legs apart. "I'm afraid you will
have to spread them a little bit further than that Timothy. I'll tell you
what... you keep spreading them until I tell you when they are O.K."
Again she did not see his face
flush with embarrassment, but she did hear the deep sigh as he began to spread
his legs. Helen and no intention of letting him off the hook as she waited
patiently until his legs were widely spread.
"That's fine... now don't be
embarrassed this won't take too long."
Helen knew that by the time she
had finished with him he would be blushing furiously. She had been given her
instructions and she knew that she would carry them out to the letter however
much she liked the young boy. She also knew that even if she had not been
instructed, she would not have let such a beautiful young boy slip through her
fingers.
She savoured the moment as she
took the soap and thoroughly lathered her hands. The prospect of having the boy
to herself thrilled her so much so that she squeezed her legs together. She
felt a little stab of pleasure course through the flesh of her smooth and
hairless pubis.
She placed her hands upon him as
if he was a sacred object, her smooth soapy fingers gently holding him at
either side of his narrow waist. She felt his body tremble as she smoothed her
hands lower over his hips and down the outer sides of his thighs. She began
washing him in earnest, moving downwards towards his knees, gently soaping his
lower legs before taking her hands away and applying more lather. She hesitated
for a moment before she placed her hands flat against the cheeks of his bottom.
She heard his indrawn breath as she began to wash his buttocks, her hands
becoming bolder until she had insinuated her fingers between the deep cleft of
his bottom.
Her voice was cool and clinical
as she spoke to him. "Just relax your buttocks; I have to wash you
here." She illustrated the fact by sliding her fingers over the delicate
puckered rosebud of his sphincter, her touch becoming more insistent as she
probed the opening of his bottom.
"Just relax... there we are
now." Her words punctuated her actions as she slipped her forefinger up
into his bottom. His gasp was cut short by a sharp intake of breath as she slid
a second soapy finger up into him.
"ooohhhh oh er
ooooohhhh."
His groans had scarcely escaped
from his lips when he felt her other hand slide down over his left buttock and
up into the gap between his legs. He gasped again as she smoothed her hand over
his scrotum before taking hold of his penis, immediately slipping the foreskin
back to the base of the shaft.
"Just relax now sweetheart,
this won't take long."
Her words did not alleviate any
of the young boy's embarrassment; in fact they inflamed it as she began to
manipulate his flaccid member. Her hands began to stimulate him; expertly and
skilfully she aroused him using her knowledge and experience to elicit a deep
moan from his lips.
Slowly her long slender fingers
seemed to entwine with the most sensitive parts of his timid young manhood.
Deftly she matched and coordinated the movements of her fingers inside his
bottom with those wrapped around his rapidly engorging penis.
"Arggghh Oooohhh hooo
misss." Timothy could not help himself as his penis erected fully. He
shivered and gasped as her fingers sunk deep inside his bottom. With a
practiced thrust she quickly located his prostate and began to probe the soft
gland with a deep thrusting motion.
"Arggghhhh...oooohhhhh
nooooooooooooooohhh." He cried as his penis began to throb incessantly.
She gave him no respite as her fingers moved sensuously over the pulsing flesh.
Her body pressed against his buttocks as she sought extra purchase for her
fingers inside his young bottom.
"Oh pleeeease er
nooooohhh." He pleaded as she brought his arousal up to the next level.
"Now just relax Timothy, I
have to do this. It's for your own good now... just relax your bottom a little
more, there's a good boy."
She did not wait for any
relaxation, instead her fingers roamed deep within him as she stretched his
sphincter even wider. Suddenly she thrust hard, at the same time retracting his
foreskin until the skin was stretched tight. Before he could recover she
wrapped her fingers around the bared head... and forming her fingers into a
circle, moved them in a rapid blur of motion up and down over the sensitive
rim.
"Argggggggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh...
oh please nooooohhh."
He squirmed and swayed his hips
to try and escape his torment, his head raised towards the ceiling as he gasped
for breath. Helen felt his sphincter suddenly begin to contract in a series of
spasms, heralding his imminent ejaculation. Without warning she changed the
orientation of her fingers inside his bottom. Immediately she changed from her
probing to a rapid scissor-like motion, the tips of her fingers scoring across
the surface of his prostate. She tightened the circle of her fingers as she
rapidly milked her hand up and down the bared flesh of his penis.
She knew that the boy was
engulfed in sexual anguish as almost callously she increased the speed of her
fingers. Amazingly her voice was cool and calm, showing no trace of her rapid
manipulation of his sexual organs as she spoke to him.
"Just hold tight sweetie, it
will all be over soon... just a little longer now."
He shivered and shook, his knees
trembling as he began to ejaculate. Helen felt a pure and unadulterated thrill
of delight course through her body as she milked and probed the young boy to a
tortured and agonizing ejaculation. "Arrrrrrrgggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhh...
oooooooooohhhhhhhhhhhhh. Nooooo oh please
nooooooooooooooooooooooooooohhhhhhhhhhh."
Timothy was beside himself... he
could not believe the sensations that this innocent young nurse was producing
within his body. He shivered and shook as semen spurted from his penis. Each
ejaculation seemed to be being torn from his body as the nurse expertly milked
him, her hands allowing him no respite as she spurred him to new heights of
sexual anguish and torment.
Helen peered around his slim
waist in time to see his semen spurting over the edge of the bath and onto the
floor beyond.
Timothy gasped and groaned... his
body shivering uncontrollably as the young nurse seemed to hold him orgasmic
suspension.
"There we are sweetie, its
nearly over now just hold on for a little longer... what a good boy you
are."
Her words seemed to inflame him
further as her hand flew over his penis in a rapid blur of motion. Diligently
and rapidly she milked his penis until he was totally spent. He groaned in
utter despair as the fingers within his bottom prodded him until he could
ejaculate no more. His body felt drained and limp as finally the young nurse
slowed her hands to a stop.
"Hooohhh harrggghhh."
He groaned as he drew in a deep
lung-full of air. His body shivered and shook as Helen gently extracted her
fingers from his bottom. She patted his penis in a condescending gesture as she
withdrew her hand from between his widely spread thighs.
She moved around the bath to
stand in front of him. His head hung down and his eyes seemed to have moved to
the top of their sockets as he groaned in utter sexual fatigue. Gracefully she
stooped and reached for the soap, lathering her hands she gently and carefully
washed him.
Her hand slid smoothly between
his legs as she gently soaped his testicles. Carefully she lifted his plump
penis between finger and thumb and pulled the foreskin back to reveal the bared
flesh beneath.
"Just grasp the rail tightly
Timothy," she warned as she suddenly wrapped her soapy fingers around the
timid flesh and held his penis captive. She felt him shudder and shake as she
washed the tender flesh.
"Just hold on... there we
are... well done Timothy."
"Ohhhhh.. oh arggghhh."
He groaned as she rinsed his penis and placed her hand on his thigh.
"Now come along let me help
you out of the bath and get you dried... my you have had a traumatic day!"
Any pretence at saving his
modesty had long gone as she made him stand with his legs wide apart while she
dried him. He had tried to cover himself several times, in the end she had
resorted to making him stand with his hands on his head.
She even ignored his shiver of
anguish as she dried the sensitive flesh beneath his foreskin. His face was
flushed to a deep crimson of shame and humiliation by the time Helen had
finished. She had made him bend over the chair, smacking his bottom like a
child when he protested. Once in position she had spread his buttocks while she
had dried between the crevice of his bottom. His final indignity of the evening
was still to come as she sat down on the chair in front of him.
She picked up a can of talcum
powder and patted her knees. "Come along Timothy, over my knees so that I
can powder your bottom. He groaned and looked at her, his face contorted into a
mask of shame. "Oh pleeease er, not that... er miss oh please don't make
me do that... please."
"I'm sorry sweetie, but you
have to obey me. This is part of what I have to do... just think how naughty
you are being questioning everything." She looked up at him, her beautiful
face looking stern as she caught his eye.
"Right shall we say six
smacks for every second you stand there and argue with me Timothy?"
The boy looked shocked as she sat
primly before him. Her knees were pressed together, but the hem of her white
nursing uniform hung down to one side revealing much of her tanned thighs. She
looked cool and calm as she sat looking up at him. She did not utter another
word as she saw the look of resignation appear on the young boy's crimson face.
Even after all the indignities of
the day, Timothy could not help the deep flush of red that suffused his cheeks
as he moved to stand at her side. Shivering with utter humiliation he leaned
forward... completely at a loss as to what to do next.
"Come along bend right
over... reach out for the floor... there that's the way." She caught him
around the waist, watching him in his abject shame as he lowered his hands and
bent right over her knees. He almost flopped onto her lap as she pulled him
down. He felt utterly stupid lying over her knees like a child waiting for a
smack-bottom. He flinched as he felt the touch of her cool palm for the first
time. It was in utter delight that she impudently smoothed her hands over his
bottom.
He looked down at the tiled floor
in despair, horribly aware of the nakedness of his bottom upturned to her view.
He almost jumped out of his skin as she spoke to him again.
"Right Timothy, I am going
to take your temperature first. I want you to reach back with your hands and spread
the cheeks of your bottom for me."
Timothy could not believe his
ears as the young nurse patted the cheeks of his bottom as if to illustrate the
point. He groaned in anguish as awkwardly he reached back, timidly holding the
cheeks of his bottom. Helen smiled to herself as she continued her instruction.
"Right pull your bottom
cheeks apart, now don't be naughty... just follow my instructions when I tell
you to do something."
She took a rectal thermometer
from her top pocket as she gazed down at his body. She delighted at the sight
of him as he timidly grasped the cheeks of his bottom; his head was raised,
looking forward rather than at the floor as he struggled with the task. She
could feel that his penis was lying between the juncture of her legs. She
relaxed her knees, immediately feeling his plump member slip between her
thighs.
In a haze of utter humiliation,
Timothy pulled the cheeks of his bottom apart. He could feel the cool air
against his sphincter as he stretched his trembling cheeks. His embarrassment
was absolute as she spoke to him once more.
"Just pull them apart a
little more so that I can see you properly." He gasped in anguish as he
pulled at the cheeks of his bottom, spreading them with an even firmer
pressure.
"Now try and relax your
bottom, I don't want to use too much lubricant otherwise you will feel messy
all night." He shivered as she suddenly pressed the tip of the thermometer
against his sphincter. It was all he could do to hold his cheeks apart as she
began to prod and probe with the Pyrex glass tip. She reached her hand back to
the instrument trolley behind her and carefully dipped just the tip of the
bulbous tube into the jar of gel. She turned back to her task holding the
thermometer delicately as gently touched it to his sphincter once more.
Helen felt a cruel delight in the
prodding of his sphincter. She bent her head, watching the pinkish rosebud
recoil as she teased it. Carefully she continued to tease the tight orifice
until she saw the muscle begin to dilate. Feeling a sudden thrill she pushed
the tip of the thermometer firmly, feeling him shiver as the glass slipped
through the stricture of muscle.
"Arrrggghhh oh oh
hoooo"
He gasped, expelling his breath
in an anguished burst of pent up embarrassment and humiliation. He felt
absolutely childish as he lay naked across her lap. The ignominy of having to
hold the cheeks of his bottom open for her while she inserted the thermometer
shamed him through and through.
Helen was delighting in the
situation. Skilfully she worked the smooth glass tube up into his bottom. She
ignored his gasps and groans, knowing full well that the teasing of his bottom
had had other effects upon him. She could feel his penis stir between her legs
as slowly and inexorably she slid the widening glass tube right up into his
anus until it was almost out of sight.
She let go of the thermometer and
laid her hand upon his bottom, her finger tips trailing down the crevice to
touch the flesh below.
Timothy could not have explained
why he felt so humbled by the simple act of her placing her hand over his
bottom cheek. Perhaps it was a manifestation of his utter vulnerability and her
complete control over him. He gasped at her touch, his face flushed as he
strained to keep his buttocks widely spread for her.
"There we are, all nicely
tucked away in your bottom. You can relax your bottom now and put your hands on
the floor until I am ready to take the thermometer out of your little
bottom."
She smoothed both hands over his
buttocks. The flesh felt soft and smooth as she slipped the fingers of her
right hand down between the juncture of his legs. She heard him gasp and
quickly draw in his breath as her fingertips played over the base of his
scrotum. Moving her hips slightly she managed to slip her hand around the
swollen sac, marvelling at the fullness of his testes as she held them gently.
"Any pain here
Timothy?" she asked sweetly as she gently tickled the puckered skin with
her fingertips. She heard him gasp once more as she squeezed the soft orbs of
flesh before extricating her hand.
"I presume your silence is
that you don't feel any pain in your testicles Timothy!"
She thought that perhaps his mind
was occupied concentrating on his losing battle to stop his penis from
erecting. She was amused to think that by the time she let him up from her
knees that he would be displaying a full and vigorous but shameful erection.
She thrilled as she felt the
first throb of arousal from his penis; carefully she shifted her position to
allow the swollen flesh of his plump organ to hang down fully between her
parted thighs. Deliciously she squeezed her legs together, feeling an answering
throb as the soft smooth flesh of her thighs closed over his penis.
Timothy's mind was in turmoil, he
could feel his erection growing as he desperately tried to control it, suddenly
it seemed to be encased in cool pliant flesh as it hung down between her
thighs.
She stayed silent as she listened
to his ragged breathing; little by little she felt his organ grow. She was
careful not to stimulate him overtly, instead preferring far subtler methods as
she traced her fingers over the soft smoothness of his bottom cheeks.
"Right, let's have a look at
your temperature. Stretch your arms back and spread your cheeks."
She accompanied her instruction
with a light slap across both the hillocks of his bottom.
Again Timothy gasped and groaned
as he stretched his arms backwards and pulled the cheeks of his bottom apart.
She slapped his bottom again as she admonished him like one would a child.
"Come along now... let's
have those cheeks widely spread."
She put her hand next to his and
stretched the flesh until it would stretch no further. "Now keep them well
spread like that, while I have a look at your little bottom."
Her words brought another rapid
flush of blood to his face as she teased the end of the glass tube.
Deliberately she moved it from side to side as she slipped it from his
sphincter.
"My... your temperature is
absolutely perfect. I thought that you might have been a little feverish with
all that gasping and groaning you have been doing." She patted his bottom
as she placed the thermometer on the floor beside her, ready to take it for
sterilisation.
Her pronouncement of his
temperature shamed him thoroughly...as if had been caught not telling the
truth.
"Now young man, I have to
have a serious word with you. You have been a very naughty little boy. Do I
have to smack your bottom or are you going to behave and let me powder your
cheeks without fuss?"
"Er no miss, er I mean that
I er... will be good."
His stammered reply pleased
Helen. Although she would have dearly loved to have smacked his bottom, she
knew that she would have him to herself every night of this week. She also
presumed, quite correctly, that she would have plenty of opportunity to
progress her mastery of the young boy. She looked at his sweet face, noting
that he was blushing quite profusely as she turned her torso and reached for
the talcum powder from the instrument tray.
---------------------------------------------------------------------------
-----------------------------------
Even though it was only seven
thirty in the morning, the sun shone brightly through the bamboo slatted blinds
of the cosmetic treatment room. Four girls stood in the centre of the room laughing
and talking as they waited for their supervisor. It seems to be a fact that
girls, who work in cosmetics, are usually far prettier than their clients. All
four of the girls within clinic were stunningly beautiful.
They were dressed in smart pink tunics,
each with a broad belt accenting their tiny waists. All of the girls had dark
hair which was styled in a similar manner to each other; a severe style which
was cut high at the back and then descended to the jaw-line in a sheer wing. On
top of their heads they each wore a small nurse's hat. The hats were quite
dainty and very fashionable, matching their tunics perfectly. Each girl was
exquisitely made up; their lips all in the same shade of lipstick, light powder
dusting over their impeccable complexions and their eye shadow again in
matching colour.
The room was brightly decorated
in various subdued shades of pink and magenta. On the walls were large colour
posters showing the results of various cosmetic treatments that were available
at the clinic. Close-up shots of lips and eyes were interspaced with pictures
of exquisitely shaped nude young women, their perfect bodies photographed to
perfection.
Below the pictures were pink
marble topped counters. Upon the clinically clean and gleaming surfaces were
the instruments which the girls used to do their work. They were laid out in
row upon row; most were made of gleaming stainless steel or chromium plate. Set
high in the ceiling above the centre of the room was a large adjustable arm
which held an operating lamp. Within the fixture were hung a series of metal
braided flexible cables. At the end of each cable there was attached a pencil
shaped stainless steel device, looking rather like a dentist's drill.
Below the operating lamp, which
still had to be turned on, was an open space surrounded by surgical trolleys.
The trolleys held surgical trays which were neatly filled with lotions, towels,
jugs and a variety of paraphernalia. By the side of each trolley was an
ultra-modern chromium-plated chair. Each chair was mounted on rather
technical-looking castors which enabled the chairs to move easily over the
shiny pale grey rubber flooring.
The girls stopped talking and
turned towards the door, each smiling a greeting as Judith Gains walked into
the room. Judith smiled back at her four young cosmetologists, immediately
noting that their appearance was immaculate. Judith was a most beautiful young
woman, tall and neatly featured with short, severely cut ash-blonde hair. Her
mouth was small and prettily shaped as was her nose. Her eyes were deep blue
and had the effect of holding ones attention. Her body was lithe, with small
pointed breasts and a narrow waist which accented her hips and long perfectly
proportioned legs.
Judith was aware of her good
looks and realised that many women that attended the clinic would have like to
have looked as good as her. It is often the case that beautiful women seem to
enjoy the company of others who share their beauty and it was perhaps this that
made the clinic so successful.
Judith stood looking them up and
down thoughtfully for a moment before coming to a decision. She reached towards
the nearest girl and undid the top three buttons of her tunic until she could
clearly see the girl's cleavage. "That's better Susan... now why don't you
all follow suit. I have a rather nice surprise for you this morning. You are
all going to be doing electrolysis... a complete pubic area as well as buttock
cleft. Even with all four of you working, it will still probably take all
morning so if you would like to prepare your equipment."
All of the four girls at the
clinic had completed the four year course in electrolysis. Their skill and
dexterity with the procedure was such that the clinic's claim of a providing a
`painless procedure' was indeed true. The new units that the girls used did not
have to penetrate the skin and yet provided complete depilation of hair with no
chance of re-growth. Although the girls still referred the procedure as
electrolysis, the new units, rather than using an electrical charge, emit
nano-second bursts of radio waves at such high frequencies and amplitudes that
they immediately destroy the root of the hair.
Susan looked at her supervisor
and smiled. "We often do electrolysis together... and we have done lots of
`completes'... so what is the surprise... is she a celebrity?"
Judith smiled as she saw that she
had all of the girls' full attention. "No... it's not a celebrity... and
it's not a `she'... it's a `he'. Judith laughed as she heard the girls' indrawn
breath in unison - and the look of sheer surprise on their beautiful young
faces. Before that could utter a word, she continued. "What's more... he
is the most delightful looking young boy."
Their questions came fast and
furious. "Why does he want it done?" "Who is he?" "How
old is he?"
Judith smiled at them and held up
her hands. "His name is Timothy... he has been ordered to have it done by
Dr. Ashcroft, so he has no choice in the matter. He has already been shaved
recently, but his hair has grown sufficiently for electrolysis. His complete
denuding is to facilitate his treatment... which is..." she paused,
holding the wide eyed girls in suspense... to be made to ejaculate several
times a day as he is producing too much semen... which in turn is making his testicles
swollen and painful. Now I don't know any more details other than that he will
be here soon and I believe... already in stirrups."
Judith looked at each girl in
turn. She noted that Susan was blushing slightly. Jane also seemed to be
flushed, perhaps with excitement, Judith thought. Alison and June both seemed
to have a flush to their cheeks as they began to pull the electrolysis cables
down into position. Judith watched as Jane moved to the wall panel and pressed
the switch that would initialise the lighting of the large operating theatre
lamp.
After the girls had finished
their various tasks they each stood by their instrument trolleys. Judith
noticed that they were all looking at her. She knew exactly what was on their
minds, but did not speak further. Instead she stood smiling at them until one
of the girls bucked up courage to ask the question which was obviously on every
single one of the girls minds. It was Jane that finally broached the subject.
"Er... what do we do if he... erm gets an erection? I mean we will have to
erm... handle his penis and..." She paused. "well... his
testicles."
Judith smiled. "Well it will
probably make your job easier... I mean if his penis is standing up out of the
way." She laughed, noting that there still seemed to be a question hanging
on the girls' lips. Jane looked at the other girls and then spoke again, her
face colouring up into a pretty blush.
"What... if he erm cums...
er I mean ejaculates. I mean if he is young and obviously virile... I mean...
what do we do?"
Judith smiled. "I was just
waiting for you to ask. I specifically asked the doctor that very question. Her
answer was... that she understands perfectly that you will have to handle the
boy intimately. She has instructed that you are perfectly at liberty to handle
him as you wish and that if you feel that he needs to ejaculate... that you may
erm... aid him in this. If I can put it a little more clearly you can stimulate
him to ejaculation... as many times as you like. He is already being erm...
milked, yes I think that is a good term to use... in seven sessions a day. And
he is made to ejaculate twice during each session. So that is fourteen times a
day. The boy has obviously a very large capacity for producing semen."
She smiled at the flushed faces
of the girls, noting their astonished expressions as she continued. "The
poor boy will obviously be stimulated... even by looking at you... so it won't
come as a surprise if he becomes... erm... over excited." Judith continued
to smile but her tone became a little more serious as she looked at each girl
in turn.
"Oh one more thing... I am
told that he is a lovely boy... and he will naturally be embarrassed... so be
kind to him." Judith looked at the girls again, her expression showing a
hint of amusement at the corners of her pretty lips.
"If you feel embarrassed
about making him ejaculate I can always send for one of the nurses to milk him
for you... would you all prefer that?"
It was Jane again that looked at
the other girls and then back at Judith. "Can we see how it goes, before
answering that question?"
Judith smiled at her and then at
the other girls. "Of course... and I will be around all morning... so if
you have any problems... just ask me."
Judith turned and walked through
to her office which was situated through a `screened-off' reception area at the
far end of the room. She smiled as she heard one of the girls open the double
doors that led directly through into the corridor, to facilitate the entry of a
hospital bed. She knew that the girls would be having a quick discussion as
soon as she closed her office door.
True to form, the girls stood
together in the middle of the room. It was June who spoke first. "If he is
really nice looking... erm I don't think it would be, erm... too difficult... er
if you see what I mean." Jane smiled as June stammered with some
embarrassment. She looked at Susan. It seemed as if they were all of a similar
mind. Jane spoke, her authority giving her an attentive audience. "Lets
wait and see what he is like... er... and then we can decide... if he is as
lovely as Judith says then I don't think any of us would be too alarmed at the
prospect."
It was almost ten minutes later
that Jane heard the click of the operating light as it automatically came to
full brightness, illuminating the centre of the room. A few seconds afterwards,
another sound was heard, this time in the corridor which lay beyond the opened
double-doors. June looked around, as did all of the girls, as a hospital bed
was pushed through into the room. Curiously all the girls seemed to blush in
unison as they watched two young nurses wheel the bed towards the centre of the
room.
The foot of the bed was facing
towards them. A large green hospital sheet covered the raised stirrups right
down to the castors on the floor. Because of the height of the stirrups, which
were also set widely apart, the girls could see nothing of the boy's face until
the bed reached the centre of the room beneath the operating lamp. All of the
girls looked down at him. Only his blushing face was visible to the girls as
they gathered around the bed. Rather than make any contact with his eyes the
girls looked at the two nurses, who smiled at them rather conspiratorially.
"His name is Timothy, he's a
lovely boy... so take good care of him for us. If he needs to have a little
wee-wee, I have left a jar under the bed. He has been given a most thorough
enema and a good scrub in the bath. " The nurse tousled the young boy's
hair, causing him to blush even more profusely as both of the nurses turned to
leave the room, thoughtfully closing the double doors behind them.
Jane looked at the boy. Pleased
for the moment, that he was looking up at the ceiling in embarrassment. She
could see that he was doing his best to avoid the interested looks from all of
the girls.
He is beautiful thought Jane. He
has the most perfect of all good looks. She thrilled as her eyes followed the
contours of his body hidden beneath the sheet. She could see that his torso was
slim but could see nothing more because of the sheet, which was stretched
upwards over his raised knees and over his feet. It was obvious that his thighs
must have been placed as wide apart as was physically possible. She felt a
thrill run through her slim body as she wondered what the nurses must have felt
when they were setting the stirrups to such a wide extremity.
Jane caught sight of June and
Alison's slightly flushed faces as they moved closer to the boy, standing
prettily at either side of the bed. They were looking down at him, almost in
sympathy at his predicament, as his face flushed a deep crimson. Susan spoke to
him; her words adding to his absolute shame. "Right let's have the sheet
off and have a look at you. Would you give me a hand Jane?"
Both June and Alison watched his
face as Jane and Susan lifted the sheet from the floor at the foot of the bed
and carefully uncovered his feet before slipping the sheet over his shins
towards the head of the bed.
Timothy gasped, feeling cool air
around his bottom as the sheet was lifted upwards. He closed his eyes in
shameful anguish as he felt the sheer cotton slip down over his knees and
thighs.
He was aware that his genitals
were already open to view from the foot of the bed as the material brushed over
his penis and was gathered up onto his chest. June and Alison took the sheet
and lifted it away from his body and folded it between them before June took it
and slipped it on the tray under the bed.
Jane was able to look at the
naked boy for the first time. She let her eyes take in every detail of his
body. She noted the perfect skin complexion the lovely long thighs, his firm
young bottom and the utterly delightful sight of his tight scrotum bulging
beneath his plump penis. She felt a tremble of sheer pleasure run through her
body as she savoured the site of the young boy stretched out in the most
vulnerable of positions... almost as if he were on offer for her very own
delectation.
Jane knew that the other girls
were already doing much the same as she. She smiled to herself, confident in
the knowledge that they could not help savouring such a perfect body and face.
Timothy was in anguish, feeling
utterly ashamed at his humiliating position, acutely aware that his knees were
raised high and spread wide apart. He could feel the cool air between the
cheeks of his bottom reminding him that his buttocks were also widely spread
apart. He was acutely conscious that his penis was hanging down between his
widely spread thighs, available for everyone to view.
He opened his eyes as Alison
gently laid her cool hand against his chest. He looked up to see the
exquisitely pretty girl looking down at him. She spoke softly as her eyes
examined his blushing face. "Now Timothy, we are going to remove your hair
with electrolysis. It doesn't hurt so I want you to lie back and relax. You may
sometimes feel a little tingle, but nothing more. Would you like something to
drink before we start?"
Timothy could hardly speak, such
was his acute embarrassment. "er...erm... er no miss." Timothy did
not want to have to use the jar beneath the bed that the nurse had referred to.
He shuddered in shame as he
suddenly felt a hand touch the inside of his thigh. He could not help looking
down between his legs. To his horror two of the girls had drawn their chairs to
sit side by side between his legs. Their hands suddenly touching the inside of
his thighs as they reached upwards and took hold of the instruments which were
hanging down from their cables. He watched as the other two girls drew their
chairs up to sit at either side of his hips. Suddenly as if on cue he felt all
of their hands upon his skin.
He shivered as the girls nearest
to his head, placed their free hands upon his stomach, at the same time
reaching upwards for their instruments in a practised manner. He watched as they
drew the pencil-like apparatus downwards; the girl to his left, casually
sliding her hand down to his pubis and stretching the skin as she placed the
tip of the instrument on his flesh. He felt a tickling sensation as she began
to work. He blushed as the second girl looked at him, catching him unawares as
she smiled sweetly and spoke.
"There Timothy, you see it
doesn't hurt at all." As soon as she had spoken, she too stretched the
skin of his pubis as she bent forward, her pretty face only inches away from
his genitals.
He gasped as another hand was
slipped between the cheeks of his bottom, stretching the flesh outwards as
gentle fingers carefully lifted his testicles. He could not help the gasp that
escaped from his lips as their soft hands and fingers touched him all over his
exposed pubis. He felt something score against his flesh and looked down to see
that one of the girls was drawing lines with a blue marker-pencil around his
penis and testicles. He quickly looked away as one of the girls looked up at
him. His embarrassment was so acute that he tried to distance himself from the
situation.
A buzzing and clicking sound
permeated the silence in the room as the girls bent their heads forward to
examine his most intimate flesh.
He could not believe his
predicament as they nonchalantly went to work on his timid and naked body. He
could feel their cool hands and soft touch as they began to apply the
electrodes to the short hairs that had re-grown since he had been so
embarrassingly shaved.
Timothy looked up at the ceiling
and bit his lip as he felt their soft hands, seemingly everywhere around his
genitals and bottom crease. His shame was compounded at the thought that their
faces were so close to his most private parts... and the utter dread in the back
of his mind that he might become erect.
Jane looked at Susan as they both
began work between his legs. She could see that although Susan's face was still
flushed it seemed to be more with excitement than perhaps that of
embarrassment. Susan looked back at Jane; her lips were slightly parted as she
leaned her head forward and whispered in her ear. "He's quite the most
beautiful thing I have ever seen," Jane watched her as she moved her head
forward, her face only inches from his penis as she began to work quickly upon
the boy's most intimate area.
Timothy looked up at the ceiling,
his mind in turmoil as he fought to inhibit his emotions. He bit his lip as
their hand moved over his tender flesh. He was blushing profusely at the
ignominy of his position. Their peripatetic touches caressed and aroused his
flesh, whether by mischievous design or merely in the need to access their
areas of work... the result was same. He felt an all too familiar stirring in
his loins.
The girls worked quickly, their
handling of the pencil-like electrolysis units was deft and sure. Each girl was
quite capable of treating over two thousand follicles in an hour. Within the
morning session, the boy would be denuded of every single hair of his pubis.
Although all hair growth would be stopped, the hairs would remain in situ until
the area was cleaned by waxing and stripping.
The constant clicking of the
units, the girls breathing and rustle of their tunics as they moved, were the
only sounds to be heard within the room. The absence of noise seemed to amplify
the boy's distress in being in such an embarrassing situation.
One of the most embarrassing
aspects of his predicament was the casual way that the girls were able to touch
him as and when they wanted. The casual application of perhaps a hand being
laid against the inside of his thigh, or the casual way in which the girls
nearest to him would lay their hands gently on his tummy as they sat back to
look at their work, accented his naked vulnerability.
The girls worked quickly and silently,
rapidly treating each area. Their touch was soft and gentle as they carefully
stretched the skin to give them access to even the finest hair.
Inevitably the intimacy of their
touch became too much for the young boy. None of the girls were in the least
surprised as they saw his penis begin to stir. It almost seemed that there had
been an unwritten rule between them that they did not touch his penis,
certainly for the preliminary part of the proceedings until it showed signs of
arousal. Perhaps it was as if to see whether he would become aroused without
their direct intervention. Of course his testicles were being constantly lifted
and handled from in-between the juncture of his thighs... and hands were
caressing his flesh quite openly under the auspices of accessibility.
Jane looked at Susan and gently
touched her hand, drawing the girl's attention to the boy's foreskin. They both
watched as the prepuce gradually drew backwards as the flesh of his penis began
to swell. Millimetre by millimetre, the skin seemed to crawl away from the tip,
slowly revealing the corona of sensitive flesh. They watched avidly as the rim
of the glans became fully visible.
Their attention was drawn to his
blushing face as he reluctantly gasped in shame and humiliation. They watched
his cheeks blush profusely as he suddenly realised that his penis was becoming
erect. Susan felt a sudden sympathy for him, but also a delicious frisson of
excitement as his penis began to throb visibly.
Timothy groaned inwardly in utter
anguish. He could feel that his face was blushing more profusely than ever. He
knew that his reddened cheeks were a testament to his utter embarrassment and
humiliation. His feelings were in turmoil as he felt his penis throb once more,
signalling the futility of his efforts to avert a shameful erection. He just
could not ignore the gentle stroking of his skin as the girls smoothed over his
flesh with their delicate fingers. The touch of four pairs of hands, all
concentrated on the most intimate and sensitive area of his body was entirely
too much for him.
"Oh," he gasped as he
suddenly felt a hand being placed over the shaft of his penis. His resolve to
avoid an erection was utterly futile. He shivered in hopeless resignation,
realising that he could not help the answering throb of his tumescent organ as
cool fingers rested upon the rim of the glans.
He felt the skin above the base
being stretched and the sharp tingling as the soft short hairs were treated. He
quickly looked down between his legs, blushing profusely as the girl touched
his penis again as she bent her head to examine the area above the shaft. He
could feel the tip of his organ tap against her fingers as it throbbed
seemingly of its own volition. At the same time he felt his scrotum being
lifted and the soft touch of gentle fingers as they slipped between his
buttocks and smoothed over the timid flesh of his sphincter.
Jane did not look up as she felt
his flesh engorge and tap against her fingers. Without a moment's hesitation in
her work, she let her fingernails score against the tender flesh of the rim.
She delighted in the sound of his indrawn breath as she deliberately let her
fingers draw the foreskin even further back behind the rim of the glans. She
looked at Susan mischievously as they both watched his penis respond with a
mighty throb.
Timothy quickly averted his eyes
as his penis pulsed again, this time pushing against Jane's hand as it
engorged. The room had been silent until then.
Now the quiet was broken as Susan
gasped in exclamation as the boy's penis rose steadily from between his thighs.
The almost rigid flesh, pushed against Jane's delicate fingers where she held
it for a moment before moving her hand and allowing the turgid organ to spring
free. They all watched as the throbbing flesh stood stiff and upright between
his widely parted thighs.
"Oh look at his penis, he is
having an erection... oh dear... shall I call the supervisor?"
Susan's voice was almost
childlike as she addressed the girls. Jane almost convulsed in fits of laughter
at Susan's feigned innocence. She quickly glanced up towards the boy's face,
delighted to see that his face was flushing vigorously and that his cheeks were
a deep crimson as he studiously looked up at the ceiling in utter
embarrassment.
Jane spoke gently, her voice low
as she placed her fingers delicately around the shaft of the boy's penis.
"Yes I think we shall have to tell Judith. However I think it will be an
ideal opportunity to do the hairs at the base of his little penis. Allison! If
you have finished with the hair, above his penis would you slip away and tell
the supervisor, please?"
Timothy could bear the shame no
longer. His voice trembled as he heard their words. "Oh pleeeease... er
miss. I am so sorry, I didn't mean to er, be like this... er I just couldn't
help it."
Jane looked at him. Her
expression was kindly as she looked at his blushing cheeks and trembling lips.
"Now don't be upset. I am sure that the supervisor won't be cross with
you. But we have to tell her. Now just keep still while I do the hairs at the
base of your penis."
She could not have explained it,
but Jane felt a sudden thrill as she exerted her authority over the young boy.
Deliberately she ran her fingers down the shaft of his penis, pulling the
foreskin downwards until the skin was stretched back as far as it would go. Her
delight in holding the boy in such a way while telling him to keep still, sent
another thrill coursing through her slender body.
She could see the boy's shame
written all over his crimson countenance. His lips were trembling and his eyes
had a look which was a mixture of shame and guilt. He tried to avert his gaze,
but Jane spoke to him again.
"Now Timothy, promise you
will be a good boy and not move while I attend to your little penis." Her
words were designed to add further humiliation to his already overburdened
psyche. Somehow, her delight in her mastery over the boy had made her utter the
shaming instruction.
She looked at him once more
before proceeding to treat the short hairs at the base of his penis. She knew
the other girls were somewhat surprised at her authoritarian attitude. However
she suspected that they were as intrigued as she was at their dominance over
the young boy.
She watched as Allison
disappeared into the supervisor's office and the two other girls went back to
work. She bent her head and began to work quickly and carefully, taking delight
in letting her fingers trail up and down the boy's erect penis as she touched
the electrode to each of the hair follicles around the base. She was aware of
the boy's gasps and indrawn breath as she nonchalantly slipped her fingers over
the head of the penis and drew up the foreskin until it covered the head.
So engrossed was she that she did
not immediately see Allison return until the girl had seated herself once more
at the boy's waist, her flushed cheek touching his widely spread thighs as she
seated herself.
She heard the boy gasp again as
Susan nonchalantly cupped her hand around his testicles and lifted the swollen
scrotum upwards, bending her head forward and checking between the cheeks of
his bottom. Jane did not see exactly what Susan was doing, but she heard the
boy groan several times as her slender fingers probed between the cleft of his
bottom.
It was some time later that
Judith walked into the clinic. Following behind her were two young nurses. Jane
looked up with the other girls to see the pretty young nurses' approach. The
first nurse was carrying a deep tray which she placed on the console next to
where Jane was seated. Jane could see marked differences in their dress -and
indeed in their demeanour, from the nurses she usually saw around the corridors
of the medical section.
As Jane further examined the
nurses she noticed that they were both beautifully made up and looked quite
studious in their wire framed glasses. Their jet back hair was cut very short
and Jane thought that perhaps they could be sisters. She also noticed that
their short white tunic dresses were exquisitely cut and that the material was
of a particularly fine and expensive cotton. As the younger of the two nurses
turned towards the boy, Jane could see a faint colouring of flesh beneath her
dress, intimating to her that perhaps both of the girls were naked beneath
their sheer garments. Judith addressed her girls, ignoring the frightened look
of the naked young boy.
"This is Cynthia and Lisa
Jenkins." She pointed with her open palm as she introduced the young
nurses. "They are both Dr. Ashcroft's assistants and have come to
demonstrate the correct procedure in obtaining semen from our young patient
here. Timothy has a particularly unusual complaint in that he is producing far
too much semen. The result is... er. That unless he is, erm... how shall I
say... relieved, his testicles will cause him pain. They are going to
demonstrate this procedure so that you will be able to erm... milk him
yourselves... rather than Cynthia and Lisa having to break each time from their
busy schedule."
Judith continued quite
nonchalantly, ignoring the frisson of sexual excitement that seemed to have
permeated the room.
"Let me introduce you to the
girls. This is Jane and Susan and over there are June and Alison."
Timothy had immediately
recognized Lisa and Cynthia Jenkins and had blushed immediately. A shiver ran
through his young body as he saw their pretty faces turn towards him and look
his naked body up and down. They both had a slightly amused expression on their
young faces as they saw his blushes.
It was Cynthia Jenkins who spoke
first. "Oh dear, little Timothy has been unable to control himself again.
Never mind..." she turned towards the four girls. "If you would move
your chairs back, I will start with the demonstration." Cynthia watched as
Jane and Susan stood up and moved their chairs away. June and Allison had
already followed suit when Cynthia reached into her tray and took a jar of
lubricant. As she smeared the gel liberally on to her first and second fingers,
she moved to stand between the young boy's legs.
"Would you two girls... June
and Alison isn't it?" Cynthia looked at them smiling as she spoke, "I
would like you to place a hand upon his chest, just in case he tries to rear
up. Timothy can be a naughty little boy sometimes and I am afraid that he has
had to have his little bare bottom spanked on more than one occasion." As
if on cue, all of the girls turned towards Timothy, looking into his blushing
face as Cynthia made the announcement.
Timothy groaned in utter
embarrassment as he saw that all the girls were looking at him. For some reason
he was unable to avert his eyes from them as they showed their surprise at the
news that he had been spanked.
Jane was intrigued at the news
that young boy had been punished. She felt a delicious thrill at the thought of
his naked body being laid face down over her own lap and his upturned cheeks
quivering as she spanked him. She was anxious to learn more about his
punishment but was discreet enough not to broach the subject immediately. She
was quite sure that she would not have been able to hide her rather prurient
interest.
Cynthia drew their attention back
to the demonstration as she slipped her lubricated fingers between the cheeks
of the boy's bottom. His body stiffened immediately as Cynthia cheekily teased
his sphincter with her forefinger.
"Now keep still and don't fidget
while I penetrate your bottom." She addressed the young boy sternly as she
probed and stroked the neat rosebud of flesh. Suddenly the ring of muscle
dilated as she slipped her forefinger up into his anus. The girls watched,
enthralled as the young boy shivered with shame and anguish.
"oop's there we are."
Cynthia announced as she slipped a second finger up into his bottom.
"Now girls, I am going to
probe deeply with my fingers until I can dilate the flesh sufficiently to allow
easy access to his prostrate gland. Then I will show you, one by one, what to
feel for when you take it in turns to do it yourselves."
Timothy was beside himself as the
young nurse casually explored inside him. He could not help gasping with
anguish at the indignity of her intimate explorations. His mind recoiled at the
very thought, that the young nurse was going to let the other girls do the same
thing to him. He groaned and gasped in total shame as her fingers stretched his
sphincter wide.
Jane could not believe her ears
as she had listened to the young nurse. So... they were all going to feel
inside his bottom. She glanced at Susan to see that her eyes were upon the boy,
watching in fascination as the young nurse thrust her fingers up into his
bottom once more.
Cynthia continued... her actions
nonchalant and practiced, completely ignoring the moans of the young boy as he
began to shiver and writhe upon the bed. She spoke once more to the girls.
"You won't need to wear gloves; his bottom has been thoroughly cleansed with
several enemas before he was brought to you. He is squeaky clean inside and
out."
Her voice was cool and calm,
belying the actions of her fingers as she moved them further upwards into the
young boy's bottom.
"Now if you will just watch
Lisa, she will show you how we actually collect the semen." As the girls
turned their heads towards Cynthia's pretty sister, Lisa reached into the tray
and took a glass specimen tube. She held it up and turned the opening towards
the girls.
"If you can see it is made
of quite a thick glass. Inside the opening you will notice that it is ribbed
right up until it narrows. The ribs are quite smooth and are designed to
finally stimulate the penis to ejaculation and contain the content. The ridge
on the side is to allow air into the lower part so that it won't get stuck by
causing suction."
Lisa leaned forward and casually
stretched her delicate fingers outwards before lowering her hand and grasping
the boy's erect penis. Her voice was equally casual as she spoke to the girls.
"After I have manipulated
the foreskin and he shows signs of ejaculating, I stretch the prepuce
back." Delicately she followed words with action, stretching the foreskin
backwards ignoring the boy's gasp of shock as the skin was stretched tight.
"I make sure that the
fraenulum is tightly stretched before I place the opening of the specimen tube
over the head and stimulate the glans-penis like so. It is advisable to hold
the shaft of the penis tightly so that he cannot evade the effect as you
manipulate the tube."
Timothy nearly lifted his torso
off the bed as the young nurse moved the rim of the glass quickly up and down
over the head of his throbbing organ. She did it four times before she took the
glass away. Seemingly, she ignored the boy's writing body and protestations as
she looked towards the girls making sure that they had all observed the
demonstration.
Timothy gasped in shock at the
acute sensation, his body shivering and shaking with emotion. Both June and
Alison had to use both of their hands on the boy's chest to push his upper body
back down upon the bed. Alison then took his wrists and stretched his arms back
outwards above his head, her young breasts pressing against his chest as she
leaned forward.
She felt a thrill of delight as
she handled the trembling boy with ease. She thrilled again as she looked into
his eyes and spoke. "Now just lay quietly like a good boy while the nurse
attends to your penis." She, like Jane, could not have explained the utter
thrill they all felt at having total control over the young boy.
Cynthia had concentrated on
relaxing the sphincter muscle rather than immediately stimulating his prostate.
She was rather afraid that if she stimulated him too much he would ejaculate
before all the girls had had time to take their turns. She turned to Susan,
smiling at her, as she gestured towards the jar of gel.
"Put some lubricant on your
first two fingers..." She watched as Susan hesitantly complied.
"...there that's the way, don't be afraid to use plenty." Her voice
was quite casual as she instructed her. "Now as I extricate my fingers
just slide your middle finger and then your forefinger up through the
sphincter. The muscle is nicely relaxed now... so push straight upwards...
ready... right bring your body further to the middle... there that's the
way."
Cynthia made way for her and
suddenly slipped her fingers from the boy's bottom. "Right straight
upwards... there that's it."
Cynthia watched as Susan slid her
fingers up through the sphincter. Timothy shivered and shook as he felt his
bottom being penetrated. His legs trembled in the confines of the stirrups as
Susan diligently followed Cynthia's instructions.
"Right Susan I want you to
go further in and feel for the prostrate gland. Turn you hand a little and when
you feel it curl you finger so you can stroke over it." Cynthia watched
with satisfaction as the young girl, her lips parted in concentration, leaned
forward and pushed her fingers all the way in.
"There now... you should be
able to feel it now... can you?"
The girls managed to stifle a
giggle as Susan innocently moved her fingers deep within the boy and exclaimed.
"Yes I think this is it...
it feels like a plum."
Cynthia smiled as she wiped the
grease from her hands with a moist medicated tissue.
"Right take your other
hand... and now hold the tip of his penis between your finger and thumb."
Cynthia waited as Susan timidly
touched the tip of the boy's penis with her finger and then, growing bolder,
placed her finger and thumb on either side of the glans.
"O.K. now push your fingers
more firmly up into his bottom and curl them over the prostate... pressing it
as firmly as you can. You should be able to feel his penis pulse when you do
it."
Cynthia watched avidly, as did
all the girls, as Susan leaned forward and pushed her hand firmly between the
cheeks of his bottom. They could see the movement in her slender forearm as she
manipulated her finger inside him.
Suddenly a clear liquid erupted
from the tip of his penis. Judith watched her staff as the boy shivered in
absolute shame and torment. She felt genuinely sorry for the young boy and
moved around the head of the bed. Gently she stroked her hand over his fevered
brow as he drowned within a sea of embarrassment and sexual anguish.
Involuntarily he gasped loudly. A
visible shiver ran through the entire length of his body as he jerked with the
acute sensation of Susan's finger deeply massaging his prostate gland. His face
was beetroot red as he threw his head back in abandon.
"Ooooohhh noooooo
misssss." He gasped, as his penis throbbed once more.
Somehow to Timothy, the thought
of actually ejaculating as Susan innocently explored inside his bottom would
have been the shame to end all shame. He blushed deeply as he saw her look at
him in surprise.
"Oh... look miss... er
nurse. Some fluid has come out of his penis and I can feel it throbbing. Shall
I stop stroking him, erm... inside him I mean?"
Cynthia smiled. "Yes that's
fine Susan... you can take your fingers out now. His bottom should be nicely
relaxed for the next girl."
Each girl went through the same
ritual. Jane, who had waited until last, found particular pleasure in
penetrating the young boy. Her body thrilled again and again as she explored
the core of his sexual being. She noted his responses exactly as her fingers
roamed about inside his bottom. Her feeling of control over his most innermost
feelings gave her a visceral pleasure that she had not experienced before.
It was as she placed her fingers
around the shaft of his penis and stretched his foreskin back, that she came to
know herself... quietly relishing in the pleasure of being utterly and totally
in control of the young boy.
Cynthia immediately recognized
the especially dominant pleasure that Jane was deriving in her intimate
examination of Timothy. The young beauty therapist's words did not surprise her
in the least, as Jane spoke while thrusting her fingers even more deeply into
his bottom.
"Now Timothy, be a good boy
and keep still while I examine inside your bottom, I am sure that you would not
enjoy having your bare little bottom cheeks spanked in front of all these
pretty girls now would you?"
Timothy stammered in shame.
"Please miss... er I'm sorry miss."
The words confirmed Cynthia's
opinion of Jane. She knew that she was in the presence of a kindred spirit.
Her voice was encouraging as she
leaned forward to get a closer look at Jane impalement of the young boy.
"If you prod the prostate with your fingers Jane, you will find that he
will respond in a more overt manner.
Cynthia watched as Jane moved her
hand more vigorously within the confines of the boy's buttocks, at the same
time stretching his foreskin back down the shaft until the skin was stretched
tight. Timothy gasped in anguish as his sexual feelings were expertly plundered.
Another globule of clear sticky fluid emerged from his penis as he groaned in
shame. His young face was suffused in a deep blush of purple as Jane chided him
again.
"Now do try and keep still
Timothy I am just going to prod you with my fingers one more time. Now try and
keep your little bottom still for me."
Cynthia glanced at her sister,
giving her a knowing look, as they watched Jane's handling of the young boy.
The true meaning of Jane's words might have been lost upon the rest of the
girls, but Lisa and Cynthia knew full-well that Jane was experiencing great
satisfaction from her handling of the boy's psyche as well as his young body.
Cynthia did not hurry Jane as she
experimented with the boy. When at last she extricated her fingers, Cynthia
handed her a moist medicated tissue and placed her arm around her waist.
"Well done Jane and the rest
of you girls. I think you will be able to manage quite admirably on your own.
Lisa and I will just extract one sample and then you can give him a rest for
twenty minutes or so before taking the second one. Now let's see... what time
is it now. Ah... nine thirty already... well in that case he will need to be
milked twice at eleven thirty and then of course the same at say... one thirty.
Will you be bathing him before he leaves?"
Jane was in such rapture at her
thoughts of what they were going to do to the boy, that it was a second or so
before she realised that a question had been asked.
It was Judith that answered as
she gently stroked her hands over the boys blushing cheeks. "Yes, we
usually perform a superficial massage after waxing and depilation... then we
normally take them through to the wet-room for a deep cleansing body wash. Will
that be alright?"
Cynthia smiled. "Yes that
will be fine... please don't hurry. Just ring through to Doctor Ashcroft's
reception when you are done with him. I will make arrangements to have him
brought back to us. If you would let him have a drink at around eleven o'clock,
with some biscuits perhaps, I will see that he gets his lunch as soon as he is
brought back to us."
Cynthia gave Jane a squeeze and
then moved forward to stand directly between the boy's widely spread legs. She
looked at him and spoke. "Right Timothy, you have probably been listening
to what I have said. So I want you to be a very good little boy while I milk
you. The girls here will be taking over after I finish and I want you to
promise me that you will be very good and not make a fuss. So look at me
Timothy and tell me that you are going to be a very, very obedient little
boy."
She hesitated for a moment and
then seemed to make up her mind.
"If the staff here have any
trouble with you, I shall not hesitate in coming back and taking you over my
knees for a sound spanking."
She looked into his blushing face,
delighting in the look of guilt and anguish in his eyes as she addressed him.
She scooped a large globule of lubricant from the jar with her first two
fingers before moving forward. Deftly she cupped his testicles and lifted them
upwards as she slid her lubricated fingers between the cheeks of his bottom.
The boy shivered with the
acuteness of her preliminary contact, steeling himself for what must surely
follow.
"Well Timothy... I am
waiting for your promise."
Timothy blushed again, his voice
shaking as he spoke. "Oh please Miss.. er.. I, I promise... I really will
be good... ...Arggghhh." His involuntary gasp told the girls that Cynthia
had penetrated his bottom with her finger. They watched him writhe as the young
nurse summarily penetrated him with a second finger and let his testicles down
gently. "Now I want no fidgeting." She leaned forward and encased the
throbbing shaft of his penis, casually letting her fingers retract the foreskin
until it revealed the glistening head of the glans.
Even with all that had gone
before, Timothy was unprepared for anguished embarrassment that he now felt.
Somehow the thought of displaying his emotions in front of the pretty
beauticians humiliated him more than he could bear and yet he could not help
writhing in sensation as the nurse penetrated him fully. He shivered and shook,
his mind in a cloud of unremitting shame as his body naievely responded to the
nurse's ministrations. Where-ever he looked, there seemed to be a vista of
pretty faces looking down at him. Their expressions seemed to be aloof and
indifferent to his torment as he shivered and shook in deep emotion.
The girls watched in awe as the
nurse began to slip the foreskin up and down the shaft of his penis. They
thrilled each time the boy gasped and groaned with sensation. Jane could see
that Cynthia was already touching the boy's prostate gland as he tried to lift
his hips from the table. June and Alison quickly put their hands against his
chest as Judith leaned forward and gently held his head. Her words were soft
and encouraging as she leaned over the anguished young boy. "There
sweetheart... just try and relax... there it won't be long now."
Timothy tried to thrash his head
from side to side, but Judith held him firmly and spoke softly to him. Although
her gentle words were designed to comfort him, they seemed to inflame him more
than console him. "There... that's a good boy. The nurse is going to make
you ejaculate quite soon... it won't be long now... just hold on... just a
little while longer now."
Timothy could not control the
tremor in his legs. His chest heaved upwards as he gasped for breath. The
nurse's fingers seemed to be probing even more deeply inside his bottom. It
seemed that her fingers were following his emotions with a deadly accuracy,
finding his most sensitive nerve endings and stimulating them with a skill that
made futile his efforts to evade her touch. The intimate and invasive probing
and prodding inside his bottom was so intensive that he felt he would die with
sensation. Such was the intensity of his stimulation that he felt he could not
bear it, even for one more second. Yet it continued, deft and thorough... an
unrelenting and invasive plundering of his deepest sensibilities.
Jane was enthralled.
Instinctively she placed her hand on the inside of his thigh, leaning forward
to watch Cynthia at work. She stroked the boy's leg sensuously as she watched
Cynthia's fingers seemingly delve even more deeply inside his quivering bottom.
"There, that's a good boy.
You seem to be coming along nicely." Cynthia turned to Jane and then
looked over at the other girls as she spoke once more. "Lisa is going to
take over stimulating his penis, if you watch closely you will be able to see
the technique she uses.
As if on cue, Lisa leaned forward
and placed her fingers just beneath Cynthia's, around the shaft at the base of
the penis. Without interruption to the boy's stimulation, Cynthia let go, as
Lisa took up the rhythm, slipping the foreskin up and down in a well practiced
motion.
The boy gasped loudly as Cynthia
cupped her hand around his testicles and kneaded them between her fingers
before squeezing them firmly. At the same time she began to prod his bottom
with a series of firm motions.
Both Lisa and Cynthia seemed
oblivious to his writhing and groaning as they deftly stimulated his young body
to an anguished ecstasy. It seemed to be only moments later that Lisa held the
specimen tube over the head of his penis.
Jane noticed both of the nurses
look at each other as Lisa nonchalantly pulled the foreskin tightly down the
shaft of his penis. Almost callously she placed the tube over the head and
manipulated it up and down in a blur of speed. The boy's reaction astonished
Jane as his body became tensed so tightly that she could see the sinews of his
legs in stark relief against the muscle. His hips were raised from the bed as
his body froze in utter torment. Suddenly huge globules of semen erupted into
the specimen tube as a cry of anguish was torn from deep within his chest.
"Arggggggggggggghhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh."
His groan punched into the silence, body shuddering as if in the rigours of a
seizure.
Cynthia's voice was cool and
calm, in stark contrast to the anguished cry from the young boy as he was
forced to ejaculate helplessly. "Now lets have a nice big sample... there
we are. Just a little longer... it will all be over soon." Her hand was
thrusting deeply between the cheeks of his bottom. Staccato jabs of her finger
prodded his prostate gland relentlessly as she coaxed him both physically and
verbally.
"Come along now... it will
soon be over." Cynthia squeezed his testicles firmly while continuing to
prod and probe his prostate gland. She seemed quite unperturbed by the boy's
agonized tensing. Without altering the cadence or firmness of her fingers, she
turned her head to Jane. "Would you give him about some firm slaps on his
bottom... as quickly as you can. It will stimulate him and helps me extract
more semen." Cynthia's tone was quite nonchalant and matter-of-fact, uttering
the words as if asking someone to smack his bottom was the most normal thing in
the world.
Jane did not question the request
but turned her body and immediately smacked his left buttock with her open
palm. She dare not look at the other girls as she raised her hand again and
leaned across Cynthia so that she was able to smack both buttocks in turn.
"smacckk... smaccckkk...
smacccckkk." Her hand slapped first one raised buttock and then the other
as Cynthia prodded vigorously between the cheeks. Jane could not have
articulated the utter delight she felt as smacked the boy's upturned bottom.
She watched his semen continue to spurt into the jar as Lisa moved the glass
quickly over the rim of his penis. She had let his penis move lower pointing it
towards his naval so as not to spill the contents as the jar filled rapidly.
Suddenly without warning the
boy's body went limp, his breath oozed out of his chest in a prolonged sigh as
his hips sank to the surface of the bed. Lisa removed the specimen jar and
placed the lip under the tip of his penis, squeezing the shaft in an upwards
motion, she milked the last drop of viscous fluid up to the tip and caught it
in the glass.
Jane stopped her spanking
immediately and looked at the boy's face. His mouth was hanging open as he gasped
for breath. He looked near to exhaustion, although Jane was pleased to see that
he had not fainted.
Timothy could not help blushing
furiously as he realised all the girls had been watching his reluctant orgasm.
His young body trembled as he lay in abject embarrassment at the thought it. He
closed his eyes, unable to bear the shame and humiliation.
Cynthia had quickly withdrawn her
fingers from his bottom, giving his testicles one last squeeze before moving
away from her position between his outstretched legs. She was sure that Jane
had delighted in her instruction to smack the young boys bottom. She quickly
glanced at the girl's face to see that her cheeks were flushed with excitement.
Cynthia did not spare the boy
from further embarrassment as she spoke to him. "Timothy... open your eyes
and look at me." She turned to the girls. "Little boys seem to have
no control over their emotions." She looked back at the young boy.
"Now I want no nonsense when the girls milk you... no wriggling about and
no tensing your bottom. Or I shall get Jane to spank you properly. Do you
understand me?"
Shame-faced and blushing
furiously, Timothy looked at the young nurse. His voice was tremulous as he
answered her. "I... er I promise miss... oh please miss... please do I
have to do it again?"
Cynthia's voice was stern.
"Of course you do... that's why you are here. Now stop this nonsense
immediately or I will have your bottom soundly spanked... do you hear me?"
Cynthia slapped the upturned cheeks of his bottom as she finished the sentence.
"Smacckkkk."
Almost faint with shame, the
young boy looked up at her, his words barely audible. "Oh please miss I'm
sorry... please I will be good."
Cynthia looked at the girls.
"Little boys make such a fuss when they have to have their little penises
milked. You will just have to be very firm with him if he gets out of line. We
have been given parental permission to spank him soundly if he misbehaves or is
disobedient.
Lisa took a small metal stand
from the tray and stood the specimen tube upright before turning towards the
girls. Much to the boy's utter embarrassment she leaned over and took his
flaccid penis between finger and thumb, holding the foreskin below the bulge of
the head which was now partially covered.
"Just be careful around the
rim of the glans when you wash him... it will be very sensitive for the next
few minutes." She slipped the foreskin back to show the rim of the
glans-penis which she pointed to before laying the soft flesh down gently on to
his tummy. She looked at Judith who was tenderly stroking the young boy's
cheek.
"He has produced a very
large volume of semen just now... so perhaps a wait of say... half and hour,
before you extract any more. There is no reason that you can't carry on with
his depilation after you have washed his penis. I have left several specimen
tubes as well as plenty of lubricant. If you have any difficulty please call us
at Medical Reception."
Judith noticed that all the girls
seemed rather flushed as, a few moments later; they all sat back down to work.
She moved away from the boy and walked with Lisa and Cynthia back through to
the reception area.
Jane had rinsed a soft wash cloth
and gently washed the boy's flaccid penis. He had jerked and groaned a couple
of times as she caught the more sensitive areas. Much to his embarrassment she
had admonished him. "Now keep still and stop making such a fuss, while I
wash your little Willy." The other girls had giggled as she said the word
Willy. Timothy was so embarrassed, that as they laughed, he turned his head
away in shame.
The girls immediately started
whispering in each-other's ears as they started work again. They kept looking
up at Timothy to make sure that he could not hear their conversation. It seemed
from their hurried whispers that Jane had already been elected to stimulate the
boy's prostate gland while, it seemed, that June would be handling the specimen
tube.
(End of File)